This is a modern-English version of The Light of the Western Stars, originally written by Grey, Zane.
It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling,
and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If
you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.
Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.
THE LIGHT OF WESTERN STARS
by Zane Grey
I. A Gentleman of the Range
When Madeline Hammond stepped from the train at El Cajon, New Mexico, it was nearly midnight, and her first impression was of a huge dark space of cool, windy emptiness, strange and silent, stretching away under great blinking white stars.
When Madeline Hammond got off the train in El Cajon, New Mexico, it was almost midnight, and her first impression was of a vast, dark space filled with cool, windy emptiness, weird and quiet, extending beneath bright, blinking white stars.
“Miss, there’s no one to meet you,” said the conductor, rather anxiously.
“Miss, there’s no one here to meet you,” said the conductor, a bit nervously.
“I wired my brother,” she replied. “The train being so late—perhaps he grew tired of waiting. He will be here presently. But, if he should not come—surely I can find a hotel?”
“I texted my brother,” she replied. “The train is running so late—maybe he got tired of waiting. He’ll be here soon. But if he doesn't come—I'm sure I can find a hotel?”
“There’s lodgings to be had. Get the station agent to show you. If you’ll excuse me—this is no place for a lady like you to be alone at night. It’s a rough little town—mostly Mexicans, miners, cowboys. And they carouse a lot. Besides, the revolution across the border has stirred up some excitement along the line. Miss, I guess it’s safe enough, if you—”
“There are places to stay. Ask the station agent to show you. If you don’t mind me saying—this isn’t a safe place for a lady like you to be alone at night. It’s a rough little town—mostly Mexicans, miners, and cowboys. They party a lot. Plus, the revolution across the border has caused some excitement around here. Miss, I think it’s safe enough, if you—”
“Thank you. I am not in the least afraid.”
“Thank you. I’m not scared at all.”
As the train started to glide away Miss Hammond walked towards the dimly lighted station. As she was about to enter she encountered a Mexican with sombrero hiding his features and a blanket mantling his shoulders.
As the train began to pull away, Miss Hammond walked toward the poorly lit station. Just as she was about to enter, she came across a Mexican wearing a sombrero that obscured his face and a blanket draped over his shoulders.
“Is there any one here to meet Miss Hammond?” she asked.
“Is anyone here to meet Miss Hammond?” she asked.
“No sabe, Senora,” he replied from under the muffling blanket, and he shuffled away into the shadow.
“No, ma'am,” he replied from under the heavy blanket, and he shuffled back into the shadows.
She entered the empty waiting-room. An oil-lamp gave out a thick yellow light. The ticket window was open, and through it she saw there was neither agent nor operator in the little compartment. A telegraph instrument clicked faintly.
She walked into the empty waiting room. An oil lamp cast a dull yellow light. The ticket window was open, and she could see there was no agent or operator in the small booth. A telegraph machine clicked softly.
Madeline Hammond stood tapping a shapely foot on the floor, and with some amusement contrasted her reception in El Cajon with what it was when she left a train at the Grand Central. The only time she could remember ever having been alone like this was once when she had missed her maid and her train at a place outside of Versailles—an adventure that had been a novel and delightful break in the prescribed routine of her much-chaperoned life. She crossed the waiting-room to a window and, holding aside her veil, looked out. At first she could descry only a few dim lights, and these blurred in her sight. As her eyes grew accustomed to the darkness she saw a superbly built horse standing near the window. Beyond was a bare square. Or, if it was a street, it was the widest one Madeline had ever seen. The dim lights shone from low, flat buildings. She made out the dark shapes of many horses, all standing motionless with drooping heads. Through a hole in the window-glass came a cool breeze, and on it breathed a sound that struck coarsely upon her ear—a discordant mingling of laughter and shout, and the tramp of boots to the hard music of a phonograph.
Madeline Hammond stood tapping her stylish foot on the floor, and with some amusement, she compared her welcome in El Cajon to what it had been when she got off a train at Grand Central. The only time she could remember being alone like this was once when she lost track of her maid and her train outside of Versailles—an experience that had been a refreshing and exciting break in her heavily chaperoned life. She crossed the waiting room to a window and, pushing aside her veil, looked out. At first, she could only make out a few faint lights, which blurred in her vision. As her eyes adjusted to the darkness, she noticed a beautifully built horse standing near the window. Beyond was an empty square. Or, if it was a street, it was the widest one Madeline had ever seen. The dim lights came from low, flat buildings. She could see the dark shapes of many horses, all standing still with their heads hanging low. A cool breeze slipped through a crack in the window, bringing with it a sound that struck her ears harshly—a jarring mix of laughter and shouting, along with the sound of boots on hard ground to the noisy beat of a phonograph.
“Western revelry,” mused Miss Hammond, as she left the window. “Now, what to do? I’ll wait here. Perhaps the station agent will return soon, or Alfred will come for me.”
“Western parties,” thought Miss Hammond as she stepped away from the window. “So, what should I do? I’ll just wait here. Maybe the station agent will be back soon, or Alfred will come to get me.”
As she sat down to wait she reviewed the causes which accounted for the remarkable situation in which she found herself. That Madeline Hammond should be alone, at a late hour, in a dingy little Western railroad station, was indeed extraordinary.
As she settled in to wait, she reflected on the reasons that explained the unusual situation she was in. It was truly surprising that Madeline Hammond was alone in a run-down little Western train station at such a late hour.
The close of her debutante year had been marred by the only unhappy experience of her life—the disgrace of her brother and his leaving home. She dated the beginning of a certain thoughtful habit of mind from that time, and a dissatisfaction with the brilliant life society offered her. The change had been so gradual that it was permanent before she realized it. For a while an active outdoor life—golf, tennis, yachting—kept this realization from becoming morbid introspection. There came a time when even these lost charm for her, and then she believed she was indeed ill in mind. Travel did not help her.
The end of her debutante year was overshadowed by the only unhappy event of her life—the disgrace of her brother and his departure from home. She marked the start of a certain reflective way of thinking from that moment, along with a growing discontent with the exciting life that society offered her. The change was so gradual that it became a permanent part of her before she even noticed. For a while, an active outdoor lifestyle—golf, tennis, yachting—kept this realization from turning into unhealthy self-reflection. Eventually, even those activities lost their appeal, and she came to believe that she was truly unwell mentally. Traveling didn’t help her either.
There had been months of unrest, of curiously painful wonderment that her position, her wealth, her popularity no longer sufficed. She believed she had lived through the dreams and fancies of a girl to become a woman of the world. And she had gone on as before, a part of the glittering show, but no longer blind to the truth—that there was nothing in her luxurious life to make it significant.
There had been months of unease, a strangely painful realization that her status, her wealth, and her popularity no longer felt enough. She thought she had transitioned from the dreams and fantasies of a girl into a woman of the world. And she continued as she always had, part of the glamorous facade, but no longer oblivious to the truth—that there was nothing in her luxurious life that gave it real meaning.
Sometimes from the depths of her there flashed up at odd moments intimations of a future revolt. She remembered one evening at the opera when the curtain had risen upon a particularly well-done piece of stage scenery—a broad space of deep desolateness, reaching away under an infinitude of night sky, illumined by stars. The suggestion it brought of vast wastes of lonely, rugged earth, of a great, blue-arched vault of starry sky, pervaded her soul with a strange, sweet peace.
Sometimes from the depths of her being, glimpses of a future rebellion flashed at unexpected moments. She recalled one evening at the opera when the curtain rose on a particularly well-crafted piece of stage scenery—a wide expanse of deep desolation, stretching out under an endless night sky, lit by stars. The scene evoked vast stretches of solitary, rough earth and a grand, blue-arched canopy of twinkling stars, filling her soul with a strange, sweet peace.
When the scene was changed she lost this vague new sense of peace, and she turned away from the stage in irritation. She looked at the long, curved tier of glittering boxes that represented her world. It was a distinguished and splendid world—the wealth, fashion, culture, beauty, and blood of a nation. She, Madeline Hammond, was a part of it. She smiled, she listened, she talked to the men who from time to time strolled into the Hammond box, and she felt that there was not a moment when she was natural, true to herself. She wondered why these people could not somehow, some way be different; but she could not tell what she wanted them to be. If they had been different they would not have fitted the place; indeed, they would not have been there at all. Yet she thought wistfully that they lacked something for her.
When the scene changed, she lost that vague feeling of peace, and she turned away from the stage in annoyance. She looked at the long, curved row of sparkling boxes that represented her world. It was a distinguished and glamorous world—the wealth, fashion, culture, beauty, and lineage of a nation. She, Madeline Hammond, was a part of it. She smiled, listened, and chatted with the men who occasionally wandered into the Hammond box, but she felt that she was never truly herself. She wondered why these people couldn’t somehow be different, but she couldn't figure out what she wanted them to be. If they were different, they wouldn’t fit in at all; in fact, they wouldn’t be there at all. Still, she thought longingly that they were missing something for her.
And suddenly realizing she would marry one of these men if she did not revolt, she had been assailed by a great weariness, an icy-sickening sense that life had palled upon her. She was tired of fashionable society. She was tired of polished, imperturbable men who sought only to please her. She was tired of being feted, admired, loved, followed, and importuned; tired of people; tired of houses, noise, ostentation, luxury. She was so tired of herself!
And suddenly realizing she would marry one of these guys if she didn’t rebel, she was hit by a wave of exhaustion, a cold, sick feeling that life had become dull for her. She was done with trendy society. She was fed up with composed, unflappable men who only wanted to make her happy. She was over being celebrated, admired, loved, pursued, and pestered; tired of people; tired of houses, noise, showiness, and luxury. She was just so tired of herself!
In the lonely distances and the passionless stars of boldly painted stage scenery she had caught a glimpse of something that stirred her soul. The feeling did not last. She could not call it back. She imagined that the very boldness of the scene had appealed to her; she divined that the man who painted it had found inspiration, joy, strength, serenity in rugged nature. And at last she knew what she needed—to be alone, to brood for long hours, to gaze out on lonely, silent, darkening stretches, to watch the stars, to face her soul, to find her real self.
In the vast emptiness and the cold stars of the brightly colored stage backdrop, she caught a glimpse of something that touched her soul. That feeling didn’t last. She couldn’t get it back. She thought that the striking boldness of the scene had drawn her in; she sensed that the artist who created it had found inspiration, joy, strength, and peace in the rugged beauty of nature. Finally, she realized what she needed—to be alone, to reflect for long hours, to look out at the empty, quiet, darkening landscapes, to watch the stars, to confront her soul, to discover her true self.
Then it was she had first thought of visiting the brother who had gone West to cast his fortune with the cattlemen. As it happened, she had friends who were on the eve of starting for California, and she made a quick decision to travel with them. When she calmly announced her intention of going out West her mother had exclaimed in consternation; and her father, surprised into pathetic memory of the black sheep of the family, had stared at her with glistening eyes. “Why, Madeline! You want to see that wild boy!” Then he had reverted to the anger he still felt for his wayward son, and he had forbidden Madeline to go. Her mother forgot her haughty poise and dignity. Madeline, however, had exhibited a will she had never before been known to possess. She stood her ground even to reminding them that she was twenty-four and her own mistress. In the end she had prevailed, and that without betraying the real state of her mind.
Then she first thought about visiting her brother who had gone West to try his luck with the cattlemen. As it turned out, she had friends who were about to leave for California, and she quickly decided to travel with them. When she calmly announced her plan to go West, her mother gasped in shock, and her father, caught off guard by memories of the family's black sheep, stared at her with tear-filled eyes. “Why, Madeline! You want to see that wild boy!” Then he returned to the anger he still felt for his rebellious son, forbidding Madeline from going. Her mother dropped her haughty poise and dignity. However, Madeline showed a determination she had never displayed before. She stood firm, even reminding them that she was twenty-four and in charge of her own life. In the end, she won her case without revealing her true feelings.
Her decision to visit her brother had been too hurriedly made and acted upon for her to write him about it, and so she had telegraphed him from New York, and also, a day later, from Chicago, where her traveling friends had been delayed by illness. Nothing could have turned her back then. Madeline had planned to arrive in El Cajon on October 3d, her brother’s birthday, and she had succeeded, though her arrival occurred at the twenty-fourth hour. Her train had been several hours late. Whether or not the message had reached Alfred’s hands she had no means of telling, and the thing which concerned her now was the fact that she had arrived and he was not there to meet her.
Her decision to visit her brother was made too quickly for her to write him about it, so she sent him a telegram from New York and, a day later, from Chicago, where her traveling friends had been held up by illness. Nothing could have made her turn back. Madeline had planned to reach El Cajon on October 3rd, her brother's birthday, and she did, although she arrived at the last minute. Her train had been several hours late. She had no way of knowing if the message reached Alfred, and what concerned her now was that she had arrived and he wasn’t there to meet her.
It did not take long for thought of the past to give way wholly to the reality of the present.
It didn’t take long for memories of the past to completely fade away in the face of the present reality.
“I hope nothing has happened to Alfred,” she said to herself. “He was well, doing splendidly, the last time he wrote. To be sure, that was a good while ago; but, then, he never wrote often. He’s all right. Pretty soon he’ll come, and how glad I’ll be! I wonder if he has changed.”
“I hope nothing's happened to Alfred,” she said to herself. “He was doing great the last time he wrote. Sure, that was a while ago; but he never wrote often. He's fine. He'll be here soon, and I'll be so happy! I wonder if he’s changed.”
As Madeline sat waiting in the yellow gloom she heard the faint, intermittent click of the telegraph instrument, the low hum of wires, the occasional stamp of an iron-shod hoof, and a distant vacant laugh rising above the sounds of the dance. These commonplace things were new to her. She became conscious of a slight quickening of her pulse. Madeline had only a limited knowledge of the West. Like all of her class, she had traveled Europe and had neglected America. A few letters from her brother had confused her already vague ideas of plains and mountains, as well as of cowboys and cattle. She had been astounded at the interminable distance she had traveled, and if there had been anything attractive to look at in all that journey she had passed it in the night. And here she sat in a dingy little station, with telegraph wires moaning a lonely song in the wind.
As Madeline sat waiting in the dim yellow light, she heard the faint, sporadic clicking of the telegraph machine, the low buzz of wires, the occasional thud of an iron-shod hoof, and a distant, empty laugh rising above the sounds of the dance. These ordinary things felt new to her. She noticed a slight quickening of her heartbeat. Madeline had only a limited understanding of the West. Like many of her background, she had traveled around Europe and ignored America. A few letters from her brother had muddled her already unclear ideas about plains and mountains, as well as cowboys and cattle. She had been amazed by the endless distance she had covered, and if there was anything interesting to see on that journey, she had missed it in the night. Now, she found herself in a shabby little station, with telegraph wires singing a lonely tune in the wind.
A faint sound like the rattling of thin chains diverted Madeline’s attention. At first she imagined it was made by the telegraph wires. Then she heard a step. The door swung wide; a tall man entered, and with him came the clinking rattle. She realized then that the sound came from his spurs. The man was a cowboy, and his entrance recalled vividly to her that of Dustin Farnum in the first act of “The Virginian.”
A faint sound like the rattling of thin chains caught Madeline's attention. At first, she thought it was the telegraph wires. Then she heard a step. The door swung open wide; a tall man walked in, and with him came the clinking rattle. She realized that the sound was coming from his spurs. The man was a cowboy, and his entrance reminded her vividly of Dustin Farnum in the first act of "The Virginian."
“Will you please direct me to a hotel?” asked Madeline, rising.
“Could you please show me where a hotel is?” asked Madeline, standing up.
The cowboy removed his sombrero, and the sweep he made with it and the accompanying bow, despite their exaggeration, had a kind of rude grace. He took two long strides toward her.
The cowboy took off his sombrero, and the way he waved it and bowed, even if it was a bit over the top, had a certain rough charm. He walked two long steps toward her.
“Lady, are you married?”
“Ma'am, are you married?”
In the past Miss Hammond’s sense of humor had often helped her to overlook critical exactions natural to her breeding. She kept silence, and she imagined it was just as well that her veil hid her face at the moment. She had been prepared to find cowboys rather striking, and she had been warned not to laugh at them.
In the past, Miss Hammond’s sense of humor often helped her overlook the critical demands that came from her upbringing. She stayed quiet and thought it was probably good that her veil was hiding her face at that moment. She had been ready to find the cowboys pretty appealing, and she had been advised not to laugh at them.
This gentleman of the range deliberately reached down and took up her left hand. Before she recovered from her start of amaze he had stripped off her glove.
This man from the range intentionally reached down and took her left hand. Before she could recover from her surprise, he had removed her glove.
“Fine spark, but no wedding-ring,” he drawled. “Lady, I’m glad to see you’re not married.”
“Nice sparkle, but no wedding ring,” he said with a slow drawl. “Lady, I’m happy to see you’re single.”
He released her hand and returned the glove.
He let go of her hand and gave back the glove.
“You see, the only ho-tel in this here town is against boarding married women.”
“You see, the only hotel in this town doesn’t allow married women to stay.”
“Indeed?” said Madeline, trying to adjust her wits to the situation.
“Really?” said Madeline, trying to get her head around the situation.
“It sure is,” he went on. “Bad business for ho-tels to have married women. Keeps the boys away. You see, this isn’t Reno.”
“It really is,” he continued. “It’s bad for hotels to have married women. It drives the guys away. You see, this isn’t Reno.”
Then he laughed rather boyishly, and from that, and the way he slouched on his sombrero, Madeline realized he was half drunk. As she instinctively recoiled she not only gave him a keener glance, but stepped into a position where a better light shone on his face. It was like red bronze, bold, raw, sharp. He laughed again, as if good-naturedly amused with himself, and the laugh scarcely changed the hard set of his features. Like that of all women whose beauty and charm had brought them much before the world, Miss Hammond’s intuition had been developed until she had a delicate and exquisitely sensitive perception of the nature of men and of her effect upon them. This crude cowboy, under the influence of drink, had affronted her; nevertheless, whatever was in his mind, he meant no insult.
Then he laughed in a playful way, and from that, along with how he lounged in his sombrero, Madeline realized he was a bit tipsy. As she instinctively pulled away, she not only took a closer look at him but also moved to a spot where better light illuminated his face. It was like red bronze—bold, raw, and sharp. He laughed again, as if genuinely amused with himself, and that laugh barely changed the hardened look on his face. Like all women whose beauty and charm have brought them into the spotlight, Miss Hammond had developed an intuition that gave her a finely tuned and sensitive understanding of men and how she affected them. This rough cowboy, under the influence of alcohol, had insulted her; still, no matter what he was thinking, he meant no offense.
“I shall be greatly obliged if you will show me to the hotel,” she said.
"I would really appreciate it if you could show me to the hotel," she said.
“Lady, you wait here,” he replied, slowly, as if his thought did not come swiftly. “I’ll go fetch the porter.”
“Lady, you stay here,” he said slowly, as if he was gathering his thoughts. “I’ll go get the porter.”
She thanked him, and as he went out, closing the door, she sat down in considerable relief. It occurred to her that she should have mentioned her brother’s name. Then she fell to wondering what living with such uncouth cowboys had done to Alfred. He had been wild enough in college, and she doubted that any cowboy could have taught him much. She alone of her family had ever believed in any latent good in Alfred Hammond, and her faith had scarcely survived the two years of silence.
She thanked him, and as he went out, closing the door, she sat down with a significant sense of relief. It crossed her mind that she should have mentioned her brother’s name. Then she started to wonder what living with such rough cowboys had done to Alfred. He had been wild enough in college, and she doubted that any cowboy could have taught him much. She alone in her family had ever believed in any hidden good in Alfred Hammond, and her faith had barely lasted through the two years of silence.
Waiting there, she again found herself listening to the moan of the wind through the wires. The horse outside began to pound with heavy hoofs, and once he whinnied. Then Madeline heard a rapid pattering, low at first and growing louder, which presently she recognized as the galloping of horses. She went to the window, thinking, hoping her brother had arrived. But as the clatter increased to a roar, shadows sped by—lean horses, flying manes and tails, sombreroed riders, all strange and wild in her sight. Recalling what the conductor had said, she was at some pains to quell her uneasiness. Dust-clouds shrouded the dim lights in the windows. Then out of the gloom two figures appeared, one tall, the other slight. The cowboy was returning with a porter.
Waiting there, she found herself listening to the wind moaning through the wires again. The horse outside started to pound the ground with heavy hooves and let out a whinny. Then Madeline heard a quick pattering sound, low at first but growing louder, which she soon recognized as the galloping of horses. She rushed to the window, thinking and hoping her brother had arrived. But as the noise grew to a roar, shadows raced by—lean horses, flying manes and tails, riders in sombreros, all looking strange and wild to her. Remembering what the conductor had said, she was trying hard to calm her nerves. Dust clouds obscured the dim lights in the windows. Then, out of the darkness, two figures emerged, one tall and the other slight. The cowboy was coming back with a porter.
Heavy footsteps sounded without, and lighter ones dragging along, and then suddenly the door rasped open, jarring the whole room. The cowboy entered, pulling a disheveled figure—that of a priest, a padre, whose mantle had manifestly been disarranged by the rude grasp of his captor. Plain it was that the padre was extremely terrified.
Heavy footsteps echoed outside, followed by lighter ones that dragged along, and then suddenly the door creaked open, shaking the whole room. The cowboy walked in, pulling a disheveled figure behind him—it was a priest, a padre, whose cloak had clearly been messed up by the rough grip of his captor. It was obvious that the padre was extremely frightened.
Madeline Hammond gazed in bewilderment at the little man, so pale and shaken, and a protest trembled upon her lips; but it was never uttered, for this half-drunken cowboy now appeared to be a cool, grim-smiling devil; and stretching out a long arm, he grasped her and swung her back to the bench.
Madeline Hammond stared in confusion at the little man, who looked so pale and shaken, and a protest was about to escape her lips; but it never came out, because this half-drunk cowboy now seemed like a calm, grimly smiling devil; and reaching out his long arm, he grabbed her and swung her back to the bench.
“You stay there!” he ordered.
“Stay there!” he ordered.
His voice, though neither brutal nor harsh nor cruel, had the unaccountable effect of making her feel powerless to move. No man had ever before addressed her in such a tone. It was the woman in her that obeyed—not the personality of proud Madeline Hammond.
His voice, which was neither rough nor harsh nor mean, had the strange effect of making her feel unable to move. No man had ever spoken to her in such a way before. It was the woman inside her that complied—not the proud personality of Madeline Hammond.
The padre lifted his clasped hands as if supplicating for his life, and began to speak hurriedly in Spanish. Madeline did not understand the language. The cowboy pulled out a huge gun and brandished it in the priest’s face. Then he lowered it, apparently to point it at the priest’s feet. There was a red flash, and then a thundering report that stunned Madeline. The room filled with smoke and the smell of powder. Madeline did not faint or even shut her eyes, but she felt as if she were fast in a cold vise. When she could see distinctly through the smoke she experienced a sensation of immeasurable relief that the cowboy had not shot the padre. But he was still waving the gun, and now appeared to be dragging his victim toward her. What possibly could be the drunken fool’s intention? This must be, this surely was a cowboy trick. She had a vague, swiftly flashing recollection of Alfred’s first letters descriptive of the extravagant fun of cowboys. Then she vividly remembered a moving picture she had seen—cowboys playing a monstrous joke on a lone school-teacher. Madeline no sooner thought of it than she made certain her brother was introducing her to a little wild West amusement. She could scarcely believe it, yet it must be true. Alfred’s old love of teasing her might have extended even to this outrage. Probably he stood just outside the door or window laughing at her embarrassment.
The priest raised his hands together as if begging for his life and started speaking quickly in Spanish. Madeline didn’t understand the language. The cowboy pulled out a huge gun and waved it in the priest’s face. Then he lowered it, seemingly aiming it at the priest’s feet. There was a red flash, followed by a deafening bang that shocked Madeline. The room filled with smoke and the smell of gunpowder. Madeline didn’t faint or even close her eyes, but she felt like she was trapped in a cold vise. When she could see clearly through the smoke, she felt an immense relief that the cowboy hadn’t shot the priest. But he was still waving the gun, and now it looked like he was dragging his victim toward her. What on earth could this drunken fool be thinking? This had to be some sort of cowboy trick. She had a vague, quick memory of Alfred’s first letters describing the wild fun of cowboys. Then she vividly remembered a movie she’d seen—cowboys pulling a huge prank on a lone schoolteacher. As soon as she thought of it, she convinced herself that her brother was introducing her to some wild West fun. She could hardly believe it, but it had to be true. Alfred’s old love for teasing her might have even led to this crazy stunt. He was probably standing just outside the door or window, laughing at her embarrassment.
Anger checked her panic. She straightened up with what composure this surprise had left her and started for the door. But the cowboy barred her passage—grasped her arms. Then Madeline divined that her brother could not have any knowledge of this indignity. It was no trick. It was something that was happening, that was real, that threatened she knew not what. She tried to wrench free, feeling hot all over at being handled by this drunken brute. Poise, dignity, culture—all the acquired habits of character—fled before the instinct to fight. She was athletic. She fought. She struggled desperately. But he forced her back with hands of iron. She had never known a man could be so strong. And then it was the man’s coolly smiling face, the paralyzing strangeness of his manner, more than his strength, that weakened Madeline until she sank trembling against the bench.
Anger pushed her panic aside. She stood up with whatever composure she had left from the surprise and started toward the door. But the cowboy blocked her way—grabbing her arms. Then Madeline realized that her brother couldn’t possibly know about this humiliation. It wasn't a trick. It was something real happening, something that threatened she didn’t know what. She tried to break free, feeling hot all over at being touched by this drunken brute. Poise, dignity, culture—all the traits she had developed—vanished in the face of the instinct to fight. She was athletic. She fought. She struggled desperately. But he forced her back with hands like iron. She had never known a man could be so strong. And then it was the man’s coolly smiling face, the unsettling strangeness of his behavior, more than his strength, that made Madeline weaken until she sank trembling against the bench.
“What—do you—mean?” she panted.
"What do you mean?" she panted.
“Dearie, ease up a little on the bridle,” he replied, gaily.
“Sweetheart, loosen up a bit on the reins,” he responded playfully.
Madeline thought she must be dreaming. She could not think clearly. It had all been too swift, too terrible for her to grasp. Yet she not only saw this man, but also felt his powerful presence. And the shaking priest, the haze of blue smoke, the smell of powder—these were not unreal.
Madeline thought she must be dreaming. She couldn’t think clearly. It had all happened too fast, too horribly for her to understand. Yet she not only saw this man, but also felt his strong presence. And the trembling priest, the haze of blue smoke, the smell of gunpowder—these were all very real.
Then close before her eyes burst another blinding red flash, and close at her ears bellowed another report. Unable to stand, Madeline slipped down onto the bench. Her drifting faculties refused clearly to record what transpired during the next few moments; presently, however, as her mind steadied somewhat, she heard, though as in a dream, the voice of the padre hurrying over strange words. It ceased, and then the cowboy’s voice stirred her.
Then, just before her eyes, another blinding red flash went off, and another loud bang echoed in her ears. Unable to stay upright, Madeline sank down onto the bench. Her wandering thoughts struggled to clearly grasp what was happening in the next few moments; however, as her mind began to clear a bit, she heard, as if in a dream, the padre's voice rushing through unfamiliar words. It stopped, and then the cowboy’s voice brought her back.
“Lady, say Si—Si. Say it—quick! Say it—Si!”
“Lady, say yes—yes. Say it—quick! Say it—yes!”
From sheer suggestion, a force irresistible at this moment when her will was clamped by panic, she spoke the word.
From pure suggestion, a force she couldn’t resist at the moment when panic held her will captive, she said the word.
“And now, lady—so we can finish this properly—what’s your name?”
“And now, ma'am—so we can wrap this up—what’s your name?”
Still obeying mechanically, she told him.
Still following orders automatically, she told him.
He stared for a while, as if the name had awakened associations in a mind somewhat befogged. He leaned back unsteadily. Madeline heard the expulsion of his breath, a kind of hard puff, not unusual in drunken men.
He stared for a moment, as if the name had triggered memories in his somewhat hazy mind. He leaned back unsteadily. Madeline heard him exhale sharply, a sort of grunt common among drunk men.
“What name?” he demanded.
“What name?” he asked.
“Madeline Hammond. I am Alfred Hammond’s sister.”
“Madeline Hammond. I’m Alfred Hammond’s sister.”
He put his hand up and brushed at an imaginary something before his eyes. Then he loomed over her, and that hand, now shaking a little, reached out for her veil. Before he could touch it, however, she swept it back, revealing her face.
He raised his hand and swiped at an imaginary something in front of his eyes. Then he leaned over her, and that hand, now shaking a bit, reached out for her veil. Before he could touch it, though, she pulled it back, showing her face.
“You’re—not—Majesty Hammond?”
“You're not Majesty Hammond?”
How strange—stranger than anything that had ever happened to her before—was it to hear that name on the lips of this cowboy! It was a name by which she was familiarly known, though only those nearest and dearest to her had the privilege of using it. And now it revived her dulled faculties, and by an effort she regained control of herself.
How strange—stranger than anything that had ever happened to her before—was it to hear that name from this cowboy! It was a name she was commonly called, though only those closest to her had the right to use it. And now it brought her back to herself, and with some effort, she regained control.
“You are Majesty Hammond,” he replied; and this time he affirmed wonderingly rather than questioned.
“You are Majesty Hammond,” he said, sounding more amazed than questioning this time.
Madeline rose and faced him.
Madeline stood up and faced him.
“Yes, I am.”
"Yep, I am."
He slammed his gun back into its holster.
He shoved his gun back into its holster.
“Well, I reckon we won’t go on with it, then.”
“Well, I guess we won’t go through with it, then.”
“With what, sir? And why did you force me to say Si to this priest?”
“With what, sir? And why did you make me say yes to this priest?”
“I reckon that was a way I took to show him you’d be willing to get married.”
“I thought that was a way to show him you’d be open to getting married.”
“Oh!... You—you!...” Words failed her.
“Oh!... You—you!...” She was speechless.
This appeared to galvanize the cowboy into action. He grasped the padre and led him toward the door, cursing and threatening, no doubt enjoining secrecy. Then he pushed him across the threshold and stood there breathing hard and wrestling with himself.
This seemed to motivate the cowboy to take action. He grabbed the padre and pulled him toward the door, swearing and threatening, clearly insisting on secrecy. Then he shoved him through the doorway and stood there, breathing heavily and struggling with himself.
“Here—wait—wait a minute, Miss—Miss Hammond,” he said, huskily. “You could fall into worse company than mine—though I reckon you sure think not. I’m pretty drunk, but I’m—all right otherwise. Just wait—a minute.”
“Hold on—hold on a second, Miss—Miss Hammond,” he said, huskily. “You could end up in worse company than me—even though I’m sure you don’t think so. I’m pretty drunk, but I’m good otherwise. Just wait a second.”
She stood quivering and blazing with wrath, and watched this savage fight his drunkenness. He acted like a man who had been suddenly shocked into a rational state of mind, and he was now battling with himself to hold on to it. Madeline saw the dark, damp hair lift from his brows as he held it up to the cool wind. Above him she saw the white stars in the deep-blue sky, and they seemed as unreal to her as any other thing in this strange night. They were cold, brilliant, aloof, distant; and looking at them, she felt her wrath lessen and die and leave her calm.
She stood trembling and filled with anger, watching this wild struggle against his drunkenness. He acted like a guy who had suddenly been jolted into a clear state of mind, and now he was fighting with himself to hang on to it. Madeline saw the dark, damp hair lift from his forehead as he raised it to the cool breeze. Above him, she noticed the white stars in the deep blue sky, and they seemed as unreal to her as everything else in this peculiar night. They were cold, brilliant, detached, distant; and as she stared at them, she felt her anger fade away, leaving her calm.
The cowboy turned and began to talk.
The cowboy turned around and started to speak.
“You see—I was pretty drunk,” he labored. “There was a fiesta—and a wedding. I do fool things when I’m drunk. I made a fool bet I’d marry the first girl who came to town.... If you hadn’t worn that veil—the fellows were joshing me—and Ed Linton was getting married—and everybody always wants to gamble.... I must have been pretty drunk.”
“You see—I was really drunk,” he struggled to say. “There was a party—and a wedding. I do stupid things when I’m drunk. I made a dumb bet that I’d marry the first girl who came to town.... If you hadn’t worn that veil—the guys were messing with me—and Ed Linton was getting married—and everyone always wants to gamble.... I must have been really drunk.”
After the one look at her when she had first put aside her veil he had not raised his eyes to her face. The cool audacity had vanished in what was either excessive emotion or the maudlin condition peculiar to some men when drunk. He could not stand still; perspiration collected in beads upon his forehead; he kept wiping his face with his scarf, and he breathed like a man after violent exertions.
After the one glance at her when she first lifted her veil, he didn’t look at her face again. The cool confidence he had was replaced by either overwhelming emotion or that sentimental state some men get when they’re drunk. He couldn’t remain still; beads of sweat formed on his forehead; he kept wiping his face with his scarf, and he was breathing heavily, like someone who had just been through intense exertion.
“You see—I was pretty—” he began.
"You see—I was good-looking—" he started.
“Explanations are not necessary,” she interrupted. “I am very tired—distressed. The hour is late. Have you the slightest idea what it means to be a gentleman?”
“Explanations aren’t needed,” she interrupted. “I’m really tired—upset. The hour is late. Do you have any idea what it means to be a gentleman?”
His bronzed face burned to a flaming crimson.
His tanned face turned a bright red.
“Is my brother here—in town to-night?” Madeline went on.
“Is my brother here—in town tonight?” Madeline continued.
“No. He’s at his ranch.”
“No. He’s at his farm.”
“But I wired him.”
"But I sent him money."
“Like as not the message is over in his box at the P.O. He’ll be in town to-morrow. He’s shipping cattle for Stillwell.”
“Most likely the message is in his mailbox at the post office. He’ll be in town tomorrow. He’s shipping cattle for Stillwell.”
“Meanwhile I must go to a hotel. Will you please—”
“Meanwhile, I need to go to a hotel. Can you please—”
If he heard her last words he showed no evidence of it. A noise outside had attracted his attention. Madeline listened. Low voices of men, the softer liquid tones of a woman, drifted in through the open door. They spoke in Spanish, and the voices grew louder. Evidently the speakers were approaching the station. Footsteps crunching on gravel attested to this, and quicker steps, coming with deep tones of men in anger, told of a quarrel. Then the woman’s voice, hurried and broken, rising higher, was eloquent of vain appeal.
If he heard her last words, he didn’t show any sign of it. A noise outside had caught his attention. Madeline listened. Low voices of men and the softer, smoother tones of a woman drifted through the open door. They were speaking in Spanish, and the voices grew louder. Clearly, the speakers were getting closer to the station. The sound of footsteps crunching on gravel confirmed this, and quicker steps accompanied by deep, angry voices indicated a conflict. Then the woman’s voice, rushed and shaky, rose higher, filled with desperate pleading.
The cowboy’s demeanor startled Madeline into anticipation of something dreadful. She was not deceived. From outside came the sound of a scuffle—a muffled shot, a groan, the thud of a falling body, a woman’s low cry, and footsteps padding away in rapid retreat.
The cowboy's attitude shocked Madeline, making her expect something terrible. She wasn’t fooled. From outside, she heard a struggle—a muffled gunshot, a groan, the sound of a body hitting the ground, a woman’s soft cry, and footsteps quickly fading away.
Madeline Hammond leaned weakly back in her seat, cold and sick, and for a moment her ears throbbed to the tramp of the dancers across the way and the rhythm of the cheap music. Then into the open door-place flashed a girl’s tragic face, lighted by dark eyes and framed by dusky hair. The girl reached a slim brown hand round the side of the door and held on as if to support herself. A long black scarf accentuated her gaudy attire.
Madeline Hammond leaned weakly back in her seat, feeling cold and sick. For a moment, she could hear the thumping of the dancers nearby and the beat of the cheap music. Then, through the open doorway appeared a girl's tragic face, illuminated by dark eyes and framed by dark hair. The girl reached a slim brown hand around the side of the door and held on as if trying to support herself. A long black scarf highlighted her flashy outfit.
“Senor—Gene!” she exclaimed; and breathless glad recognition made a sudden break in her terror.
“Senor—Gene!” she exclaimed, and the overwhelming joy of recognition instantly cut through her fear.
“Bonita!” The cowboy leaped to her. “Girl! Are you hurt?”
“Bonita!” The cowboy jumped towards her. “Hey, are you okay?”
“No, Senor.”
“No, sir.”
He took hold of her. “I heard—somebody got shot. Was it Danny?”
He grabbed her. “I heard someone got shot. Was it Danny?”
“No, Senor.”
“No, sir.”
“Did Danny do the shooting? Tell me, girl.”
“Did Danny do the shooting? Tell me, girl.”
“No, Senor.”
"No, sir."
“I’m sure glad. I thought Danny was mixed up in that. He had Stillwell’s money for the boys—I was afraid.... Say, Bonita, but you’ll get in trouble. Who was with you? What did you do?”
“I’m really glad. I thought Danny was involved in that. He had Stillwell’s money for the guys—I was worried.... Hey, Bonita, but you’ll get in trouble. Who were you with? What did you do?”
“Senor Gene—they Don Carlos vaqueros—they quarrel over me. I only dance a leetle, smile a leetle, and they quarrel. I beg they be good—watch out for Sheriff Hawe... and now Sheriff Hawe put me in jail. I so frighten; he try make leetle love to Bonita once, and now he hate me like he hate Senor Gene.”
“Mr. Gene—the Don Carlos cowboys—they argue over me. I only dance a little, smile a little, and they fight. I ask them to be good—watch out for Sheriff Hawe... and now Sheriff Hawe put me in jail. I’m so scared; he tried to make a move on Bonita once, and now he hates me like he hates Mr. Gene.”
“Pat Hawe won’t put you in jail. Take my horse and hit the Peloncillo trail. Bonita, promise to stay away from El Cajon.”
“Pat Hawe won’t lock you up. Take my horse and ride the Peloncillo trail. Bonita, promise me you’ll stay away from El Cajon.”
“Si, Senor.”
“Yes, Sir.”
He led her outside. Madeline heard the horse snort and champ his bit. The cowboy spoke low; only a few words were intelligible—“stirrups... wait... out of town... mountain... trail ... now ride!”
He took her outside. Madeline heard the horse snort and chew on its bit. The cowboy spoke softly; only a few words were clear—“stirrups... wait... out of town... mountain... trail... now ride!”
A moment’s silence ensued, and was broken by a pounding of hoofs, a pattering of gravel. Then Madeline saw a big, dark horse run into the wide space. She caught a glimpse of wind-swept scarf and hair, a little form low down in the saddle. The horse was outlined in black against the line of dim lights. There was something wild and splendid in his flight.
A moment of silence passed before it was interrupted by the sound of pounding hooves and gravel crunching. Then Madeline saw a large, dark horse enter the open space. She caught a glimpse of a wind-blown scarf and hair, a small figure sitting low in the saddle. The horse was silhouetted in black against the faint lights. There was something fierce and magnificent about his run.
Directly the cowboy appeared again in the doorway.
Directly, the cowboy showed up again in the doorway.
“Miss Hammond, I reckon we want to rustle out of here. Been bad goings-on. And there’s a train due.”
“Miss Hammond, I think we should get out of here. Things have been going badly. And there’s a train coming.”
She hurried into the open air, not daring to look back or to either side. Her guide strode swiftly. She had almost to run to keep up with him. Many conflicting emotions confused her. She had a strange sense of this stalking giant beside her, silent except for his jangling spurs. She had a strange feeling of the cool, sweet wind and the white stars. Was it only her disordered fancy, or did these wonderful stars open and shut? She had a queer, disembodied thought that somewhere in ages back, in another life, she had seen these stars. The night seemed dark, yet there was a pale, luminous light—a light from the stars—and she fancied it would always haunt her.
She rushed outside, not daring to look back or to either side. Her guide moved quickly, and she had to almost run to keep up with him. She felt a mix of conflicting emotions. There was something strange about the giant beside her, who was quiet except for the sound of his jangling spurs. She experienced a peculiar sensation from the cool, sweet wind and the bright stars. Was it just her scattered thoughts, or did those beautiful stars seem to open and close? She had an odd, out-of-body feeling that somewhere in the distant past, in another life, she had seen these stars. The night felt dark, yet there was a soft, glowing light—a light from the stars—and she thought it would always stay with her.
Suddenly aware that she had been led beyond the line of houses, she spoke:
Suddenly realizing she had been taken past the last houses, she said:
“Where are you taking me?”
“Where are you taking me?”
“To Florence Kingsley,” he replied.
"To Florence Kingsley," he said.
“Who is she?”
“Who’s she?”
“I reckon she’s your brother’s best friend out here.” Madeline kept pace with the cowboy for a few moments longer, and then she stopped. It was as much from necessity to catch her breath as it was from recurring fear. All at once she realized what little use her training had been for such an experience as this. The cowboy, missing her, came back the few intervening steps. Then he waited, still silent, looming beside her.
“I think she’s your brother’s best friend out here.” Madeline kept pace with the cowboy for a little longer, and then she stopped. It was as much to catch her breath as it was from a rising fear. Suddenly, she realized how little her training had prepared her for something like this. The cowboy, noticing she had stopped, came back the few steps to her. Then he waited, still silent, standing next to her.
“It’s so dark, so lonely,” she faltered. “How do I know... what warrant can you give me that you—that no harm will befall me if I go farther?”
“It’s so dark, so lonely,” she stammered. “How do I know... what proof can you give me that you—that I won’t be harmed if I go any further?”
“None, Miss Hammond, except that I’ve seen your face.”
“None, Miss Hammond, except that I’ve seen your face.”
II. A Secret Kept
Because of that singular reply Madeline found faith to go farther with the cowboy. But at the moment she really did not think about what he had said. Any answer to her would have served if it had been kind. His silence had augmented her nervousness, compelling her to voice her fear. Still, even if he had not replied at all she would have gone on with him. She shuddered at the idea of returning to the station, where she believed there had been murder; she could hardly have forced herself to go back to those dim lights in the street; she did not want to wander around alone in the dark.
Because of that one response, Madeline felt encouraged to continue with the cowboy. But at that moment, she wasn't really focused on what he had said. Any kind reply would have sufficed if it had been nice. His silence had made her even more anxious, pushing her to express her fears. Still, even if he hadn't said anything at all, she would have kept going with him. The thought of going back to the station, where she thought there had been a murder, made her shudder; she could hardly force herself to return to those dim streetlights. She didn’t want to wander alone in the dark.
And as she walked on into the windy darkness, much relieved that he had answered as he had, reflecting that he had yet to prove his words true, she began to grasp the deeper significance of them. There was a revival of pride that made her feel that she ought to scorn to think at all about such a man. But Madeline Hammond discovered that thought was involuntary, that there were feelings in her never dreamed of before this night.
And as she walked into the windy darkness, feeling much better about his response, realizing that he still needed to back up what he said, she started to understand the deeper meaning behind his words. A sense of pride surged within her that made her feel like she shouldn’t even consider such a man. But Madeline Hammond found that thinking was beyond her control, and there were emotions inside her that she had never even imagined before this night.
Presently Madeline’s guide turned off the walk and rapped at a door of a low-roofed house.
Currently, Madeline’s guide stepped off the path and knocked on the door of a low-roofed house.
“Hullo—who’s there?” a deep voice answered.
“Hey—who’s there?” a deep voice replied.
“Gene Stewart,” said the cowboy. “Call Florence—quick!”
“Gene Stewart,” said the cowboy. “Call Florence—hurry up!”
Thump of footsteps followed, a tap on a door, and voices. Madeline heard a woman exclaim: “Gene! here when there’s a dance in town! Something wrong out on the range.” A light flared up and shone bright through a window. In another moment there came a patter of soft steps, and the door opened to disclose a woman holding a lamp.
Thumps of footsteps followed, a tap on a door, and voices. Madeline heard a woman exclaim, “Gene! Here when there’s a dance in town! Something must be wrong out on the range.” A light flared up and shone bright through a window. Moments later, soft footsteps approached, and the door opened to reveal a woman holding a lamp.
“Gene! Al’s not—”
“Gene! Al isn’t—”
“Al is all right,” interrupted the cowboy.
“Al is fine,” interrupted the cowboy.
Madeline had two sensations then—one of wonder at the note of alarm and love in the woman’s voice, and the other of unutterable relief to be safe with a friend of her brother’s.
Madeline felt two things at that moment—one was amazement at the alarm and affection in the woman’s voice, and the other was a deep relief to be safe with a friend of her brother’s.
“It’s Al’s sister—came on to-night’s train,” the cowboy was saying. “I happened to be at the station, and I’ve fetched her up to you.”
“It’s Al’s sister—she arrived on tonight’s train,” the cowboy was saying. “I happened to be at the station, and I’ve brought her to you.”
Madeline came forward out of the shadow.
Madeline stepped out of the shadow.
“Not—not really Majesty Hammond!” exclaimed Florence Kingsley. She nearly dropped the lamp, and she looked and looked, astounded beyond belief.
“Not—not really, Your Majesty Hammond!” exclaimed Florence Kingsley. She nearly dropped the lamp, and she stared in disbelief, utterly astonished.
“Yes, I am really she,” replied Madeline. “My train was late, and for some reason Alfred did not meet me. Mr.—Mr. Stewart saw fit to bring me to you instead of taking me to a hotel.”
“Yes, that's me,” replied Madeline. “My train was delayed, and for some reason, Alfred didn’t come to meet me. Mr.—Mr. Stewart thought it would be better to bring me to you instead of taking me to a hotel.”
“Oh, I’m so glad to meet you,” replied Florence, warmly. “Do come in. I’m so surprised, I forget my manners. Why, Al never mentioned your coming.”
“Oh, I’m so glad to meet you,” replied Florence warmly. “Come on in. I’m so surprised that I forgot my manners. Al never mentioned you were coming.”
“He surely could not have received my messages,” said Madeline, as she entered.
“He definitely couldn’t have gotten my messages,” said Madeline as she walked in.
The cowboy, who came in with her satchel, had to stoop to enter the door, and, once in, he seemed to fill the room. Florence set the lamp down upon the table. Madeline saw a young woman with a smiling, friendly face, and a profusion of fair hair hanging down over her dressing-gown.
The cowboy, who came in with her bag, had to bend down to get through the door, and once inside, he seemed to take up the whole room. Florence placed the lamp on the table. Madeline noticed a young woman with a warm, friendly face and lots of light-colored hair spilling over her dressing gown.
“Oh, but Al will be glad!” cried Florence. “Why, you are white as a sheet. You must be tired. What a long wait you had at the station! I heard the train come in hours ago as I was going to bed. That station is lonely at night. If I had known you were coming! Indeed, you are very pale. Are you ill?”
“Oh, but Al will be happy!” exclaimed Florence. “Wow, you look super pale. You must be exhausted. What a long wait you had at the station! I heard the train arrive hours ago while I was getting ready for bed. That station can feel really lonely at night. If I had known you were coming! Seriously, you look very pale. Are you feeling okay?”
“No. Only I am very tired. Traveling so far by rail is harder than I imagined. I did have rather a long wait after arriving at the station, but I can’t say that it was lonely.”
“No. I'm just really tired. Traveling so far by train is harder than I thought. I did have quite a long wait after getting to the station, but I can't say it was lonely.”
Florence Kingsley searched Madeline’s face with keen eyes, and then took a long, significant look at the silent Stewart. With that she deliberately and quietly closed a door leading into another room.
Florence Kingsley examined Madeline's face closely, then took a long, meaningful glance at the quiet Stewart. With that, she intentionally and silently closed a door to another room.
“Miss Hammond, what has happened?” She had lowered her voice.
“Miss Hammond, what happened?” She had lowered her voice.
“I do not wish to recall all that has happened,” replied Madeline. “I shall tell Alfred, however, that I would rather have met a hostile Apache than a cowboy.”
“I don’t want to remember everything that’s happened,” Madeline replied. “I’ll tell Alfred, though, that I’d rather have faced a hostile Apache than a cowboy.”
“Please don’t tell Al that!” cried Florence. Then she grasped Stewart and pulled him close to the light. “Gene, you’re drunk!”
“Please don’t tell Al that!” Florence exclaimed. Then she grabbed Stewart and pulled him closer to the light. “Gene, you’re drunk!”
“I was pretty drunk,” he replied, hanging his head.
“I was pretty drunk,” he said, looking down.
“Oh, what have you done?”
"Oh no, what have you done?"
“Now, see here, Flo, I only—”
“Hey, listen, Flo, I just—”
“I don’t want to know. I’d tell it. Gene, aren’t you ever going to learn decency? Aren’t you ever going to stop drinking? You’ll lose all your friends. Stillwell has stuck to you. Al’s been your best friend. Molly and I have pleaded with you, and now you’ve gone and done—God knows what!”
“I don’t want to know. I’d tell it. Gene, are you ever going to learn some decency? Are you ever going to stop drinking? You’re going to lose all your friends. Stillwell has stuck by you. Al has been your best friend. Molly and I have begged you, and now you’ve gone and done—God knows what!”
“What do women want to wear veils for?” he growled. “I’d have known her but for that veil.”
“What do women want to wear veils for?” he grumbled. “I would have recognized her if it weren't for that veil.”
“And you wouldn’t have insulted her. But you would the next girl who came along. Gene, you are hopeless. Now, you get out of here and don’t ever come back.”
“And you wouldn't have disrespected her. But you would the next girl who came along. Gene, you're hopeless. Now, get out of here and don't ever come back.”
“Flo!” he entreated.
“Flo!” he urged.
“I mean it.”
“I really mean it.”
“I reckon then I’ll come back to-morrow and take my medicine,” he replied.
“I guess I’ll come back tomorrow and take my medicine,” he replied.
“Don’t you dare!” she cried.
"Don't you dare!" she shouted.
Stewart went out and closed the door.
Stewart stepped outside and shut the door.
“Miss Hammond, you—you don’t know how this hurts me,” said Florence. “What you must think of us! It’s so unlucky that you should have had this happen right at first. Now, maybe you won’t have the heart to stay. Oh, I’ve known more than one Eastern girl to go home without ever learning what we really are cut here. Miss Hammond, Gene Stewart is a fiend when he’s drunk. All the same I know, whatever he did, he meant no shame to you. Come now, don’t think about it again to-night.” She took up the lamp and led Madeline into a little room. “This is out West,” she went on, smiling, as she indicated the few furnishings; “but you can rest. You’re perfectly safe. Won’t you let me help you undress—can’t I do anything for you?”
“Miss Hammond, you have no idea how much this hurts me,” said Florence. “What must you think of us! It’s such bad luck that this happened right at the beginning. Now, maybe you won’t feel like staying. Oh, I’ve seen more than one girl from the East leave without ever truly understanding what we’re like here. Miss Hammond, Gene Stewart can be terrible when he’s drunk. Still, I know that no matter what he did, he didn’t mean to embarrass you. Come on, don’t think about it again tonight.” She picked up the lamp and led Madeline into a small room. “This is out West,” she continued, smiling as she pointed out the sparse furnishings; “but you can rest. You’re completely safe. Can I help you undress—what can I do for you?”
“You are very kind, thank you, but I can manage,” replied Madeline.
“You're so kind, thank you, but I can handle it,” replied Madeline.
“Well, then, good night. The sooner I go the sooner you’ll rest. Just forget what happened and think how fine a surprise you’re to give your brother to-morrow.”
“Well, then, good night. The sooner I leave, the sooner you can relax. Just forget what happened and think about how great the surprise you’re going to give your brother tomorrow is.”
With that she slipped out and softly shut the door.
With that, she quietly slipped out and closed the door gently.
As Madeline laid her watch on the bureau she noticed that the time was past two o’clock. It seemed long since she had gotten off the train. When she had turned out the lamp and crept wearily into bed she knew what it was to be utterly spent. She was too tired to move a finger. But her brain whirled.
As Madeline set her watch on the dresser, she saw that it was past two o’clock. It felt like ages since she had gotten off the train. When she turned off the lamp and wearily climbed into bed, she realized what it meant to be completely exhausted. She was too tired to lift a finger. But her mind was racing.
She had at first no control over it, and a thousand thronging sensations came and went and recurred with little logical relation. There were the roar of the train; the feeling of being lost; the sound of pounding hoofs; a picture of her brother’s face as she had last seen it five years before; a long, dim line of lights; the jingle of silver spurs; night, wind, darkness, stars. Then the gloomy station, the shadowy blanketed Mexican, the empty room, the dim lights across the square, the tramp of the dancers and vacant laughs and discordant music, the door flung wide and the entrance of the cowboy. She did not recall how he had looked or what he had done. And the next instant she saw him cool, smiling, devilish—saw him in violence; the next his bigness, his apparel, his physical being were vague as outlines in a dream. The white face of the padre flashed along in the train of thought, and it brought the same dull, half-blind, indefinable state of mind subsequent to that last nerve-breaking pistol-shot. That passed, and then clear and vivid rose memories of the rest that had happened—strange voices betraying fury of men, a deadened report, a moan of mortal pain, a woman’s poignant cry. And Madeline saw the girl’s great tragic eyes and the wild flight of the big horse into the blackness, and the dark, stalking figure of the silent cowboy, and the white stars that seemed to look down remorselessly.
She initially had no control over it, and a thousand overwhelming sensations came and went, with little connection to each other. There was the roar of the train; the feeling of being lost; the sound of pounding hooves; a picture of her brother’s face as she last saw it five years ago; a long, dim line of lights; the jingle of silver spurs; night, wind, darkness, stars. Then there was the gloomy station, the shadowy Mexican man under a blanket, the empty room, the dim lights across the square, the footsteps of the dancers, vacant laughter, and discordant music, the door flung wide open and the cowboy walking in. She didn’t remember how he looked or what he did. In the next moment, she saw him cool, smiling, with a devilish charm—she saw him in a moment of violence; then his size, his clothing, his physical presence were vague, like outlines in a dream. The pale face of the priest flashed through her thoughts, bringing back that same dull, half-blind, indescribable feeling that followed that last nerve-wracking gunshot. That feeling passed, and then clear and vivid memories surfaced of everything that had happened—strange voices filled with rage, a muffled gunshot, a moan of agony, a woman's piercing scream. And Madeline saw the girl's heart-wrenching eyes and the wild flight of the big horse into the darkness, and the dark, stalking figure of the silent cowboy, and the white stars that seemed to look down without mercy.
This tide of memory rolled over Madeline again and again, and gradually lost its power and faded. All distress left her, and she felt herself drifting. How black the room was—as black with her eyes open as it was when they were shut! And the silence—it was like a cloak. There was absolutely no sound. She was in another world from that which she knew. She thought of this fair-haired Florence and of Alfred; and, wondering about them, she dropped to sleep.
This wave of memories washed over Madeline repeatedly, gradually losing its intensity and fading away. All her distress vanished, and she felt herself drifting. The room was pitch black—just as dark with her eyes open as it was when they were closed! And the silence—it felt like a blanket. There was completely no sound. She was in a different world from the one she knew. She thought about the blonde Florence and Alfred; and, pondering over them, she fell asleep.
When she awakened the room was bright with sunlight. A cool wind blowing across the bed caused her to put her hands under the blanket. She was lazily and dreamily contemplating the mud walls of this little room when she remembered where she was and how she had come there.
When she woke up, the room was filled with bright sunlight. A cool breeze was blowing across the bed, so she tucked her hands under the blanket. She lay there, lazily and dreamily looking at the mud walls of this small room when it hit her where she was and how she got there.
How great a shock she had been subjected to was manifest in a sensation of disgust that overwhelmed her. She even shut her eyes to try and blot out the recollection. She felt that she had been contaminated.
How intense the shock she experienced was clear in the wave of disgust that hit her. She even closed her eyes to try and erase the memory. She felt like she had been tainted.
Presently Madeline Hammond again awoke to the fact she had learned the preceding night—that there were emotions to which she had heretofore been a stranger. She did not try to analyze them, but she exercised her self-control to such good purpose that by the time she had dressed she was outwardly her usual self. She scarcely remembered when she had found it necessary to control her emotions. There had been no trouble, no excitement, no unpleasantness in her life. It had been ordered for her—tranquil, luxurious, brilliant, varied, yet always the same.
Presently, Madeline Hammond woke up again to the realization she had discovered the night before—that there were emotions she had never experienced before. She didn’t try to analyze them, but she managed to control herself so well that by the time she got dressed, she appeared to be her usual self. She could hardly recall the last time she felt the need to control her emotions. There had been no trouble, no excitement, no unpleasantness in her life. It had been arranged for her—peaceful, luxurious, vibrant, diverse, yet always consistent.
She was not surprised to find the hour late, and was going to make inquiry about her brother when a voice arrested her. She recognized Miss Kingsley’s voice addressing some one outside, and it had a sharpness she had not noted before.
She wasn’t surprised to see that it was late, and she was about to ask about her brother when a voice caught her attention. She recognized Miss Kingsley’s voice talking to someone outside, and it had a sharpness she hadn’t noticed before.
“So you came back, did you? Well, you don’t look very proud of yourself this mawnin’. Gene Stewart, you look like a coyote.”
“So you came back, huh? Well, you don’t look very proud of yourself this morning. Gene Stewart, you look like a coyote.”
“Say, Flo if I am a coyote I’m not going to sneak,” he said.
“Hey, Flo, if I’m a coyote, I’m not going to be sneaky,” he said.
“What ’d you come for?” she demanded.
“What did you come for?” she asked.
“I said I was coming round to take my medicine.”
“I said I was coming over to take my medicine.”
“Meaning you’ll not run from Al Hammond? Gene, your skull is as thick as an old cow’s. Al will never know anything about what you did to his sister unless you tell him. And if you do that he’ll shoot you. She won’t give you away. She’s a thoroughbred. Why, she was so white last night I thought she’d drop at my feet, but she never blinked an eyelash. I’m a woman, Gene Stewart and if I couldn’t feel like Miss Hammond I know how awful an ordeal she must have had. Why, she’s one of the most beautiful, the most sought after, the most exclusive women in New York City. There’s a crowd of millionaires and lords and dukes after her. How terrible it’d be for a woman like her to be kissed by a drunken cowpuncher! I say it—”
“Are you saying you won’t run from Al Hammond? Gene, your head is as hard as an old cow’s. Al will never find out what you did to his sister unless you tell him. And if you do, he’ll shoot you. She won’t betray you. She’s a thoroughbred. Honestly, she was so pale last night I thought she’d collapse at my feet, but she didn’t even flinch. I’m a woman, Gene Stewart, and if I couldn’t feel like Miss Hammond, I can imagine how horrible her experience must have been. She’s one of the most beautiful, most sought-after, and most exclusive women in New York City. There’s a whole bunch of millionaires, lords, and dukes after her. How awful it would be for a woman like her to be kissed by a drunk cowboy! I mean it—”
“Flo, I never insulted her that way,” broke out Stewart.
“Flo, I never insulted her like that,” Stewart exclaimed.
“It was worse, then?” she queried, sharply.
“It was worse, then?” she asked, sharply.
“I made a bet that I’d marry the first girl who came to town. I was on the watch and pretty drunk. When she came—well, I got Padre Marcos and tried to bully her into marrying me.”
“I made a bet that I’d marry the first girl who showed up in town. I was keeping an eye out and pretty drunk. When she arrived—well, I got Padre Marcos and tried to pressure her into marrying me.”
“Oh, Lord!” Florence gasped. “It’s worse than I feared.... Gene, Al will kill you.”
“Oh my God!” Florence exclaimed. “It’s worse than I thought... Gene, Al is going to kill you.”
“That’ll be a good thing,” replied the cowboy, dejectedly.
"That's a good thing," replied the cowboy, feeling down.
“Gene Stewart, it certainly would, unless you turn over a new leaf,” retorted Florence. “But don’t be a fool.” And here she became earnest and appealing. “Go away, Gene. Go join the rebels across the border—you’re always threatening that. Anyhow, don’t stay here and ruin any chance of stirring Al up. He’d kill you just the same as you would kill another man for insulting your sister. Don’t make trouble for Al. That’d only make sorrow for her, Gene.”
“Gene Stewart, it definitely would, unless you change your ways,” Florence shot back. “But don’t be an idiot.” She then became serious and heartfelt. “Just go, Gene. Go join the rebels across the border—you’ve been talking about that all the time. Anyway, don’t hang around here and mess up any chance of getting Al worked up. He’d take you down just like you would take down someone else for disrespecting your sister. Don’t create problems for Al. That would only bring her pain, Gene.”
The subtle import was not lost upon Madeline. She was distressed because she could not avoid hearing what was not meant for her ears. She made an effort not to listen, and it was futile.
The subtle meaning wasn’t lost on Madeline. She was upset because she couldn’t help but overhear what wasn’t meant for her ears. She tried not to listen, but it was pointless.
“Flo, you can’t see this a man’s way,” he replied, quietly. “I’ll stay and take my medicine.”
“Flo, you can’t look at this from a man’s perspective,” he said softly. “I’ll stick around and face the consequences.”
“Gene, I could sure swear at you or any other pig-head of a cowboy. Listen. My brother-in-law, Jack, heard something of what I said to you last night. He doesn’t like you. I’m afraid he’ll tell Al. For Heaven’s sake, man, go down-town and shut him up and yourself, too.”
“Gene, I could definitely curse you or any other stubborn cowboy. Listen. My brother-in-law, Jack, overheard some of what I said to you last night. He doesn’t like you. I’m worried he’ll tell Al. For goodness' sake, man, go downtown and silence him and yourself, too.”
Then Madeline heard her come into the house and presently rap on the door and call softly:
Then Madeline heard her enter the house and soon knock on the door and call softly:
“Miss Hammond. Are you awake?”
“Miss Hammond, are you awake?”
“Awake and dressed, Miss Kingsley. Come in.”
“Wake up and get dressed, Miss Kingsley. Come in.”
“Oh! You’ve rested. You look so—so different. I’m sure glad. Come out now. We’ll have breakfast, and then you may expect to meet your brother any moment.”
“Oh! You’ve rested. You look so—so different. I’m really glad. Come out now. We’ll have breakfast, and then you can expect to see your brother any minute.”
“Wait, please. I heard you speaking to Mr. Stewart. It was unavoidable. But I am glad. I must see him. Will you please ask him to come into the parlor a moment?”
“Wait, please. I heard you talking to Mr. Stewart. It couldn't be helped. But I'm glad. I need to see him. Can you please ask him to come into the parlor for a moment?”
“Yes,” replied Florence, quickly; and as she turned at the door she flashed at Madeline a woman’s meaning glance. “Make him keep his mouth shut!”
“Yes,” replied Florence, quickly; and as she turned at the door she flashed Madeline a knowing look. “Make sure he stays quiet!”
Presently there were slow, reluctant steps outside the front door, then a pause, and the door opened. Stewart stood bareheaded in the sunlight. Madeline remembered with a kind of shudder the tall form, the embroidered buckskin vest, the red scarf, the bright leather wristbands, the wide silver-buckled belt and chaps. Her glance seemed to run over him swift as lightning. But as she saw his face now she did not recognize it. The man’s presence roused in her a revolt. Yet something in her, the incomprehensible side of her nature, thrilled in the look of this splendid dark-faced barbarian.
Right now, there were slow, hesitant steps outside the front door, then a pause, and the door opened. Stewart stood there, bareheaded in the sunlight. Madeline shuddered a little as she recalled his tall figure, the embroidered buckskin vest, the red scarf, the bright leather wristbands, the wide silver-buckled belt, and the chaps. Her gaze flicked over him like lightning. But when she saw his face now, she didn’t recognize it. His presence sparked a sense of revolt in her. Yet something within her, the mysterious part of her nature, thrilled at the sight of this striking dark-faced man.
“Mr. Stewart, will you please come in?” she asked, after that long pause.
“Mr. Stewart, could you please come in?” she asked after that long pause.
“I reckon not,” he said. The hopelessness of his tone meant that he knew he was not fit to enter a room with her, and did not care or cared too much.
“I don’t think so,” he said. The hopelessness in his tone showed that he knew he wasn’t good enough to be in the same room with her, and he either didn’t care or cared too much.
Madeline went to the door. The man’s face was hard, yet it was sad, too. And it touched her.
Madeline went to the door. The man's face was tough, but there was a sadness in it as well. And it affected her.
“I shall not tell my brother of your—your rudeness to me,” she began. It was impossible for her to keep the chill out of her voice, to speak with other than the pride and aloofness of her class. Nevertheless, despite her loathing, when she had spoken so far it seemed that kindness and pity followed involuntarily. “I choose to overlook what you did because you were not wholly accountable, and because there must be no trouble between Alfred and you. May I rely on you to keep silence and to seal the lips of that priest? And you know there was a man killed or injured there last night. I want to forget that dreadful thing. I don’t want it known that I heard—”
“I won’t tell my brother about your—your rudeness to me,” she began. It was impossible for her to hide the chill in her voice or to speak without the pride and distance of her class. Still, despite her disgust, once she had said that, it seemed kindness and pity came out without her wanting them to. “I choose to overlook what you did because you weren’t fully responsible, and because we can’t have any drama between Alfred and you. Can I count on you to keep quiet and ensure that priest does too? And you know someone was killed or hurt there last night. I want to forget that awful thing. I don’t want it to be known that I heard—”
“The Greaser didn’t die,” interrupted Stewart.
“The Greaser didn’t die,” interrupted Stewart.
“Ah! then that’s not so bad, after all. I am glad for the sake of your friend—the little Mexican girl.”
“Ah! Well, that’s not so bad, after all. I’m happy for your friend—the little Mexican girl.”
A slow scarlet wave overspread his face, and his shame was painful to see. That fixed in Madeline’s mind a conviction that if he was a heathen he was not wholly bad. And it made so much difference that she smiled down at him.
A slow red wave spread across his face, and his shame was hard to watch. That settled in Madeline's mind a belief that even if he was a heathen, he wasn't completely bad. And it made such a big difference that she smiled down at him.
“You will spare me further distress, will you not, please?” His hoarse reply was incoherent, but she needed only to see his working face to know his remorse and gratitude.
“You’ll save me more pain, won’t you, please?” His raspy answer was unclear, but she only needed to look at his strained expression to understand his regret and appreciation.
Madeline went back to her room; and presently Florence came for her, and directly they were sitting at breakfast. Madeline Hammond’s impression of her brother’s friend had to be reconstructed in the morning light. She felt a wholesome, frank, sweet nature. She liked the slow Southern drawl. And she was puzzled to know whether Florence Kingsley was pretty or striking or unusual. She had a youthful glow and flush, the clear tan of outdoors, a face that lacked the soft curves and lines of Eastern women, and her eyes were light gray, like crystal, steady, almost piercing, and her hair was a beautiful bright, waving mass.
Madeline returned to her room, and soon Florence came for her, and before long they were sitting down for breakfast. Madeline Hammond had to rethink her impression of her brother’s friend in the morning light. She sensed a wholesome, straightforward, sweet nature. She liked the slow Southern drawl. And she found herself unsure whether Florence Kingsley was pretty, striking, or just unique. She had a youthful glow and a rosy complexion, a healthy tan from being outdoors, a face that didn’t have the soft curves and lines typical of women from the East, and her eyes were a light gray, like crystal, steady and almost piercing, and her hair was a stunning bright, wavy mass.
Florence’s sister was the elder of the two, a stout woman with a strong face and quiet eyes. It was a simple fare and service they gave to their guest; but they made no apologies for that. Indeed, Madeline felt their simplicity to be restful. She was sated with respect, sick of admiration, tired of adulation; and it was good to see that these Western women treated her as very likely they would have treated any other visitor. They were sweet, kind; and what Madeline had at first thought was a lack of expression or vitality she soon discovered to be the natural reserve of women who did not live superficial lives. Florence was breezy and frank, her sister quaint and not given much to speech. Madeline thought she would like to have these women near her if she were ill or in trouble. And she reproached herself for a fastidiousness, a hypercritical sense of refinement that could not help distinguishing what these women lacked.
Florence’s sister was the older of the two, a sturdy woman with a strong face and calm eyes. They offered a simple meal and service to their guest, but they didn’t apologize for it. In fact, Madeline found their simplicity refreshing. She was tired of respect, fed up with admiration, and exhausted by adulation; it was nice to see that these Western women treated her like they would any other visitor. They were sweet and kind; what Madeline initially thought was a lack of expression or energy she soon realized was the natural reserve of women who lived genuine lives. Florence was lively and straightforward, while her sister was unique and not very talkative. Madeline thought she would appreciate having these women around if she were sick or facing difficulties. And she felt guilty for her fastidiousness, her overly critical sense of refinement that couldn’t help but notice what these women lacked.
“Can you ride?” Florence was asking. “That’s what a Westerner always asks any one from the East. Can you ride like a man—astride, I mean? Oh, that’s fine. You look strong enough to hold a horse. We have some fine horses out here. I reckon when Al comes we’ll go out to Bill Stillwell’s ranch. We’ll have to go, whether we want to or not, for when Bill learns you are here he’ll just pack us all off. You’ll love old Bill. His ranch is run down, but the range and the rides up in the mountains—they are beautiful. We’ll hunt and climb, and most of all we’ll ride. I love a horse—I love the wind in my face, and a wide stretch with the mountains beckoning. You must have the best horse on the ranges. And that means a scrap between Al and Bill and all the cowboys. We don’t all agree about horses, except in case of Gene Stewart’s iron-gray.”
“Can you ride?” Florence was asking. “That’s what someone from the West always asks anyone from the East. Can you ride like a man—sitting astride, I mean? Oh, that’s great. You look strong enough to handle a horse. We have some amazing horses out here. I bet when Al arrives, we’ll head out to Bill Stillwell’s ranch. We’ll have to go, whether we want to or not, because once Bill finds out you’re here, he’ll insist on taking us all. You’ll really like old Bill. His ranch is a bit run down, but the scenery and the rides in the mountains—they’re stunning. We’ll go hunting and climbing, and most importantly, we’ll ride. I love horses—I love feeling the wind in my face, with wide open spaces and the mountains calling me. You must have the best horse around. And that means there’ll be a bit of a showdown between Al, Bill, and all the cowboys. We don’t all agree on horses, except for Gene Stewart’s iron-gray.”
“Does Mr. Stewart own the best horse in the country?” asked Madeline. Again she had an inexplicable thrill as she remembered the wild flight of Stewart’s big dark steed and rider.
“Does Mr. Stewart own the best horse in the country?” Madeline asked. She felt an inexplicable thrill again as she recalled the wild run of Stewart’s big dark horse and rider.
“Yes, and that’s all he does own,” replied Florence. “Gene can’t keep even a quirt. But he sure loves that horse and calls him—”
“Yes, and that’s all he owns,” replied Florence. “Gene can’t even keep a quirt. But he sure loves that horse and calls him—”
At this juncture a sharp knock on the parlor door interrupted the conversation. Florence’s sister went to open it. She returned presently and said:
At that moment, a loud knock on the parlor door interrupted the conversation. Florence’s sister went to open it. She came back shortly and said:
“It’s Gene. He’s been dawdlin’ out there on the front porch, and he knocked to let us know Miss Hammond’s brother is comin’.”
“It’s Gene. He’s been hanging out on the front porch, and he knocked to let us know Miss Hammond’s brother is coming.”
Florence hurried into the parlor, followed by Madeline. The door stood open, and disclosed Stewart sitting on the porch steps. From down the road came a clatter of hoofs. Madeline looked out over Florence’s shoulder and saw a cloud of dust approaching, and in it she distinguished outlines of horses and riders. A warmth spread over her, a little tingle of gladness, and the feeling recalled her girlish love for her brother. What would he be like after long years?
Florence hurried into the living room, followed by Madeline. The door was open, revealing Stewart sitting on the porch steps. From down the road came the sound of hooves. Madeline looked over Florence’s shoulder and saw a cloud of dust approaching, and in it she made out the shapes of horses and riders. A warmth spread through her, a little tingle of happiness, and the feeling reminded her of her childhood love for her brother. What would he be like after all these years?
“Gene, has Jack kept his mouth shut?” queried Florence; and again Madeline was aware of a sharp ring in the girl’s voice.
“Gene, has Jack been quiet?” Florence asked, and once more Madeline noticed a sharp tone in the girl’s voice.
“No,” replied Stewart.
“No,” said Stewart.
“Gene! You won’t let it come to a fight? Al can be managed. But Jack hates you and he’ll have his friends with him.”
“Gene! You’re not going to let it turn into a fight, right? Al can be dealt with. But Jack really hates you and he’ll have his buddies with him.”
“There won’t be any fight.”
"There won't be any fight."
“Use your brains now,” added Florence; and then she turned to push Madeline gently back into the parlor.
“Use your brains now,” added Florence; and then she turned to gently guide Madeline back into the parlor.
Madeline’s glow of warmth changed to a blank dismay. Was she to see her brother act with the violence she now associated with cowboys? The clatter of hoofs stopped before the door. Looking out, Madeline saw a bunch of dusty, wiry horses pawing the gravel and tossing lean heads. Her swift glance ran over the lithe horsemen, trying to pick out the one who was her brother. But she could not. Her glance, however, caught the same rough dress and hard aspect that characterized the cowboy Stewart. Then one rider threw his bridle, leaped from the saddle, and came bounding up the porch steps. Florence met him at the door.
Madeline’s warm smile turned into a blank look of shock. Was she really going to see her brother act with the kind of violence she now associated with cowboys? The sound of hoofbeats stopped right before the door. Looking outside, Madeline saw a group of dusty, wiry horses pawing at the gravel and tossing their thin heads. She quickly scanned the lithe horsemen, trying to find her brother. But she couldn’t. However, her gaze did catch the same rough clothing and tough demeanor that reminded her of the cowboy Stewart. Then one rider threw his bridle, jumped off his horse, and came rushing up the porch steps. Florence greeted him at the door.
“Hello, Flo. Where is she?” he called, eagerly. With that he looked over her shoulder to espy Madeline. He actually jumped at her. She hardly knew the tall form and the bronzed face, but the warm flash of blue eyes was familiar. As for him, he had no doubt of his sister, it appeared, for with broken welcome he threw his arms around her, then held her off and looked searchingly at her.
“Hey, Flo. Where is she?” he called out, eagerly. With that, he looked over her shoulder to spot Madeline. He actually jumped as he saw her. She barely recognized the tall figure and the sun-kissed face, but the warm flash of blue eyes was familiar. As for him, he seemed certain it was his sister, because with a half-hearted welcome he wrapped his arms around her, then pulled back and looked closely at her.
“Well, sister,” he began, when Florence turned hurriedly from the door and interrupted him.
“Well, sister,” he started, but Florence quickly turned away from the door and cut him off.
“Al, I think you’d better stop the wrangling out there.” He stared at her, appeared suddenly to hear the loud voices from the street, and then, releasing Madeline, he said:
“Al, I think you should stop the arguing out there.” He looked at her, seemed to suddenly notice the loud voices from the street, and then, letting go of Madeline, he said:
“By George! I forgot, Flo. There is a little business to see to. Keep my sister in here, please, and don’t be fussed up now.”
“Wow! I almost forgot, Flo. There's a little business I need to take care of. Please keep my sister in here and don’t get worked up now.”
He went out on the porch and called to his men:
He stepped out onto the porch and shouted to his crew:
“Shut off your wind, Jack! And you, too, Blaze! I didn’t want you fellows to come here. But as you would come, you’ve got to shut up. This is my business.”
“Shut up, Jack! And you too, Blaze! I didn’t want you guys here. But since you came, you need to keep quiet. This is my business.”
Whereupon he turned to Stewart, who was sitting on the fence.
Whereupon he turned to Stewart, who was sitting on the fence.
“Hello, Stewart!” he said.
“Hey, Stewart!” he said.
It was a greeting; but there was that in the voice which alarmed Madeline.
It was a greeting, but there was something in the voice that worried Madeline.
Stewart leisurely got up and leisurely advanced to the porch.
Stewart casually got up and walked over to the porch.
“Hello, Hammond!” he drawled.
“Hey, Hammond!” he drawled.
“Drunk again last night?”
“Drunk again last night?”
“Well, if you want to know, and if it’s any of your mix, yes, I was-pretty drunk,” replied Stewart.
“Well, if you want to know, and if it's any of your business, yes, I was pretty drunk,” replied Stewart.
It was a kind of cool speech that showed the cowboy in control of himself and master of the situation—not an easy speech to follow up with undue inquisitiveness. There was a short silence.
It was a pretty cool speech that showed the cowboy in control of himself and in charge of the situation—not the easiest speech to follow up with too much curiosity. There was a brief silence.
“Damn it, Stewart,” said the speaker, presently, “here’s the situation: It’s all over town that you met my sister last night at the station and—and insulted her. Jack’s got it in for you, so have these other boys. But it’s my affair. Understand, I didn’t fetch them here. They can see you square yourself, or else—Gene, you’ve been on the wrong trail for some time, drinking and all that. You’re going to the bad. But Bill thinks, and I think, you’re still a man. We never knew you to lie. Now what have you to say for yourself?”
“Damn it, Stewart,” the speaker said, “here’s the deal: Everyone in town is saying you met my sister last night at the station and—and insulted her. Jack is out to get you, and so are these other guys. But this is my problem. Just so you know, I didn’t bring them here. They can either watch you make things right or else—Gene, you’ve been heading down the wrong path for a while now, drinking and all that. You're going downhill. But Bill believes, and I believe, you’re still a good guy. We’ve never known you to lie. So what do you have to say for yourself?”
“Nobody is insinuating that I am a liar?” drawled Stewart.
“Nobody is suggesting that I’m a liar?” Stewart drawled.
“No.”
“No.”
“Well, I’m glad to hear that. You see, Al, I was pretty drunk last night, but not drunk enough to forget the least thing I did. I told Pat Hawe so this morning when he was curious. And that’s polite for me to be to Pat. Well, I found Miss Hammond waiting alone at the station. She wore a veil, but I knew she was a lady, of course. I imagine, now that I think of it, that Miss Hammond found my gallantry rather startling, and—”
“Well, I’m glad to hear that. You see, Al, I was pretty drunk last night, but not so drunk that I forgot anything I did. I told Pat Hawe that this morning when he asked about it. And that’s me being polite to Pat. Well, I found Miss Hammond waiting alone at the station. She was wearing a veil, but I knew she was a lady, of course. I guess, now that I think about it, that Miss Hammond found my gallantry a bit surprising, and—”
At this point Madeline, answering to unconsidered impulse, eluded Florence and walked out upon the porch.
At this moment, Madeline, acting on a sudden impulse, slipped away from Florence and stepped out onto the porch.
Sombreros flashed down and the lean horses jumped.
Sombreros shimmered as the slim horses leaped.
“Gentlemen,” said Madeline, rather breathlessly; and it did not add to her calmness to feel a hot flush in her cheeks, “I am very new to Western ways, but I think you are laboring under a mistake, which, in justice to Mr. Stewart, I want to correct. Indeed, he was rather—rather abrupt and strange when he came up to me last night; but as I understand him now, I can attribute that to his gallantry. He was somewhat wild and sudden and—sentimental in his demand to protect me—and it was not clear whether he meant his protection for last night or forever; but I am happy to say be offered me no word that was not honorable. And he saw me safely here to Miss Kingsley’s home.”
“Gentlemen,” said Madeline, a little out of breath; and she felt a hot flush in her cheeks, which didn’t help her calmness, “I’m new to Western ways, but I believe you're misunderstanding something that I need to clarify for Mr. Stewart’s sake. He was a bit—well, abrupt and odd when he approached me last night; but now that I understand him better, I can see that it stemmed from his gallantry. He was a bit wild, sudden, and sentimental in his urge to protect me—and it wasn’t clear if he meant his protection for just last night or for the long term; but I’m happy to say he said nothing that wasn’t honorable. And he made sure I got here safely to Miss Kingsley’s home.”
III. Sister and Brother
Then Madeline returned to the little parlor with the brother whom she had hardly recognized.
Then Madeline came back to the small sitting room with her brother, whom she barely recognized.
“Majesty!” he exclaimed. “To think of your being here!”
“Your Majesty!” he exclaimed. “I can’t believe you’re here!”
The warmth stole back along her veins. She remembered how that pet name had sounded from the lips of this brother who had given it to her.
The warmth flowed back through her veins. She remembered how that nickname had sounded coming from the lips of the brother who had given it to her.
“Alfred!”
"Alfred!"
Then his words of gladness at sight of her, his chagrin at not being at the train to welcome her, were not so memorable of him as the way he clasped her, for he had held her that way the day he left home, and she had not forgotten. But now he was so much taller and bigger, so dusty and strange and different and forceful, that she could scarcely think him the same man. She even had a humorous thought that here was another cowboy bullying her, and this time it was her brother.
Then his words of joy when he saw her, his disappointment at not being at the train to welcome her, weren't as memorable as the way he held her. He had held her that way the day he left home, and she hadn’t forgotten. But now he was so much taller and bigger, so dusty and unfamiliar and intense, that she could hardly believe he was the same guy. She even had a funny thought that here was another cowboy pushing her around, and this time it was her brother.
“Dear old girl,” he said, more calmly, as he let her go, “you haven’t changed at all, except to grow lovelier. Only you’re a woman now, and you’ve fulfilled the name I gave you. God! how sight of you brings back home! It seems a hundred years since I left. I missed you more than all the rest.”
“Dear old girl,” he said more calmly as he let her go, “you haven’t changed at all, except to become more beautiful. You’re just a woman now, and you’ve lived up to the name I gave you. Wow! Just seeing you brings back memories of home! It feels like a hundred years since I left. I missed you more than anyone else.”
Madeline seemed to feel with his every word that she was remembering him. She was so amazed at the change in him that she could not believe her eyes. She saw a bronzed, strong-jawed, eagle-eyed man, stalwart, superb of height, and, like the cowboys, belted, booted, spurred. And there was something hard as iron in his face that quivered with his words. It seemed that only in those moments when the hard lines broke and softened could she see resemblance to the face she remembered. It was his manner, the tone of his voice, and the tricks of speech that proved to her he was really Alfred. She had bidden good-by to a disgraced, disinherited, dissolute boy. Well she remembered the handsome pale face with its weakness and shadows and careless smile, with the ever-present cigarette hanging between the lips. The years had passed, and now she saw him a man—the West had made him a man. And Madeline Hammond felt a strong, passionate gladness and gratefulness, and a direct check to her suddenly inspired hatred of the West.
Madeline could sense with every word he spoke that she was remembering him. She was so shocked by how much he had changed that she could hardly believe her eyes. She saw a tanned, strong-jawed, sharp-eyed man, tall and impressive, dressed like a cowboy, complete with a belt, boots, and spurs. There was something hard as iron in his face that trembled with his words. It seemed that only in those moments when the tough lines softened could she see a resemblance to the face she remembered. It was his mannerisms, the tone of his voice, and the way he spoke that confirmed to her he was really Alfred. She had said goodbye to a disgraced, disinherited, reckless boy. She clearly recalled his handsome pale face, which bore weakness, shadows, and a careless smile, with a cigarette constantly hanging from his lips. Years had passed, and now she saw him as a man—the West had transformed him. And Madeline Hammond felt a strong, passionate joy and gratitude, which directly challenged her suddenly ignited hatred for the West.
“Majesty, it was good of you to come. I’m all broken up. How did you ever do it? But never mind that now. Tell me about that brother of mine.”
“Your Majesty, it was great of you to come. I’m really upset. How did you manage it? But let’s not talk about that right now. Tell me about my brother.”
And Madeline told him, and then about their sister Helen. Question after question he fired at her; and she told him of her mother; of Aunt Grace, who had died a year ago; of his old friends, married, scattered, vanished. But she did not tell him of his father, for he did not ask.
And Madeline told him, and then about their sister Helen. He bombarded her with question after question; and she shared stories about their mother, about Aunt Grace, who had passed away a year ago, and about his old friends, who were married, scattered, and gone. But she didn’t mention his father because he didn’t ask.
Quite suddenly the rapid-fire questioning ceased; he choked, was silent a moment, and then burst into tears. It seemed to her that a long, stored-up bitterness was flooding away. It hurt her to see him—hurt her more to hear him. And in the succeeding few moments she grew closer to him than she had ever been in the past. Had her father and mother done right by him? Her pulse stirred with unwonted quickness. She did not speak, but she kissed him, which, for her, was an indication of unusual feeling. And when he recovered command over his emotions he made no reference to his breakdown, nor did she. But that scene struck deep into Madeline Hammond’s heart. Through it she saw what he had lost and gained.
Suddenly, the intense questioning stopped; he choked up, was silent for a moment, and then broke down in tears. It felt to her like a long-held bitterness was finally pouring out. It pained her to see him—hurt her even more to hear him. In those next few moments, she felt closer to him than she'd ever been before. Had her parents treated him right? Her heart raced with unexpected intensity. She didn't say anything, but she kissed him, which was a sign of deep emotion for her. When he regained control of his feelings, neither of them mentioned the breakdown. But that moment left a lasting impression on Madeline Hammond's heart. Through it, she understood what he had lost and what he had gained.
“Alfred, why did you not answer my last letters?” asked Madeline. “I had not heard from you for two years.”
“Alfred, why didn’t you respond to my last letters?” Madeline asked. “I haven’t heard from you in two years.”
“So long? How time flies! Well, things went bad with me about the last time I heard from you. I always intended to write some day, but I never did.”
“So long? Time really flies! Well, things went downhill for me since the last time I heard from you. I always meant to write someday, but I never got around to it.”
“Things went wrong? Tell me.”
"Something went wrong? Tell me."
“Majesty, you mustn’t worry yourself with my troubles. I want you to enjoy your stay and not be bothered with my difficulties.”
“Your Majesty, you shouldn’t worry about my problems. I want you to enjoy your stay and not be troubled by my issues.”
“Please tell me. I suspected something had gone wrong. That is partly why I decided to come out.”
“Please tell me. I had a feeling something was off. That's partly why I chose to come out.”
“All right; if you must know,” he began; and it seemed to Madeline that there was a gladness in his decision to unburden himself. “You remember all about my little ranch, and that for a while I did well raising stock? I wrote you all that. Majesty, a man makes enemies anywhere. Perhaps an Eastern man in the West can make, if not so many, certainly more bitter ones. At any rate, I made several. There was a cattleman, Ward by name—he’s gone now—and he and I had trouble over cattle. That gave me a back-set. Pat Hawe, the sheriff here, has been instrumental in hurting my business. He’s not so much of a rancher, but he has influence at Santa Fe and El Paso and Douglas. I made an enemy of him. I never did anything to him. He hates Gene Stewart, and upon one occasion I spoiled a little plot of his to get Gene in his clutches. The real reason for his animosity toward me is that he loves Florence, and Florence is going to marry me.”
“All right; if you want to know,” he started, and Madeline thought he seemed happy to finally share his burden. “You remember my little ranch and how well I was doing raising livestock for a while? I told you all about it. You see, a man makes enemies everywhere. Maybe a guy from the East in the West can make, if not more, definitely more intense enemies. Either way, I made a few. There was a cattleman named Ward—he's gone now—and we had issues over cattle. That set me back. Pat Hawe, the sheriff here, has done a lot of damage to my business. He’s not much of a rancher, but he has pull in Santa Fe, El Paso, and Douglas. I made an enemy out of him. I never did anything to him. He hates Gene Stewart, and once I messed up a little scheme of his to trap Gene. The real reason he dislikes me is that he has feelings for Florence, and Florence is going to marry me.”
“Alfred!”
"Alfred!"
“What’s the matter, Majesty? Didn’t Florence impress you favorably?” he asked, with a keen glance.
“What’s wrong, Your Majesty? Wasn't Florence to your liking?” he asked, with a sharp look.
“Why—yes, indeed. I like her. But I did not think of her in relation to you—that way. I am greatly surprised. Alfred, is she well born? What connections?”
“Why—yes, of course. I like her. But I didn’t think of her that way in relation to you. I’m really surprised. Alfred, is she from a good family? What’s her background?”
“Florence is just a girl of ordinary people. She was born in Kentucky, was brought up in Texas. My aristocratic and wealthy family would scorn—”
“Florence is just a regular girl. She was born in Kentucky and raised in Texas. My aristocratic and wealthy family would look down on—”
“Alfred, you are still a Hammond,” said Madeline, with uplifted head.
“Alfred, you’re still a Hammond,” Madeline said, lifting her head.
Alfred laughed. “We won’t quarrel, Majesty. I remember you, and in spite of your pride you’ve got a heart. If you stay here a month you’ll love Florence Kingsley. I want you to know she’s had a great deal to do with straightening me up.... Well, to go on with my story. There’s Don Carlos, a Mexican rancher, and he’s my worst enemy. For that matter, he’s as bad an enemy of Bill Stillwell and other ranchers. Stillwell, by the way, is my friend and one of the finest men on earth. I got in debt to Don Carlos before I knew he was so mean. In the first place I lost money at faro—I gambled some when I came West—and then I made unwise cattle deals. Don Carlos is a wily Greaser, he knows the ranges, he has the water, and he is dishonest. So he outfigured me. And now I am practically ruined. He has not gotten possession of my ranch, but that’s only a matter of time, pending lawsuits at Santa Fe. At present I have a few hundred cattle running on Stillwell’s range, and I am his foreman.”
Alfred laughed. “We won’t argue, Your Majesty. I remember you, and despite your pride, you have a heart. If you stay here for a month, you’ll fall in love with Florence Kingsley. I want you to know she’s played a big role in helping me get my life together... Well, to continue with my story. There’s Don Carlos, a Mexican rancher, and he’s my biggest enemy. In fact, he’s also a terrible enemy to Bill Stillwell and other ranchers. Stillwell, by the way, is my friend and one of the best guys around. I got into debt to Don Carlos before I realized how cruel he was. First, I lost money at faro—I gambled a bit when I came out West—and then I made some bad cattle deals. Don Carlos is a crafty guy; he knows the land, he has access to water, and he’s dishonest. So he outsmarted me. And now I’m basically ruined. He hasn't taken my ranch yet, but that’s just a matter of time, given the lawsuits in Santa Fe. Right now, I have a few hundred cattle on Stillwell’s land, and I’m his foreman.”
“Foreman?” queried Madeline.
"Foreman?" asked Madeline.
“I am simply boss of Stillwell’s cowboys, and right glad of my job.”
“I’m just the boss of Stillwell’s cowboys, and I’m really happy with my job.”
Madeline was conscious of an inward burning. It required an effort for her to retain her outward tranquillity. Annoying consciousness she had also of the returning sense of new disturbing emotions. She began to see just how walled in from unusual thought-provoking incident and sensation had been her exclusive life.
Madeline felt a deep inner turmoil. She had to work hard to keep her calm exterior. She was also bothered by the return of new, unsettling emotions. She started to realize how sheltered her life had been from anything unusual or thought-provoking.
“Cannot your property be reclaimed?” she asked. “How much do you owe?”
“Can’t you get your property back?” she asked. “How much do you owe?”
“Ten thousand dollars would clear me and give me another start. But, Majesty, in this country that’s a good deal of money, and I haven’t been able to raise it. Stillwell’s in worse shape than I am.”
“Ten thousand dollars would pay off my debts and give me a fresh start. But, Your Majesty, in this country that’s a lot of money, and I haven’t been able to come up with it. Stillwell is in worse condition than I am.”
Madeline went over to Alfred and put her hands on his shoulders.
Madeline walked over to Alfred and placed her hands on his shoulders.
“We must not be in debt.”
“We must not be in debt.”
He stared at her as if her words had recalled something long forgotten. Then he smiled.
He looked at her as if her words had brought back a memory he hadn't thought about in a long time. Then he smiled.
“How imperious you are! I’d forgotten just who my beautiful sister really is. Majesty, you’re not going to ask me to take money from you?”
“How commanding you are! I’d forgotten who my amazing sister really is. Seriously, you’re not actually going to ask me to take money from you?”
“I am.”
"I'm here."
“Well, I’ll not do it. I never did, even when I was in college, and then there wasn’t much beyond me.”
“Well, I’m not going to do it. I never did, even when I was in college, and even then there wasn’t much I could do.”
“Listen, Alfred,” she went on, earnestly, “this is entirely different. I had only an allowance then. You had no way to know that since I last wrote you I had come into my inheritance from Aunt Grace. It was—well, that doesn’t matter. Only, I haven’t been able to spend half the income. It’s mine. It’s not father’s money. You will make me very happy if you’ll consent. Alfred, I’m so—so amazed at the change in you. I’m so happy. You must never take a backward step from now on. What is ten thousand dollars to me? Sometimes I spend that in a month. I throw money away. If you let me help you it will be doing me good as well as you. Please, Alfred.”
“Listen, Alfred,” she continued earnestly, “this is completely different. Back then, I only had an allowance. You didn’t know that since I last wrote you, I've inherited from Aunt Grace. It was—well, that doesn’t matter. The point is, I haven’t been able to spend half of the income. It’s mine; it’s not my father’s money. You would make me very happy if you agree. Alfred, I’m so—so amazed at how much you’ve changed. I’m really happy. You must never take a step backward from now on. What is ten thousand dollars to me? Sometimes I spend that in a month. I waste money. If you let me help you, it will benefit both of us. Please, Alfred.”
He kissed her, evidently surprised at her earnestness. And indeed Madeline was surprised herself. Once started, her speech had flowed.
He kissed her, clearly caught off guard by her seriousness. And honestly, Madeline was surprised too. Once she started talking, the words just flowed out.
“You always were the best of fellows, Majesty. And if you really care—if you really want to help me I’ll be only too glad to accept. It will be fine. Florence will go wild. And that Greaser won’t harass me any more. Majesty, pretty soon some titled fellow will be spending your money; I may as well take a little before he gets it all,” he finished, jokingly.
“You’ve always been the best, Your Majesty. And if you actually care—if you really want to help me, I’d be more than happy to accept. It’ll be great. Florence will be thrilled. And that guy won’t bother me anymore. Your Majesty, pretty soon some noble guy will be using your money; I might as well take a little before he takes it all,” he ended, jokingly.
“What do you know about me?” she asked, lightly.
“What do you know about me?” she asked casually.
“More than you think. Even if we are lost out here in the woolly West we get news. Everybody knows about Anglesbury. And that Dago duke who chased you all over Europe, that Lord Castleton has the running now and seems about to win. How about it, Majesty?”
“More than you realize. Even though we’re out here in the remote West, we still get updates. Everyone knows about Anglesbury. And that Dago duke who hunted you all over Europe, that Lord Castleton is in the lead now and seems likely to win. What do you think, Majesty?”
Madeline detected a hint that suggested scorn in his gay speech. And deep in his searching glance she saw a flame. She became thoughtful. She had forgotten Castleton, New York, society.
Madeline noticed a trace of disdain in his cheerful words. And deep in his probing gaze, she saw a flicker of intensity. She grew contemplative. She had forgotten about the society in Castleton, New York.
“Alfred,” she began, seriously, “I don’t believe any titled gentleman will ever spend my money, as you elegantly express it.”
“Alfred,” she said earnestly, “I don’t think any gentleman with a title will ever spend my money, as you so elegantly put it.”
“I don’t care for that. It’s you!” he cried, passionately, and he grasped her with a violence that startled her. He was white; his eyes were now like fire. “You are so splendid—so wonderful. People called you the American Beauty, but you’re more than that. You’re the American Girl! Majesty, marry no man unless you love him, and love an American. Stay away from Europe long enough to learn to know the men—the real men of your own country.”
“I don’t care about that. It’s you!” he exclaimed passionately, grabbing her with a force that caught her off guard. He was pale; his eyes looked like flames. “You are so amazing—so incredible. People called you the American Beauty, but you’re more than that. You’re the American Girl! Majesty, don’t marry any man unless you love him, and love an American. Stay away from Europe long enough to get to know the men— the real men of your own country.”
“Alfred, I’m afraid there are not always real men and real love for American girls in international marriages. But Helen knows this. It’ll be her choice. She’ll be miserable if she marries Anglesbury.”
“Alfred, I’m afraid there aren’t always genuine men and true love for American girls in international marriages. But Helen understands this. It’ll be her decision. She’ll be unhappy if she marries Anglesbury.”
“It’ll serve her just right,” declared her brother. “Helen was always crazy for glitter, adulation, fame. I’ll gamble she never saw more of Anglesbury than the gold and ribbons on his breast.”
“It’ll serve her right,” said her brother. “Helen was always obsessed with glitter, attention, and fame. I bet she never noticed more about Anglesbury than the gold and ribbons on his chest.”
“I am sorry. Anglesbury is a gentleman; but it is the money he wanted, I think. Alfred, tell me how you came to know about me, ’way out here? You may be assured I was astonished to find that Miss Kingsley knew me as Majesty Hammond.”
“I’m sorry. Anglesbury is a gentleman, but I think he was after the money. Alfred, how did you find out about me all the way out here? I was really surprised to learn that Miss Kingsley knew me as Majesty Hammond.”
“I imagine it was a surprise,” he replied, with a laugh, “I told Florence about you—gave her a picture of you. And, of course, being a woman, she showed the picture and talked. She’s in love with you. Then, my dear sister, we do get New York papers out here occasionally, and we can see and read. You may not be aware that you and your society friends are objects of intense interest in the U. S. in general, and the West in particular. The papers are full of you, and perhaps a lot of things you never did.”
“I guess it was a surprise,” he said with a laugh. “I told Florence about you and showed her a picture of you. And, of course, being a woman, she couldn’t help but share the picture and talk about it. She’s got a crush on you. Plus, my dear sister, we do get New York newspapers out here from time to time, and we can see and read what they say. You might not know this, but you and your socialite friends are a big deal in the U.S. in general, and especially in the West. The papers are filled with stories about you, and probably a bunch of things you never even did.”
“That Mr. Stewart knew, too. He said, ‘You’re not Majesty Hammond?’”
“That Mr. Stewart knew, too. He said, ‘You’re not Majesty Hammond?’”
“Never mind his impudence!” exclaimed Alfred; and then again he laughed. “Gene is all right, only you’ve got to know him. I’ll tell you what he did. He got hold of one of those newspaper pictures of you—the one in the Times; he took it away from here, and in spite of Florence he wouldn’t fetch it back. It was a picture of you in riding-habit with your blue-ribbon horse, White Stockings—remember? It was taken at Newport. Well, Stewart tacked the picture up in his bunk-house and named his beautiful horse Majesty. All the cowboys knew it. They would see the picture and tease him unmercifully. But he didn’t care. One day I happened to drop in on him and found him just recovering from a carouse. I saw the picture, too, and I said to him, ‘Gene, if my sister knew you were a drunkard she’d not be proud of having her picture stuck up in your room.’ Majesty, he did not touch a drop for a month, and when he did drink again he took the picture down, and he has never put it back.”
“Forget about his boldness!” Alfred exclaimed, laughing again. “Gene is fine, but you just have to get to know him. Let me tell you what he did. He grabbed one of those newspaper pictures of you—the one in the Times; he took it from here, and despite Florence, he wouldn’t bring it back. It was a picture of you in your riding outfit with your blue-ribbon horse, White Stockings—remember? It was taken at Newport. Anyway, Stewart put the picture up in his bunkhouse and named his gorgeous horse Majesty. All the cowboys knew about it. They’d see the picture and tease him relentlessly. But he didn’t mind. One day I happened to drop by and found him just recovering from a binge. I saw the picture and told him, ‘Gene, if my sister knew you were a drunk, she wouldn’t be proud to have her picture hanging in your room.’ Majesty didn’t touch a drop for a month, and when he did drink again, he took the picture down, and he’s never put it back.”
Madeline smiled at her brother’s amusement, but she did not reply. She simply could not adjust herself to these queer free Western’ ways. Her brother had eloquently pleaded for her to keep herself above a sordid and brilliant marriage, yet he not only allowed a cowboy to keep her picture in his room, but actually spoke of her and used her name in a temperance lecture. Madeline just escaped feeling disgust. She was saved from this, however, by nothing less than her brother’s naive gladness that through subtle suggestion Stewart had been persuaded to be good for a month. Something made up of Stewart’s effrontery to her; of Florence Kingsley meeting her, frankly as it were, as an equal; of the elder sister’s slow, quiet, easy acceptance of this visitor who had been honored at the courts of royalty; of that faint hint of scorn in Alfred’s voice, and his amused statement in regard to her picture and the name Majesty—something made up of all these stung Madeline Hammond’s pride, alienated her for an instant, and then stimulated her intelligence, excited her interest, and made her resolve to learn a little about this incomprehensible West.
Madeline smiled at her brother’s amusement, but she didn’t respond. She just couldn’t get used to these strange, free Western ways. Her brother had passionately urged her to rise above a sordid and flashy marriage, yet he not only let a cowboy keep her picture in his room but actually talked about her and used her name in a temperance lecture. Madeline barely avoided feeling disgusted. She was saved from this, however, by nothing less than her brother’s naive happiness that through subtle suggestion, Stewart had been convinced to behave himself for a month. Something about Stewart’s boldness towards her, Florence Kingsley treating her as an equal, the older sister’s calm and easy acceptance of this visitor who had been honored at royal courts, that slight hint of scorn in Alfred’s voice, and his amused remark about her picture and the name Majesty—these all stung Madeline Hammond’s pride, pushed her away for a moment, and then sparked her intelligence, piqued her interest, and made her determined to learn a bit about this baffling West.
“Majesty, I must run down to the siding,” he said, consulting his watch. “We’re loading a shipment of cattle. I’ll be back by supper-time and bring Stillwell with me. You’ll like him. Give me the check for your trunk.”
“Your Majesty, I need to head down to the siding,” he said, checking his watch. “We’re loading a shipment of cattle. I’ll be back by dinner time and bring Stillwell with me. You’ll like him. Give me the check for your trunk.”
She went into the little bedroom and, taking up her bag, she got out a number of checks.
She walked into the small bedroom, picked up her bag, and pulled out a bunch of checks.
“Six! Six trunks!” he exclaimed. “Well, I’m very glad you intend to stay awhile. Say, Majesty, it will take me as long to realize who you really are as it’ll take to break you of being a tenderfoot. I hope you packed a riding-suit. If not you’ll have to wear trousers! You’ll have to do that, anyway, when we go up in the mountains.”
“Six! Six trunks!” he exclaimed. “Well, I’m really glad you plan to stick around. Hey, Your Majesty, it’ll take me just as long to figure out who you really are as it will to get you used to the outdoors. I hope you brought a riding outfit. If not, you’ll have to wear pants! You’ll need to do that anyway when we head up to the mountains.”
“No!”
“No way!”
“You sure will, as Florence says.”
"You definitely will, just like Florence says."
“We shall see about that. I don’t know what’s in the trunks. I never pack anything. My dear brother, what do I have maids for?”
“We'll see about that. I have no idea what's in the trunks. I never pack anything. My dear brother, what do you think I have maids for?”
“How did it come that you didn’t travel with a maid?”
“How come you didn’t travel with a maid?”
“I wanted to be alone. But don’t you worry. I shall be able to look after myself. I dare say it will be good for me.”
“I wanted to be alone. But don’t worry. I can take care of myself. I’m sure it will be good for me.”
She went to the gate with him.
She went to the gate with him.
“What a shaggy, dusty horse! He’s wild, too. Do you let him stand that way without being haltered? I should think he would run off.”
“What a scruffy, dusty horse! He’s wild, too. Do you let him stand there like that without being tied up? I would think he’d run away.”
“Tenderfoot! You’ll be great fun, Majesty, especially for the cowboys.”
“Tenderfoot! You’re going to be a lot of fun, Your Majesty, especially for the cowboys.”
“Oh, will I?” she asked, constrainedly.
“Oh, will I?” she asked, reluctantly.
“Yes, and in three days they will be fighting one another over you. That’s going to worry me. Cowboys fall in love with a plain woman, an ugly woman, any woman, so long as she’s young. And you! Good Lord! They’ll go out of their heads.”
“Yes, and in three days they’ll be fighting each other over you. That’s going to stress me out. Cowboys fall for a plain woman, an ugly woman, any woman, as long as she’s young. And you! Oh my God! They’ll go crazy.”
“You are pleased to be facetious, Alfred. I think I have had quite enough of cowboys, and I haven’t been here twenty-four hours.”
“You're being sarcastic, Alfred. I think I've had more than enough of cowboys, and I haven't even been here twenty-four hours.”
“Don’t think too much of first impressions. That was my mistake when I arrived here. Good-by. I’ll go now. Better rest awhile. You look tired.”
“Don’t put too much weight on first impressions. That was my mistake when I got here. Goodbye. I’ll leave now. You should rest for a bit. You look tired.”
The horse started as Alfred put his foot in the stirrup and was running when the rider slipped his leg over the saddle. Madeline watched him in admiration. He seemed to be loosely fitted to the saddle, moving with the horse.
The horse began to move as Alfred placed his foot in the stirrup and was already running when the rider swung his leg over the saddle. Madeline watched him in admiration. He looked like he was perfectly in sync with the saddle, flowing with the horse.
“I suppose that’s a cowboy’s style. It pleases me,” she said. “How different from the seat of Eastern riders!”
“I guess that’s a cowboy’s style. It makes me happy,” she said. “So different from the way riders from the East sit!”
Then Madeline sat upon the porch and fell to interested observation of her surrounding. Near at hand it was decidedly not prepossessing. The street was deep in dust, and the cool wind whipped up little puffs. The houses along this street were all low, square, flat-roofed structures made of some kind of red cement. It occurred to her suddenly that this building-material must be the adobe she had read about. There was no person in sight. The long street appeared to have no end, though the line of houses did not extend far. Once she heard a horse trotting at some distance, and several times the ringing of a locomotive bell. Where were the mountains, wondered Madeline. Soon low over the house-roofs she saw a dim, dark-blue, rugged outline. It seemed to charm her eyes and fix her gaze. She knew the Adirondacks, she had seen the Alps from the summit of Mont Blanc, and had stood under the great black, white-tipped shadow of the Himalayas. But they had not drawn her as these remote Rockies. This dim horizon line boldly cutting the blue sky fascinated her. Florence Kingsley’s expression “beckoning mountains” returned to Madeline. She could not see or feel so much as that. Her impression was rather that these mountains were aloof, unattainable, that if approached they would recede or vanish like the desert mirage.
Then Madeline sat on the porch and began to closely observe her surroundings. Nearby, it wasn't very appealing. The street was covered in dust, and a cool wind stirred up little clouds of it. The houses along this street were all low, square, flat-roofed buildings made of some kind of red cement. Suddenly, it occurred to her that this building material must be the adobe she had read about. There was no one in sight. The long street seemed to stretch on forever, although the line of houses didn’t go far. Once, she heard a horse trotting in the distance, and several times she heard the ringing of a train's bell. Where were the mountains, Madeline wondered. Soon, she spotted a faint, dark-blue, rugged outline above the rooftops. It seemed to captivate her gaze. She was familiar with the Adirondacks, had seen the Alps from the top of Mont Blanc, and had stood beneath the vast, black, white-tipped shadow of the Himalayas. But none of those had drawn her in like these distant Rockies. This hazy horizon line boldly cutting through the blue sky fascinated her. The phrase “beckoning mountains” from Florence Kingsley came to mind for Madeline. Yet, she couldn't see or feel quite like that. Her impression was more that these mountains were distant, unattainable; that if she got closer, they would just retreat or disappear like a desert mirage.
Madeline went to her room, intending to rest awhile, and she fell asleep. She was aroused by Florence’s knock and call.
Madeline went to her room, planning to rest for a bit, and she fell asleep. She was awakened by Florence’s knock and call.
“Miss Hammond, your brother has come back with Stillwell.”
“Miss Hammond, your brother has returned with Stillwell.”
“Why, how I have slept!” exclaimed Madeline. “It’s nearly six o’clock.”
“Wow, I must have really slept!” Madeline exclaimed. “It’s almost six o’clock.”
“I’m sure glad. You were tired. And the air here makes strangers sleepy. Come, we want you to meet old Bill. He calls himself the last of the cattlemen. He has lived in Texas and here all his life.”
“I’m really glad. You looked tired. And the air here makes people feel drowsy. Come on, we want you to meet old Bill. He calls himself the last of the cattlemen. He’s lived in Texas and here his whole life.”
Madeline accompanied Florence to the porch. Her brother, who was sitting near the door, jumped up and said:
Madeline walked with Florence to the porch. Her brother, who was sitting by the door, sprang up and said:
“Hello, Majesty!” And as he put his arm around her he turned toward a massive man whose broad, craggy face began to ripple and wrinkle. “I want to introduce my friend Stillwell to you. Bill, this is my sister, the sister I’ve so often told you about—Majesty.”
“Hello, Your Majesty!” And as he put his arm around her, he turned toward a massive man whose broad, weathered face began to shift and crease. “I want to introduce my friend Stillwell to you. Bill, this is my sister, the sister I’ve mentioned to you so many times—Your Majesty.”
“Wal, wal, Al, this’s the proudest meetin’ of my life,” replied Stillwell, in a booming voice. He extended a huge hand. “Miss—Miss Majesty, sight of you is as welcome as the rain an’ the flowers to an old desert cattleman.”
“Wow, wow, Al, this is the proudest meeting of my life,” replied Stillwell, in a loud voice. He reached out a large hand. “Miss—Miss Majesty, seeing you is as welcome as rain and flowers to an old desert cattle rancher.”
Madeline greeted him, and it was all she could do to repress a cry at the way he crunched her hand in a grasp of iron. He was old, white-haired, weather-beaten, with long furrows down his checks and with gray eyes almost hidden in wrinkles. If he was smiling she fancied it a most extraordinary smile. The next instant she realized that it had been a smile, for his face appeared to stop rippling, the light died, and suddenly it was like rudely chiseled stone. The quality of hardness she had seen in Stewart was immeasurably intensified in this old man’s face.
Madeline greeted him, and she could barely hold back a gasp at how he crushed her hand in an unyielding grip. He was old, white-haired, and weathered, with deep lines on his cheeks and gray eyes nearly obscured by wrinkles. If he was smiling, she thought it was an incredibly strange smile. In the next moment, she realized it had been a smile, as his face seemed to freeze, the light faded, and suddenly it looked like it was carved from stone. The level of hardness she had noticed in Stewart was vastly intensified in this old man’s face.
“Miss Majesty, it’s plumb humiliatin’ to all of us thet we wasn’t on hand to meet you,” Stillwell said. “Me an’ Al stepped into the P. O. an’ said a few mild an’ cheerful things. Them messages ought to hev been sent out to the ranch. I’m sure afraid it was a bit unpleasant fer you last night at the station.”
“Miss Majesty, it’s really embarrassing for all of us that we weren’t there to meet you,” Stillwell said. “Al and I stopped by the post office and said a few nice and cheerful things. Those messages should have been sent out to the ranch. I’m really sorry it was a bit uncomfortable for you last night at the station.”
“I was rather anxious at first and perhaps frightened,” replied Madeline.
“I was a bit anxious at first and maybe scared,” replied Madeline.
“Wal, I’m some glad to tell you thet there’s no man in these parts except your brother thet I’d as lief hev met you as Gene Stewart.”
“Well, I’m really glad to tell you that there’s no man around here besides your brother that I’d rather meet than Gene Stewart.”
“Indeed?”
"Really?"
“Yes, an’ thet’s takin’ into consideration Gene’s weakness, too. I’m allus fond of sayin’ of myself thet I’m the last of the old cattlemen. Wal, Stewart’s not a native Westerner, but he’s my pick of the last of the cowboys. Sure, he’s young, but he’s the last of the old style—the picturesque—an’ chivalrous, too, I make bold to say, Miss Majesty, as well as the old hard-ridin’ kind. Folks are down on Stewart. An’ I’m only sayin’ a good word for him because he is down, an’ mebbe last night he might hev scared you, you bein’ fresh from the East.”
“Yes, and that’s taking into account Gene’s weakness, too. I always like to say that I’m the last of the old cattlemen. Well, Stewart’s not a native Westerner, but he’s my pick for the last of the cowboys. Sure, he’s young, but he’s the last of the old style—the charming—and chivalrous, too, if I may say so, Miss Majesty, as well as the old hard-riding type. People are against Stewart. And I’m just speaking well of him because he’s down, and maybe last night he might have scared you, since you’re fresh from the East.”
Madeline liked the old fellow for his loyalty to the cowboy he evidently cared for; but as there did not seem anything for her to say, she remained silent.
Madeline liked the old guy for his loyalty to the cowboy he clearly cared about; but since there didn't seem to be anything for her to say, she stayed quiet.
“Miss Majesty, the day of the cattleman is about over. An’ the day of the cowboy, such as Gene Stewart, is over. There’s no place for Gene. If these weren’t modern days he’d come near bein’ a gun-man, same as we had in Texas, when I ranched there in the ‘seventies. But he can’t fit nowhere now; he can’t hold a job, an’ he’s goin’ down.”
“Miss Majesty, the era of the cattleman is almost gone. And the era of the cowboy, like Gene Stewart, is over too. There’s no place for Gene. If this weren’t modern times, he’d almost be a gunslinger, just like we had in Texas when I was ranching there in the '70s. But he can’t fit in anywhere now; he can’t keep a job, and he’s on a downward spiral.”
“I am sorry to hear it,” murmured Madeline. “But, Mr. Stillwell, aren’t these modern days out here just a little wild—yet? The conductor on my train told me of rebels, bandits, raiders. Then I have had other impressions of—well, that were wild enough for me.”
“I’m sorry to hear that,” Madeline said softly. “But, Mr. Stillwell, aren’t these modern times out here just a bit wild—still? The conductor on my train told me about rebels, bandits, and raiders. Then I’ve had other experiences that were—well, wild enough for me.”
“Wal, it’s some more pleasant an’ excitin’ these days than for many years,” replied Stillwell. “The boys hev took to packin’ guns again. But thet’s owin’ to the revolution in Mexico. There’s goin’ to be trouble along the border. I reckon people in the East don’t know there is a revolution. Wal, Madero will oust Diaz, an’ then some other rebel will oust Madero. It means trouble on the border an’ across the border, too. I wouldn’t wonder if Uncle Sam hed to get a hand in the game. There’s already been holdups on the railroads an’ raids along the Rio Grande Valley. An’ these little towns are full of Greasers, all disturbed by the fightin’ down in Mexico. We’ve been hevin’ shootin’-scrapes an’ knifin’-scrapes, an’ some cattle-raidin’. I hev been losin’ a few cattle right along. Reminds me of old times; an’ pretty soon if it doesn’t stop, I’ll take the old-time way to stop it.”
“Yeah, things are more pleasant and exciting these days than they have been in many years,” replied Stillwell. “The guys have started carrying guns again. But that’s because of the revolution in Mexico. There’s going to be trouble along the border. I guess people in the East don’t realize there’s a revolution happening. Well, Madero is going to kick Diaz out, and then some other rebel will kick Madero out. It means trouble at the border and across it, too. I wouldn’t be surprised if Uncle Sam had to get involved. There have already been robberies on the railroads and raids along the Rio Grande Valley. And these little towns are full of Mexicans, all stirred up by the fighting down in Mexico. We’ve had shootouts and knife fights, and some cattle rustling. I've been losing a few cattle here and there. It reminds me of the old days; and pretty soon if it doesn’t stop, I’ll handle it the old-fashioned way.”
“Yes, indeed, Majesty,” put in Alfred, “you have hit upon an interesting time to visit us.”
“Yes, of course, Your Majesty,” Alfred said, “you’ve chosen an interesting time to visit us.”
“Wal, thet sure ’pears to be so,” rejoined Stillwell. “Stewart got in trouble down heah to-day, an’ I’m more than sorry to hev to tell you thet your name figgered in it. But I couldn’t blame him, fer I sure would hev done the same myself.”
“Yeah, that definitely seems to be the case,” Stillwell replied. “Stewart got into some trouble down here today, and I’m really sorry to have to tell you that your name came up in it. But I can’t blame him, because I would’ve done the same thing myself.”
“That so?” queried Alfred, laughing. “Well, tell us about it.”
“Is that so?” Alfred asked, laughing. “Well, give us the details.”
Madeline simply gazed at her brother, and, though he seemed amused at her consternation, there was mortification in his face.
Madeline just stared at her brother, and even though he looked amused by her distress, there was embarrassment in his expression.
It required no great perspicuity, Madeline thought, to see that Stillwell loved to talk, and the way he squared himself and spread his huge hands over his knees suggested that he meant to do this opportunity justice.
It didn't take much insight, Madeline thought, to realize that Stillwell loved to chat, and the way he positioned himself and spread his large hands over his knees indicated that he planned to make the most of this opportunity.
“Miss Majesty, I reckon, bein’ as you’re in the West now, thet you must take things as they come, an’ mind each thing a little less than the one before. If we old fellers hedn’t been thet way we’d never hev lasted.
“Miss Majesty, I think now that you're in the West, you should take things as they come and worry a little less about each thing than the one before. If us old-timers hadn't been that way, we would never have lasted."
“Last night wasn’t particular bad, ratin’ with some other nights lately. There wasn’t much doin’. But, I had a hard knock. Yesterday when we started in with a bunch of cattle I sent one of my cowboys, Danny Mains, along ahead, carryin’ money I hed to pay off hands an’ my bills, an’ I wanted thet money to get in town before dark. Wal, Danny was held up. I don’t distrust the lad. There’s been strange Greasers in town lately, an’ mebbe they knew about the money comin’.
“Last night wasn’t too bad compared to some recent nights. There wasn’t much going on. But, I had a tough blow. Yesterday when we started with a herd of cattle, I sent one of my cowboys, Danny Mains, ahead with the money I needed to pay the workers and my bills, and I wanted that money to get to town before dark. Well, Danny was held up. I don’t doubt the kid. There have been some shady characters in town lately, and maybe they knew the money was on its way.”
“Wal, when I arrived with the cattle I was some put to it to make ends meet. An’ to-day I wasn’t in no angelic humor. When I hed my business all done I went around pokin’ my nose beak an’ there, tryin’ to get scent of thet money. An’ I happened in at a hall we hev thet does duty fer’ jail an’ hospital an’ election-post an’ what not. Wal, just then it was doin’ duty as a hospital. Last night was fiesta night—these Greasers hev a fiesta every week or so—an’ one Greaser who hed been bad hurt was layin’ in the hall, where he hed been fetched from the station. Somebody hed sent off to Douglas fer a doctor, but be hedn’t come yet. I’ve hed some experience with gunshot wounds, an’ I looked this feller over. He wasn’t shot up much, but I thought there was danger of blood-poison-in’. Anyway, I did all I could.
"Well, when I arrived with the cattle, I had a hard time making ends meet. And today, I wasn't in the best mood. Once I finished my work, I started snooping around, trying to get a whiff of that money. I ended up in a place we use as a jail, hospital, election post, and other things. At that moment, it was serving as a hospital. Last night was party night—these Mexicans have a party every week or so—and one guy who had been seriously injured was lying in the hall, where he had been brought from the station. Someone had sent to Douglas for a doctor, but he hadn't arrived yet. I’ve got some experience with gunshot wounds, and I examined this guy. He wasn't hurt too badly, but I thought there was a danger of blood poisoning. Anyway, I did everything I could."
“The hall was full of cowboys, ranchers, Greasers, miners, an’ town folks, along with some strangers. I was about to get started up this way when Pat Hawe come in.
“The hall was packed with cowboys, ranchers, Greasers, miners, and townspeople, along with some newcomers. I was just about to head this way when Pat Hawe walked in.”
“Pat he’s the sheriff. I reckon, Miss Majesty, thet sheriffs are new to you, an’ fer sake of the West I’ll explain to you thet we don’t hev many of the real thing any more. Garrett, who killed Billy the Kid an’ was killed himself near a year or so ago—he was the kind of sheriff thet helps to make a self-respectin’ country. But this Pat Hawe—wal, I reckon there’s no good in me sayin’ what I think of him. He come into the hall, an’ he was roarin’ about things. He was goin’ to arrest Danny Mains on sight. Wal, I jest polite-like told Pat thet the money was mine an’ he needn’t get riled about it. An’ if I wanted to trail the thief I reckon I could do it as well as anybody. Pat howled thet law was law, an’ he was goin’ to lay down the law. Sure it ‘peared to me thet Pat was daid set to arrest the first man he could find excuse to.
“Pat is the sheriff. I guess, Miss Majesty, that sheriffs are new to you, and for the sake of the West I’ll explain that we don’t have many of the real ones anymore. Garrett, who killed Billy the Kid and was killed himself about a year ago—he was the kind of sheriff that helps to build a respectable country. But this Pat Hawe—well, I don’t think it’s worth saying what I really think of him. He came into the hall, and he was shouting about things. He was going to arrest Danny Mains on sight. Well, I politely told Pat that the money was mine and he didn’t need to get worked up about it. And if I wanted to track the thief, I could do it just as well as anyone. Pat yelled that law was law, and he was going to enforce it. It sure seemed to me that Pat was determined to arrest the first person he could find an excuse for.
“Then he cooled down a bit an’ was askin’ questions about the wounded Greaser when Gene Stewart come in. Whenever Pat an’ Gene come together it reminds me of the early days back in the ‘seventies. Jest naturally everybody shut up. Fer Pat hates Gene, an’ I reckon Gene ain’t very sweet on Pat. They’re jest natural foes in the first place, an’ then the course of events here in El Cajon has been aggravatin’.
“Then he calmed down a bit and started asking questions about the injured Greaser when Gene Stewart walked in. Whenever Pat and Gene are together, it reminds me of the early days back in the ‘70s. Naturally, everyone fell silent. Pat hates Gene, and I guess Gene doesn’t think much of Pat either. They’re just natural enemies to begin with, and the events here in El Cajon have only made things worse.”
“‘Hello, Stewart! You’re the feller I’m lookin’ fer,’ said Pat.
“‘Hey, Stewart! You're the guy I'm looking for,’ said Pat.
“Stewart eyed him an’ said, mighty cool an’ sarcastic, ‘Hawe, you look a good deal fer me when I’m hittin’ up the dust the other way.’
“Stewart looked at him and said, very cool and sarcastic, ‘Wow, you look a lot like me when I’m hitting the dirt the other way.’”
“Pat went red at thet, but he held in. ‘Say, Stewart, you-all think a lot of thet roan horse of yourn, with the aristocratic name?’
“Pat flushed at that, but he kept it together. ‘Hey, Stewart, do you really think that much of that roan horse of yours, with the fancy name?’”
“‘I reckon I do,’ replied Gene, shortly.
“‘I think I do,’ replied Gene, shortly.
“‘Wal, where is he?’
"‘Well, where is he?’"
“‘Thet’s none of your business, Hawe.’
“‘That's none of your business, Hawe.’”
“‘Oho! it ain’t, hey? Wal, I guess I can make it my business. Stewart, there was some queer goings-on last night thet you know somethin’ about. Danny Mains robbed—Stillwell’s money gone—your roan horse gone—thet little hussy Bonita gone—an’ this Greaser near gone, too. Now, seein’ thet you was up late an’ prowlin’ round the station where this Greaser was found, it ain’t onreasonable to think you might know how he got plugged—is it?’
“Oho! It isn’t, is it? Well, I guess I can take an interest in this. Stewart, there was some strange stuff happening last night that you know something about. Danny Mains was robbed—Stillwell’s money is gone—your roan horse is missing—the little troublemaker Bonita is gone—and this Greaser is almost gone too. Now, considering you were up late and wandering around the station where this Greaser was found, it’s not unreasonable to think you might know how he got shot, right?”
“Stewart laughed kind of cold, an’ he rolled a cigarette, all the time eyin’ Pat, an’ then he said if he’d plugged the Greaser it ’d never hev been sich a bunglin’ job.
“Stewart laughed a bit coldly, rolled a cigarette, and kept glancing at Pat, then said that if he had taken out the Greaser, it wouldn't have been such a sloppy job.”
“‘I can arrest you on suspicion, Stewart, but before I go thet far I want some evidence. I want to round up Danny Mains an’ thet little Greaser girl. I want to find out what’s become of your hoss. You’ve never lent him since you hed him, an’ there ain’t enough raiders across the border to steal him from you. It’s got a queer look—thet hoss bein’ gone.’
“‘I can arrest you on suspicion, Stewart, but before I go that far, I need some evidence. I want to gather Danny Mains and that little Greaser girl. I need to find out what happened to your horse. You’ve never lent him out since you got him, and there aren’t enough raiders across the border to steal him from you. It looks suspicious—your horse being gone.’”
“‘You sure are a swell detective, Hawe, an’ I wish you a heap of luck,’ replied Stewart.
“‘You’re really a fantastic detective, Hawe, and I wish you a ton of luck,’ replied Stewart.”
“Thet ‘peared to nettle Pat beyond bounds, an’ he stamped around an’ swore. Then he had an idea. It jest stuck out all over him, an’ he shook his finger in Stewart’s face.
“Thet seemed to really irritate Pat, and he stomped around and swore. Then he had an idea. It was obvious, and he shook his finger in Stewart’s face.
“‘You was drunk last night?’
"Did you get drunk last night?"
“Stewart never batted an eye.
Stewart never flinched.
“‘You met some woman on Number Eight, didn’t you?’ shouted Hawe.
“‘You met some woman on Number Eight, didn’t you?’ shouted Hawe.
“‘I met a lady,’ replied Stewart, quiet an’ menacin’ like.
“I met a lady,” Stewart replied, quiet and menacing-like.
“‘You met Al Hammond’s sister, an’ you took her up to Kingsley’s. An’ cinch this, my cowboy cavalier, I’m goin’ up there an’ ask this grand dame some questions, an’ if she’s as close-mouthed as you are I’ll arrest her!’
“‘You met Al Hammond’s sister, and you took her to Kingsley’s. And believe me, my cowboy hero, I’m going up there to ask this lady some questions, and if she’s as tight-lipped as you are, I’ll arrest her!’”
“Gene Stewart turned white. I fer one expected to see him jump like lightnin’, as he does when he’s riled sudden. But he was calm an’ he was thinkin’ hard. Presently he said:
“Gene Stewart turned pale. I for one thought he would jump like lightning, like he does when he gets angry suddenly. But he was calm and he was thinking deeply. Eventually, he said:
“‘Pat, thet’s a fool idee, an’ if you do the trick it’ll hurt you all the rest of your life. There’s absolutely no reason to frighten Miss Hammond. An’ tryin’ to arrest her would be such a damned outrage as won’t be stood fer in El Cajon. If you’re sore on me send me to jail. I’ll go. If you want to hurt Al Hammond, go an’ do it some man kind of way. Don’t take your spite out on us by insultin’ a lady who has come hyar to hev a little visit. We’re bad enough without bein’ low-down as Greasers.’
“‘Pat, that’s a foolish idea, and if you pull this off, it’ll hurt you for the rest of your life. There’s absolutely no reason to scare Miss Hammond. And trying to arrest her would be such a disgrace that it won’t be tolerated in El Cajon. If you’re mad at me, just send me to jail. I’ll go. If you want to hurt Al Hammond, do it like a man. Don’t take your anger out on us by insulting a lady who’s come here to have a little visit. We’re bad enough without being low-down like Greasers.’”
“It was a long talk for Gene, an’ I was as surprised as the rest of the fellers. Think of Gene Stewart talkin’ soft an’ sweet to thet red-eyed coyote of a sheriff! An’ Pat, he looked so devilishly gleeful thet if somethin’ about Gene hedn’t held me tight I’d hev got in the game myself. It was plain to me an’ others who spoke of it afterwards thet Pat Hawe hed forgotten the law an’ the officer in the man an’ his hate.
“It was a long conversation for Gene, and I was as surprised as the other guys. Imagine Gene Stewart speaking softly and sweetly to that red-eyed coyote of a sheriff! And Pat, he looked so wickedly pleased that if something about Gene hadn’t kept me grounded, I would have jumped in the mix myself. It was clear to me and others who talked about it later that Pat Hawe had forgotten the law and the officer in the man and his hatred.”
“‘I’m a-goin’, an’ I’m a-goin’ right now!’ he shouted. “An’ after thet any one could hev heerd a clock tick a mile off. Stewart seemed kind of chokin’, an’ he seemed to hev been bewildered by the idee of Hawe’s confrontin’ you.
“‘I’m leaving, and I’m leaving right now!’ he shouted. ‘And after that, anyone could have heard a clock tick from a mile away. Stewart looked kind of choked up, and he seemed to be confused by the idea of Hawe confronting you.
“An’ finally he burst out: ‘But, man, think who it is! It’s Miss Hammond! If you seen her, even if you was locoed or drunk, you—you couldn’t do it.’
“Then he finally shouted: ‘But, man, think about who it is! It’s Miss Hammond! If you saw her, even if you were crazy or drunk, you—you couldn’t do it.’”
“‘Couldn’t I? Wal, I’ll show you damn quick. What do I care who she is? Them swell Eastern women—I’ve heerd of them. They’re not so much. This Hammond woman—’
“‘Couldn’t I? Well, I’ll show you really fast. What do I care who she is? Those fancy Eastern women—I’ve heard about them. They’re not all that. This Hammond woman—’”
“Suddenly Hawe shut up, an’ with his red mug turnin’ green he went for his gun.”
“Suddenly, Hawe fell silent, and with his red face turning green, he reached for his gun.”
Stillwell paused in his narrative to get breath, and he wiped his moist brow. And now his face began to lose its cragginess. It changed, it softened, it rippled and wrinkled, and all that strange mobility focused and shone in a wonderful smile.
Stillwell paused in his story to catch his breath and wiped his sweaty brow. Now, his face started to lose its roughness. It changed, softened, rippled, and wrinkled, and all that strange expressiveness came together in a brilliant smile.
“An’ then, Miss Majesty, then there was somethin’ happened. Stewart took Pat’s gun away from him and throwed it on the floor. An’ what followed was beautiful. Sure it was the beautifulest sight I ever seen. Only it was over so soon! A little while after, when the doctor came, he hed another patient besides the wounded Greaser, an’ he said thet this new one would require about four months to be up an’ around cheerful-like again. An’ Gene Stewart hed hit the trail for the border.”
“Then, Miss Majesty, something happened. Stewart took Pat’s gun away from him and threw it on the floor. What followed was beautiful. It was the most beautiful sight I ever saw. But it was over so quickly! A little while later, when the doctor came, he had another patient besides the wounded Greaser, and he said this new one would need about four months to be up and about cheerfully again. And Gene Stewart had hit the trail for the border.”
IV. A Ride From Sunrise To Sunset
Next morning, when Madeline was aroused by her brother, it was not yet daybreak; the air chilled her, and in the gray gloom she had to feel around for matches and lamp. Her usual languid manner vanished at a touch of the cold water. Presently, when Alfred knocked on her door and said he was leaving a pitcher of hot water outside, she replied, with chattering teeth, “Th-thank y-you, b-but I d-don’t ne-need any now.” She found it necessary, however, to warm her numb fingers before she could fasten hooks and buttons. And when she was dressed she marked in the dim mirror that there were tinges of red in her cheeks.
The next morning, when Madeline was woken up by her brother, it was still dark outside; the air was cold, and she had to feel around in the gray gloom for matches and the lamp. Her usual lazy demeanor disappeared as soon as she splashed her face with cold water. A little later, when Alfred knocked on her door and said he was leaving a pitcher of hot water outside, she replied, with her teeth chattering, “Th-thank y-you, b-but I d-don’t ne-need any now.” However, she found it necessary to warm her numb fingers before she could fasten her hooks and buttons. Once she was dressed, she noticed in the dim mirror that there were red spots on her cheeks.
“Well, if I haven’t some color!” she exclaimed.
“Well, if I don’t have some color!” she exclaimed.
Breakfast waited for her in the dining-room. The sisters ate with her. Madeline quickly caught the feeling of brisk action that seemed to be in the air. From the back of the house sounded the tramp of boots and voices of men, and from outside came a dull thump of hoofs, the rattle of harness, and creak of wheels. Then Alfred came stamping in.
Breakfast was ready for her in the dining room. Her sisters joined her. Madeline quickly picked up on the energetic vibe in the air. From the back of the house came the sound of boots and men talking, and outside, she could hear the dull thud of hooves, the clanking of harnesses, and the creaking of wheels. Then Alfred came stomping in.
“Majesty, here’s where you get the real thing,” he announced, merrily. “We’re rushing you off, I’m sorry to say; but we must hustle back to the ranch. The fall round-up begins to-morrow. You will ride in the buck-board with Florence and Stillwell. I’ll ride on ahead with the boys and fix up a little for you at the ranch. Your baggage will follow, but won’t get there till to-morrow sometime. It’s a long ride out—nearly fifty miles by wagon-road. Flo, don’t forget a couple of robes. Wrap her up well. And hustle getting ready. We’re waiting.”
“Your Majesty, this is where you get the real deal,” he said cheerfully. “We're in a bit of a rush, unfortunately; we have to head back to the ranch. The fall round-up starts tomorrow. You'll be riding in the buckboard with Florence and Stillwell. I'll ride ahead with the guys and get things ready for you at the ranch. Your bags will come along, but they won't arrive until sometime tomorrow. It's a long drive out—almost fifty miles by wagon road. Flo, don’t forget a couple of blankets. Make sure to wrap her up nicely. And hurry up getting ready. We're waiting.”
A little later, when Madeline went out with Florence, the gray gloom was lightening. Horses were champing bits and pounding gravel.
A little later, when Madeline went out with Florence, the gray gloom was lightening. Horses were chewing on their bits and stomping on the gravel.
“Mawnin’, Miss Majesty,” said Stillwell, gruffly, from the front seat of a high vehicle.
“Mornin’, Miss Majesty,” said Stillwell, gruffly, from the front seat of a tall vehicle.
Alfred bundled her up into the back seat, and Florence after her, and wrapped them with robes. Then he mounted his horse and started off. “Gid-eb!” growled Stillwell, and with a crack of his whip the team jumped into a trot. Florence whispered into Madeline’s ear:
Alfred helped her into the back seat, followed by Florence, and covered them with blankets. Then he got on his horse and set off. “Get up!” Stillwell grumbled, and with a crack of his whip, the team began to trot. Florence leaned in and whispered into Madeline’s ear:
“Bill’s grouchy early in the mawnin’. He’ll thaw out soon as it gets warm.”
“Bill’s grumpy in the morning. He’ll warm up as soon as it gets warmer.”
It was still so gray that Madeline could not distinguish objects at any considerable distance, and she left El Cajon without knowing what the town really looked like. She did know that she was glad to get out of it, and found an easier task of dispelling persistent haunting memory.
It was still so gray that Madeline couldn't make out any objects far away, and she left El Cajon without really knowing what the town looked like. She did know that she was glad to leave and found it easier to shake off the lingering memories.
“Here come the cowboys,” said Florence.
“Here come the cowboys,” Florence said.
A line of horsemen appeared coming from the right and fell in behind Alfred, and gradually they drew ahead, to disappear from sight. While Madeline watched them the gray gloom lightened into dawn. All about her was bare and dark; the horizon seemed close; not a hill nor a tree broke the monotony. The ground appeared to be flat, but the road went up and down over little ridges. Madeline glanced backward in the direction of El Cajon and the mountains she had seen the day before, and she saw only bare and dark ground, like that which rolled before.
A line of horsemen came in from the right and lined up behind Alfred, gradually moving ahead until they vanished from view. As Madeline watched them, the gray darkness shifted into dawn. Everything around her was bare and dark; the horizon felt close, and there were no hills or trees to break the monotony. The land seemed flat, but the road rolled up and down over small ridges. Madeline looked back toward El Cajon and the mountains she had seen the day before, but all she could see was bare, dark ground, just like what stretched out in front of her.
A puff of cold wind struck her face and she shivered. Florence noticed her and pulled up the second robe and tucked it closely round her up to her chin.
A blast of chilly wind hit her face, making her shiver. Florence saw her and pulled up the second robe, wrapping it snugly around her all the way to her chin.
“If we have a little wind you’ll sure feel it,” said the Western girl.
“If we get a little wind, you'll definitely feel it,” said the Western girl.
Madeline replied that she already felt it. The wind appeared to penetrate the robes. It was cold, pure, nipping. It was so thin she had to breathe as fast as if she were under ordinary exertion. It hurt her nose and made her lungs ache.
Madeline responded that she already felt it. The wind seemed to cut through the robes. It was cold, sharp, biting. It was so thin she had to breathe quickly as if she were working hard. It stung her nose and made her lungs hurt.
“Aren’t you co-cold?” asked Madeline.
“Aren’t you so cold?” asked Madeline.
“I?” Florence laughed. “I’m used to it. I never get cold.”
“I?” Florence laughed. “I’m used to it. I never feel cold.”
The Western girl sat with ungloved hands on the outside of the robe she evidently did not need to draw up around her. Madeline thought she had never seen such a clear-eyed, healthy, splendid girl.
The Western girl sat with bare hands outside the robe she clearly didn’t need to pull around her. Madeline thought she had never seen such a clear-eyed, healthy, wonderful girl.
“Do you like to see the sun rise?” asked Florence.
“Do you like watching the sunrise?” asked Florence.
“Yes, I think I do,” replied Madeline, thoughtfully. “Frankly, I have not seen it for years.”
“Yes, I think I do,” Madeline replied, thinking it over. “Honestly, I haven’t seen it in years.”
“We have beautiful sunrises, and sunsets from the ranch are glorious.”
“We have stunning sunrises, and the sunsets from the ranch are amazing.”
Long lines of pink fire ran level with the eastern horizon, which appeared to recede as day brightened. A bank of thin, fleecy clouds was turning rose. To the south and west the sky was dark; but every moment it changed, the blue turning bluer. The eastern sky was opalescent. Then in one place gathered a golden light, and slowly concentrated till it was like fire. The rosy bank of cloud turned to silver and pearl, and behind it shot up a great circle of gold. Above the dark horizon gleamed an intensely bright disk. It was the sun. It rose swiftly, blazing out the darkness between the ridges and giving color and distance to the sweep of land.
Long lines of pink fire stretched across the eastern horizon, which seemed to pull back as the day grew brighter. A layer of thin, fluffy clouds was turning rose-colored. In the south and west, the sky was dark; but it transformed with each moment, the blue becoming deeper. The eastern sky shimmered with opalescence. Then, in one spot, a golden light gathered and slowly intensified until it resembled flames. The rosy clouds shifted to silver and pearl, and behind them, a great circle of gold emerged. Above the dark horizon, a brilliantly bright disk shone. It was the sun. It rose quickly, illuminating the darkness between the ridges and adding color and depth to the landscape.
“Wal, wal,” drawled Stillwell, and stretched his huge arms as if he had just awakened, “thet’s somethin’ like.”
“Wow, wow,” drawled Stillwell, stretching his huge arms as if he had just woken up, “that’s something like.”
Florence nudged Madeline and winked at her.
Florence nudged Madeline and gave her a wink.
“Fine mawnin’, girls,” went on old Bill, cracking his whip. “Miss Majesty, it’ll be some oninterestin’ ride all mawnin’. But when we get up a bit you’ll sure like it. There! Look to the southwest, jest over thet farthest ridge.”
“Good morning, girls,” continued old Bill, cracking his whip. “Miss Majesty, it’s going to be a pretty boring ride all morning. But once we get a bit further, you’re really going to enjoy it. There! Look to the southwest, just over that farthest ridge.”
Madeline swept her gaze along the gray, sloping horizon-line to where dark-blue spires rose far beyond the ridge.
Madeline directed her gaze along the gray, sloping horizon to where dark blue spires rose far beyond the ridge.
“Peloncillo Mountains,” said Stillwell. “Thet’s home, when we get there. We won’t see no more of them till afternoon, when they rise up sudden-like.”
“Peloncillo Mountains,” said Stillwell. “That’s home, once we get there. We won’t see any more of them until afternoon, when they suddenly appear.”
Peloncillo! Madeline murmured the melodious name. Where had she heard it? Then she remembered. The cowboy Stewart had told the little Mexican girl Bonita to “hit the Peloncillo trail.” Probably the girl had ridden the big, dark horse over this very road at night, alone. Madeline had a little shiver that was not occasioned by the cold wind.
Peloncillo! Madeline whispered the beautiful name. Where had she heard it? Then she remembered. The cowboy Stewart had told the little Mexican girl Bonita to “take the Peloncillo trail.” She probably had ridden the big, dark horse down this very road at night, alone. Madeline felt a slight shiver that wasn’t caused by the cold wind.
“There’s a jack!” cried Florence, suddenly.
“There’s a jack!” Florence suddenly exclaimed.
Madeline saw her first jack-rabbit. It was as large as a dog, and its ears were enormous. It appeared to be impudently tame, and the horses kicked dust over it as they trotted by. From then on old Bill and Florence vied with each other in calling Madeline’s attention to many things along the way. Coyotes stealing away into the brush; buzzards flapping over the carcass of a cow that had been mired in a wash; queer little lizards running swiftly across the road; cattle grazing in the hollows; adobe huts of Mexican herders; wild, shaggy horses, with heads high, watching from the gray ridges—all these things Madeline looked at, indifferently at first, because indifference had become habitual with her, and then with an interest that flourished up and insensibly grew as she rode on. It grew until sight of a little ragged Mexican boy astride the most diminutive burro she had ever seen awakened her to the truth. She became conscious of faint, unmistakable awakening of long-dead feelings—enthusiasm and delight. When she realized that, she breathed deep of the cold, sharp air and experienced an inward joy. And she divined then, though she did not know why, that henceforth there was to be something new in her life, something she had never felt before, something good for her soul in the homely, the commonplace, the natural, and the wild.
Madeline saw her first jackrabbit. It was as big as a dog, and its ears were huge. It seemed almost cheeky in its tameness, and the horses kicked dust over it as they trotted by. From that point on, old Bill and Florence competed to point out many things along the way. Coyotes sneaking into the brush; buzzards circling over the carcass of a cow that had gotten stuck in a wash; odd little lizards darting quickly across the road; cattle grazing in the low spots; adobe huts belonging to Mexican herders; wild, shaggy horses with their heads held high, watching from the gray ridges—all these were things Madeline looked at, initially with indifference, as she had grown used to it, and then with a growing interest that blossomed as she continued to ride. It intensified until she spotted a little ragged Mexican boy riding the tiniest burro she had ever seen, which made her realize the truth. She became aware of a faint, unmistakable reawakening of long-buried emotions—enthusiasm and joy. When she recognized this, she took a deep breath of the cold, crisp air and felt an inner happiness. And she sensed then, although she couldn't explain why, that from now on there would be something new in her life, something she had never experienced before, something good for her spirit in the ordinary, the everyday, the natural, and the wild.
Meanwhile, as Madeline gazed about her and listened to her companions, the sun rose higher and grew warm and soared and grew hot; the horses held tirelessly to their steady trot, and mile after mile of rolling land slipped by.
Meanwhile, as Madeline looked around and listened to her friends, the sun rose higher, getting warm and then hot; the horses kept up their steady trot without getting tired, and mile after mile of rolling land passed by.
From the top of a ridge Madeline saw down into a hollow where a few of the cowboys had stopped and were sitting round a fire, evidently busy at the noonday meal. Their horses were feeding on the long, gray grass.
From the top of a ridge, Madeline looked down into a hollow where a few cowboys had stopped and were gathered around a fire, clearly focused on their midday meal. Their horses were grazing on the long, gray grass.
“Wal, smell of thet burnin’ greasewood makes my mouth water,” said Stillwell. “I’m sure hungry. We’ll noon hyar an’ let the hosses rest. It’s a long pull to the ranch.”
“Man, the smell of that burning greasewood makes my mouth water,” said Stillwell. “I’m really hungry. We’ll stop here for lunch and let the horses rest. It’s a long way to the ranch.”
He halted near the camp-fire, and, clambering down, began to unharness the team. Florence leaped out and turned to help Madeline.
He stopped near the campfire, and, climbing down, started to unhitch the team. Florence jumped out and turned to help Madeline.
“Walk round a little,” she said. “You must be cramped from sitting still so long. I’ll get lunch ready.”
“Take a short walk,” she said. “You must be feeling cramped from sitting still for so long. I’ll get lunch ready.”
Madeline got down, glad to stretch her limbs, and began to stroll about. She heard Stillwell throw the harness on the ground and slap his horses. “Roll, you sons-of-guns!” he said. Both horses bent their fore legs, heaved down on their sides, and tried to roll over. One horse succeeded on the fourth try, and then heaved up with a satisfied snort and shook off the dust and gravel. The other one failed to roll over, and gave it up, half rose to his feet, and then lay down on the other side.
Madeline got down, happy to stretch her limbs, and started to walk around. She heard Stillwell toss the harness on the ground and smack his horses. “Roll, you little troublemakers!” he shouted. Both horses bent their front legs, flopped down on their sides, and tried to roll over. One horse managed to do it on the fourth attempt, then got up with a pleased snort and shook off the dust and gravel. The other one couldn't roll over, gave up, half got back on its feet, and then lay down on the other side.
“He’s sure going to feel the ground,” said Florence, smiling at Madeline. “Miss Hammond, I suppose that prize horse of yours—White Stockings—would spoil his coat if he were heah to roll in this greasewood and cactus.”
“He’s definitely going to feel the ground,” said Florence, smiling at Madeline. “Miss Hammond, I bet that prize horse of yours—White Stockings—would ruin his coat if he were here to roll around in this greasewood and cactus.”
During lunch-time Madeline observed that she was an object of manifestly great interest to the three cowboys. She returned the compliment, and was amused to see that a glance their way caused them painful embarrassment. They were grown men—one of whom had white hair—yet they acted like boys caught in the act of stealing a forbidden look at a pretty girl.
During lunch, Madeline noticed that she was clearly the center of attention for the three cowboys. She returned their interest and found it amusing that a simple glance in their direction made them visibly uncomfortable. They were grown men—one of them had white hair—but they acted like boys caught sneaking a look at a pretty girl.
“Cowboys are sure all flirts,” said Florence, as if stating an uninteresting fact. But Madeline detected a merry twinkle in her clear eyes. The cowboys heard, and the effect upon them was magical. They fell to shamed confusion and to hurried useless tasks. Madeline found it difficult to see where they had been bold, though evidently they were stricken with conscious guilt. She recalled appraising looks of critical English eyes, impudent French stares, burning Spanish glances—gantlets which any American girl had to run abroad. Compared with foreign eyes the eyes of these cowboys were those of smiling, eager babies.
“Cowboys are definitely flirts,” said Florence, almost like it was a boring fact. But Madeline noticed a playful spark in her bright eyes. The cowboys overheard, and it had a magical impact on them. They turned red with embarrassment and started fidgeting with pointless tasks. Madeline struggled to see where they had been bold, even though it was clear they felt guilty. She remembered critical English stares, cheeky French gazes, and fiery Spanish looks—challenges that any American girl had to face when traveling abroad. Compared to those foreign eyes, the eyes of these cowboys looked like those of cheerful, eager babies.
“Haw, haw!” roared Stillwell. “Florence, you jest hit the nail on the haid. Cowboys are all plumb flirts. I was wonderin’ why them boys nooned hyar. This ain’t no place to noon. Ain’t no grazin’ or wood wuth burnin’ or nuthin’. Them boys jest held up, throwed the packs, an’ waited fer us. It ain’t so surprisin’ fer Booly an’ Ned—they’re young an’ coltish—but Nels there, why, he’s old enough to be the paw of both you girls. It sure is amazin’ strange.”
“Haw, haw!” shouted Stillwell. “Florence, you really hit the nail on the head. Cowboys are definitely flirts. I was wondering why those guys stopped here. This isn’t a good place to take a break. There’s no grass to graze or wood worth burning, or anything. Those guys just stopped, dropped their packs, and waited for us. It’s not surprising for Booly and Ned—they’re young and full of energy—but Nels there, well, he’s old enough to be the father of both you girls. It sure is really strange.”
A silence ensued. The white-haired cowboy, Nels, fussed aimlessly over the camp-fire, and then straightened up with a very red face.
A silence followed. The white-haired cowboy, Nels, fidgeted aimlessly by the campfire, then stood up with a very red face.
“Bill, you’re a dog-gone liar,” he said. “I reckon I won’t stand to be classed with Booly an’ Ned. There ain’t no cowboy on this range thet’s more appreciatin’ of the ladies than me, but I shore ain’t ridin’ out of my way. I reckon I hev enough ridin’ to do. Now, Bill, if you’ve sich dog-gone good eyes mebbe you seen somethin’ on the way out?”
“Bill, you’re a damn liar,” he said. “I’m not going to be grouped with Booly and Ned. There’s no cowboy on this range who appreciates the ladies more than I do, but I’m not going out of my way. I’ve got plenty of riding to do. Now, Bill, if you’ve got such good eyes maybe you saw something on the way out?”
“Nels, I hevn’t seen nothin’,” he replied, bluntly. His levity disappeared, and the red wrinkles narrowed round his searching eyes.
“Nels, I haven’t seen anything,” he replied, bluntly. His lightheartedness vanished, and the red wrinkles tightened around his searching eyes.
“Jest take a squint at these hoss tracks,” said Nels, and he drew Stillwell a few paces aside and pointed to large hoofprints in the dust. “I reckon you know the hoss thet made them?”
“Just take a look at these horse tracks,” said Nels, and he pulled Stillwell a few steps aside and pointed to the large hoofprints in the dust. “I suppose you recognize the horse that made them?”
“Gene Stewart’s roan, or I’m a son-of-a-gun!” exclaimed Stillwell, and he dropped heavily to his knees and began to scrutinize the tracks. “My eyes are sure pore; but, Nels, they ain’t fresh.”
“Gene Stewart’s roan, or I can’t believe it!” exclaimed Stillwell, and he dropped down to his knees and started to examine the tracks. “My eyesight is definitely bad; but, Nels, they aren’t fresh.”
“I reckon them tracks was made early yesterday mornin’.”
“I think those tracks were made early yesterday morning.”
“Wal, what if they was?” Stillwell looked at his cowboy. “It’s sure as thet red nose of yourn Gene wasn’t ridin’ the roan.”
“Well, what if they were?” Stillwell looked at his cowboy. “It’s as sure as that red nose of yours, Gene wasn’t riding the roan.”
“Who’s sayin’ he was? Bill, its more ’n your eyes thet’s gettin’ old. Jest foller them tracks. Come on.”
“Who’s saying he was? Bill, it’s more than your eyes that are getting old. Just follow those tracks. Come on.”
Stillwell walked slowly, with his head bent, muttering to himself. Some thirty paces or more from the camp-fire he stopped short and again flopped to his knees. Then he crawled about, evidently examining horse tracks.
Stillwell walked slowly, his head down, mumbling to himself. About thirty steps or so from the campfire, he suddenly stopped and dropped to his knees again. Then he crawled around, clearly looking at horse tracks.
“Nels, whoever was straddlin’ Stewart’s hoss met somebody. An’ they hauled up a bit, but didn’t git down.”
“Nels, whoever was riding Stewart's horse met someone. And they stopped for a moment, but didn’t get off.”
“Tolerable good for you, Bill, thet reasonin’,” replied the cowboy.
“Tolerable good for you, Bill, that reasoning,” replied the cowboy.
Stillwell presently got up and walked swiftly to the left for some rods, halted, and faced toward the southwest, then retraced his steps. He looked at the imperturbable cowboy.
Stillwell got up and quickly walked to the left for a short distance, stopped, and faced southwest, then made his way back. He looked at the calm cowboy.
“Nels, I don’t like this a little,” he growled. “Them tracks make straight fer the Peloncillo trail.”
“Nels, I really don’t like this,” he growled. “Those tracks lead straight for the Peloncillo trail.”
“Shore,” replied Nels.
"Sure," replied Nels.
“Wal?” went on Stillwell, impatiently.
"Wal?" Stillwell continued, impatiently.
“I reckon you know what hoss made the other tracks?”
“I bet you know which horse made the other tracks?”
“I’m thinkin’ hard, but I ain’t sure.”
“I’m thinking hard, but I'm not sure.”
“It was Danny Mains’s bronc.”
“It was Danny Mains's bronco.”
“How do you know thet?” demanded Stillwell, sharply. “Bill, the left front foot of thet little hoss always wears a shoe thet sets crooked. Any of the boys can tell you. I’d know thet track if I was blind.”
“How do you know that?” Stillwell asked sharply. “Bill, the left front foot of that little horse always wears a shoe that’s crooked. Any of the guys can tell you. I’d recognize that track even if I were blind.”
Stillwell’s ruddy face clouded and he kicked at a cactus plant.
Stillwell's red face darkened as he kicked at a cactus.
“Was Danny comin’ or goin’?” he asked.
“Is Danny coming or going?” he asked.
“I reckon he was hittin’ across country fer the Peloncillo trail. But I ain’t shore of thet without back-trailin’ him a ways. I was jest waitin’ fer you to come up.”
“I think he was heading cross-country for the Peloncillo trail. But I’m not sure about that without tracking him back a bit. I was just waiting for you to catch up.”
“Nels, you don’t think the boy’s sloped with thet little hussy, Bonita?”
“Nels, you don’t think the kid’s involved with that little flirt, Bonita?”
“Bill, he shore was sweet on Bonita, same as Gene was, an’ Ed Linton before he got engaged, an’ all the boys. She’s shore chain-lightnin’, that little black-eyed devil. Danny might hev sloped with her all right. Danny was held up on the way to town, an’ then in the shame of it he got drunk. But he’ll shew up soon.”
“Bill was really into Bonita, just like Gene was, and Ed Linton before he got engaged, and all the guys. She’s definitely a flashy one, that little black-eyed troublemaker. Danny could have easily run off with her. Danny got held up on the way to town, and then out of embarrassment, he got drunk. But he’ll show up soon.”
“Wal, mebbe you an’ the boys are right. I believe you are. Nels, there ain’t no doubt on earth about who was ridin’ Stewart’s hoss?”
“Well, maybe you and the guys are right. I think you are. Nels, there’s no doubt at all about who was riding Stewart’s horse?”
“Thet’s as plain as the hoss’s tracks.”
"That's as clear as the horse's tracks."
“Wal, it’s all amazin’ strange. It beats me. I wish the boys would ease up on drinkin’. I was pretty fond of Danny an’ Gene. I’m afraid Gene’s done fer, sure. If he crosses the border where he can fight it won’t take long fer him to get plugged. I guess I’m gettin’ old. I don’t stand things like I used to.”
“Wow, it’s really strange. I can’t figure it out. I wish the guys would cut back on drinking. I really liked Danny and Gene. I’m worried Gene’s in big trouble for sure. If he crosses the border where he can fight, it won’t be long before he gets shot. I guess I’m getting old. I can’t handle things like I used to.”
“Bill, I reckon I’d better hit the Peloncillo trail. Mebbe I can find Danny.”
“Bill, I think I should take the Peloncillo trail. Maybe I can find Danny.”
“I reckon you had, Nels,” replied Stillwell. “But don’t take more ’n a couple of days. We can’t do much on the round-up without you. I’m short of boys.”
“I think you did, Nels,” replied Stillwell. “But don’t take more than a couple of days. We can’t do much on the round-up without you. I’m short on boys.”
That ended the conversation. Stillwell immediately began to hitch up his team, and the cowboys went out to fetch their strayed horses. Madeline had been curiously interested, and she saw that Florence knew it.
That ended the conversation. Stillwell quickly started to harness his team, and the cowboys went out to round up their lost horses. Madeline was very interested, and she noticed that Florence was aware of it.
“Things happen, Miss Hammond,” she said, soberly, almost sadly.
“Things happen, Miss Hammond,” she said, seriously, almost sadly.
Madeline thought. And then straightway Florence began brightly to hum a tune and to busy herself repacking what was left of the lunch. Madeline conceived a strong liking and respect for this Western girl. She admired the consideration or delicacy or wisdom—what-ever it was—which kept Florence from asking her what she knew or thought or felt about the events that had taken place.
Madeline thought for a moment. Then Florence started to hum a cheerful tune and busied herself with repacking the leftovers from lunch. Madeline felt a strong affection and respect for this Western girl. She appreciated the thoughtfulness—or sensitivity, or wisdom—whatever it was—that made Florence refrain from asking her what she knew, thought, or felt about what had happened.
Soon they were once more bowling along the road down a gradual incline, and then they began to climb a long ridge that had for hours hidden what lay beyond. That climb was rather tiresome, owing to the sun and the dust and the restricted view.
Soon they were cruising down the road on a gentle slope, and then they started to ascend a long ridge that had obscured the view of what was beyond for hours. The climb was pretty exhausting, due to the sun, the dust, and the limited visibility.
When they reached the summit Madeline gave a little gasp of pleasure. A deep, gray, smooth valley opened below and sloped up on the other side in little ridges like waves, and these led to the foothills, dotted with clumps of brush or trees, and beyond rose dark mountains, pine-fringed and crag-spired.
When they got to the top, Madeline let out a small gasp of delight. Below them was a deep, gray, smooth valley that sloped up on the other side in small ridges like waves. These ridges led to the foothills, scattered with groups of bushes or trees, and beyond them were dark mountains, lined with pines and jagged peaks.
“Wal, Miss Majesty, now we’re gettin’ somewhere,” said Stillwell, cracking his whip. “Ten miles across this valley an’ we’ll be in the foothills where the Apaches used to run.”
“Alright, Miss Majesty, now we’re getting somewhere,” said Stillwell, cracking his whip. “Ten miles across this valley and we’ll be in the foothills where the Apaches used to roam.”
“Ten miles!” exclaimed Madeline. “It looks no more than half a mile to me.”
“Ten miles!” Madeline exclaimed. “It looks like no more than half a mile to me.”
“Wal, young woman, before you go to ridin’ off alone you want to get your eyes corrected to Western distance. Now, what’d you call them black things off there on the slope?”
“Well, young woman, before you ride off alone, you need to adjust your eyes to Western distances. Now, what do you call those black things over there on the slope?”
“Horsemen. No, cattle,” replied Madeline, doubtfully.
“Horsemen. No, cattle,” Madeline replied, sounding unsure.
“Nope. Jest plain, every-day cactus. An’ over hyar—look down the valley. Somethin’ of a pretty forest, ain’t thet?” he asked, pointing.
“Nope. Just a regular, everyday cactus. And over here—look down the valley. That’s quite a nice forest, isn’t it?” he asked, pointing.
Madeline saw a beautiful forest in the center of the valley toward the south.
Madeline spotted a stunning forest in the middle of the valley to the south.
“Wal, Miss Majesty, thet’s jest this deceivin’ air. There’s no forest. It’s a mirage.”
“Well, Miss Majesty, that’s just this deceiving atmosphere. There’s no forest. It’s a mirage.”
“Indeed! How beautiful it is!” Madeline strained her gaze on the dark blot, and it seemed to float in the atmosphere, to have no clearly defined margins, to waver and shimmer, and then it faded and vanished.
“Absolutely! It’s so beautiful!” Madeline focused her gaze on the dark spot, and it appeared to hover in the air, with no distinct edges, flickering and shimmering, and then it faded and disappeared.
The mountains dropped down again behind the horizon, and presently the road began once more to slope up. The horses slowed to a walk. There was a mile of rolling ridge, and then came the foothills. The road ascended through winding valleys. Trees and brush and rocks began to appear in the dry ravines. There was no water, yet all along the sandy washes were indications of floods at some periods. The heat and the dust stifled Madeline, and she had already become tired. Still she looked with all her eyes and saw birds, and beautiful quail with crests, and rabbits, and once she saw a deer.
The mountains dropped below the horizon, and soon the road started to incline again. The horses slowed to a walk. There was a mile of rolling ridge, and then the foothills appeared. The road climbed through winding valleys. Trees, brush, and rocks began to show up in the dry ravines. There was no water, but along the sandy washes, there were signs of floods occurring at certain times. The heat and dust overwhelmed Madeline, and she was already growing tired. Still, she looked intently and saw birds, beautiful quail with crests, rabbits, and once she spotted a deer.
“Miss Majesty,” said Stillwell, “in the early days the Indians made this country a bad one to live in. I reckon you never heerd much about them times. Surely you was hardly born then. I’ll hev to tell you some day how I fought Comanches in the Panhandle—thet was northern Texas—an’ I had some mighty hair-raisin’ scares in this country with Apaches.”
“Miss Majesty,” said Stillwell, “back in the day, the Native Americans made this country a tough place to live. I guess you haven’t heard much about those times. You were probably hardly born then. I’ll have to tell you someday about how I fought Comanches in the Panhandle—that’s northern Texas—and I had some really scary moments in this country with Apaches.”
He told her about Cochise, chief of the Chiricahua Apaches, the most savage and bloodthirsty tribe that ever made life a horror for the pioneer. Cochise befriended the whites once; but he was the victim of that friendliness, and he became the most implacable of foes. Then, Geronimo, another Apache chief, had, as late as 1885, gone on the war-path, and had left a bloody trail down the New Mexico and Arizona line almost to the border. Lone ranchmen and cowboys had been killed, and mothers had shot their children and then themselves at the approach of the Apache. The name Apache curdled the blood of any woman of the Southwest in those days.
He told her about Cochise, the chief of the Chiricahua Apaches, the fiercest and most ruthless tribe that ever made life a nightmare for pioneers. Cochise had once formed an alliance with the white settlers, but he became a victim of that collaboration and turned into one of their most relentless enemies. Then there was Geronimo, another Apache chief, who, as recently as 1885, had gone to war and left a bloody path down the New Mexico and Arizona border nearly to the state line. Lone ranchers and cowboys lost their lives, and mothers, facing the approach of the Apache, shot their children and then themselves. The name Apache sent chills down the spine of any woman in the Southwest during that time.
Madeline shuddered, and was glad when the old frontiersman changed the subject and began to talk of the settling of that country by the Spaniards, the legends of lost gold-mines handed down to the Mexicans, and strange stories of heroism and mystery and religion. The Mexicans had not advanced much in spite of the spread of civilization to the Southwest. They were still superstitious, and believed the legends of treasures hidden in the walls of their missions, and that unseen hands rolled rocks down the gullies upon the heads of prospectors who dared to hunt for the lost mines of the padres.
Madeline shuddered and felt relieved when the old frontiersman switched topics and started talking about how the Spaniards settled that region, the legends of lost gold mines passed down to the Mexicans, and strange tales of heroism, mystery, and religion. The Mexicans hadn't progressed much despite the spread of civilization to the Southwest. They remained superstitious, believing in legends of treasures hidden within their missions and that unseen hands rolled rocks down the gullies onto the heads of prospectors who dared to search for the lost mines of the padres.
“Up in the mountains back of my ranch there’s a lost mine,” said Stillwell. “Mebbe it’s only a legend. But somehow I believe it’s there. Other lost mines hev been found. An’ as fer’ the rollin’ stones, I sure know thet’s true, as any one can find out if he goes trailin’ up the gulch. Mebbe thet’s only the weatherin’ of the cliffs. It’s a sleepy, strange country, this Southwest, an’, Miss Majesty, you’re a-goin’ to love it. You’ll call it ro-mantic, Wal, I reckon ro-mantic is correct. A feller gets lazy out hyar an’ dreamy, an’ he wants to put off work till to-morrow. Some folks say it’s a land of manana—a land of to-morrow. Thet’s the Mexican of it.
“Up in the mountains behind my ranch, there’s a lost mine,” said Stillwell. “Maybe it’s just a legend. But for some reason, I believe it’s really there. Other lost mines have been found. And as for the rolling stones, I definitely know that’s true, as anyone can find out if they hike up the gulch. Maybe that’s just the weathering of the cliffs. It’s a sleepy, strange place, this Southwest, and, Miss Majesty, you’re going to love it. You’ll call it romantic; well, I guess ‘romantic’ is the right word. A guy gets lazy out here and dreamy, and he wants to put off work until tomorrow. Some folks say it’s a land of manana—a land of tomorrow. That’s the Mexican influence.”
“But I like best to think of what a lady said to me onct—an eddicated lady like you, Miss Majesty. Wal, she said it’s a land where it’s always afternoon. I liked thet. I always get up sore in the mawnin’s, an’ don’t feel good till noon. But in the afternoon I get sorta warm an’ like things. An’ sunset is my time. I reckon I don’t want nothin’ any finer than sunset from my ranch. You look out over a valley that spreads wide between Guadalupe Mountains an’ the Chiricahuas, down across the red Arizona desert clear to the Sierra Madres in Mexico. Two hundred miles, Miss Majesty! An’ all as clear as print! An’ the sun sets behind all thet! When my time comes to die I’d like it to be on my porch smokin’ my pipe an’ facin’ the west.”
“But I prefer to think about what a lady once said to me—an educated lady like you, Miss Majesty. Well, she said it’s a place where it’s always afternoon. I liked that. I always wake up feeling sore in the mornings and don’t feel good until noon. But in the afternoon, I start to feel warm and like things more. And sunset is my favorite time. I guess I don’t want anything better than watching the sunset from my ranch. You look out over a valley that stretches wide between the Guadalupe Mountains and the Chiricahuas, down across the red Arizona desert all the way to the Sierra Madres in Mexico. Two hundred miles, Miss Majesty! And everything is as clear as can be! And the sun sets behind all that! When my time comes to die, I’d like it to be on my porch, smoking my pipe and facing the west.”
So the old cattleman talked on while Madeline listened, and Florence dozed in her seat, and the sun began to wane, and the horses climbed steadily. Presently, at the foot of the steep ascent, Stillwell got out and walked, leading the team. During this long climb fatigue claimed Madeline, and she drowsily closed her eyes, to find when she opened them again that the glaring white sky had changed to a steel-blue. The sun had sunk behind the foothills and the air was growing chilly. Stillwell had returned to the driving-seat and was chuckling to the horses. Shadows crept up out of the hollows.
So the old cattleman kept talking while Madeline listened, and Florence dozed off in her seat, as the sun started to set and the horses climbed steadily. Soon, at the base of the steep hill, Stillwell got out and walked, leading the team. During this long climb, fatigue took over Madeline, and she drowsily closed her eyes, only to find, when she opened them again, that the glaring white sky had turned to a steel-blue. The sun had dipped behind the foothills, and the air was getting chilly. Stillwell had returned to the driver's seat and was chuckling to the horses. Shadows began to creep out of the hollows.
“Wal, Flo,” said Stillwell, “I reckon we’d better hev the rest of thet there lunch before dark.”
"Well, Flo," said Stillwell, "I think we should finish the rest of that lunch before it gets dark."
“You didn’t leave much of it,” laughed Florence, as she produced the basket from under the seat.
“You didn’t leave much of it,” laughed Florence, pulling out the basket from under the seat.
While they ate, the short twilight shaded and gloom filled the hollows. Madeline saw the first star, a faint, winking point of light. The sky had now changed to a hazy gray. Madeline saw it gradually clear and darken, to show other faint stars. After that there was perceptible deepening of the gray and an enlarging of the stars and a brightening of new-born ones. Night seemed to come on the cold wind. Madeline was glad to have the robes close around her and to lean against Florence. The hollows were now black, but the tops of the foothills gleamed pale in a soft light. The steady tramp of the horses went on, and the creak of wheels and crunching of gravel. Madeline grew so sleepy that she could not keep her weary eyelids from falling. There were drowsier spells in which she lost a feeling of where she was, and these were disturbed by the jolt of wheels over a rough place. Then came a blank interval, short or long, which ended in a more violent lurch of the buckboard. Madeline awoke to find her head on Florence’s shoulder. She sat up laughing and apologizing for her laziness. Florence assured her they would soon reach the ranch.
While they ate, the short twilight cast shadows and filled the hollows with gloom. Madeline spotted the first star, a dim, blinking point of light. The sky had shifted to a hazy gray. Madeline watched as it gradually cleared and darkened, revealing other faint stars. After that, the gray deepened, the stars grew larger, and new ones brightened into view. Night seemed to settle in with the cold wind. Madeline was relieved to have the robes wrapped around her and to lean against Florence. The hollows were now dark, but the tops of the foothills glowed softly in the light. The steady thud of the horses continued, along with the creaking of wheels and crunching of gravel. Madeline became so sleepy that she couldn’t keep her heavy eyelids from closing. There were times when she drifted off and lost track of where she was, only to be jolted awake by the wheels bumping over a rough patch. Then came a blank moment, either short or long, that ended in a more abrupt lurch of the buckboard. Madeline woke up to find her head resting on Florence’s shoulder. She sat up, laughing and apologizing for dozing off. Florence reassured her that they would soon arrive at the ranch.
Madeline observed then that the horses were once more trotting. The wind was colder, the night darker, the foot-hills flatter. And the sky was now a wonderful deep velvet-blue blazing with millions of stars. Some of them were magnificent. How strangely white and alive! Again Madeline felt the insistence of familiar yet baffling associations. These white stars called strangely to her or haunted her.
Madeline noticed that the horses were trotting again. The wind was colder, the night darker, and the foothills flatter. The sky was now a beautiful deep velvet blue, lit up with millions of stars. Some of them were stunning. They seemed so unusually bright and vibrant! Once more, Madeline felt the pull of familiar yet puzzling connections. These bright stars seemed to call to her or linger in her mind.
V. The Round-Up
It was a crackling and roaring of fire that awakened Madeline next morning, and the first thing she saw was a huge stone fireplace in which lay a bundle of blazing sticks. Some one had kindled a fire while she slept. For a moment the curious sensation of being lost returned to her. She just dimly remembered reaching the ranch and being taken into a huge house and a huge, dimly lighted room. And it seemed to her that she had gone to sleep at once, and had awakened without remembering how she had gotten to bed.
It was the crackling and roaring of the fire that woke Madeline up the next morning, and the first thing she noticed was a big stone fireplace with a pile of blazing sticks. Someone had started a fire while she was asleep. For a moment, she felt that strange sensation of being lost again. She vaguely remembered arriving at the ranch and being led into a large house and a spacious, dimly lit room. It seemed to her that she had fallen asleep immediately and had woken up without any memory of how she ended up in bed.
But she was wide awake in an instant. The bed stood near one end of an enormous chamber. The adobe walls resembled a hall in an ancient feudal castle, stone-floored, stone-walled, with great darkened rafters running across the ceiling. The few articles of furniture were worn out and sadly dilapidated. Light flooded into the room from two windows on the right of the fireplace and two on the left, and another large window near the bedstead. Looking out from where she lay, Madeline saw a dark, slow up-sweep of mountain. Her eyes returned to the cheery, snapping fire, and she watched it while gathering courage to get up. The room was cold. When she did slip her bare feet out upon the stone floor she very quickly put them back under the warm blankets. And she was still in bed trying to pluck up her courage when, with a knock on the door and a cheerful greeting, Florence entered, carrying steaming hot water.
But she was wide awake in an instant. The bed was positioned near one end of a huge room. The adobe walls looked like a hall in an ancient castle, with stone floors, stone walls, and heavy dark beams crossing the ceiling. The few pieces of furniture were old and sadly worn down. Light flooded into the room from two windows on the right side of the fireplace and two on the left, plus another large window by the bed. Looking out from where she lay, Madeline saw a dark, gradual rise of a mountain. Her eyes drifted back to the cozy, crackling fire, and she watched it while mustering the courage to get up. The room was chilly. When she finally slipped her bare feet onto the stone floor, she quickly pulled them back under the warm blankets. She was still in bed trying to build up her courage when, with a knock on the door and a cheerful greeting, Florence walked in, carrying steaming hot water.
“Good mawnin’, Miss Hammond. Hope you slept well. You sure were tired last night. I imagine you’ll find this old rancho house as cold as a barn. It’ll warm up directly. Al’s gone with the boys and Bill. We’re to ride down on the range after a while when your baggage comes.”
“Good morning, Miss Hammond. I hope you slept well. You were really tired last night. I imagine you’ll find this old ranch house as cold as a barn. It’ll warm up soon. Al went with the guys and Bill. We’re going to ride out to the range after a bit when your luggage arrives.”
Florence wore a woolen blouse with a scarf round her neck, a short corduroy divided skirt, and boots; and while she talked she energetically heaped up the burning wood in the fireplace, and laid Madeline’s clothes at the foot of the bed, and heated a rug and put that on the floor by the bedside. And lastly, with a sweet, direct smile, she said:
Florence wore a wool sweater with a scarf around her neck, a short corduroy skirt, and boots; and while she talked, she enthusiastically piled the burning wood in the fireplace, laid Madeline’s clothes at the foot of the bed, and heated a rug and placed it on the floor by the bedside. And finally, with a warm, sincere smile, she said:
“Al told me—and I sure saw myself—that you weren’t used to being without your maid. Will you let me help you?”
“Al told me—and I definitely noticed myself—that you weren't used to being without your maid. Can I help you?”
“Thank you, I am going to be my own maid for a while. I expect I do appear a very helpless individual, but really I do not feel so. Perhaps I have had just a little too much waiting on.”
“Thank you, I'm going to be my own maid for a bit. I know I seem like a really helpless person, but honestly, I don't feel that way. Maybe I've just had a little too much pampering.”
“All right. Breakfast will be ready soon, and after that we’ll look about the place.”
“All right. Breakfast will be ready soon, and after that, we’ll check out the place.”
Madeline was charmed with the old Spanish house, and the more she saw of it the more she thought what a delightful home it could be made. All the doors opened into a courtyard, or patio, as Florence called it. The house was low, in the shape of a rectangle, and so immense in size that Madeline wondered if it had been a Spanish barracks. Many of the rooms were dark, without windows, and they were empty. Others were full of ranchers’ implements and sacks of grain and bales of hay. Florence called these last alfalfa. The house itself appeared strong and well preserved, and it was very picturesque. But in the living-rooms were only the barest necessities, and these were worn out and comfortless.
Madeline was enchanted by the old Spanish house, and the more she explored it, the more she imagined how wonderful it could be as a home. All the doors led into a courtyard, or patio, as Florence referred to it. The house was low, rectangular in shape, and so huge that Madeline wondered if it might have been a Spanish barracks. Many of the rooms were dark and lacked windows, and they were empty. Others were filled with ranchers’ tools, sacks of grain, and bales of hay. Florence called these the alfalfa. The house itself seemed sturdy and well-maintained, and it was very picturesque. However, the living rooms held only the bare essentials, which were old and uncomfortable.
However, when Madeline went outdoors she forgot the cheerless, bare interior. Florence led the way out on a porch and waved a hand at a vast, colored void. “That’s what Bill likes,” she said.
However, when Madeline went outside she forgot the gloomy, empty interior. Florence led the way out onto a porch and gestured at a vast, colorful expanse. “That’s what Bill likes,” she said.
At first Madeline could not tell what was sky and what was land. The immensity of the scene stunned her faculties of conception. She sat down in one of the old rocking-chairs and looked and looked, and knew that she was not grasping the reality of what stretched wondrously before her.
At first, Madeline couldn't distinguish between the sky and the land. The vastness of the scene overwhelmed her ability to comprehend it. She sat down in one of the old rocking chairs and kept looking, knowing she wasn't fully grasping the reality of the magnificent sight before her.
“We’re up at the edge of the foothills,” Florence said. “You remember we rode around the northern end of the mountain range? Well, that’s behind us now, and you look down across the line into Arizona and Mexico. That long slope of gray is the head of the San Bernardino Valley. Straight across you see the black Chiricahua Mountains, and away down to the south the Guadalupe Mountains. That awful red gulf between is the desert, and far, far beyond the dim, blue peaks are the Sierra Madres in Mexico.”
“We're at the edge of the foothills,” Florence said. “You remember when we rode around the northern end of the mountain range? Well, that's behind us now, and you can look down across the line into Arizona and Mexico. That long slope of gray is the beginning of the San Bernardino Valley. Right across from you, you see the black Chiricahua Mountains, and way down to the south are the Guadalupe Mountains. That ugly red gap between is the desert, and far, far beyond the faint blue peaks are the Sierra Madres in Mexico.”
Madeline listened and gazed with straining eyes, and wondered if this was only a stupendous mirage, and why it seemed so different from all else that she had seen, and so endless, so baffling, so grand.
Madeline listened and looked with intense focus, wondering if this was just an incredible illusion, and why it felt so different from everything else she had seen, so endless, so puzzling, so magnificent.
“It’ll sure take you a little while to get used to being up high and seeing so much,” explained Florence. “That’s the secret—we’re up high, the air is clear, and there’s the whole bare world beneath us. Don’t it somehow rest you? Well, it will. Now see those specks in the valley. They are stations, little towns. The railroad goes down that way. The largest speck is Chiricahua. It’s over forty miles by trail. Here round to the north you can see Don Carlos’s rancho. He’s fifteen miles off, and I sure wish he were a thousand. That little green square about half-way between here and Don Carlos—that’s Al’s ranch. Just below us are the adobe houses of the Mexicans. There’s a church, too. And here to the left you see Stillwell’s corrals and bunk-houses and his stables all falling to pieces. The ranch has gone to ruin. All the ranches are going to ruin. But most of them are little one-horse affairs. And here—see that cloud of dust down in the valley? It’s the round-up. The boys are there, and the cattle. Wait, I’ll get the glasses.”
“It’ll definitely take you a little while to get used to being up high and seeing so much,” Florence explained. “That’s the thing—we’re up high, the air is clear, and there’s the whole open world beneath us. Doesn’t it somehow relax you? It will. Now look at those dots in the valley. They’re stations, small towns. The railroad goes down that way. The biggest dot is Chiricahua. It’s over forty miles by trail. Off to the north, you can see Don Carlos’s ranch. He’s fifteen miles away, and I really wish he were a thousand. That little green square about halfway between here and Don Carlos—that’s Al’s ranch. Just below us are the adobe houses of the Mexicans. There’s a church, too. And over to the left, you can see Stillwell’s corrals, bunkhouses, and stables all falling apart. The ranch has gone to ruin. All the ranches are going to ruin. But most of them are small, one-horse operations. And look—see that cloud of dust down in the valley? It’s the round-up. The guys are there, along with the cattle. Wait, I’ll grab the binoculars.”
By their aid Madeline saw in the foreground a great, dense herd of cattle with dark, thick streams and dotted lines of cattle leading in every direction. She saw streaks and clouds of dust, running horses, and a band of horses grazing; and she descried horsemen standing still like sentinels, and others in action.
By their help, Madeline saw a large, dense herd of cattle in the foreground, with dark, thick lines of cows moving in every direction. She noticed clouds of dust, galloping horses, and a group of horses grazing; she spotted horsemen standing still like sentries, as well as others in motion.
“The round-up! I want to know all about it—to see it,” declared Madeline. “Please tell me what it means, what it’s for, and then take me down there.”
“The round-up! I want to know everything about it—to see it,” said Madeline. “Please explain what it means, what it’s for, and then take me down there.”
“It’s sure a sight, Miss Hammond. I’ll be glad to take you down, but I fancy you’ll not want to go close. Few Eastern people who regularly eat their choice cuts of roast beef and porterhouse have any idea of the open range and the struggle cattle have to live and the hard life of cowboys. It’ll sure open your eyes, Miss Hammond. I’m glad you care to know. Your brother would have made a big success in this cattle business if it hadn’t been for crooked work by rival ranchers. He’ll make it yet, in spite of them.”
“It’s definitely a sight, Miss Hammond. I’d be happy to take you down, but I doubt you’ll want to get too close. Not many people from the East, who usually enjoy their prime cuts of roast beef and porterhouse, understand the open range and the challenges cattle face to survive, along with the tough life of cowboys. It’ll really open your eyes, Miss Hammond. I’m glad you’re interested. Your brother would have been really successful in this cattle business if it hadn’t been for shady dealings by rival ranchers. He’ll make it eventually, despite them.”
“Indeed he shall,” replied Madeline. “But tell me, please, all about the round-up.”
“Of course he will,” Madeline answered. “But please tell me everything about the round-up.”
“Well, in the first place, every cattleman has to have a brand to identify his stock. Without it no cattleman, nor half a hundred cowboys, if he had so many, could ever recognize all the cattle in a big herd. There are no fences on our ranges. They are all open to everybody. Some day I hope we’ll be rich enough to fence a range. The different herds graze together. Every calf has to be caught, if possible, and branded with the mark of its mother. That’s no easy job. A maverick is an unbranded calf that has been weaned and shifts for itself. The maverick then belongs to the man who finds it and brands it. These little calves that lose their mothers sure have a cruel time of it. Many of them die. Then the coyotes and wolves and lions prey on them. Every year we have two big round-ups, but the boys do some branding all the year. A calf should be branded as soon as it’s found. This is a safeguard against cattle-thieves. We don’t have the rustling of herds and bunches of cattle like we used to. But there’s always the calf-thief, and always will be as long as there’s cattle-raising. The thieves have a good many cunning tricks. They kill the calf’s mother or slit the calf’s tongue so it can’t suck and so loses its mother. They steal and hide a calf and watch it till it’s big enough to fare for itself, and then brand it. They make imperfect brands and finish them at a later time.
“Well, first of all, every cattleman needs a brand to mark his livestock. Without it, neither the cattleman nor even a bunch of cowboys could recognize all the cows in a large herd. There are no fences on our ranges; they’re open for everyone. Someday, I hope we’ll be rich enough to put up a fence around our range. The different herds graze together. Every calf has to be caught, if possible, and branded with its mother’s mark. That’s not an easy task. A maverick is an unbranded calf that has been weaned and is now independent. The maverick then belongs to whoever finds and brands it. Those little calves that lose their mothers have a rough time. Many of them die. Then the coyotes, wolves, and lions hunt them. Every year we have two big round-ups, but the guys do some branding all year long. A calf should be branded as soon as it’s found. This helps protect against cattle theft. We don’t see the rustling of herds and groups of cattle like we used to. But there will always be calf-thieves, as long as there’s cattle ranching. The thieves have a lot of sneaky tricks. They might kill the mother cow or cut the calf's tongue so it can’t suck and ends up losing its mother. They steal and hide a calf and keep an eye on it until it’s old enough to fend for itself, and then they brand it. They even make imperfect brands and finish them later.”
“We have our big round-up in the fall, when there’s plenty of grass and water, and all the riding-stock as well as the cattle are in fine shape. The cattlemen in the valley meet with their cowboys and drive in all the cattle they can find. Then they brand and cut out each man’s herd and drive it toward home. Then they go on up or down the valley, make another camp, and drive in more cattle. It takes weeks. There are so many Greasers with little bands of stock, and they are crafty and greedy. Bill says he knows Greaser cowboys, vaqueros, who never owned a steer or a cow, and now they’ve got growing herds. The same might be said of more than one white cowboy. But there’s not as much of that as there used to be.”
“We have our big round-up in the fall when there’s plenty of grass and water, and all the horses and cattle are in great shape. The cattlemen in the valley meet with their cowboys and round up all the cattle they can find. Then they brand and separate each man’s herd and head it toward home. After that, they move up or down the valley, set up another camp, and gather more cattle. It takes weeks. There are many Mexicans with small herds, and they can be clever and greedy. Bill says he knows Mexican cowboys, vaqueros, who have never owned a steer or a cow, and now they have growing herds. The same can be said for more than one white cowboy, but that doesn’t happen as much as it used to.”
“And the horses? I want to know about them,” said Madeline, when Florence paused.
“And the horses? I want to know about them,” Madeline said when Florence paused.
“Oh, the cow-ponies! Well, they sure are interesting. Broncos, the boys call them. Wild! they’re wilder than the steers they have to chase. Bill’s got broncos heah that never have been broken and never will be. And not every boy can ride them, either. The vaqueros have the finest horses. Don Carlos has a black that I’d give anything to own. And he has other fine stock. Gene Stewart’s big roan is a Mexican horse, the swiftest and proudest I ever saw. I was up on him once and—oh, he can run! He likes a woman, too, and that’s sure something I want in a horse. I heard Al and Bill talking at breakfast about a horse for you. They were wrangling. Bill wanted you to have one, and Al another. It was funny to hear them. Finally they left the choice to me, until the round-up is over. Then I suppose every cowboy on the range will offer you his best mount. Come, let’s go out to the corrals and look over the few horses left.”
“Oh, the cow ponies! They’re really something else. The guys call them broncos. Wild! They’re crazier than the steers they have to chase. Bill has broncos here that have never been broken and probably never will be. And not every guy can ride them, either. The vaqueros have the best horses. Don Carlos has a black one that I’d do anything to own. Plus, he has other great ones. Gene Stewart’s big roan is a Mexican horse, the fastest and proudest I’ve ever seen. I rode him once and—wow, he can run! He likes women too, and that’s definitely something I want in a horse. I heard Al and Bill talking at breakfast about getting a horse for you. They were going back and forth. Bill wanted you to have one, and Al wanted you to have another. It was funny to listen to. Eventually, they left the decision up to me until the round-up is done. After that, I guess every cowboy on the range will want to offer you his best horse. Come on, let’s go out to the corrals and check out the few horses that are left.”
For Madeline the morning hours flew by, with a goodly part of the time spent on the porch gazing out over that ever-changing vista. At noon a teamster drove up with her trunks. Then while Florence helped the Mexican woman get lunch Madeline unpacked part of her effects and got out things for which she would have immediate need. After lunch she changed her dress for a riding-habit and, going outside, found Florence waiting with the horses.
For Madeline, the morning passed quickly, a good chunk of it spent on the porch looking out at the constantly changing view. At noon, a delivery person arrived with her trunks. While Florence helped the Mexican woman prepare lunch, Madeline unpacked some of her things and grabbed items she would need right away. After lunch, she changed into a riding outfit and went outside to find Florence waiting with the horses.
The Western girl’s clear eyes seemed to take stock of Madeline’s appearance in one swift, inquisitive glance and then shone with pleasure.
The Western girl's bright eyes quickly assessed Madeline's appearance in one curious look and then sparkled with delight.
“You sure look—you’re a picture, Miss Hammond. That riding-outfit is a new one. What it ’d look like on me or another woman I can’t imagine, but on you it’s—it’s stunning. Bill won’t let you go within a mile of the cowboys. If they see you that’ll be the finish of the round-up.”
“You look amazing, Miss Hammond. That riding outfit is brand new. I can’t picture what it would look like on me or any other woman, but on you, it’s just stunning. Bill won’t let you get anywhere near the cowboys. If they see you, it’ll be the end of the round-up.”
While they rode down the slope Florence talked about the open ranges of New Mexico and Arizona.
While they rode down the slope, Florence talked about the wide-open spaces of New Mexico and Arizona.
“Water is scarce,” she said. “If Bill could afford to pipe water down from the mountains he’d have the finest ranch in the valley.”
“Water is scarce,” she said. “If Bill could afford to run water down from the mountains, he’d have the best ranch in the valley.”
She went on to tell that the climate was mild in winter and hot in summer. Warm, sunshiny days prevailed nearly all the year round. Some summers it rained, and occasionally there would be a dry year, the dreaded ano seco of the Mexicans. Rain was always expected and prayed for in the midsummer months, and when it came the grama-grass sprang up, making the valleys green from mountain to mountain. The intersecting valleys, ranging between the long slope of foothills, afforded the best pasture for cattle, and these were jealously sought by the Mexicans who had only small herds to look after. Stillwell’s cowboys were always chasing these vaqueros off land that belonged to Stillwell. He owned twenty thousand acres of unfenced land adjoining the open range. Don Carlos possessed more acreage than that, and his cattle were always mingling with Stillwell’s. And in turn Don Carlos’s vaqueros were always chasing Stillwell’s cattle away from the Mexican’s watering-place. Bad feeling had been manifested for years, and now relations were strained to the breaking-point.
She went on to say that the winter weather was mild and the summers were hot. Warm, sunny days lasted almost all year. Some summers it rained, and sometimes there would be a dry year, the dreaded ano seco of the Mexicans. Rain was always hoped for and prayed for in the midsummer months, and when it arrived, the grama grass would grow, turning the valleys green from one mountain to another. The valleys between the long slopes of the foothills provided the best pasture for cattle, and these were eagerly sought after by the Mexicans who had only small herds to manage. Stillwell’s cowboys were always chasing these vaqueros off land that belonged to Stillwell. He owned twenty thousand acres of unfenced land next to the open range. Don Carlos had even more land than that, and his cattle were always mixing with Stillwell’s. In turn, Don Carlos’s vaqueros were constantly driving Stillwell’s cattle away from the Mexican’s water source. Bad feelings had been brewing for years, and now relations were at a breaking point.
As Madeline rode along she made good use of her eyes. The soil was sandy and porous, and she understood why the rain and water from the few springs disappeared so quickly. At a little distance the grama-grass appeared thick, but near at hand it was seen to be sparse. Bunches of greasewood and cactus plants were interspersed here and there in the grass. What surprised Madeline was the fact that, though she and Florence had seemed to be riding quite awhile, they had apparently not drawn any closer to the round-up. The slope of the valley was noticeable only after some miles had been traversed. Looking forward, Madeline imagined the valley only a few miles wide. She would have been sure she could walk her horse across it in an hour. Yet that black, bold range of Chiricahua Mountains was distant a long day’s journey for even a hard-riding cowboy. It was only by looking back that Madeline could grasp the true relation of things; she could not be deceived by distance she had covered.
As Madeline rode along, she paid close attention to her surroundings. The soil was sandy and porous, and she understood why rain and water from the few springs disappeared so quickly. From a distance, the grama grass looked thick, but up close, it was sparse. Clumps of greasewood and cactus plants were scattered throughout the grass. What surprised Madeline was that even though she and Florence had been riding for a while, they didn't seem to be getting any closer to the round-up. The slope of the valley only became noticeable after they had traveled some miles. Looking ahead, Madeline envisioned the valley as being just a few miles wide. She was confident she could walk her horse across it in an hour. Yet, that striking range of the Chiricahua Mountains was still a long day’s ride away, even for a seasoned cowboy. Only by looking back could Madeline grasp the true scale of things; she couldn't be fooled by the distance she'd traveled.
Gradually the black dots enlarged and assumed shape of cattle and horses moving round a great dusty patch. In another half-hour Madeline rode behind Florence to the outskirts of the scene of action. They drew rein near a huge wagon in the neighborhood of which were more than a hundred horses grazing and whistling and trotting about and lifting heads to watch the new-comers. Four cowboys stood mounted guard over this drove of horses. Perhaps a quarter of a mile farther out was a dusty melee. A roar of tramping hoofs filled Madeline’s ears. The lines of marching cattle had merged into a great, moving herd half obscured by dust.
Slowly, the black dots grew larger and looked like cattle and horses moving around a large dusty area. After another half-hour, Madeline rode behind Florence to the edge of the action. They stopped near a massive wagon, where over a hundred horses were grazing, whistling, trotting around, and raising their heads to watch the newcomers. Four cowboys were mounted, keeping watch over this group of horses. About a quarter of a mile further out, there was a dusty chaos. The sound of hooves pounding filled Madeline’s ears. The lines of marching cattle had blended into a huge, moving herd, mostly hidden by dust.
“I can make little of what is going on,” said Madeline. “I want to go closer.”
“I can’t make much sense of what’s happening,” said Madeline. “I want to get closer.”
They trotted across half the intervening distance, and when Florence halted again Madeline was still not satisfied and asked to be taken nearer. This time, before they reined in again, Al Hammond saw them and wheeled his horse in their direction. He yelled something which Madeline did not understand, and then halted them.
They trotted across half the distance, and when Florence stopped again, Madeline still wasn’t satisfied and asked to get closer. This time, before they pulled up again, Al Hammond spotted them and turned his horse in their direction. He shouted something that Madeline didn’t understand, and then he stopped them.
“Close enough,” he called; and in the din his voice was not very clear. “It’s not safe. Wild steers! I’m glad you came, girls. Majesty, what do you think of that bunch of cattle?”
“Close enough,” he shouted; and in the noise his voice wasn't very clear. “It’s not safe. Wild steers! I’m glad you girls are here. Majesty, what do you think of that group of cattle?”
Madeline could scarcely reply what she thought, for the noise and dust and ceaseless action confused her.
Madeline could barely express what she was thinking, as the noise, dust, and constant activity overwhelmed her.
“They’re milling, Al,” said Florence.
"They're milling around, Al," said Florence.
“We just rounded them up. They’re milling, and that’s bad. The vaqueros are hard drivers. They beat us all hollow, and we drove some, too.” He was wet with sweat, black with dust, and out of breath. “I’m off now. Flo, my sister will have enough of this in about two minutes. Take her back to the wagon. I’ll tell Bill you’re here, and run in whenever I get a minute.”
“We just gathered them up. They’re wandering, and that’s not good. The cowboys are tough operators. They totally outperformed us, and we did some driving too.” He was soaked with sweat, covered in dirt, and breathless. “I’m heading out now. Flo, my sister, will be done with this in about two minutes. Take her back to the wagon. I’ll let Bill know you’re here and drop in whenever I can.”
The bawling and bellowing, the crackling of horns and pounding of hoofs, the dusty whirl of cattle, and the flying cowboys disconcerted Madeline and frightened her a little; but she was intensely interested and meant to stay there until she saw for herself what that strife of sound and action meant. When she tried to take in the whole scene she did not make out anything clearly and she determined to see it little by little.
The shouting and yelling, the blaring horns and thundering hooves, the dusty chaos of cattle, and the rushing cowboys unsettled Madeline and scared her a bit; but she was really curious and planned to stick around until she figured out what all that noise and action was about. When she tried to grasp the entire scene, nothing came into focus, so she decided to take it in piece by piece.
“Will you stay longer?” asked Florence; and, receiving an affirmative reply, she warned Madeline: “If a runaway steer or angry cow comes this way let your horse go. He’ll get out of the way.”
“Will you stay longer?” asked Florence; and, getting a yes, she cautioned Madeline: “If a runaway steer or mad cow comes this way, let your horse go. He’ll figure it out.”
That lent the situation excitement, and Madeline became absorbed. The great mass of cattle seemed to be eddying like a whirlpool, and from that Madeline understood the significance of the range word “milling.” But when Madeline looked at one end of the herd she saw cattle standing still, facing outward, and calves cringing close in fear. The motion of the cattle slowed from the inside of the herd to the outside and gradually ceased. The roar and tramp of hoofs and crack of horns and thump of heads also ceased in degree, but the bawling and bellowing continued. While she watched, the herd spread, grew less dense, and stragglers appeared to be about to bolt through the line of mounted cowboys.
That made the situation exciting, and Madeline became engrossed. The huge mass of cattle seemed to swirl like a whirlpool, and from that, Madeline recognized the meaning of the ranch term “milling.” But when Madeline looked at one end of the herd, she saw cattle standing still, facing outward, with calves huddled close in fear. The movement of the cattle slowed from the inside of the herd to the outside and eventually stopped. The noise of hooves pounding, horns cracking, and heads thumping also diminished, but the bawling and bellowing continued. As she watched, the herd spread out, became less dense, and stragglers appeared to be getting ready to break through the line of mounted cowboys.
From that moment so many things happened, and so swiftly, that Madeline could not see a tenth of what was going on within eyesight. It seemed horsemen darted into the herd and drove out cattle. Madeline pinned her gaze on one cowboy who rode a white horse and was chasing a steer. He whirled a lasso around his head and threw it; the rope streaked out and the loop caught the leg of the steer. The white horse stopped with wonderful suddenness, and the steer slid in the dust. Quick as a flash the cowboy was out of the saddle, and, grasping the legs of the steer before it could rise, he tied them with a rope. It had all been done almost as quickly as thought. Another man came with what Madeline divined was a branding-iron. He applied it to the flank of the steer. Then it seemed the steer was up with a jump, wildly looking for some way to run, and the cowboy was circling his lasso. Madeline saw fires in the background, with a man in charge, evidently heating the irons. Then this same cowboy roped a heifer which bawled lustily when the hot iron seared its hide. Madeline saw the smoke rising from the touch of the iron, and the sight made her shrink and want to turn away, but she resolutely fought her sensitiveness. She had never been able to bear the sight of any animal suffering. The rough work in men’s lives was as a sealed book to her; and now, for some reason beyond her knowledge, she wanted to see and hear and learn some of the every-day duties that made up those lives.
From that moment, so many things happened so quickly that Madeline couldn’t see even a fraction of what was happening around her. It looked like horsemen dashed into the herd and drove out the cattle. Madeline focused on one cowboy who rode a white horse and was after a steer. He swung a lasso around his head and threw it; the rope flew out, and the loop caught the steer’s leg. The white horse stopped suddenly, and the steer slid in the dust. In a flash, the cowboy jumped off his horse and grabbed the steer’s legs before it could get up, tying them with a rope. It all happened almost as quickly as thought. Another man came with what Madeline guessed was a branding iron. He applied it to the steer’s flank. Then the steer jumped up, desperately looking for a way to escape, while the cowboy started circling his lasso again. Madeline saw fires in the background, with a man tending to them, heating the irons. Then the same cowboy roped a heifer, which bawled loudly when the hot iron seared its skin. Madeline noticed the smoke rising from where the iron touched, and the sight made her want to look away, but she fought against her sensitivity. She had never been able to stand the sight of any animal in pain. The tough aspects of men’s lives were a mystery to her, but now, for reasons she couldn't understand, she wanted to see, hear, and learn about the everyday responsibilities that filled those lives.
“Look, Miss Hammond, there’s Don Carlos!” said Florence. “Look at that black horse!”
“Hey, Miss Hammond, there’s Don Carlos!” said Florence. “Check out that black horse!”
Madeleine saw a dark-faced Mexican riding by. He was too far away for her to distinguish his features, but he reminded her of an Italian brigand. He bestrode a magnificent horse.
Madeleine saw a dark-skinned Mexican riding by. He was too far away for her to make out his features, but he reminded her of an Italian outlaw. He was on a magnificent horse.
Stillwell rode up to the girls then and greeted them in his big voice.
Stillwell rode up to the girls and greeted them in his loud voice.
“Right in the thick of it, hey? Wal, thet’s sure fine. I’m glad to see, Miss Majesty, thet you ain’t afraid of a little dust or smell of burnin’ hide an’ hair.”
“Right in the thick of it, huh? Well, that’s great. I’m glad to see, Miss Majesty, that you’re not afraid of a little dust or the smell of burning hide and hair.”
“Couldn’t you brand the calves without hurting them?” asked Madeline.
“Can’t you brand the calves without hurting them?” asked Madeline.
“Haw, haw! Why, they ain’t hurt none. They jest bawl for their mammas. Sometimes, though, we hev to hurt one jest to find which is his mamma.”
“Ha, ha! They aren’t hurt at all. They just cry for their moms. Sometimes, though, we have to hurt one just to figure out who their mom is.”
“I want to know how you tell what brand to put on those calves that are separated from their mothers,” asked Madeline.
“I want to know how you decide which brand to put on those calves that are separated from their mothers,” asked Madeline.
“Thet’s decided by the round-up bosses. I’ve one boss an’ Don Carlos has one. They decide everything, an’ they hev to be obyed. There’s Nick Steele, my boss. Watch him! He’s ridin’ a bay in among the cattle there. He orders the calves an’ steers to be cut out. Then the cowboys do the cuttin’ out an’ the brandin’. We try to divide up the mavericks as near as possible.”
"Thet’s decided by the round-up bosses. I’ve got one boss, and Don Carlos has one too. They make all the decisions, and we have to follow their orders. That’s Nick Steele, my boss. Look at him! He’s riding a bay horse among the cattle over there. He’s instructing the cowboys to separate the calves and steers. Then the cowboys handle the separating and branding. We try to split up the mavericks as evenly as we can."
At this juncture Madeline’s brother joined the group, evidently in search of Stillwell.
At this point, Madeline’s brother joined the group, clearly looking for Stillwell.
“Bill, Nels just rode in,” he said.
“Bill, Nels just arrived,” he said.
“Good! We sure need him. Any news of Danny Mains?”
“Great! We definitely need him. Any updates on Danny Mains?”
“No. Nels said he lost the trail when he got on hard ground.”
“No. Nels said he lost the trail when he reached solid ground.”
“Wal, wal. Say, Al, your sister is sure takin’ to the round-up. An’ the boys are gettin’ wise. See thet sun-of-a-gun Ambrose cuttin’ capers all around. He’ll sure do his prettiest. Ambrose is a ladies’ man, he thinks.”
“Wow, wow. Hey, Al, your sister is really getting into the round-up. And the guys are catching on. Look at that son of a gun Ambrose acting all flashy. He’ll definitely put on his best show. Ambrose is a ladies’ man, or at least he thinks he is.”
The two men and Florence joined in a little pleasant teasing of Madeline, and drew her attention to what appeared to be really unnecessary feats of horsemanship all made in her vicinity. The cowboys evinced their interest in covert glances while recoiling a lasso or while passing to and fro. It was all too serious for Madeline to be amused at that moment. She did not care to talk. She sat her horse and watched.
The two men and Florence playfully teased Madeline, pointing out what seemed to be completely unnecessary displays of horsemanship happening around her. The cowboys showed their interest with sly glances while tossing a lasso or walking back and forth. Madeline found it all too serious to be amused right then. She didn’t feel like chatting. She just sat on her horse and watched.
The lithe, dark vaqueros fascinated her. They were here, there, everywhere, with lariats flying, horses plunging back, jerking calves and yearlings to the grass. They were cruel to their mounts, cruel to their cattle. Madeline winced as the great silver rowels of the spurs went plowing into the flanks of their horses. She saw these spurs stained with blood, choked with hair. She saw the vaqueros break the legs of calves and let them lie till a white cowboy came along and shot them. Calves were jerked down and dragged many yards; steers were pulled by one leg. These vaqueros were the most superb horsemen Madeline had ever seen, and she had seen the Cossacks and Tatars of the Russian steppes. They were swift, graceful, daring; they never failed to catch a running steer, and the lassoes always went true. What sharp dashes the horses made, and wheelings here and there, and sudden stops, and how they braced themselves to withstand the shock!
The slender, dark cowboys captivated her. They were everywhere, with lassos flying, horses rearing back, pulling calves and yearlings to the ground. They were rough on their horses and hard on their cattle. Madeline winced as the big silver spurs dug into the flanks of their horses. She noticed these spurs were stained with blood and tangled with hair. She watched as the cowboys broke the legs of calves and left them to suffer until a white cowboy came by and shot them. Calves were yanked down and dragged for yards; steers were pulled by one leg. These cowboys were the best horsemen Madeline had ever seen, and she had witnessed the Cossacks and Tatars of the Russian steppes. They were fast, agile, and fearless; they always caught a running steer, and their lassos never missed. The horses made sharp turns, quick changes of direction, and sudden stops, and they braced themselves to absorb the impact!
The cowboys, likewise, showed wonderful horsemanship, and, reckless as they were, Madeline imagined she saw consideration for steed and cattle that was wanting in the vaqueros. They changed mounts oftener than the Mexican riders, and the horses they unsaddled for fresh ones were not so spent, so wet, so covered with lather. It was only after an hour or more of observation that Madeline began to realize the exceedingly toilsome and dangerous work cowboys had to perform. There was little or no rest for them. They were continually among wild and vicious and wide-horned steers. In many instances they owed their lives to their horses. The danger came mostly when the cowboy leaped off to tie and brand a calf he had thrown. Some of the cows charged with lowered, twisting horns. Time and again Madeline’s heart leaped to her throat for fear a man would be gored. One cowboy roped a calf that bawled loudly. Its mother dashed in and just missed the kneeling cowboy as he rolled over. Then he had to run, and he could not run very fast. He was bow-legged and appeared awkward. Madeline saw another cowboy thrown and nearly run over by a plunging steer. His horse bolted as if it intended to leave the range. Then close by Madeline a big steer went down at the end of a lasso. The cowboy who had thrown it nimbly jumped down, and at that moment his horse began to rear and prance and suddenly to lower his head close to the ground and kick high. He ran round in a circle, the fallen steer on the taut lasso acting as a pivot. The cowboy loosed the rope from the steer, and then was dragged about on the grass. It was almost frightful for Madeline to see that cowboy go at his horse. But she recognized the mastery and skill. Then two horses came into collision on the run. One horse went down; the rider of the other was unseated and was kicked before he could get up. This fellow limped to his mount and struck at him, while the horse showed his teeth in a vicious attempt to bite.
The cowboys demonstrated amazing horsemanship, and, as reckless as they were, Madeline thought she noticed a level of care for the horses and cattle that was missing in the vaqueros. They switched horses more often than the Mexican riders, and the horses they unsaddled for new ones weren’t as worn out, wet, or covered in sweat. It was only after watching for over an hour that Madeline began to understand the incredibly tough and dangerous job cowboys had. They hardly ever got a break. They were constantly surrounded by wild, aggressive, and horned cattle. In many situations, their horses were the reason they survived. The biggest danger came when a cowboy jumped off to tie and brand a calf he had caught. Some of the cows charged with their horns down and twisted. Time and again, Madeline's heart raced in fear that a man would be gored. One cowboy roped a calf that cried out loudly. Its mother charged in and barely missed the kneeling cowboy as he rolled away. Then he had to sprint, and he wasn’t very fast. He was bow-legged and looked awkward. Madeline saw another cowboy thrown off and nearly trampled by a frenzied steer. His horse bolted as if it wanted to escape the area. Then, right next to Madeline, a large steer went down at the end of a lasso. The cowboy who had thrown it quickly jumped down, just as his horse started to rear up, prance around, and then lower its head to the ground and kick high. The horse circled around, with the fallen steer on the taut lasso acting like a pivot. The cowboy untied the rope from the steer and then got dragged across the grass. It was almost terrifying for Madeline to watch that cowboy go after his horse. But she recognized his control and skill. Then two horses collided while running. One horse went down; the rider of the other was thrown off and kicked before he could get up. This guy limped over to his horse and swung at it, while the horse bared its teeth in a vicious attempt to bite.
All the while this ceaseless activity was going on there was a strange uproar—bawl and bellow, the shock of heavy bodies meeting and falling, the shrill jabbering of the vaqueros, and the shouts and banterings of the cowboys. They took sharp orders and replied in jest. They went about this stern toil as if it were a game to be played in good humor. One sang a rollicking song, another whistled, another smoked a cigarette. The sun was hot, and they, like their horses, were dripping with sweat. The characteristic red faces had taken on so much dust that cowboys could not be distinguished from vaqueros except by the difference in dress. Blood was not wanting on tireless hands. The air was thick, oppressive, rank with the smell of cattle and of burning hide.
All this nonstop activity was accompanied by a strange uproar—shouting and yelling, the thud of heavy bodies colliding and falling, the sharp chatter of the vaqueros, and the calls and banter of the cowboys. They took orders sharply but responded teasingly. They approached this tough work as if it were a game to be played in good spirits. One person sang a lively song, another whistled, and someone else smoked a cigarette. The sun was beating down, and they, like their horses, were drenched in sweat. Their characteristic red faces had collected so much dust that you could barely tell cowboys from vaqueros except by their clothing. Blood wasn’t absent from their hardworking hands. The air was thick, stifling, and heavy with the smell of cattle and burnt hide.
Madeline began to sicken. She choked with dust, was almost stifled by the odor. But that made her all the more determined to stay there. Florence urged her to come away, or at least move back out of the worst of it. Stillwell seconded Florence. Madeline, however, smilingly refused. Then her brother said: “Here, this is making you sick. You’re pale.” And she replied that she intended to stay until the day’s work ended. Al gave her a strange look, and made no more comment. The kindly Stillwell then began to talk.
Madeline started to feel sick. She was choking on dust and nearly suffocated by the smell. But that just made her more determined to stay there. Florence urged her to leave or at least move away from the worst part. Stillwell agreed with Florence. However, Madeline smiled and refused. Then her brother said, “This is making you sick. You look pale.” She replied that she planned to stay until the day’s work was done. Al gave her a weird look and didn’t say anything more. The kind Stillwell then began to talk.
“Miss Majesty, you’re seein’ the life of the cattleman an’ cowboy—the real thing—same as it was in the early days. The ranchers in Texas an’ some in Arizona hev took on style, new-fangled idees thet are good, an’ I wish we could follow them. But we’ve got to stick to the old-fashioned, open-range round-up. It looks cruel to you, I can see thet. Wal, mebbe so, mebbe so. Them Greasers are cruel, thet’s certain. Fer thet matter, I never seen a Greaser who wasn’t cruel. But I reckon all the strenuous work you’ve seen to-day ain’t any tougher than most any day of a cowboy’s life. Long hours on hossback, poor grub, sleepin’ on the ground, lonesome watches, dust an’ sun an’ wind an’ thirst, day in an’ day out all the year round—thet’s what a cowboy has.
“Miss Majesty, you’re witnessing the life of a cattleman and cowboy—the real thing—just like in the early days. The ranchers in Texas and some in Arizona have adopted some new styles and good ideas, and I wish we could follow their lead. But we have to stick to the traditional, open-range roundup. It may seem harsh to you, and I can understand that. Well, maybe so, maybe so. Those Greasers can be cruel, that’s for sure. For that matter, I’ve never met a Greaser who wasn’t cruel. But I think all the hard work you’ve seen today isn’t any tougher than most days in a cowboy’s life. Long hours on horseback, bad food, sleeping on the ground, lonely watches, dust, sun, wind, and thirst—day in and day out all year long—that's what a cowboy goes through.
“Look at Nels there. See, what little hair he has is snow-white. He’s red an’ thin an’ hard—burned up. You notice thet hump of his shoulders. An’ his hands, when he gets close—jest take a peep at his hands. Nels can’t pick up a pin. He can’t hardly button his shirt or untie a knot in his rope. He looks sixty years—an old man. Wal, Nels ‘ain’t seen forty. He’s a young man, but he’s seen a lifetime fer every year. Miss Majesty, it was Arizona thet made Nels what he is, the Arizona desert an’ the work of a cowman. He’s seen ridin’ at Canyon Diablo an’ the Verdi an’ Tonto Basin. He knows every mile of Aravaipa Valley an’ the Pinaleno country. He’s ranged from Tombstone to Douglas. He hed shot bad white men an’ bad Greasers before he was twenty-one. He’s seen some life, Nels has. My sixty years ain’t nothin’; my early days in the Staked Plains an’ on the border with Apaches ain’t nothin’ to what Nels has seen an’ lived through. He’s just come to be part of the desert; you might say he’s stone an’ fire an’ silence an’ cactus an’ force. He’s a man, Miss Majesty, a wonderful man. Rough he’ll seem to you. Wal, I’ll show you pieces of quartz from the mountains back of my ranch an’ they’re thet rough they’d cut your hands. But there’s pure gold in them. An’ so it is with Nels an’ many of these cowboys.
“Look at Nels over there. See how little hair he has; it’s snow-white. He’s red, thin, and tough—burned out. You notice that hump on his shoulders? And his hands, when he gets close—just take a look at his hands. Nels can’t pick up a pin. He can barely button his shirt or untie a knot in his rope. He looks sixty years old—like an old man. Well, Nels hasn’t even reached forty yet. He’s a young man, but he’s lived a lifetime for every year. Miss Majesty, it’s Arizona that made Nels who he is, the Arizona desert and the work of a cowboy. He’s ridden at Canyon Diablo and the Verde and Tonto Basin. He knows every mile of the Aravaipa Valley and the Pinaleno country. He’s roamed from Tombstone to Douglas. He’d shot bad white men and bad Greasers before he turned twenty-one. Nels has seen a lot of life. My sixty years aren’t much; my early days in the Staked Plains and on the border with Apaches are nothing compared to what Nels has seen and lived through. He’s become part of the desert; you could say he’s stone, fire, silence, cactus, and strength. He’s a man, Miss Majesty, a remarkable man. He might seem rough to you. Well, I’ll show you some pieces of quartz from the mountains behind my ranch, and they’re so rough they’ll cut your hands. But there’s pure gold in them. And that’s how it is with Nels and many of these cowboys.
“An’ there’s Price—Monty Price. Monty stands fer Montana, where he hails from. Take a good look at him, Miss Majesty. He’s been hurt, I reckon. Thet accounts fer him bein’ without hoss or rope; an’ thet limp. Wal, he’s been ripped a little. It’s sure rare an seldom thet a cowboy gets foul of one of them thousands of sharp horns; but it does happen.”
“Then there’s Price—Monty Price. Monty stands for Montana, which is where he’s from. Take a good look at him, Miss Majesty. He’s been hurt, I guess. That explains why he’s without a horse or rope, and that limp. Well, he’s been injured a bit. It’s pretty rare and unusual for a cowboy to get caught up with one of those thousands of sharp horns; but it does happen.”
Madeline saw a very short, wizened little man, ludicrously bow-legged, with a face the color and hardness of a burned-out cinder. He was hobbling by toward the wagon, and one of his short, crooked legs dragged.
Madeline saw a tiny, old man who was comically bow-legged, with a face that looked like a burned-out cinder. He was limping toward the wagon, and one of his short, bent legs was dragging behind.
“Not much to look at, is he?” went on Stillwell. “Wal; I know it’s natural thet we’re all best pleased by good looks in any one, even a man. It hedn’t ought to be thet way. Monty Price looks like hell. But appearances are sure deceivin’. Monty saw years of ridin’ along the Missouri bottoms, the big prairies, where there’s high grass an’ sometimes fires. In Montana they have blizzards that freeze cattle standin’ in their tracks. An’ hosses freeze to death. They tell me thet a drivin’ sleet in the face with the mercury forty below is somethin’ to ride against. You can’t get Monty to say much about cold. All you hev to do is to watch him, how he hunts the sun. It never gets too hot fer Monty. Wal, I reckon he was a little more prepossessin’ once. The story thet come to us about Monty is this: He got caught out in a prairie fire an’ could hev saved himself easy, but there was a lone ranch right in the line of fire, an’ Monty knowed the rancher was away, an’ his wife an’ baby was home. He knowed, too, the way the wind was, thet the ranch-house would burn. It was a long chance he was takin’. But he went over, put the woman up behind him, wrapped the baby an’ his hoss’s haid in a wet blanket, an’ rode away. Thet was sure some ride, I’ve heerd. But the fire ketched Monty at the last. The woman fell an’ was lost, an’ then his hoss. An’ Monty ran an’ walked an’ crawled through the fire with thet baby, an’ he saved it. Monty was never much good as a cowboy after thet. He couldn’t hold no jobs. Wal, he’ll have one with me as long as I have a steer left.”
“Not much to look at, huh?” Stillwell continued. “Well, I know it’s natural that we’re all more pleased by good looks in anyone, even a man. It shouldn’t be that way. Monty Price looks terrible. But appearances can be really deceiving. Monty has spent years riding through the Missouri bottoms and the vast prairies, where there’s tall grass and sometimes fires. In Montana, they get blizzards that freeze cattle in their tracks. And horses freeze to death. They say that riding against driving sleet when it’s forty below is something else. You can’t get Monty to talk much about the cold. All you have to do is watch him as he seeks the sun. It never gets too hot for Monty. I guess he was a bit more attractive once. The story we hear about Monty is this: He got caught in a prairie fire and could have easily saved himself, but there was a lone ranch right in the fire’s path, and Monty knew the rancher was away, leaving his wife and baby at home. He also knew that given the wind’s direction, the ranch house would burn. It was a long shot he was taking. But he went over, put the woman behind him, wrapped the baby and his horse’s head in a wet blanket, and rode away. That was quite a ride, I’ve heard. But the fire caught up with Monty in the end. The woman fell off and was lost, and then his horse. And Monty ran and walked and crawled through the fire with that baby, and he saved it. Monty was never really good as a cowboy after that. He couldn’t keep any jobs. Well, he’ll have one with me as long as I have a steer left.”
VI. A Gift and A Purchase
For a week the scene of the round-up lay within riding-distance of the ranch-house, and Madeline passed most of this time in the saddle, watching the strenuous labors of the vaqueros and cowboys. She overestimated her strength, and more than once had to be lifted from her horse. Stillwell’s pleasure in her attendance gave place to concern. He tried to persuade her to stay away from the round-up, and Florence grew even more solicitous.
For a week, the round-up took place close enough to the ranch house that Madeline could ride there easily. She spent most of this time in the saddle, observing the hard work of the vaqueros and cowboys. She pushed herself too hard and had to be helped off her horse more than once. Stillwell's enjoyment of her being there turned into concern. He tried to convince her to skip the round-up, and Florence became even more worried.
Madeline, however, was not moved by their entreaties. She grasped only dimly the truth of what it was she was learning—something infinitely more than the rounding up of cattle by cowboys, and she was loath to lose an hour of her opportunity.
Madeline, however, was not swayed by their pleas. She only vaguely understood the truth of what she was discovering—something far deeper than just cowboys rounding up cattle—and she was unwilling to waste an hour of her chance.
Her brother looked out for her as much as his duties permitted; but for several days he never once mentioned her growing fatigue and the strain of excitement, or suggested that she had better go back to the house with Florence. Many times she felt the drawing power of his keen blue eyes on her face. And at these moments she sensed more than brotherly regard. He was watching her, studying her, weighing her, and the conviction was vaguely disturbing. It was disquieting for Madeline to think that Alfred might have guessed her trouble. From time to time he brought cowboys to her and introduced them, and laughed and jested, trying to make the ordeal less embarrassing for these men so little used to women.
Her brother looked out for her as much as his responsibilities allowed, but for several days, he never mentioned her growing exhaustion and the stress of excitement, nor did he suggest that she should go back to the house with Florence. Many times, she felt the intense pull of his sharp blue eyes on her face. In those moments, she sensed more than just brotherly affection. He was observing her, analyzing her, weighing her, and the feeling was vaguely unsettling. It troubled Madeline to think that Alfred might have figured out her problem. Occasionally, he brought cowboys her way, introducing them and joking around, trying to make the situation less awkward for these men who were so unaccustomed to women.
Before the week was out, however, Alfred found occasion to tell her that it would be wiser for her to let the round-up go on without gracing it further with her presence. He said it laughingly; nevertheless, he was serious. And when Madeline turned to him in surprise he said, bluntly:
Before the week was over, though, Alfred had a reason to tell her that it would be smarter for her to skip the round-up and not show up anymore. He said it with a laugh, but he meant it. And when Madeline looked at him in surprise, he said, directly:
“I don’t like the way Don Carlos follows you around. Bill’s afraid that Nels or Ambrose or one of the cowboys will take a fall out of the Mexican. They’re itching for the chance. Of course, dear, it’s absurd to you, but it’s true.”
“I don’t like how Don Carlos keeps following you. Bill’s worried that Nels or Ambrose or one of the cowboys will have a run-in with the Mexican. They’re just waiting for the opportunity. Of course, sweetheart, it seems ridiculous to you, but it’s true.”
Absurd it certainly was, yet it served to show Madeline how intensely occupied she had been with her own feelings, roused by the tumult and toil of the round-up. She recalled that Don Carlos had been presented to her, and that she had not liked his dark, striking face with its bold, prominent, glittering eyes and sinister lines; and she had not liked his suave, sweet, insinuating voice or his subtle manner, with its slow bows and gestures. She had thought he looked handsome and dashing on the magnificent black horse. However, now that Alfred’s words made her think, she recalled that wherever she had been in the field the noble horse, with his silver-mounted saddle and his dark rider, had been always in her vicinity.
It was definitely absurd, but it made Madeline realize how consumed she had been by her own emotions, stirred up by the chaos and hard work of the round-up. She remembered that Don Carlos had been introduced to her, and she hadn’t liked his strikingly dark face with its bold, shiny eyes and ominous lines; nor had she appreciated his smooth, sweet, suggestive voice or his subtle manner, with its slow bows and gestures. She had thought he looked handsome and impressive on that stunning black horse. However, now that Alfred’s words prompted her to reflect, she recalled that wherever she had been in the field, the noble horse, with its silver-mounted saddle and dark rider, had always been nearby.
“Don Carlos has been after Florence for a long time,” said Alfred. “He’s not a young man by any means. He’s fifty, Bill says; but you can seldom tell a Mexican’s age from his looks. Don Carlos is well educated and a man we know very little about. Mexicans of his stamp don’t regard women as we white men do. Now, my dear, beautiful sister from New York, I haven’t much use for Don Carlos; but I don’t want Nels or Ambrose to make a wild throw with a rope and pull the Don off his horse. So you had better ride up to the house and stay there.”
“Don Carlos has been pursuing Florence for quite some time,” said Alfred. “He’s definitely not a young guy. He’s fifty, Bill says; but you can rarely tell a Mexican’s age by their appearance. Don Carlos is well-educated and a person we don't know much about. Mexicans like him don't view women the same way we white men do. Now, my dear, beautiful sister from New York, I’m not really a fan of Don Carlos; but I don’t want Nels or Ambrose to take a reckless shot with a rope and pull him off his horse. So you’d better ride up to the house and stay there.”
“Alfred, you are joking, teasing me,” said Madeline. “Indeed not,” replied Alfred. “How about it, Flo?” Florence replied that the cowboys would upon the slightest provocation treat Don Carlos with less ceremony and gentleness than a roped steer. Old Bill Stillwell came up to be importuned by Alfred regarding the conduct of cowboys on occasion, and he not only corroborated the assertion, but added emphasis and evidence of his own.
“Alfred, you’re kidding, right?” said Madeline. “Not at all,” Alfred responded. “What do you think, Flo?” Florence replied that the cowboys would, at the slightest provocation, treat Don Carlos with much less respect and gentleness than a roped steer. Old Bill Stillwell came over to hear Alfred’s questions about cowboy behavior occasionally, and he not only confirmed this but also added his own emphasis and examples.
“An’, Miss Majesty,” he concluded, “I reckon if Gene Stewart was ridin’ fer me, thet grinnin’ Greaser would hev hed a bump in the dust before now.”
“An’, Miss Majesty,” he finished, “I guess if Gene Stewart was riding for me, that grinning guy would’ve had a facefull of dirt by now.”
Madeline had been wavering between sobriety and laughter until Stillwell’s mention of his ideal of cowboy chivalry decided in favor of the laughter.
Madeline had been torn between staying serious and laughing until Stillwell’s comment about his ideal of cowboy chivalry tipped the balance towards laughter.
“I am not convinced, but I surrender,” she said. “You have only some occult motive for driving me away. I am sure that handsome Don Carlos is being unjustly suspected. But as I have seen a little of cowboys’ singular imagination and gallantry, I am rather inclined to fear their possibilities. So good-by.”
“I’m not convinced, but I give up,” she said. “You must have some hidden reason for pushing me away. I’m certain that charming Don Carlos is being unfairly accused. But having witnessed a bit of the cowboys' strange creativity and bravery, I can’t help but be a little afraid of what they’re capable of. So, goodbye.”
Then she rode with Florence up the long, gray slope to the ranch-house. That night she suffered from excessive weariness, which she attributed more to the strange working of her mind than to riding and sitting her horse. Morning, however, found her in no disposition to rest. It was not activity that she craved, or excitement, or pleasure. An unerring instinct, rising dear from the thronging sensations of the last few days, told her that she had missed something in life. It could not have been love, for she loved brother, sister, parents, friends; it could not have been consideration for the poor, the unfortunate, the hapless; she had expressed her sympathy for these by giving freely; it could not have been pleasure, culture, travel, society, wealth, position, fame, for these had been hers all her life. Whatever this something was, she had baffling intimations of it, hopes that faded on the verge of realizations, haunting promises that were unfulfilled. Whatever it was, it had remained hidden and unknown at home, and here in the West it began to allure and drive her to discovery. Therefore she could not rest; she wanted to go and see; she was no longer chasing phantoms; it was a hunt for treasure that held aloof, as intangible as the substance of dreams.
Then she rode with Florence up the long, gray slope to the ranch house. That night she felt incredibly tired, which she thought was more due to the strange things happening in her mind than from riding and sitting on her horse. However, morning found her not in the mood to rest. It wasn't activity she craved, or excitement, or pleasure. A deep instinct, rising clearly from the overwhelming sensations of the past few days, told her that she had missed something in life. It couldn't have been love, because she loved her brother, sister, parents, and friends; it wasn't about caring for the poor, the unfortunate, or the helpless; she had already shown her sympathy for them by giving generously; it wasn't about pleasure, culture, travel, society, wealth, status, or fame, since she had enjoyed all of those her whole life. Whatever this something was, she had confusing hints of it, hopes that faded just before realization, haunting promises that remained unfulfilled. Whatever it was, it had stayed hidden and unknown at home, and here in the West, it started to entice and push her towards discovering it. So she couldn't rest; she wanted to go and see; she was no longer chasing illusions; it was a treasure hunt that felt elusive, as intangible as the essence of dreams.
That morning she spoke a desire to visit the Mexican quarters lying at the base of the foothills. Florence protested that this was no place to take Madeline. But Madeline insisted, and it required only a few words and a persuading smile to win Florence over.
That morning, she expressed a wish to visit the Mexican area located at the base of the foothills. Florence argued that this wasn't a suitable place for Madeline. However, Madeline was adamant, and it took just a few words and a convincing smile to sway Florence.
From the porch the cluster of adobe houses added a picturesque touch of color and contrast to the waste of gray valley. Near at hand they proved the enchantment lent by distance. They were old, crumbling, broken down, squalid. A few goats climbed around upon them; a few mangy dogs barked announcement of visitors; and then a troop of half-naked, dirty, ragged children ran out. They were very shy, and at first retreated in affright. But kind words and smiles gained their confidence, and then they followed in a body, gathering a quota of new children at each house. Madeline at once conceived the idea of doing something to better the condition of these poor Mexicans, and with this in mind she decided to have a look indoors. She fancied she might have been an apparition, judging from the effect her presence had upon the first woman she encountered. While Florence exercised what little Spanish she had command of, trying to get the women to talk, Madeline looked about the miserable little rooms. And there grew upon her a feeling of sickness, which increased as she passed from one house to another. She had not believed such squalor could exist anywhere in America. The huts reeked with filth; vermin crawled over the dirt floors. There was absolutely no evidence of water, and she believed what Florence told her—that these people never bathed. There was little evidence of labor. Idle men and women smoking cigarettes lolled about, some silent, others jabbering. They did not resent the visit of the American women, nor did they show hospitality. They appeared stupid. Disease was rampant in these houses; when the doors were shut there was no ventilation, and even with the doors open Madeline felt choked and stifled. A powerful penetrating odor pervaded the rooms that were less stifling than others, and this odor Florence explained came from a liquor the Mexicans distilled from a cactus plant. Here drunkenness was manifest, a terrible inert drunkenness that made its victims deathlike.
From the porch, the cluster of adobe houses added a colorful and contrasting touch to the gray valley. Up close, they lost the charm that distance provided. They were old, crumbling, rundown, and filthy. A few goats climbed around on them, and some scruffy dogs barked to announce visitors; then a group of half-naked, dirty, ragged children ran out. They were very shy and initially backed away in fear. But kind words and smiles won their trust, and soon they all followed, picking up more kids at each house. Madeline immediately thought of doing something to improve the lives of these poor Mexicans, so she decided to take a look inside. She felt like she might have been a ghost, judging by the reaction of the first woman she met. While Florence used the little Spanish she knew to try to get the women talking, Madeline scanned the miserable little rooms. A feeling of sickness grew within her as she moved from one house to the next. She hadn't realized such squalor could exist anywhere in America. The huts stank of filth; bugs crawled over the dirt floors. There was no sign of water, and she believed what Florence told her—that these people never bathed. There was little sign of work. Idle men and women lounging around smoking cigarettes, some quiet, others chattering. They didn't seem to mind the visit from the American women nor did they offer any hospitality. They appeared dull-witted. Disease was widespread in these homes; when the doors were shut, there was no ventilation, and even with them open, Madeline felt suffocated. A strong, penetrating smell filled the rooms, which were less suffocating than others, and this odor, Florence explained, came from a liquor the Mexicans made from a cactus plant. Here, drunkenness was evident, a terrible, lifeless drunkenness that rendered its victims almost dead.
Madeline could not extend her visit to the little mission-house. She saw a padre, a starved, sad-faced man who, she instinctively felt, was good. She managed to mount her horse and ride up to the house; but, once there, she weakened and Florence had almost to carry her in-doors. She fought off a faintness, only to succumb to it when alone in her room. Still, she did not entirely lose consciousness, and soon recovered to the extent that she did not require assistance.
Madeline couldn’t stay at the little mission house any longer. She met a priest, a thin, sad-looking man who she felt was genuinely good. She managed to get on her horse and ride up to the house, but once she arrived, she got weak and Florence nearly had to carry her inside. She fought off feeling faint, only to give in to it when she was alone in her room. Still, she didn’t fully lose consciousness and soon got well enough that she didn’t need any help.
Upon the morning after the end of the round-up, when she went out on the porch, her brother and Stillwell appeared to be arguing about the identity of a horse.
Upon the morning after the round-up ended, when she stepped out onto the porch, her brother and Stillwell seemed to be arguing about which horse was which.
“Wal, I reckon it’s my old roan,” said Stillwell, shading his eyes with his hand.
“Well, I guess it’s my old roan,” said Stillwell, shading his eyes with his hand.
“Bill, if that isn’t Stewart’s horse my eyes are going back on me,” replied Al. “It’s not the color or shape—the distance is too far to judge by that. It’s the motion—the swing.”
“Bill, if that isn’t Stewart’s horse, my eyes are playing tricks on me,” replied Al. “It’s not the color or shape—the distance is too far to tell by that. It’s the movement—the way it swings.”
“Al, mebbe you’re right. But they ain’t no rider up on thet hoss. Flo, fetch my glass.”
“Al, maybe you’re right. But there isn’t anyone riding that horse. Flo, get me my glass.”
Florence went into the house, while Madeline tried to discover the object of attention. Presently far up the gray hollow along a foothill she saw dust, and then the dark, moving figure of a horse. She was watching when Florence returned with the glass. Bill took a long look, adjusted the glasses carefully, and tried again.
Florence went into the house while Madeline tried to figure out what everyone was looking at. Soon, far up the gray hollow along a foothill, she spotted some dust, followed by the dark, moving shape of a horse. She was still watching when Florence came back with the binoculars. Bill took a long look, carefully adjusted the binoculars, and tried again.
“Wal, I hate to admit my eyes are gettin’ pore. But I guess I’ll hev to. Thet’s Gene Stewart’s hoss, saddled, an’ comin’ at a fast clip without a rider. It’s amazin’ strange, an’ some in keepin’ with other things concernin’ Gene.”
“Well, I hate to admit my eyesight is getting worse. But I guess I’ll have to. That’s Gene Stewart’s horse, saddled, and coming at a fast pace without a rider. It’s amazingly strange, and somewhat in line with other things concerning Gene.”
“Give me the glass,” said Al. “Yes, I was right. Bill, the horse is not frightened. He’s coming steadily; he’s got something on his mind.”
“Give me the glass,” said Al. “Yes, I was right. Bill, the horse isn’t scared. He’s approaching calmly; he’s focused on something.”
“Thet’s a trained hoss, Al. He has more sense than some men I know. Take a look with the glasses up the hollow. See anybody?”
“That's a trained horse, Al. He has more sense than some guys I know. Take a look with the binoculars up the hollow. Do you see anyone?”
“No.”
“Nope.”
“Swing up over the foothills—where the trail leads. Higher—along thet ridge where the rocks begin. See anybody?”
“Swing up over the foothills—where the trail leads. Higher—along the ridge where the rocks start. Do you see anyone?”
“By Jove! Bill—two horses! But I can’t make out much for dust. They are climbing fast. One horse gone among the rocks. There—the other’s gone. What do you make of that?”
“Wow! Bill—two horses! But I can’t see much because of the dust. They’re moving up quickly. One horse is lost in the rocks. There—the other one’s gone. What do you think about that?”
“Wal, I can’t make no more ’n you. But I’ll bet we know somethin’ soon, fer Gene’s hoss is comin’ faster as he nears the ranch.”
"Well, I can't do any more than you. But I bet we'll know something soon, because Gene's horse is coming faster as he gets closer to the ranch."
The wide hollow sloping up into the foothills lay open to unobstructed view, and less than half a mile distant Madeline saw the riderless horse coming along the white trail at a rapid canter. She watched him, recalling the circumstances under which she had first seen him, and then his wild flight through the dimly lighted streets of El Cajon out into the black night. She thrilled again and believed she would never think of that starry night’s adventure without a thrill. She watched the horse and felt more than curiosity. A shrill, piercing whistle pealed in.
The wide hollow sloping up into the foothills was completely visible, and less than half a mile away, Madeline noticed the riderless horse coming down the white trail at a fast canter. She observed it, remembering the circumstances of when she first saw it, and then its wild dash through the dimly lit streets of El Cajon and into the dark night. She felt a rush again and knew she would never think of that starry night’s adventure without feeling excited. She watched the horse and felt more than just curiosity. A sharp, piercing whistle cut through the air.
“Wal, he’s seen us, thet’s sure,” said Bill.
“Well, he’s seen us, that’s for sure,” said Bill.
The horse neared the corrals, disappeared into a lane, and then, breaking his gait again, thundered into the inclosure and pounded to a halt some twenty yards from where Stillwell waited for him.
The horse approached the pens, vanished down a path, and then, changing his pace again, charged into the enclosure and skidded to a stop about twenty yards from where Stillwell was waiting for him.
One look at him at close range in the clear light of day was enough for Madeline to award him a blue ribbon over all horses, even her prize-winner, White Stockings. The cowboy’s great steed was no lithe, slender-bodied mustang. He was a charger, almost tremendous of build, with a black coat faintly mottled in gray, and it shone like polished glass in the sun. Evidently he had been carefully dressed down for this occasion, for there was no dust on him, nor a kink in his beautiful mane, nor a mark on his glossy hide.
One look at him up close in the bright light of day was enough for Madeline to give him a blue ribbon over all the horses, even her prize-winner, White Stockings. The cowboy's amazing horse wasn’t a lean, slender mustang. He was a massive charger, almost huge in size, with a black coat faintly speckled with gray, and it shone like polished glass in the sun. Clearly, he had been groomed meticulously for this occasion, as there was no dust on him, no tangles in his beautiful mane, and no blemishes on his shiny coat.
“Come hyar, you son-of-a-gun,” said Stillwell.
“Come here, you son of a gun,” said Stillwell.
The horse dropped his head, snorted, and came obediently up. He was neither shy nor wild. He poked a friendly nose at Stillwell, and then looked at Al and the women. Unhooking the stirrups from the pommel, Stillwell let them fall and began to search the saddle for something which he evidently expected to find. Presently from somewhere among the trappings he produced a folded bit of paper, and after scrutinizing it handed it to Al.
The horse lowered his head, snorted, and came up without hesitation. He wasn’t skittish or unruly. He nudged Stillwell with a friendly nose, then turned to Al and the women. Stillwell unclipped the stirrups from the saddle and let them drop as he started searching for something in the saddle. Soon, he pulled out a folded piece of paper from among the gear, examined it closely, and then handed it to Al.
“Addressed to you; an’ I’ll bet you two bits I know what’s in it,” he said.
“Addressed to you; and I’ll bet you two bits I know what’s in it,” he said.
Alfred unfolded the letter, read it, and then looked at Stillwell.
Alfred opened the letter, read it, and then glanced at Stillwell.
“Bill, you’re a pretty good guesser. Gene’s made for the border. He sent the horse by somebody, no names mentioned, and wants my sister to have him if she will accept.”
“Bill, you’re a pretty good guesser. Gene’s meant for the border. He sent the horse with someone, not mentioning any names, and wants my sister to take him if she’s willing.”
“Any mention of Danny Mains?” asked the rancher.
“Any word on Danny Mains?” asked the rancher.
“Not a word.”
“Not a word.”
“Thet’s bad. Gene’d know about Danny if anybody did. But he’s a close-mouthed cuss. So he’s sure hittin’ for Mexico. Wonder if Danny’s goin’, too? Wal, there’s two of the best cowmen I ever seen gone to hell an’ I’m sorry.”
“Thet’s bad. Gene would know about Danny if anyone did. But he’s a secretive guy. So he’s definitely headed for Mexico. I wonder if Danny’s going too? Well, there are two of the best cowboys I’ve ever seen gone to hell, and I’m sorry.”
With that he bowed his head and, grumbling to himself, went into the house. Alfred lifted the reins over the head of the horse and, leading him to Madeline, slipped the knot over her arm and placed the letter in her hand.
With that, he lowered his head and, muttering to himself, walked into the house. Alfred lifted the reins over the horse’s head and, guiding him to Madeline, slipped the knot over her arm and handed her the letter.
“Majesty, I’d accept the horse,” he said. “Stewart is only a cowboy now, and as tough as any I’ve known. But he comes of a good family. He was a college man and a gentleman once. He went to the bad out here, like so many fellows go, like I nearly did. Then he had told me about his sister and mother. He cared a good deal for them. I think he has been a source of unhappiness to them. It was mostly when he was reminded of this in some way that he’d get drunk. I have always stuck to him, and I would do so yet if I had the chance. You can see Bill is heartbroken about Danny Mains and Stewart. I think he rather hoped to get good news. There’s not much chance of them coming back now, at least not in the case of Stewart. This giving up his horse means he’s going to join the rebel forces across the border. What wouldn’t I give to see that cowboy break loose on a bunch of Greasers! Oh, damn the luck! I beg your pardon, Majesty. But I’m upset, too. I’m sorry about Stewart. I liked him pretty well before he thrashed that coyote of a sheriff, Pat Hawe, and afterward I guess I liked him more. You read the letter, sister, and accept the horse.”
“Your Majesty, I’ll take the horse,” he said. “Stewart is just a rancher now, and tougher than anyone I’ve met. But he comes from a good family. He was a college guy and a gentleman once. He went downhill out here, like so many guys do, like I almost did. Then he told me about his sister and mother. He cared a lot about them. I think he has caused them some pain. It was mostly when he was reminded of this that he’d get drunk. I’ve always stood by him, and I’d still do it if I had the chance. You can see Bill is heartbroken about Danny Mains and Stewart. I think he really hoped for some good news. There’s not much chance of them coming back now, at least not for Stewart. Him giving up his horse means he’s going to join the rebel forces across the border. What I wouldn’t give to see that rancher take on a bunch of Greasers! Oh, damn the luck! I’m sorry, Your Majesty. But I’m upset, too. I feel sorry for Stewart. I liked him pretty well before he beat that lowlife sheriff, Pat Hawe, and afterward, I think I liked him even more. You read the letter, sister, and take the horse.”
In silence Madeline bent her gaze from her brother’s face to the letter:
In silence, Madeline turned her glance from her brother’s face to the letter:
Friend Al,—I’m sending my horse down to you because I’m going away and haven’t the nerve to take him where he’d get hurt or fall into strange hands.
Friend Al,—I’m sending my horse to you because I'm leaving and don’t have the guts to take him somewhere he might get hurt or end up with someone I don’t trust.
If you think it’s all right, why, give him to your sister with my respects. But if you don’t like the idea, Al, or if she won’t have him, then he’s for you. I’m not forgetting your kindness to me, even if I never showed it. And, Al, my horse has never felt a quirt or a spur, and I’d like to think you’d never hurt him. I’m hoping your sister will take him. She’ll be good to him, and she can afford to take care of him. And, while I’m waiting to be plugged by a Greaser bullet, if I happen to have a picture in mind of how she’ll look upon my horse, why, man, it’s not going to make any difference to you. She needn’t ever know it. Between you and me, Al, don’t let her or Flo ride alone over Don Carlos’s way. If I had time I could tell you something about that slick Greaser. And tell your sister, if there’s ever any reason for her to run away from anybody when she’s up on that roan, just let her lean over and yell in his ear. She’ll find herself riding the wind. So long.
If you think it’s a good idea, go ahead and give him to your sister with my respects. But if you’re not feeling it, Al, or if she doesn’t want him, then he’s all yours. I haven’t forgotten your kindness to me, even if I never showed it. And, Al, my horse has never felt a whip or a spur, and I’d like to believe you’d never hurt him. I’m hoping your sister will take him. She’ll treat him well, and she can afford to care for him. And while I’m just waiting to get shot by a Greaser, if I imagine how she’ll look on my horse, well, it’s not going to matter to you. She doesn’t need to know about it. Between you and me, Al, don’t let her or Flo ride alone over Don Carlos’s way. If I had more time, I could tell you a thing or two about that smooth Greaser. And tell your sister that if she ever needs to get away from someone while she’s on that roan, just let her lean over and yell in his ear. She’ll feel like she’s flying. Take care.
Gene Stewart.
Gene Stewart.
Madeline thoughtfully folded the letter and murmured, “How he must love his horse!”
Madeline carefully folded the letter and said to herself, “He must really love his horse!”
“Well, I should say so,” replied Alfred. “Flo will tell you. She’s the only person Gene ever let ride that horse, unless, as Bill thinks, the little Mexican girl, Bonita, rode him out of El Cajon the other night. Well, sister mine, how about it—will you accept the horse?”
“Well, I definitely think so,” replied Alfred. “Flo will confirm it. She’s the only person Gene ever let ride that horse, unless, as Bill believes, the little Mexican girl, Bonita, took him out of El Cajon the other night. So, sister mine, what do you say—will you take the horse?”
“Assuredly. And very happy indeed am I to get him. Al, you said, I think, that Mr. Stewart named him after me—saw my nickname in the New York paper?”
“Absolutely. I'm really glad to have him. Al, if I remember correctly, you mentioned that Mr. Stewart named him after me—he saw my nickname in the New York paper?”
“Yes.”
“Yes.”
“Well, I will not change his name. But, Al, how shall I ever climb up on him? He’s taller than I am. What a giant of a horse! Oh, look at him—he’s nosing my hand. I really believe he understood what I said. Al, did you ever see such a splendid head and such beautiful eyes? They are so large and dark and soft—and human. Oh, I am a fickle woman, for I am forgetting White Stockings.”
“Well, I’m not changing his name. But, Al, how am I ever going to get on him? He’s taller than me. What a giant of a horse! Oh, look at him—he’s nudging my hand. I honestly think he understood what I said. Al, have you ever seen such a magnificent head and such beautiful eyes? They’re so big and dark and soft—and almost human. Oh, I’m so fickle, because I’m forgetting about White Stockings.”
“I’ll gamble he’ll make you forget any other horse,” said Alfred. “You’ll have to get on him from the porch.”
“I bet he’ll make you forget all the other horses,” said Alfred. “You’ll need to get on him from the porch.”
As Madeline was not dressed for the saddle, she did not attempt to mount.
As Madeline wasn't dressed for riding, she didn't try to get on the horse.
“Come, Majesty—how strange that sounds!—we must get acquainted. You have now a new owner, a very severe young woman who will demand loyalty from you and obedience, and some day, after a decent period, she will expect love.”
“Come, Your Majesty—how strange that sounds!—we need to get to know each other. You now have a new owner, a very strict young woman who will require your loyalty and obedience, and someday, after a reasonable amount of time, she will expect your love.”
Madeline led the horse to and fro, and was delighted with his gentleness. She discovered that he did not need to be led. He came at her call, followed her like a pet dog, rubbed his black muzzle against her. Sometimes, at the turns in their walk, he lifted his head and with ears forward looked up the trail by which he had come, and beyond the foothills. He was looking over the range. Some one was calling to him, perhaps, from beyond the mountains. Madeline liked him the better for that memory, and pitied the wayward cowboy who had parted with his only possession for very love of it.
Madeline walked the horse back and forth, thrilled by how gentle he was. She soon realized he didn't need to be led. He came when she called, followed her like a pet dog, and nuzzled her with his black muzzle. Sometimes, during their stroll, he would lift his head and, with his ears perked up, gaze up the trail he had come from, looking past the foothills. He seemed to be listening for someone calling him from beyond the mountains. Madeline appreciated him even more for that connection and felt sympathy for the wandering cowboy who had given up his only possession out of love for it.
That afternoon when Alfred lifted Madeline to the back of the big roan she felt high in the air.
That afternoon when Alfred helped Madeline onto the back of the big roan, she felt like she was up in the air.
“We’ll have a run out to the mesa,” said her brother, as he mounted. “Keep a tight rein on him and ease up when you want him to go faster. But don’t yell in his ear unless you want Florence and me to see you disappear on the horizon.”
“We’ll take a ride out to the mesa,” her brother said as he got on his horse. “Hold the reins tight and pull back when you want him to speed up. But don’t shout in his ear unless you want Florence and me to watch you vanish into the distance.”
He trotted out of the yard, down by the corrals, to come out on the edge of a gray, open flat that stretched several miles to the slope of a mesa. Florence led, and Madeline saw that she rode like a cowboy. Alfred drew on to her side, leaving Madeline in the rear. Then the leading horses broke into a gallop. They wanted to run, and Madeline felt with a thrill that she would hardly be able to keep Majesty from running, even if she wanted to. He sawed on the tight bridle as the others drew away and broke from pace to gallop. Then Florence put her horse into a run. Alfred turned and called to Madeline to come along.
He trotted out of the yard, down by the corrals, and ended up on the edge of a gray, open flat that stretched for miles to the slope of a mesa. Florence led the way, and Madeline noticed that she rode like a cowboy. Alfred rode up beside her, leaving Madeline behind. Then the leading horses took off into a gallop. They wanted to run, and Madeline felt a thrill at the thought that she would hardly be able to stop Majesty from taking off, even if she wished to. He pulled against the tight bridle as the others sped ahead and broke into a gallop. Then Florence kicked her horse into a run. Alfred turned and called to Madeline to join them.
“This will never do. They are running away from us,” said Madeline, and she eased up her hold on the bridle. Something happened beneath her just then; she did not know at first exactly what. As much as she had been on horseback she had never ridden at a running gait. In New York it was not decorous or safe. So when Majesty lowered and stretched and changed the stiff, jolting gallop for a wonderful, smooth, gliding run it required Madeline some moments to realize what was happening. It did not take long for her to see the distance diminishing between her and her companions. Still they had gotten a goodly start and were far advanced. She felt the steady, even rush of the wind. It amazed her to find how easily, comfortably she kept to the saddle. The experience was new. The one fault she had heretofore found with riding was the violent shaking-up. In this instance she experienced nothing of that kind, no strain, no necessity to hold on with a desperate awareness of work. She had never felt the wind in her face, the whip of a horse’s mane, the buoyant, level spring of a tanning gait. It thrilled her, exhilarated her, fired her blood. Suddenly she found herself alive, throbbing; and, inspired by she knew not what, she loosened the bridle and, leaning far forward, she cried, “Oh, you splendid fellow, run!”
“This won’t do. They’re getting away from us,” said Madeline as she relaxed her grip on the bridle. Something unexpected happened beneath her at that moment; she wasn’t sure what it was at first. Despite all her time on horseback, she had never ridden at a full gallop. In New York, it wasn't proper or safe. So when Majesty lowered, stretched, and switched from a rough, jarring gallop to a smooth, gliding run, it took Madeline a moment to realize what was going on. It didn’t take long for her to notice the distance closing between her and her friends. Still, they had gotten quite a head start and were far ahead. She felt the steady rush of the wind. It amazed her how easily and comfortably she stayed in the saddle. This was a new experience. The one issue she had always found with riding was the violent bumping around. In this case, she felt nothing like that—no strain, no need to cling on desperately. She had never experienced the wind in her face, the whip of a horse’s mane, the buoyant, steady spring of a galloping gait. It thrilled her, exhilarated her, set her heart racing. Suddenly, she felt alive and pulsating; inspired by something she couldn’t identify, she loosened the bridle and, leaning far forward, shouted, “Oh, you magnificent beast, run!”
She heard from under her a sudden quick clattering roar of hoofs, and she swayed back with the wonderfully swift increase in Majesty’s speed. The wind stung her face, howled in her ears, tore at her hair. The gray plain swept by on each side, and in front seemed to be waving toward her. In her blurred sight Florence and Alfred appeared to be coming back. But she saw presently, upon nearer view, that Majesty was overhauling the other horses, was going to pass them. Indeed, he did pass them, shooting by so as almost to make them appear standing still. And he ran on, not breaking his gait till he reached the steep side of the mesa, where he slowed down and stopped.
She suddenly heard a rapid clattering sound of hooves beneath her, and she leaned back as Majesty sped up incredibly fast. The wind stung her face, howled in her ears, and whipped at her hair. The gray plain raced by on either side, and in front, it seemed to be waving at her. In her blurry vision, Florence and Alfred appeared to be coming back. But as she looked closer, she realized Majesty was catching up to the other horses and was about to pass them. And he did pass them, zooming by so quickly that they looked like they were standing still. He kept running without slowing down until he reached the steep slope of the mesa, where he finally slowed down and stopped.
“Glorious!” exclaimed Madeline. She was all in a blaze, and every muscle and nerve of her body tingled and quivered. Her hands, as she endeavored to put up the loosened strands of hair, trembled and failed of their accustomed dexterity. Then she faced about and waited for her companions.
“Awesome!” exclaimed Madeline. She was completely fired up, and every muscle and nerve in her body tingled and shook. Her hands, as she tried to fix the loose strands of hair, trembled and lost their usual skill. Then she turned around and waited for her friends.
Alfred reached her first, laughing, delighted, yet also a little anxious.
Alfred got to her first, laughing, excited, but also a bit nervous.
“Holy smoke! But can’t he run? Did he bolt on you?”
“Wow! Can’t he run? Did he take off on you?”
“No, I called in his ear,” replied Madeline.
“No, I whispered in his ear,” replied Madeline.
“So that was it. That’s the woman of you, and forbidden fruit. Flo said she’d do it the minute she was on him. Majesty, you can ride. See if Flo doesn’t say so.”
“So that was it. That’s the woman you are, and the forbidden fruit. Flo said she’d do it the minute she was on him. Majesty, you can ride. Let’s see if Flo doesn’t say so.”
The Western girl came up then with her pleasure bright in her face.
The Western girl approached, her face glowing with delight.
“It was just great to see you. How your hair burned in the wind! Al, she sure can ride. Oh, I’m so glad! I was a little afraid. And that horse! Isn’t he grand? Can’t he run?”
“It was so great to see you. Your hair looked amazing in the wind! Al, she can really ride. Oh, I’m so happy! I was a bit nervous. And that horse! Isn’t he impressive? Can’t he sprint?”
Alfred led the way up the steep, zigzag trail to the top of the mesa. Madeline saw a beautiful flat surface of short grass, level as a floor. She uttered a little cry of wonder and enthusiasm.
Alfred took the lead up the steep, winding trail to the top of the mesa. Madeline spotted a stunning flat area covered in short grass, perfectly level. She let out a small gasp of awe and excitement.
“Al, what a place for golf! This would be the finest links in the world.”
“Al, what an amazing place for golf! This could be the best course in the world.”
“Well, I’ve thought of that myself,” he replied. “The only trouble would be—could anybody stop looking at the scenery long enough to hit a ball? Majesty, look!”
“Well, I’ve thought of that myself,” he replied. “The only problem would be—would anyone be able to stop looking at the scenery long enough to hit a ball? Wow, look!”
And then it seemed that Madeline was confronted by a spectacle too sublime and terrible for her gaze. The immensity of this red-ridged, deep-gulfed world descending incalculable distances refused to be grasped, and awed her, shocked her.
And then it felt like Madeline was faced with a scene so stunning and frightening that she couldn't look directly at it. The vastness of this red-striped, deep-chasmed world stretching endlessly downward was beyond her comprehension, leaving her in awe and shock.
“Once, Majesty, when I first came out West, I was down and out—determined to end it all,” said Alfred. “And happened to climb up here looking for a lonely place to die. When I saw that I changed my mind.”
“Once, Your Majesty, when I first came out West, I was at my lowest point—set on ending it all,” said Alfred. “I just happened to climb up here looking for a quiet place to die. When I saw that, I changed my mind.”
Madeline was silent. She remained so during the ride around the rim of the mesa and down the steep trail. This time Alfred and Florence failed to tempt her into a race. She had been awe-struck; she had been exalted she had been confounded; and she recovered slowly without divining exactly what had come to her.
Madeline was quiet. She stayed that way during the ride around the edge of the mesa and down the steep trail. This time, Alfred and Florence couldn’t get her to join a race. She had felt amazed; she had felt uplifted; she had felt puzzled; and she slowly started to recover without really understanding what had happened to her.
She reached the ranch-house far behind her companions, and at supper-time was unusually thoughtful. Later, when they assembled on the porch to watch the sunset, Stillwell’s humorous complainings inspired the inception of an idea which flashed up in her mind swift as lightning. And then by listening sympathetically she encouraged him to recite the troubles of a poor cattleman. They were many and long and interesting, and rather numbing to the life of her inspired idea.
She arrived at the ranch house well behind her friends and was unusually quiet at dinner. Later, when they gathered on the porch to watch the sunset, Stillwell’s witty complaints sparked an idea that hit her like a bolt of lightning. By listening closely, she prompted him to share the struggles of a poor cattleman. His stories were numerous, lengthy, and intriguing, but they also dulled the energy of her bright idea.
“Mr. Stillwell, could ranching here on a large scale, with up-to-date methods, be made—well, not profitable, exactly, but to pay—to run without loss?” she asked, determined to kill her new-born idea at birth or else give it breath and hope of life.
“Mr. Stillwell, could ranching here on a large scale, with modern methods, be made—not profitable, exactly, but to pay—to run without losing money?” she asked, determined to either squash her new idea at its inception or give it a chance to thrive.
“Wal, I reckon it could,” he replied, with a short laugh. “It’d sure be a money-maker. Why, with all my bad luck an’ poor equipment I’ve lived pretty well an’ paid my debts an’ haven’t really lost any money except the original outlay. I reckon thet’s sunk fer good.”
“Yeah, I guess it could,” he said with a quick laugh. “It would definitely be profitable. I mean, with all my bad luck and lousy equipment, I’ve done pretty well, paid my debts, and haven’t really lost any money except for the initial investment. I guess that’s gone for good.”
“Would you sell—if some one would pay your price?”
“Would you sell it—if someone would pay your price?”
“Miss Majesty, I’d jump at the chance. Yet somehow I’d hate to leave hyar. I’d jest be fool enough to go sink the money in another ranch.”
“Miss Majesty, I’d love the opportunity. Yet somehow I’d hate to leave here. I’d just be foolish enough to go throw the money into another ranch.”
“Would Don Carlos and these other Mexicans sell?”
“Would Don Carlos and these other Mexicans sell?”
“They sure would. The Don has been after me fer years, wantin’ to sell thet old rancho of his; an’ these herders in the valley with their stray cattle, they’d fall daid at sight of a little money.”
“They definitely would. The Don has been trying to get me to sell that old ranch of his for years, and those herders in the valley with their stray cattle would be dead at the sight of some cash.”
“Please tell me, Mr. Stillwell, exactly what you would do here if you had unlimited means?” went on Madeline.
“Please tell me, Mr. Stillwell, exactly what you would do here if you had unlimited resources?” Madeline continued.
“Good Lud!” ejaculated the rancher, and started so he dropped his pipe. Then with his clumsy huge fingers he refilled it, relighted it, took a few long pulls, puffed great clouds of smoke, and, squaring round, hands on his knees, he looked at Madeline with piercing intentness. His hard face began to relax and soften and wrinkle into a smile.
“Good Lord!” exclaimed the rancher, starting so suddenly that he dropped his pipe. Then, with his big, clumsy fingers, he refilled it, lit it again, took a few deep puffs, puffed out big clouds of smoke, and, turning to face Madeline with his hands on his knees, he looked at her with intense focus. His tough face began to ease up and soften, crinkling into a smile.
“Wal, Miss Majesty, it jest makes my old heart warm up to think of sich a thing. I dreamed a lot when I first come hyar. What would I do if I hed unlimited money? Listen. I’d buy out Don Carlos an’ the Greasers. I’d give a job to every good cowman in this country. I’d make them prosper as I prospered myself. I’d buy all the good horses on the ranges. I’d fence twenty thousand acres of the best grazin’. I’d drill fer water in the valley. I’d pipe water down from the mountains. I’d dam up that draw out there. A mile-long dam from hill to hill would give me a big lake, an’ hevin’ an eye fer beauty, I’d plant cottonwoods around it. I’d fill that lake full of fish. I’d put in the biggest field of alfalfa in the Southwest. I’d plant fruit-trees an’ garden. I’d tear down them old corrals an’ barns an’ bunk-houses to build new ones. I’d make this old rancho some comfortable an’ fine. I’d put in grass an’ flowers all around an’ bring young pine-trees down from the mountains. An’ when all thet was done I’d sit in my chair an’ smoke an’ watch the cattle stringin’ in fer water an’ stragglin’ back into the valley. An’ I see the cowboys ridin’ easy an’ heah them singin’ in their bunks. An’ thet red sun out there wouldn’t set on a happier man in the world than Bill Stillwell, last of the old cattlemen.”
“Wow, Miss Majesty, it just makes my heart warm to think about something like this. I had a lot of dreams when I first got here. What would I do if I had unlimited money? Listen. I’d buy out Don Carlos and the Greasers. I’d give a job to every good cowboy in this country. I’d help them thrive just like I thrived. I’d buy all the best horses on the ranges. I’d fence off twenty thousand acres of the best grazing land. I’d drill for water in the valley. I’d pipe water down from the mountains. I’d dam up that creek out there. A mile-long dam from hill to hill would create a big lake, and having an eye for beauty, I’d plant cottonwoods around it. I’d fill that lake with fish. I’d create the biggest field of alfalfa in the Southwest. I’d plant fruit trees and a garden. I’d tear down those old corrals, barns, and bunkhouses to build new ones. I’d make this old ranch comfortable and beautiful. I’d add grass and flowers all around and bring young pine trees down from the mountains. And when all that was done, I’d sit in my chair, smoke, and watch the cattle come in for water and wander back into the valley. I’d see the cowboys riding easily and hear them singing in their bunks. And that red sun out there wouldn’t set on a happier man in the world than Bill Stillwell, the last of the old cattlemen.”
Madeline thanked the rancher, and then rather abruptly retired to her room, where she felt no restraint to hide the force of that wonderful idea, now full-grown and tenacious and alluring.
Madeline thanked the rancher and then abruptly went to her room, where she felt no need to hide the strength of that amazing idea, now fully developed, persistent, and captivating.
Upon the next day, late in the afternoon, she asked Alfred if it would be safe for her to ride out to the mesa.
The next day, late in the afternoon, she asked Alfred if it would be safe for her to ride out to the mesa.
“I’ll go with you,” he said, gaily.
"I'll go with you," he said cheerfully.
“Dear fellow, I want to go alone,” she replied.
“Hey, I want to go by myself,” she replied.
“Ah!” Alfred exclaimed, suddenly serious. He gave her just a quick glance, then turned away. “Go ahead. I think it’s safe. I’ll make it safe by sitting here with my glass and keeping an eye on you. Be careful coming down the trail. Let the horse pick his way. That’s all.”
“Ah!” Alfred said, suddenly serious. He glanced at her quickly, then turned away. “Go ahead. I think it’s safe. I’ll make sure it is by sitting here with my drink and watching you. Be careful coming down the trail. Let the horse find his way. That’s it.”
She rode Majesty across the wide flat, up the zigzag trail, across the beautiful grassy level to the far rim of the mesa, and not till then did she lift her eyes to face the southwest.
She rode Majesty across the wide flat, up the winding trail, across the beautiful grassy area to the far edge of the mesa, and only then did she lift her eyes to look to the southwest.
Madeline looked from the gray valley at her feet to the blue Sierra Madres, gold-tipped in the setting sun. Her vision embraced in that glance distance and depth and glory hitherto unrevealed to her. The gray valley sloped and widened to the black sentinel Chiricahuas, and beyond was lost in a vast corrugated sweep of earth, reddening down to the west, where a golden blaze lifted the dark, rugged mountains into bold relief. The scene had infinite beauty. But after Madeline’s first swift, all-embracing flash of enraptured eyes, thought of beauty passed away. In that darkening desert there was something illimitable. Madeline saw the hollow of a stupendous hand; she felt a mighty hold upon her heart. Out of the endless space, out of silence and desolation and mystery and age, came slow-changing colored shadows, phantoms of peace, and they whispered to Madeline. They whispered that it was a great, grim, immutable earth; that time was eternity; that life was fleeting. They whispered for her to be a woman; to love some one before it was too late; to love any one, every one; to realize the need of work, and in doing it to find happiness.
Madeline looked from the gray valley at her feet to the blue Sierra Madres, highlighted by the setting sun. In that moment, she took in a view that revealed distances, depths, and beauties she had never seen before. The gray valley sloped and widened towards the dark, towering Chiricahuas, disappearing into a vast expanse of land that turned red in the west, where a golden glow illuminated the rugged mountains. The scene was incredibly beautiful. But after Madeline's initial, all-encompassing gaze of wonder, thoughts of beauty faded. In that darkening desert, there was something boundless. Madeline saw the curve of a colossal hand; she felt a powerful grip on her heart. From the endless space, filled with silence, desolation, mystery, and age, came slowly shifting colored shadows, phantoms of peace, whispering to Madeline. They whispered that it was a vast, harsh, unchangeable earth; that time was eternal; that life was short. They urged her to be a woman; to love someone before it was too late; to love anyone, everyone; to understand the importance of work, and in doing so, to find happiness.
She rode back across the mesa and down the trail, and, once more upon the flat, she called to the horse and made him run. His spirit seemed to race with hers. The wind of his speed blew her hair from its fastenings. When he thundered to a halt at the porch steps Madeline, breathless and disheveled, alighted with the mass of her hair tumbling around her.
She rode back across the mesa and down the trail, and once back on the flat, she called to the horse and made him run. His spirit seemed to match hers. The rush of his speed blew her hair loose from its clips. When he came to a thunderous stop at the porch steps, Madeline, out of breath and messy, got off with her hair falling around her.
Alfred met her, and his exclamation, and Florence’s rapt eyes shining on her face, and Stillwell’s speechlessness made her self-conscious. Laughing, she tried to put up the mass of hair.
Alfred met her, and his exclamation, along with Florence’s bright eyes lighting up her face, and Stillwell’s silence made her feel self-conscious. Laughing, she attempted to fix her thick hair.
“I must—look a—fright,” she panted.
"I must—look a—mess," she panted.
“Wal, you can say what you like,” replied the old cattleman, “but I know what I think.”
“Well, you can say whatever you want,” replied the old cattleman, “but I know what I believe.”
Madeline strove to attain calmness.
Madeline worked to achieve calm.
“My hat—and my combs—went on the wind. I thought my hair would go, too.... There is the evening star.... I think I am very hungry.”
“My hat—and my combs—went flying in the wind. I thought my hair would blow away, too.... There’s the evening star.... I think I’m really hungry.”
And then she gave up trying to be calm, and likewise to fasten up her hair, which fell again in a golden mass.
And then she stopped trying to stay calm, and also gave up on tying up her hair, which fell loose again in a golden bunch.
“Mr. Stillwell,” she began, and paused, strangely aware of a hurried note, a deeper ring in her voice. “Mr. Stillwell, I want to buy your ranch—to engage you as my superintendent. I want to buy Don Carlos’s ranch and other property to the extent, say, of fifty thousand acres. I want you to buy horses and cattle—in short, to make all those improvements which you said you had so long dreamed of. Then I have ideas of my own, in the development of which I must have your advice and Alfred’s. I intend to better the condition of those poor Mexicans in the valley. I intend to make life a little more worth living for them and for the cowboys of this range. To-morrow we shall talk it all over, plan all the business details.”
“Mr. Stillwell,” she started, pausing, oddly aware of a hurried tone, a deeper resonance in her voice. “Mr. Stillwell, I want to buy your ranch—to hire you as my manager. I want to purchase Don Carlos’s ranch and other land, up to about fifty thousand acres. I need you to buy horses and cattle—in short, to make all those improvements you’ve dreamed about for so long. Then I have my own ideas that I’ll need your and Alfred’s advice on. I want to improve the lives of those poor Mexicans in the valley. I aim to make life a bit more livable for them and for the cowboys on this range. Tomorrow we’ll go over everything and plan all the business details.”
Madeline turned from the huge, ever-widening smile that beamed down upon her and held out her hands to her brother.
Madeline turned from the huge, ever-widening smile that beamed down at her and reached out her hands to her brother.
“Alfred, strange, is it not, my coming out to you? Nay, don’t smile. I hope I have found myself—my work—my happiness—here under the light of that western star.”
“Alfred, isn't it odd, my coming out to you? No, don’t smile. I hope I’ve found myself—my work—my happiness—here under the light of that western star.”
VII. Her Majesty’s Rancho
FIVE months brought all that Stillwell had dreamed of, and so many more changes and improvements and innovations that it was as if a magic touch had transformed the old ranch. Madeline and Alfred and Florence had talked over a fitting name, and had decided on one chosen by Madeline. But this instance was the only one in the course of developments in which Madeline’s wishes were not compiled with. The cowboys named the new ranch “Her Majesty’s Rancho.” Stillwell said the names cowboys bestowed were felicitous, and as unchangeable as the everlasting hills; Florence went over to the enemy; and Alfred, laughing at Madeline’s protest, declared the cowboys had elected her queen of the ranges, and that there was no help for it. So the name stood “Her Majesty’s Rancho.”
FIVE months brought everything Stillwell had dreamed of, along with so many changes, improvements, and innovations that it felt like a magic touch had transformed the old ranch. Madeline, Alfred, and Florence had discussed a fitting name and settled on one suggested by Madeline. However, this was the only time during the changes that Madeline’s wishes weren’t followed. The cowboys named the new ranch “Her Majesty’s Rancho.” Stillwell said the names given by the cowboys were fitting and as unchangeable as the everlasting hills; Florence sided with the cowboys; and Alfred, laughing at Madeline’s objections, declared that the cowboys had made her queen of the ranges, and there was no changing it. So the name remained “Her Majesty’s Rancho.”
The April sun shone down upon a slow-rising green knoll that nestled in the lee of the foothills, and seemed to center bright rays upon the long ranch-house, which gleamed snow-white from the level summit. The grounds around the house bore no semblance to Eastern lawns or parks; there had been no landscape-gardening; Stillwell had just brought water and grass and flowers and plants to the knoll-top, and there had left them, as it were, to follow nature. His idea may have been crude, but the result was beautiful. Under that hot sun and balmy air, with cool water daily soaking into the rich soil, a green covering sprang into life, and everywhere upon it, as if by magic, many colored flowers rose in the sweet air. Pale wild flowers, lavender daisies, fragile bluebells, white four-petaled lilies like Eastern mayflowers, and golden poppies, deep sunset gold, color of the West, bloomed in happy confusion. California roses, crimson as blood, nodded heavy heads and trembled with the weight of bees. Low down in bare places, isolated, open to the full power of the sun, blazed the vermilion and magenta blossoms of cactus plants.
The April sun shone down on a gently rising green hill that sat in the shelter of the foothills, focusing bright rays on the long ranch house, which gleamed bright white from the flat top. The grounds around the house didn’t resemble Eastern lawns or parks; there was no landscaping; Stillwell had simply brought water, grass, flowers, and plants to the top of the hill and let them be, so to speak, to follow nature. His approach might have been simplistic, but the outcome was beautiful. Under that hot sun and pleasant air, with cool water soaking daily into the rich soil, a green cover sprang to life, and everywhere, as if by magic, colorful flowers bloomed in the sweet air. Pale wildflowers, lavender daisies, delicate bluebells, white four-petaled lilies like Eastern mayflowers, and golden poppies, deep sunset gold, the color of the West, blossomed in joyful disarray. California roses, deep red, nodded heavy heads and quivered under the weight of bees. Down in bare spots, exposed to the full force of the sun, the bright red and magenta blossoms of cactus plants shone fiercely.
Green slopes led all the way down to where new adobe barns and sheds had been erected, and wide corrals stretched high-barred fences down to the great squares of alfalfa gently inclining to the gray of the valley. The bottom of a dammed-up hollow shone brightly with its slowly increasing acreage of water, upon which thousands of migratory wildfowl whirred and splashed and squawked, as if reluctant to leave this cool, wet surprise so new in the long desert journey to the northland. Quarters for the cowboys—comfortable, roomy adobe houses that not even the lamest cowboy dared describe as crampy bunks—stood in a row upon a long bench of ground above the lake. And down to the edge of the valley the cluster of Mexican habitations and the little church showed the touch of the same renewing hand.
Green hills sloped down to where new adobe barns and sheds had been built, and wide corrals extended with tall fences leading to large patches of alfalfa that gently sloped toward the gray valley. The bottom of a dammed-up hollow sparkled with its gradually expanding body of water, where thousands of migratory birds whirred, splashed, and squawked, as if hesitant to leave this cool, wet surprise so new in their long desert trek to the north. Cowboy quarters—comfortable, spacious adobe houses that even the least ambitious cowboy wouldn't dare call cramped—lined up on a long stretch of ground above the lake. And down to the edge of the valley, the cluster of Mexican homes and the small church reflected the same revitalizing influence.
All that had been left of the old Spanish house which had been Stillwell’s home for so long was the bare, massive structure, and some of this had been cut away for new doors and windows. Every modern convenience, even to hot and cold running water and acetylene light, had been installed; and the whole interior painted and carpentered and furnished. The ideal sought had not been luxury, but comfort. Every door into the patio looked out upon dark, rich grass and sweet-faced flowers, and every window looked down the green slopes.
All that remained of the old Spanish house that had been Stillwell’s home for so long was the bare, massive structure, and some parts had been cut away for new doors and windows. Every modern convenience, including hot and cold running water and acetylene lighting, had been installed; and the entire interior had been painted, renovated, and furnished. The goal wasn’t luxury, but comfort. Every door leading to the patio opened up to dark, lush grass and blooming flowers, and every window looked out over the green slopes.
Madeline’s rooms occupied the west end of the building and comprised four in number, all opening out upon the long porch. There was a small room for her maid, another which she used as an office, then her sleeping-apartment; and, lastly, the great light chamber which she had liked so well upon first sight, and which now, simply yet beautifully furnished and containing her favorite books and pictures, she had come to love as she had never loved any room at home. In the morning the fragrant, balmy air blew the white curtains of the open windows; at noon the drowsy, sultry quiet seemed to creep in for the siesta that was characteristic of the country; in the afternoon the westering sun peeped under the porch roof and painted the walls with gold bars that slowly changed to red.
Madeline's rooms were at the west end of the building and consisted of four in total, all opening onto the long porch. There was a small room for her maid, another that she used as an office, her bedroom, and finally, the large bright room that she had loved at first sight. Now, simply but beautifully furnished and filled with her favorite books and pictures, she had come to love it more than any room back home. In the morning, the fragrant, soft air blew through the white curtains of the open windows; at noon, the sleepy, humid stillness settled in for the afternoon break typical of the area; and in the afternoon, the setting sun peeked under the porch roof, casting golden bars of light that gradually turned to red on the walls.
Madeline Hammond cherished a fancy that the transformation she had wrought in the old Spanish house and in the people with whom she had surrounded herself, great as that transformation had been, was as nothing compared to the one wrought in herself. She had found an object in life. She was busy, she worked with her hands as well as mind, yet she seemed to have more time to read and think and study and idle and dream than ever before. She had seen her brother through his difficulties, on the road to all the success and prosperity that he cared for. Madeline had been a conscientious student of ranching and an apt pupil of Stillwell. The old cattleman, in his simplicity, gave her the place in his heart that was meant for the daughter he had never had. His pride in her, Madeline thought, was beyond reason or belief or words to tell. Under his guidance, sometimes accompanied by Alfred and Florence, Madeline had ridden the ranges and had studied the life and work of the cowboys. She had camped on the open range, slept under the blinking stars, ridden forty miles a day in the face of dust and wind. She had taken two wonderful trips down into the desert—one trip to Chiricahua, and from there across the waste of sand and rock and alkali and cactus to the Mexican borderline; and the other through the Aravaipa Valley, with its deep, red-walled canyons and wild fastnesses.
Madeline Hammond cherished the idea that the transformation she had made in the old Spanish house and in the people around her, impressive as it was, was nothing compared to the transformation within herself. She had discovered a purpose in life. She was busy, working with both her hands and her mind, yet somehow she had more time than ever to read, think, study, relax, and dream. She had helped her brother through his challenges, guiding him toward all the success and prosperity he desired. Madeline had become a dedicated student of ranching and a quick learner under Stillwell. The old cattleman, in his simplicity, held a special place for her in his heart that was meant for the daughter he never had. Madeline believed his pride in her was beyond reason, belief, or words. Under his guidance, sometimes joined by Alfred and Florence, she had explored the ranges and learned about the lives and work of cowboys. She had camped on the open range, slept under the twinkling stars, and ridden forty miles a day through dust and wind. She had taken two incredible trips into the desert—one to Chiricahua, and from there across the sands, rocks, alkali, and cacti to the Mexican border; and the other through the Aravaipa Valley, with its deep, red-walled canyons and wild nooks.
This breaking-in, this training into Western ways, though she had been a so-called outdoor girl, had required great effort and severe pain; but the education, now past its grades, had become a labor of love. She had perfect health, abounding spirits. She was so active hat she had to train herself into taking the midday siesta, a custom of the country and imperative during the hot summer months. Sometimes she looked in her mirror and laughed with sheer joy at sight of the lithe, audacious, brown-faced, flashing-eyed creature reflected there. It was not so much joy in her beauty as sheer joy of life. Eastern critics had been wont to call her beautiful in those days when she had been pale and slender and proud and cold. She laughed. If they could only see her now! From the tip of her golden head to her feet she was alive, pulsating, on fire.
This adjustment and training into Western ways, even though she had been a so-called outdoor girl, took a lot of effort and caused significant pain; however, the education, now beyond its basic stages, had turned into a labor of love. She was in perfect health and had an abundance of energy. She was so active that she had to make herself take a midday nap, a local custom that was essential during the hot summer months. Sometimes she would look in the mirror and burst into laughter at the sight of the lively, daring, brown-faced, bright-eyed person looking back at her. It wasn't just joy in her beauty but pure joy in life itself. Eastern critics used to call her beautiful when she was pale, slim, proud, and cold. She laughed. If only they could see her now! From the tips of her golden hair to her feet, she was alive, buzzing with energy, and full of intensity.
Sometimes she thought of her parents, sister, friends, of how they had persistently refused to believe she could or would stay in the West. They were always asking her to come home. And when she wrote, which was dutifully often, the last thing under the sun that she was likely to mention was the change in her. She wrote that she would return to her old home some time, of course, for a visit; and letters such as this brought returns that amused Madeline, sometimes saddened her. She meant to go back East for a while, and after that once or twice every year. But the initiative was a difficult step from which she shrank. Once home, she would have to make explanations, and these would not be understood. Her father’s business had been such that he could not leave it for the time required for a Western trip, or else, according to his letter, he would have come for her. Mrs. Hammond could not have been driven to cross the Hudson River; her un-American idea of the wilderness westward was that Indians still chased buffalo on the outskirts of Chicago. Madeline’s sister Helen had long been eager to come, as much from curiosity, Madeline thought, as from sisterly regard. And at length Madeline concluded that the proof of her breaking permanent ties might better be seen by visiting relatives and friends before she went back East. With that in mind she invited Helen to visit her during the summer, and bring as many friends as she liked.
Sometimes she thought about her parents, sister, and friends, about how they had consistently refused to believe she could or would stay in the West. They were always asking her to come home. And when she wrote, which was regularly, the last thing she wanted to mention was the change in her. She would write that she would return to her old home sometime for a visit; letters like that made Madeline amused, but sometimes sad. She planned to go back East for a while, and after that, once or twice a year. But taking that first step felt daunting, and she hesitated. Once home, she would have to explain herself, and she knew those explanations wouldn’t be understood. Her father’s business was such that he couldn’t leave for a Western trip, or else, according to his letter, he would have come for her. Mrs. Hammond would never have been convinced to cross the Hudson River; her outdated view of the wilderness out West was that Indians still chased buffalo on the outskirts of Chicago. Madeline’s sister, Helen, had long wanted to come, partly out of curiosity, Madeline thought, and partly out of sisterly affection. Eventually, Madeline decided that proving she had broken permanent ties might be better accomplished by visiting relatives and friends before heading back East. With that in mind, she invited Helen to visit her during the summer and to bring as many friends as she wanted.
No slight task indeed was it to oversee the many business details of Her Majesty’s Rancho and to keep a record of them. Madeline found the course of business training upon which her father had insisted to be invaluable to her now. It helped her to assimilate and arrange the practical details of cattle-raising as put forth by the blunt Stillwell. She split up the great stock of cattle into different herds, and when any of these were out running upon the open range she had them closely watched. Part of the time each herd was kept in an inclosed range, fed and watered, and carefully handled by a big force of cowboys. She employed three cowboy scouts whose sole duty was to ride the ranges searching for stray, sick, or crippled cattle or motherless calves, and to bring these in to be treated and nursed. There were two cowboys whose business was to master a pack of Russian stag-hounds and to hunt down the coyotes, wolves, and lions that preyed upon the herds. The better and tamer milch cows were separated from the ranging herds and kept in a pasture adjoining the dairy. All branding was done in corrals, and calves were weaned from mother-cows at the proper time to benefit both. The old method of branding and classing, that had so shocked Madeline, had been abandoned, and one had been inaugurated whereby cattle and cowboys and horses were spared brutality and injury.
Managing the many business details of Her Majesty’s Rancho and keeping track of them was no small task. Madeline found the business training her father insisted on to be incredibly helpful now. It allowed her to understand and organize the practical aspects of cattle-raising as explained by the straightforward Stillwell. She divided the large stock of cattle into different herds, and when any of these were out roaming on the open range, she made sure they were closely monitored. Part of the time, each herd was kept in a fenced area, fed and watered, and looked after by a large team of cowboys. She hired three cowboy scouts whose only job was to ride the ranges searching for stray, sick, or injured cattle or orphaned calves and bring them in for treatment and care. Two cowboys were responsible for managing a pack of Russian stag hounds to track down the coyotes, wolves, and lions that threatened the herds. The better and tamer dairy cows were separated from the roaming herds and kept in a pasture next to the dairy. All branding was done in corrals, and calves were weaned from their mothers at the right time to benefit both. The old method of branding and sorting, which had appalled Madeline, had been replaced with a more humane approach that spared cattle, cowboys, and horses from brutality and injury.
Madeline established an extensive vegetable farm, and she planted orchards. The climate was superior to that of California, and, with abundant water, trees and plants and gardens flourished and bloomed in a way wonderful to behold. It was with ever-increasing pleasure that Madeline walked through acres of ground once bare, now green and bright and fragrant. There were poultry-yards and pig-pens and marshy quarters for ducks and geese. Here in the farming section of the ranch Madeline found employment for the little colony of Mexicans. Their lives had been as hard and barren as the dry valley where they had lived. But as the valley had been transformed by the soft, rich touch of water, so their lives had been transformed by help and sympathy and work. The children were wretched no more, and many that had been blind could now see, and Madeline had become to them a new and blessed virgin.
Madeline started a huge vegetable farm and planted orchards. The climate was better than California's, and with plenty of water, the trees, plants, and gardens thrived beautifully. Madeline took increasing pleasure in walking through acres of land that had once been bare, now bright green, vibrant, and fragrant. There were poultry yards, pig pens, and wet areas for ducks and geese. In this farming area of the ranch, Madeline found jobs for a small group of Mexican workers. Their lives had been as tough and barren as the dry valley where they had lived. But just as the valley had been transformed by the gentle, rich touch of water, so their lives had changed through help, understanding, and work. The children were no longer miserable, and many who had been blind could now see—Madeline had become to them a new and blessed figure.
Madeline looked abroad over these lands and likened the change in them and those who lived by them to the change in her heart. It may have been fancy, but the sun seemed to be brighter, the sky bluer, the wind sweeter. Certain it was that the deep green of grass and garden was not fancy, nor the white and pink of blossom, nor the blaze and perfume of flower, nor the sheen of lake and the fluttering of new-born leaves. Where there had been monotonous gray there was now vivid and changing color. Formerly there had been silence both day and night; now during the sunny hours there was music. The whistle of prancing stallions pealed in from the grassy ridges. Innumerable birds had come and, like the northward-journeying ducks, they had tarried to stay. The song of meadow-lark and blackbird and robin, familiar to Madeline from childhood, mingled with the new and strange heart-throbbing song of mocking-bird and the piercing blast of the desert eagle and the melancholy moan of turtle-dove.
Madeline looked out over these lands and compared the changes in them and in the people who lived there to the changes in her own heart. It might have been just her imagination, but the sun appeared brighter, the sky bluer, and the wind sweeter. It was clear that the deep green of the grass and gardens was real, as were the white and pink blossoms, the bright colors and fragrances of the flowers, the shine of the lake, and the flutter of new leaves. Where there had once been dull gray, there was now vivid, changing color. Previously, there had been silence both day and night; now, during the sunny hours, there was music. The sound of prancing stallions echoed in from the grassy ridges. Countless birds had arrived, and like the ducks migrating north, they had decided to stay. The familiar songs of meadowlarks, blackbirds, and robins—familiar to Madeline from her childhood—mixed with the new, heart-thumping song of the mockingbird, the sharp cry of the desert eagle, and the sorrowful coo of the turtle dove.
One April morning Madeline sat in her office wrestling with a problem. She had problems to solve every day. The majority of these were concerned with the management of twenty-seven incomprehensible cowboys. This particular problem involved Ambrose Mills, who had eloped with her French maid, Christine.
One April morning, Madeline was sitting in her office grappling with a problem. She faced issues to tackle every day. Most of these revolved around managing twenty-seven confusing cowboys. This specific issue involved Ambrose Mills, who had run away with her French maid, Christine.
Stillwell faced Madeline with a smile almost as huge as his bulk.
Stillwell faced Madeline with a grin nearly as big as his size.
“Wal, Miss Majesty, we ketched them; but not before Padre Marcos had married them. All thet speedin’ in the autoomoobile was jest a-scarin’ of me to death fer nothin’. I tell you Link Stevens is crazy about runnin’ thet car. Link never hed no sense even with a hoss. He ain’t afraid of the devil hisself. If my hair hedn’t been white it ’d be white now. No more rides in thet thing fer me! Wal, we ketched Ambrose an’ the girl too late. But we fetched them back, an’ they’re out there now, spoonin’, sure oblivious to their shameless conduct.”
“Well, Miss Majesty, we caught them; but not before Padre Marcos had married them. All that speeding in the car was just scaring me to death for nothing. I tell you, Link Stevens is crazy about driving that thing. Link never had any sense even with a horse. He isn’t afraid of the devil himself. If my hair hadn’t been white, it would be white now. No more rides in that thing for me! Well, we caught Ambrose and the girl too late. But we brought them back, and they’re out there now, cuddling, totally unaware of their shameless behavior.”
“Stillwell, what shall I say to Ambrose? How shall I punish him? He has done wrong to deceive me. I never was so surprised in my life. Christine did not seem to care any more for Ambrose than for any of the other cowboys. What does my authority amount to? I must do something. Stillwell, you must help me.”
“Stillwell, what should I say to Ambrose? How should I punish him? He tricked me, and that’s just wrong. I've never been this surprised before. Christine didn’t seem to care about Ambrose any more than she did about the other cowboys. What good is my authority if I don’t act? I need to do something. Stillwell, you have to help me.”
Whenever Madeline fell into a quandary she had to call upon the old cattleman. No man ever held a position with greater pride than Stillwell, but he had been put to tests that steeped him in humility. Here he scratched his head in great perplexity.
Whenever Madeline found herself in a tough spot, she had to turn to the old cattleman. No one took their role more seriously than Stillwell, but he had faced challenges that humbled him. Here he scratched his head, deep in thought.
“Dog-gone the luck! What’s this elopin’ bizness to do with cattle-raisin’? I don’t know nothin’ but cattle. Miss Majesty, it’s amazin’ strange what these cowboys hev come to. I never seen no cowboys like these we’ve got hyar now. I don’t know them any more. They dress swell an’ read books, an’ some of them hev actooly stopped cussin’ an’ drinkin’. I ain’t sayin’ all this is against them. Why, now, they’re jest the finest bunch of cow-punchers I ever seen or dreamed of. But managin’ them now is beyond me. When cowboys begin to play thet game gol-lof an’ run off with French maids I reckon Bill Stillwell has got to resign.”
“Doggone it! What’s this eloping thing got to do with raising cattle? I only know about cattle. Miss Majesty, it’s really strange what these cowboys have come to. I’ve never seen cowboys like the ones we have here now. I don’t recognize them anymore. They dress great and read books, and some of them have actually stopped swearing and drinking. I’m not saying all this is a bad thing. Honestly, they’re just the best group of cowhands I’ve ever seen or could imagine. But managing them now is beyond me. When cowboys start playing this golf game and running off with French maids, I guess Bill Stillwell has to resign.”
“Stillwell! Oh, you will not leave me? What in the world would I do?” exclaimed Madeline, in great anxiety.
“Stillwell! Oh, you’re not going to leave me, are you? What would I even do?” exclaimed Madeline, feeling very anxious.
“Wal, I sure won’t leave you, Miss Majesty. No, I never’ll do thet. I’ll run the cattle bizness fer you an’ see after the hosses an’ other stock. But I’ve got to hev a foreman who can handle this amazin’ strange bunch of cowboys.”
“Well, I definitely won’t abandon you, Miss Majesty. No, I’ll never do that. I’ll manage the cattle business for you and take care of the horses and other livestock. But I need to have a foreman who can handle this incredibly unusual group of cowboys.”
“You’ve tried half a dozen foremen. Try more until you find the man who meets your requirements,” said Madeline. “Never mind that now. Tell me how to impress Ambrose—to make him an example, so to speak. I must have another maid. And I do not want a new one carried off in this summary manner.”
“You’ve tried a bunch of foremen. Keep trying until you find the one who fits your needs,” said Madeline. “Forget about that for now. Show me how to impress Ambrose—to make him a prime example, so to speak. I need another maid. And I don’t want a new one taken away like this.”
“Wal, if you fetch pretty maids out hyar you can’t expect nothin’ else. Why, thet black-eyed little French girl, with her white skin an’ pretty airs an’ smiles an’ shrugs, she had the cowboys crazy. It’ll be wuss with the next one.”
“Well, if you bring pretty girls out here you can’t expect anything different. That little black-eyed French girl, with her white skin and charming ways, smiles, and playful gestures, drove the cowboys wild. It’ll be worse with the next one.”
“Oh dear!” sighed Madeline.
“Oh no!” sighed Madeline.
“An’ as fer impressin’ Ambrose, I reckon I can tell you how to do thet. Jest give it to him good an’ say you’re goin’ to fire him. That’ll fix Ambrose, an’ mebbe scare the other boys fer a spell.”
“About impressing Ambrose, I think I can tell you how to do that. Just lay it on him strong and say you’re going to fire him. That’ll get to Ambrose and maybe scare the other guys for a while.”
“Very well, Stillwell, bring Ambrose in to see me, and tell Christine to wait in my room.”
“Sure, Stillwell, bring Ambrose in to see me, and tell Christine to wait in my room.”
It was a handsome debonair, bright-eyed cowboy that came tramping into Madeline’s presence. His accustomed shyness and awkwardness had disappeared in an excited manner. He was a happy boy. He looked straight into Madeline’s face as if he expected her to wish him joy. And Madeline actually found that expression trembling to her lips. She held it back until she could be severe. But Madeline feared she would fail of much severity. Something warm and sweet, like a fragrance, had entered the room with Ambrose.
It was a charming, smooth-talking cowboy with bright eyes who walked into Madeline’s presence. His usual shyness and awkwardness were gone, replaced by excitement. He was a happy young man. He looked directly into Madeline’s face, as if he anticipated her to congratulate him. Madeline actually felt that smile trying to form on her lips. She kept it in check until she could be stern. But Madeline worried she wouldn’t be very stern at all. A warm and sweet vibe, like a pleasant fragrance, had come into the room with Ambrose.
“Ambrose, what have you done?” she asked.
“Ambrose, what did you do?” she asked.
“Miss Hammond, I’ve been and gone and got married,” replied Ambrose, his words tumbling over one another. His eyes snapped, and there was a kind of glow upon his clean-shaven brown cheek. “I’ve stole a march on the other boys. There was Frank Slade pushin’ me close, and I was havin’ some runnin’ to keep Jim Bell back in my dust. Even old man Nels made eyes at Christine! So I wasn’t goin’ to take any chances. I just packed her off to El Cajon and married her.”
“Miss Hammond, I’ve gone and gotten married,” Ambrose replied, his words spilling out excitedly. His eyes sparkled, and there was a sort of glow on his clean-shaven brown cheek. “I’ve beaten the other guys to it. Frank Slade was right behind me, and I had to really hustle to keep Jim Bell in my dust. Even old man Nels was eyeing Christine! So I wasn’t going to take any chances. I just took her to El Cajon and married her.”
“Oh, so I heard,” said Madeline, slowly, as she watched him. “Ambrose, do you—love her?”
“Oh, I heard,” said Madeline, slowly, as she watched him. “Ambrose, do you—love her?”
He reddened under her clear gaze, dropped his head, and fumbled with his new sombrero, and there was a catch in his breath. Madeline saw his powerful brown hand tremble. It affected her strangely that this stalwart cowboy, who could rope and throw and tie a wild steer in less than one minute, should tremble at a mere question. Suddenly he raised his head, and at the beautiful blase of his eyes Madeline turned her own away.
He blushed under her clear gaze, dropped his head, and fiddled with his new sombrero, and there was a hitch in his breath. Madeline noticed his strong brown hand shake. It felt odd to her that this tough cowboy, who could rope and throw and tie a wild steer in under a minute, would tremble at just a simple question. Suddenly, he lifted his head, and at the striking intensity of his eyes, Madeline looked away.
“Yes, Miss Hammond, I love her,” he said. “I think I love her in the way you’re askin’ about. I know the first time I saw her I thought how wonderful it’d be to have a girl like that for my wife. It’s all been so strange—her comin’ an’ how she made me feel. Sure I never knew many girls, and I haven’t seen any girls at all for years. But when she came! A girl makes a wonderful difference in a man’s feelin’s and thoughts. I guess I never had any before. Leastways, none like I have now. My—it—well, I guess I have a little understandin’ now of Padre Marcos’s blessin’.”
“Yes, Miss Hammond, I love her,” he replied. “I think I love her in the way you’re asking about. I remember the first time I saw her, I thought how wonderful it would be to have a girl like that for my wife. Everything’s been so strange—her showing up and how she made me feel. Sure, I never knew many girls, and I haven’t seen any at all for years. But when she arrived! A girl really changes a man’s feelings and thoughts. I guess I never experienced anything like it before. At least, not like I do now. My—well, I think I finally understand a bit about Padre Marcos’s blessing.”
“Ambrose, have you nothing to say to me?” asked Madeline.
“Ambrose, don’t you have anything to say to me?” asked Madeline.
“I’m sure sorry I didn’t have time to tell you. But I was in some hurry.”
“I’m really sorry I didn’t have time to tell you. But I was in a bit of a rush.”
“What did you intend to do? Where were you going when Stillwell found you?”
“What were you planning to do? Where were you headed when Stillwell found you?”
“We’d just been married. I hadn’t thought of anything after that. Suppose I’d have rustled back to my job. I’ll sure have to work now and save my money.”
“We had just gotten married. I hadn’t thought about anything after that. I guess I would have gone back to my job. I definitely need to work now and save my money.”
“Oh, well, Ambrose, I am glad you realize your responsibilities. Do you earn enough—is your pay sufficient to keep a wife?”
“Oh, well, Ambrose, I'm glad you understand your responsibilities. Do you make enough—does your salary cover the cost of having a wife?”
“Sure it is! Why, Miss Hammond, I never before earned half the salary I’m gettin’ now. It’s some fine to work for you. I’m goin’ to fire the boys out of my bunk-house and fix it up for Christine and me. Say, won’t they be jealous?”
“Of course it is! Miss Hammond, I've never earned half the salary I’m making now. It’s really great to work for you. I’m going to kick the guys out of my bunkhouse and set it up for Christine and me. Just think how jealous they’ll be!”
“Ambrose, I—I congratulate you. I wish you joy,” said Madeline. “I—I shall make Christine a little wedding-present. I want to talk to her for a few moments. You may go now.”
“Ambrose, I—I’m so happy for you. Congratulations,” said Madeline. “I—I’m going to get Christine a small wedding gift. I’d like to speak with her for a few minutes. You can go now.”
It would have been impossible for Madeline to say one severe word to that happy cowboy. She experienced difficulty in hiding her own happiness at the turn of events. Curiosity and interest mingled with her pleasure when she called to Christine.
It would have been impossible for Madeline to say one harsh word to that cheerful cowboy. She found it hard to hide her own happiness at how things turned out. Curiosity and interest mixed with her joy when she called out to Christine.
“Mrs. Ambrose Mills, please come in.”
“Mrs. Ambrose Mills, please come in.”
No sound came from the other room.
No sound came from the other room.
“I should like very much to see the bride,” went on Madeline.
“I would really like to see the bride,” Madeline continued.
Still there was no stir or reply
Still, there was no movement or response.
“Christine!” called Madeline.
"Christine!" shouted Madeline.
Then it was as if a little whirlwind of flying feet and entreating hands and beseeching eyes blew in upon Madeline. Christine was small, graceful, plump, with very white skin and very dark hair. She had been Madeline’s favorite maid for years and there was sincere affection between the two. Whatever had been the blissful ignorance of Ambrose, it was manifestly certain that Christine knew how she had transgressed. Her fear and remorse and appeal for forgiveness were poured out in an incoherent storm. Plain it was that the little French maid had been overwhelmed. It was only after Madeline had taken the emotional girl in her arms and had forgiven and soothed her that her part in the elopement became clear. Christine was in a maze. But gradually, as she talked and saw that she was forgiven, calmness came in some degree, and with it a story which amused yet shocked Madeline. The unmistakable, shy, marveling love, scarcely realized by Christine, gave Madeline relief and joy. If Christine loved Ambrose there was no harm done. Watching the girl’s eyes, wonderful with their changes of thought, listening to her attempts to explain what it was evident she did not understand, Madeline gathered that if ever a caveman had taken unto himself a wife, if ever a barbarian had carried off a Sabine woman, then Ambrose Mills had acted with the violence of such ancient forebears. Just how it all happened seemed to be beyond Christine.
Then it was like a little whirlwind of flying feet and pleading hands and beseeching eyes swept in on Madeline. Christine was small, graceful, and plump, with very fair skin and very dark hair. She had been Madeline’s favorite maid for years, and there was genuine affection between them. Whatever blissful ignorance Ambrose might have had, it was clear that Christine knew how she had messed up. Her fear, remorse, and plea for forgiveness came out in an incoherent rush. It was obvious that the little French maid was overwhelmed. It was only after Madeline had taken the emotional girl in her arms, forgiven her, and calmed her down that the details of her role in the elopement became clear. Christine was confused. But gradually, as she spoke and realized she was forgiven, she calmed down somewhat, and with that came a story that amused yet shocked Madeline. The unmistakable, shy, wondering love, which Christine hardly recognized herself, brought relief and joy to Madeline. If Christine loved Ambrose, then there was no harm done. Watching the girl’s eyes, which changed with her thoughts, and listening to her attempts to explain what was evident she didn't understand, Madeline gathered that if ever a caveman had taken a wife, or if any barbarian had carried off a Sabine woman, then Ambrose Mills had acted with the force of those ancient ancestors. Just how it all happened seemed to be beyond Christine.
“He say he love me,” repeated the girl, in a kind of rapt awe. “He ask me to marry him—he kees me—he hug me—he lift me on ze horse—he ride with me all night—he marry me.”
“He says he loves me,” repeated the girl, in a kind of rapt awe. “He asked me to marry him—he kisses me—he hugs me—he lifts me onto the horse—he rides with me all night—he marries me.”
And she exhibited a ring on the third finger of her left hand. Madeline saw that, whatever had been the state of Christine’s feeling for Ambrose before this marriage, she loved him now. She had been taken forcibly, but she was won.
And she wore a ring on the third finger of her left hand. Madeline saw that, no matter how Christine felt about Ambrose before this marriage, she loved him now. She had been taken against her will, but she was conquered.
After Christine had gone, comforted and betraying her shy eagerness to get back to Ambrose, Madeline was haunted by the look in the girl’s eyes, and her words. Assuredly the spell of romance was on this sunny land. For Madeline there was a nameless charm, a nameless thrill combating her sense of the violence and unfitness of Ambrose’s wooing. Something, she knew not what, took arms against her intellectual arraignment of the cowboy’s method of getting himself a wife. He had said straight out that he loved the girl—he had asked her to marry him—he kissed her—he hugged her—he lifted her upon his horse—he rode away with her through the night—and he married her. In whatever light Madeline reviewed this thing she always came back to her first natural impression; it thrilled her, charmed her. It went against all the precepts of her training; nevertheless, it was somehow splendid and beautiful. She imagined it stripped another artificial scale from her over-sophisticated eyes.
After Christine had left, comforted and showing her shy eagerness to return to Ambrose, Madeline was troubled by the look in the girl’s eyes and her words. There was definitely a sense of romance in this sunny place. For Madeline, there was an indescribable charm, an indescribable thrill battling her feeling that Ambrose's way of wooing was violent and inappropriate. Something she couldn’t quite identify resisted her rational judgment of the cowboy’s approach to winning a wife. He had outright declared his love for the girl—he asked her to marry him—he kissed her—he embraced her—he lifted her onto his horse—he rode away with her through the night—and he married her. No matter how Madeline viewed the situation, she always returned to her initial instinct; it excited her, enchanted her. It contradicted all the principles she had learned, but still, it felt splendid and beautiful in some way. She imagined it peeled away another layer from her overly sophisticated perspective.
Scarcely had she settled again to the task on her desk when Stillwell’s heavy tread across the porch interrupted her. This time when he entered he wore a look that bordered upon the hysterical; it was difficult to tell whether he was trying to suppress grief or glee.
Scarcely had she settled back into her work at the desk when Stillwell's heavy footsteps on the porch interrupted her. This time when he came in, he had a look that was almost hysterical; it was hard to tell if he was trying to hide sadness or excitement.
“Miss Majesty, there’s another amazin’ strange thing sprung on me. Hyars Jim Bell come to see you, an’, when I taxed him, sayin’ you was tolerable busy, he up an’ says he was hungry an’ he ain’t a-goin’ to eat any more bread made in a wash-basin! Says he’ll starve first. Says Nels hed the gang over to big bunk an’ feasted them on bread you taught him how to make in some new-fangled bucket-machine with a crank. Jim says thet bread beat any cake he ever eat, an’ he wants you to show him how to make some. Now, Miss Majesty, as superintendent of this ranch I ought to know what’s goin’ on. Mebbe Jim is jest a-joshin’ me. Mebbe he’s gone clean dotty. Mebbe I hev. An’ beggin’ your pardon, I want to know if there’s any truth in what Jim says Nels says.”
“Miss Majesty, there’s another really strange thing that’s come up. Jim Bell came to see you, and when I told him you were pretty busy, he said he was hungry and he wasn’t going to eat any more bread made in a washbasin! He says he’d rather starve. He said Nels had the group over at the big bunk and fed them bread that you showed him how to make in some new-fangled bucket machine with a crank. Jim claims that bread was better than any cake he ever ate, and he wants you to teach him how to make some. Now, Miss Majesty, as the superintendent of this ranch, I should know what’s going on. Maybe Jim is just kidding me. Maybe he’s completely lost it. Maybe I have. And I apologize, but I want to know if there’s any truth to what Jim says Nels said.”
Whereupon it became necessary for Madeline to stifle her mirth and to inform the sadly perplexed old cattleman that she had received from the East a patent bread-mixer, and in view of the fact that her household women had taken fright at the contrivance, she had essayed to operate it herself. This had turned out to be so simple, so saving of time and energy and flour, so much more cleanly than the old method of mixing dough with the hands, and particularly it had resulted in such good bread, that Madeline had been pleased. Immediately she ordered more of the bread-mixers. One day she had happened upon Nels making biscuit dough in his wash-basin, and she had delicately and considerately introduced to him the idea of her new method. Nels, it appeared, had a great reputation as a bread-maker, and he was proud of it. Moreover, he was skeptical of any clap-trap thing with wheels and cranks. He consented, however, to let her show how the thing worked and to sample some of the bread. To that end she had him come up to the house, where she won him over. Stillwell laughed loud and long.
Madeline had to suppress her laughter and explain to the confused old cattleman that she had received a patent bread mixer from the East. Since the women in her household were scared of the machine, she decided to try it out herself. It turned out to be incredibly simple, saving time, energy, and flour, and it was much cleaner than mixing dough by hand. Plus, it made excellent bread, which pleased Madeline. She quickly ordered more bread mixers. One day, she found Nels making biscuit dough in his wash basin, and she gently introduced him to her new method. Nels had a strong reputation as a bread maker and was proud of it. He was also skeptical of any gadget with wheels and cranks. However, he agreed to let her demonstrate how it worked and to taste some of the bread. To that end, she invited him to the house, where she convinced him. Stillwell laughed heartily.
“Wal, wal, wal!” he exclaimed, at length. “Thet’s fine, an’ it’s powerful funny. Mebbe you don’t see how funny? Wal, Nels has jest been lordin’ it over the boys about how you showed him, an’ now you’ll hev to show every last cowboy on the place the same thing. Cowboys are the jealousest kind of fellers. They’re all crazy about you, anyway. Take Jim out hyar. Why, thet lazy cowpuncher jest never would make bread. He’s notorious fer shirkin’ his share of the grub deal. I’ve knowed Jim to trade off washin’ the pots an’ pans fer a lonely watch on a rainy night. All he wants is to see you show him the same as Nels is crowin’ over. Then he’ll crow over his bunkie, Frank Slade, an’ then Frank’ll get lonely to know all about this wonderful bread-machine. Cowboys are amazin’ strange critters, Miss Majesty. An’ now thet you’ve begun with them this way, you’ll hev to keep it up. I will say I never seen such a bunch to work. You’ve sure put heart in them.”
“Wow, wow, wow!” he said after a moment. “That’s great, and it’s really funny. Maybe you don’t see how funny? Well, Nels has just been bragging to the guys about how you showed him, and now you’ll have to show every single cowboy here the same thing. Cowboys are the most jealous type of guys. They’re all crazy about you, anyway. Take Jim out here. He’s such a lazy cowpuncher that he’d never bother to make bread. He’s known for dodging his fair share of the food duties. I've seen Jim trade washing the pots and pans for a quiet night watch on a rainy night. All he wants is for you to show him the same thing Nels is bragging about. Then he’ll brag to his buddy, Frank Slade, and then Frank will get curious to know all about this amazing bread machine. Cowboys are incredibly strange creatures, Miss Majesty. And now that you’ve started off with them this way, you’ll have to keep it going. I have to say, I’ve never seen such a group work so hard. You’ve definitely inspired them.”
“Indeed, Stillwell, I am glad to hear that,” replied Madeline. “And I shall be pleased to teach them all. But may I not have them all up here at once—at least those off duty?”
“Sure, Stillwell, I'm really glad to hear that,” replied Madeline. “And I’ll be happy to teach them all. But can I not have them all up here at once—at least the ones who are off duty?”
“Wal, I reckon you can’t onless you want to hev them scrappin’,” rejoined Stillwell, dryly. “What you’ve got on your hands now, Miss Majesty, is to let ’em come one by one, an’ make each cowboy think you’re takin’ more especial pleasure in showin’ him than the feller who came before him. Then mebbe we can go on with cattle-raisin’.”
“Well, I guess you can’t unless you want them fighting,” Stillwell replied dryly. “What you need to do now, Miss Majesty, is let them come one by one and make each cowboy think you’re enjoying showing him off more than the guy who came before him. Then maybe we can get back to raising cattle.”
Madeline protested, and Stillwell held inexorably to what he said was wisdom. Several times Madeline had gone against his advice, to her utter discomfiture and rout. She dared not risk it again, and resigned herself gracefully and with subdued merriment to her task. Jim Bell was ushered into the great, light, spotless kitchen, where presently Madeline appeared to put on an apron and roll up her sleeves. She explained the use of the several pieces of aluminum that made up the bread-mixer and fastened the bucket to the table-shelf. Jim’s life might have depended upon this lesson, judging from his absorbed manner and his desire to have things explained over and over, especially the turning of the crank. When Madeline had to take Jim’s hand three times to show him the simple mechanism and then he did not understand she began to have faint misgivings as to his absolute sincerity. She guessed that as long as she touched Jim’s hand he never would understand. Then as she began to measure out flour and milk and lard and salt and yeast she saw with despair that Jim was not looking at the ingredients, was not paying the slightest attention to them. His eyes were covertly upon her.
Madeline protested, but Stillwell firmly clung to what he called wisdom. A few times, Madeline had ignored his advice, leading to her complete embarrassment and failure. She couldn’t afford to take that risk again, so she accepted her task with quiet humor. Jim Bell was brought into the spacious, bright, spotless kitchen, where Madeline soon appeared to put on an apron and roll up her sleeves. She explained how to use the various aluminum pieces that made up the bread mixer and secured the bowl to the table. Jim seemed to hang on her every word, showing a deep focus and asking her to explain things repeatedly, especially how to turn the crank. When Madeline had to grasp Jim’s hand three times to show him the simple mechanism and he still didn’t get it, she began to have nagging doubts about his sincerity. She figured that as long as she held Jim’s hand, he would never truly understand. Then, as she started measuring out flour, milk, lard, salt, and yeast, she realized with disappointment that Jim wasn’t looking at the ingredients at all; he was secretly watching her.
“Jim, I am not sure about you,” said Madeline, severely. “How can you learn to make bread if you do not watch me mix it?”
“Jim, I'm not sure about you,” Madeline said sternly. “How are you supposed to learn to make bread if you don’t watch me mix it?”
“I am a-watchin’ you,” replied Jim, innocently.
“I’m watching you,” Jim said, innocently.
Finally Madeline sent the cowboy on his way rejoicing with the bread-mixer under his arm. Next morning, true to Stillwell’s prophecy, Frank Slade, Jim’s bunkmate, presented himself cheerfully to Madeline and unbosomed himself of a long-deferred and persistent desire to relieve his overworked comrade of some of the house-keeping in their bunk.
Finally, Madeline sent the cowboy on his way happily with the bread mixer under his arm. The next morning, just as Stillwell had predicted, Frank Slade, Jim's bunkmate, showed up cheerfully to Madeline and opened up about a long-held desire to help relieve his overworked roommate of some of the chores in their bunk.
“Miss Hammond,” said Frank, “Jim’s orful kind wantin’ to do it all hisself. But he ain’t very bright, an’ I didn’t believe him. You see, I’m from Missouri, an’ you’ll have to show me.”
“Miss Hammond,” said Frank, “Jim’s really eager to do everything by himself. But he’s not very smart, and I didn’t believe him. You see, I’m from Missouri, and you’ll have to show me.”
For a whole week Madeline held clinics where she expounded the scientific method of modern bread-making. She got a good deal of enjoyment out of her lectures. What boys these great hulking fellows were! She saw through their simple ruses. Some of them were grave as deacons; others wore expressions important enough to have fitted the faces of statesmen signing government treaties. These cowboys were children; they needed to be governed; but in order to govern them they had to be humored. A more light-hearted, fun-loving crowd of boys could not have been found. And they were grown men. Stillwell explained that the exuberance of spirits lay in the difference in their fortunes. Twenty-seven cowboys, in relays of nine, worked eight hours a day. That had never been heard of before in the West. Stillwell declared that cowboys from all points of the compass would head their horses toward Her Majesty’s Rancho.
For a whole week, Madeline held clinics where she explained the scientific method of modern bread-making. She got a lot of enjoyment out of her lectures. What a bunch of big guys they were! She saw right through their simple tricks. Some of them were as serious as deacons, while others had expressions important enough to fit the faces of politicians signing government treaties. These cowboys were like children; they needed guidance, but to lead them, she had to indulge them. You wouldn’t find a more light-hearted, fun-loving group of guys anywhere. And they were grown men. Stillwell explained that their high spirits were due to the difference in their circumstances. Twenty-seven cowboys, in groups of nine, worked eight hours a day. That had never been heard of before in the West. Stillwell claimed that cowboys from all over would steer their horses towards Her Majesty’s Rancho.
VIII. El Capitan
Stillwell’s interest in the revolution across the Mexican line had manifestly increased with the news that Gene Stewart had achieved distinction with the rebel forces. Thereafter the old cattleman sent for El Paso and Douglas newspapers, wrote to ranchmen he knew on the big bend of the Rio Grande, and he would talk indefinitely to any one who would listen to him. There was not any possibility of Stillwell’s friends at the ranch forgetting his favorite cowboy. Stillwell always prefaced his eulogy with an apologetic statement that Stewart had gone to the bad. Madeline liked to listen to him, though she was not always sure which news was authentic and which imagination.
Stillwell’s interest in the revolution across the Mexican border had clearly grown with the news that Gene Stewart had gained recognition with the rebel forces. After that, the old cattleman started ordering newspapers from El Paso and Douglas, wrote to ranchers he knew along the big bend of the Rio Grande, and he would talk endlessly to anyone who would listen. There was no chance of Stillwell’s friends at the ranch forgetting his favorite cowboy. Stillwell always began his praise with a disclaimer that Stewart had gone downhill. Madeline enjoyed listening to him, even though she wasn’t always sure which news was real and which was just his imagination.
There appeared to be no doubt, however, that the cowboy had performed some daring feats for the rebels. Madeline found his name mentioned in several of the border papers. When the rebels under Madero stormed and captured the city of Juarez, Stewart did fighting that won him the name of El Capitan. This battle apparently ended the revolution. The capitulation of President Diaz followed shortly, and there was a feeling of relief among ranchers on the border from Texas to California. Nothing more was heard of Gene Stewart until April, when a report reached Stillwell that the cowboy had arrived in El Cajon, evidently hunting trouble. The old cattleman saddled a horse and started post-haste for town. In two days he returned, depressed in spirit. Madeline happened to be present when Stillwell talked to Alfred.
There was no doubt that the cowboy had done some courageous things for the rebels. Madeline saw his name mentioned in several newspapers along the border. When the rebels led by Madero stormed and took over the city of Juarez, Stewart fought in a way that earned him the title of El Capitan. This battle seemed to mark the end of the revolution. President Diaz soon surrendered, and ranchers from Texas to California felt a sense of relief. Nothing more was heard from Gene Stewart until April, when Stillwell got a report that the cowboy had shown up in El Cajon, apparently looking for trouble. The old cattleman quickly saddled a horse and raced to town. He returned two days later, feeling downcast. Madeline happened to be there when Stillwell spoke to Alfred.
“I got there too late, Al,” said the cattleman. “Gene was gone. An’ what do you think of this? Danny Mains hed jest left with a couple of burros packed. I couldn’t find what way he went, but I’m bettin’ he hit the Peloncillo trail.”
“I arrived too late, Al,” said the cattleman. “Gene was already gone. And get this: Danny Mains had just left with a couple of loaded burros. I couldn’t figure out which way he went, but I’m pretty sure he took the Peloncillo trail.”
“Danny will show up some day,” replied Alfred. “What did you learn about Stewart? Maybe he left with Danny.”
“Danny will show up one day,” Alfred replied. “What did you find out about Stewart? Maybe he left with Danny.”
“Not much,” said Stillwell, shortly. “Gene’s hell-bent fer election! No mountains fer him.”
“Not much,” said Stillwell, briefly. “Gene’s determined to win! No obstacles for him.”
“Well tell us about him.”
“Okay, tell us about him.”
Stillwell wiped his sweaty brow and squared himself to talk.
Stillwell wiped his sweaty forehead and got ready to speak.
“Wal, it’s sure amazin’ strange about Gene. Its got me locoed. He arrived in El Cajon a week or so ago. He was trained down like as if he’d been ridin’ the range all winter. He hed plenty of money—Mex, they said. An’ all the Greasers was crazy about him. Called him El Capitan. He got drunk an’ went roarin’ round fer Pat Hawe. You remember that Greaser who was plugged last October—the night Miss Majesty arrived? Wal, he’s daid. He’s daid, an’ people says thet Pat is a-goin’ to lay thet killin’ onto Gene. I reckon thet’s jest talk, though Pat is mean enough to do it, if he hed the nerve. Anyway, if he was in El Cajon he kept mighty much to hisself. Gene walked up an’ down, up an’ down, all day an’ night, lookin’ fer Pat. But he didn’t find him. An’, of course, he kept gettin’ drunker. He jest got plumb bad. He made lots of trouble, but there wasn’t no gun-play. Mebbe thet made him sore, so he went an’ licked Flo’s brother-in-law. Thet wasn’t so bad. Jack sure needed a good lickin’. Wal, then Gene met Danny an’ tried to get Danny drunk. An’ he couldn’t! What do you think of that? Danny hedn’t been drinkin’—wouldn’t touch a drop. I’m sure glad of thet, but it’s amazin’ strange. Why, Danny was a fish fer red liquor. I guess he an’ Gene had some pretty hard words, though I’m not sure about thet. Anyway, Gene went down to the railroad an’ he got on an engine, an’ he was in the engine when it pulled out. Lord, I hope he doesn’t hold up the train! If he gets gay over in Arizona he’ll go to the pen at Yuma. An’ thet pen is a graveyard fer cowboys. I wired to agents along the railroad to look out fer Stewart, an’ to wire back to me if he’s located.”
“Man, it's really strange about Gene. It's got me all messed up. He showed up in El Cajon about a week ago. He looked like he had been out in the wilderness all winter. He had plenty of money—Mexican, they said. And all the local guys were crazy about him. They called him El Capitan. He got drunk and was running around looking for Pat Hawe. You remember that guy who got shot last October—the night Miss Majesty arrived? Well, he’s dead. He’s dead, and people say Pat is going to blame that killing on Gene. I think that's just talk, though Pat is mean enough to do it, if he had the guts. Anyway, if he was in El Cajon, he kept pretty much to himself. Gene walked up and down, up and down, all day and night, looking for Pat. But he didn’t find him. And, of course, he kept getting drunker. He really went off the deep end. He caused a lot of trouble, but there wasn’t any shootout. Maybe that made him mad, so he went and beat up Flo’s brother-in-law. That wasn’t too bad. Jack really needed a good beating. Well, then Gene ran into Danny and tried to get Danny drunk. And he couldn’t! What do you think of that? Danny hadn’t been drinking—wouldn’t touch a drop. I’m really glad about that, but it’s so strange. Why, Danny used to be a sucker for liquor. I guess he and Gene had some pretty harsh words, though I’m not sure about that. Anyway, Gene went down to the railroad and jumped on a train engine, and he was in the engine when it pulled out. Man, I hope he doesn’t hold up the train! If he goes crazy over in Arizona, he’ll end up in prison in Yuma. And that prison is like a graveyard for cowboys. I messaged agents along the railroad to keep an eye out for Stewart, and to wire me back if he’s found.”
“Suppose you do find him, Stillwell, what can you do?” inquired Alfred.
“Suppose you actually find him, Stillwell, what are you going to do?” Alfred asked.
The old man nodded gloomily.
The old man nodded sadly.
“I straightened him up once. Mebbe I can do it again.” Then, brightening somewhat, he turned to Madeline. “I jest hed an idee, Miss Majesty. If I can get him, Gene Stewart is the cowboy I want fer my foreman. He can manage this bunch of cow-punchers thet are drivin’ me dotty. What’s more, since he’s fought fer the rebels an’ got that name El Capitan, all the Greasers in the country will kneel to him. Now, Miss Majesty, we hevn’t got rid of Don Carlos an’ his vaqueros yet. To be sure, he sold you his house an’ ranch an’ stock. But you remember nothin’ was put in black and white about when he should get out. An’ Don Carlos ain’t gettin’ out. I don’t like the looks of things a little bit. I’ll tell you now thet Don Carlos knows somethin’ about the cattle I lost, an’ thet you’ve been losin’ right along. Thet Greaser is hand an’ glove with the rebels. I’m willin’ to gamble thet when he does get out he an’ his vaqueros will make another one of the bands of guerrillas thet are harassin’ the border. This revolution ain’t over’ yet. It’s jest commenced. An’ all these gangs of outlaws are goin’ to take advantage of it. We’ll see some old times, mebbe. Wal, I need Gene Stewart. I need him bad. Will you let me hire him, Miss Majesty, if I can get him straightened up?”
“I helped him get it together once. Maybe I can do it again.” Then, lightening up a bit, he turned to Madeline. “I just had an idea, Miss Majesty. If I can get him, Gene Stewart is the cowboy I want for my foreman. He can handle this group of cowboys that are driving me crazy. What's more, since he fought for the rebels and earned the name El Capitan, all the Greasers in the area will respect him. Now, Miss Majesty, we haven't dealt with Don Carlos and his cowboys yet. Sure, he sold you his house, ranch, and cattle. But you remember nothing was written down about when he should leave. And Don Carlos isn't going anywhere. I don’t like how things are looking at all. I’ll tell you now that Don Carlos knows something about the cattle I lost, and that you’ve been losing too. That Greaser is tight with the rebels. I’m willing to bet that when he does leave, he and his cowboys will join another group of guerrillas that are bothering the border. This revolution isn’t over yet. It’s just begun. And all these gangs of outlaws are going to take advantage of it. We might see some old times again. Well, I need Gene Stewart. I really need him. Will you let me hire him, Miss Majesty, if I can get him sorted out?”
The old cattleman ended huskily.
The old rancher ended huskily.
“Stillwell, by all means find Stewart, and do not wait to straighten him up. Bring him to the ranch,” replied Madeline.
“Stillwell, definitely find Stewart, and don’t hesitate to set him straight. Bring him to the ranch,” replied Madeline.
Thanking her, Stillwell led his horse away.
Thanking her, Stillwell walked his horse away.
“Strange how he loves that cowboy!” murmured Madeline.
“Isn’t it strange how he loves that cowboy?” whispered Madeline.
“Not so strange, Majesty,” replied her brother. “Not when you know. Stewart has been with Stillwell on some hard trips into the desert alone. There’s no middle course of feeling between men facing death in the desert. Either they hate each other or love each other. I don’t know, but I imagine Stewart did something for Stillwell—saved us life, perhaps. Besides, Stewart’s a lovable chap when he’s going straight. I hope Stillwell brings him back. We do need him, Majesty. He’s a born leader. Once I saw him ride into a bunch of Mexicans whom we suspected of rustling. It was fine to see him. Well, I’m sorry to tell you that we are worried about Don Carlos. Some of his vaqueros came into my yard the other day when I had left Flo alone. She had a bad scare. These vaqueros have been different since Don Carlos sold the ranch. For that matter, I never would have trusted a white woman alone with them. But they are bolder now. Something’s in the wind. They’ve got assurance. They can ride off any night and cross the border.”
“Not so strange, Majesty,” her brother replied. “Not when you know. Stewart has been out in the desert alone with Stillwell on some tough trips. There’s no middle ground for men facing death in the desert. They either hate each other or love each other. I don’t know, but I imagine Stewart did something for Stillwell—maybe saved his life. Besides, Stewart’s a likable guy when he’s on track. I hope Stillwell brings him back. We need him, Majesty. He’s a natural leader. Once, I saw him ride right into a group of Mexicans we suspected of rustling. It was impressive to watch. Well, I’m sorry to say we’re worried about Don Carlos. Some of his cowboys came into my yard the other day when I had left Flo alone. She had a terrible scare. These cowboys have been acting different since Don Carlos sold the ranch. Honestly, I never would have trusted a white woman to be alone with them. But they’re bolder now. Something's up. They seem more confident. They could ride off any night and cross the border.”
During the succeeding week Madeline discovered that a good deal of her sympathy for Stillwell in his hunt for the reckless Stewart had insensibly grown to be sympathy for the cowboy. It was rather a paradox, she thought, that opposed to the continual reports of Stewart’s wildness as he caroused from town to town were the continual expressions of good will and faith and hope universally given out by those near her at the ranch. Stillwell loved the cowboy; Florence was fond of him; Alfred liked and admired him, pitied him; the cowboys swore their regard for him the more he disgraced himself. The Mexicans called him El Gran Capitan. Madeline’s personal opinion of Stewart had not changed in the least since the night it had been formed. But certain attributes of his, not clearly defined in her mind, and the gift of his beautiful horse, his valor with the fighting rebels, and all this strange regard for him, especially that of her brother, made her exceedingly regret the cowboy’s present behavior.
During the following week, Madeline realized that a lot of her sympathy for Stillwell in his search for the reckless Stewart had quietly turned into sympathy for the cowboy. She found it somewhat ironic that in contrast to the constant reports of Stewart’s wild behavior as he partied from town to town, there were always expressions of goodwill, faith, and hope coming from those around her at the ranch. Stillwell loved the cowboy; Florence cared for him; Alfred liked and admired him and felt sorry for him; the other cowboys increased their affection for him even more as he embarrassed himself. The Mexicans referred to him as El Gran Capitan. Madeline’s personal opinion of Stewart hadn’t changed at all since the night it was formed. But certain qualities of his, not clearly defined in her mind, along with the gift of his beautiful horse, his bravery against the fighting rebels, and all this unusual admiration for him, especially from her brother, made her deeply regret the cowboy’s current behavior.
Meanwhile Stillwell was so earnest and zealous that one not familiar with the situation would have believed he was trying to find and reclaim his own son. He made several trips to little stations in the valley, and from these he returned with a gloomy face. Madeline got the details from Alfred. Stewart was going from bad to worse—drunk, disorderly, savage, sure to land in the penitentiary. Then came a report that hurried Stillwell off to Rodeo. He returned on the third day, a crushed man. He had been so bitterly hurt that no one, not even Madeline, could get out of him what had happened. He admitted finding Stewart, failing to influence him; and when the old cattleman got so far he turned purple in the face and talked to himself, as if dazed: “But Gene was drunk. He was drunk, or he couldn’t hev treated old Bill like thet!”
Meanwhile, Stillwell was so serious and passionate that anyone unfamiliar with the situation would have thought he was searching for and trying to bring back his own son. He made several trips to small stations in the valley, and each time he returned with a gloomy expression. Madeline got the details from Alfred. Stewart was getting worse—drunk, chaotic, violent, and sure to end up in prison. Then came a report that hurried Stillwell off to Rodeo. He came back on the third day, completely defeated. He had been so deeply hurt that no one, not even Madeline, could get him to share what had happened. He admitted to finding Stewart but failing to sway him; and when the old cattleman reached that point, he turned purple in the face and talked to himself, as if in a daze: “But Gene was drunk. He was drunk, or he wouldn’t have treated old Bill like that!”
Madeline was stirred with an anger toward the brutal cowboy that was as strong as her sorrow for the loyal old cattleman. And it was when Stillwell gave up that she resolved to take a hand. The persistent faith of Stillwell, his pathetic excuses in the face of what must have been Stewart’s violence, perhaps baseness, actuated her powerfully, gave her new insight into human nature. She honored a faith that remained unshaken. And the strange thought came to her that Stewart must somehow be worthy of such a faith, or he never could have inspired it. Madeline discovered that she wanted to believe that somewhere deep down in the most depraved and sinful wretch upon earth there was some grain of good. She yearned to have the faith in human nature that Stillwell had in Stewart.
Madeline was filled with anger toward the brutal cowboy that was as intense as her sadness for the loyal old cattleman. It was when Stillwell gave up that she decided to take action. Stillwell's unwavering faith, his sad excuses in the face of what must have been Stewart's violence, maybe even his cruelty, profoundly affected her and gave her a new understanding of human nature. She admired a faith that remained unshaken. A strange thought crossed her mind: Stewart must be somehow worthy of such faith, or he could never have inspired it. Madeline realized that she wanted to believe that somewhere deep down in the most depraved and sinful person on earth, there was a bit of goodness. She longed to have the same faith in human nature that Stillwell had in Stewart.
She sent Nels, mounted upon his own horse, and leading Majesty, to Rodeo in search of Stewart. Nels had instructions to bring Stewart back to the ranch. In due time Nels returned, leading the roan without a rider.
She sent Nels, riding his own horse and leading Majesty, to Rodeo to look for Stewart. Nels was told to bring Stewart back to the ranch. Eventually, Nels returned, leading the roan without a rider.
“Yep, I shore found him,” replied Nels, when questioned. “Found him half sobered up. He’d been in a scrap, an’ somebody hed put him to sleep, I guess. Wal, when he seen thet roan hoss he let out a yell an’ grabbed him round the neck. The hoss knowed him, all right. Then Gene hugged the hoss an’ cried—cried like—I never seen no one who cried like he did. I waited awhile, an’ was jest goin’ to say somethin’ to him when he turned on me red-eyed, mad as fire. ‘Nels,’ he said, ‘I care a hell of a lot fer thet boss, an’ I liked you pretty well, but if you don’t take him away quick I’ll shoot you both.’ Wal, I lit out. I didn’t even git to say howdy to him.”
“Yeah, I definitely found him,” Nels replied when asked. “I found him half sober. He’d been in a fight, and I guess someone knocked him out. Well, when he saw that chestnut horse, he yelled and wrapped his arms around its neck. The horse recognized him, no doubt about it. Then Gene hugged the horse and cried—cried like—I’ve never seen anyone cry like that. I waited a bit and was just about to say something to him when he turned to me, red-eyed and furious. ‘Nels,’ he said, ‘I really care about that horse, and I liked you quite a bit too, but if you don’t get him out of here fast, I’ll shoot you both.’ Well, I took off. I didn’t even get to say hello to him.”
“Nels, you think it useless—any attempt to see him—persuade him?” asked Madeline.
“Nels, do you think it’s pointless to try to see him and persuade him?” Madeline asked.
“I shore do, Miss Hammond,” replied Nels, gravely. “I’ve seen a few sun-blinded an’ locoed an’ snake-poisoned an’ skunk-bitten cow-punchers in my day, but Gene Stewart beats ’em all. He’s shore runnin’ wild fer the divide.”
“I sure do, Miss Hammond,” replied Nels seriously. “I’ve seen a few sun-blinded, crazy, snake-poisoned, and skunk-bitten cowhands in my time, but Gene Stewart beats them all. He’s definitely going wild for the divide.”
Madeline dismissed Nels, but before he got out of earshot she heard him speak to Stillwell, who awaited him on the porch.
Madeline sent Nels away, but before he was out of earshot, she heard him talk to Stillwell, who was waiting for him on the porch.
“Bill, put this in your pipe an’ smoke it—none of them scraps Gene has hed was over a woman! It used to be thet when he was drank he’d scrap over every pretty Greaser girl he’d run across. Thet’s why Pat Hawe thinks Gene plugged the strange vaquero who was with little Bonita thet night last fall. Wal, Gene’s scrappin’ now jest to git shot up hisself, for some reason thet only God Almighty knows.”
“Bill, think about this—none of the fights Gene has had were over a woman! It used to be when he was drunk, he’d get into a fight over every pretty girl he saw. That’s why Pat Hawe thinks Gene shot the strange cowboy who was with little Bonita that night last fall. Well, Gene’s fighting now just to get himself hurt, for some reason that only God knows.”
Nels’s story of how Stewart wept over his horse influenced Madeline powerfully. Her next move was to persuade Alfred to see if he could not do better with this doggedly bent cowboy. Alfred needed only a word of persuasion, for he said he had considered going to Rodeo of his own accord. He went, and returned alone.
Nels’s story about how Stewart cried over his horse had a strong impact on Madeline. Her next step was to convince Alfred to see if he could make a difference with this stubborn cowboy. Alfred just needed a little encouragement, as he mentioned he had thought about going to the Rodeo on his own. He went and came back alone.
“Majesty, I can’t explain Stewart’s singular actions,” said Alfred. “I saw him, talked with him. He knew me, but nothing I said appeared to get to him. He has changed terribly. I fancy his once magnificent strength is breaking. It—it actually hurt me to look at him. I couldn’t have fetched him back here—not as he is now. I heard all about him, and if he isn’t downright out of his mind he’s hell-bent, as Bill says, on getting killed. Some of his escapades are—are not for your ears. Bill did all any man could do for another. We’ve all done our best for Stewart. If you’d been given a chance perhaps you could have saved him. But it’s too late. Put it out of mind now, dear.”
“Your Majesty, I can’t explain Stewart’s strange behavior,” said Alfred. “I saw him and talked to him. He recognized me, but nothing I said seemed to reach him. He’s changed a lot. I think his once incredible strength is fading. It—it actually pained me to look at him. I couldn’t bring him back here—not like he is now. I’ve heard everything about him, and if he isn’t completely out of his mind, he’s determined, as Bill puts it, to get himself killed. Some of his actions are—are not something I want to share with you. Bill did everything any man could for another. We’ve all done our best for Stewart. If you’d had the chance, maybe you could have saved him. But it’s too late. Let it go now, dear.”
Madeline, however, did not forget nor give it up. If she had forgotten or surrendered, she felt that she would have been relinquishing infinitely more than hope to aid one ruined man. But she was at a loss to know what further steps to take. Days passed, and each one brought additional gossip of Stewart’s headlong career toward the Yuma penitentiary. For he had crossed the line into Cochise County, Arizona, where sheriffs kept a stricter observance of law. Finally a letter came from a friend of Nels’s in Chiricahua saying that Stewart had been hurt in a brawl there. His hurt was not serious, but it would probably keep him quiet long enough to get sober, and this opportunity, Nels’s informant said, would be a good one for Stewart’s friends to take him home before he got locked up. This epistle inclosed a letter to Stewart from his sister. Evidently, it had been found upon him. It told a story of illness and made an appeal for aid. Nels’s friend forwarded this letter without Stewart’s knowledge, thinking Stillwell might care to help Stewart’s family. Stewart had no money, he said.
Madeline, however, didn't forget or give up on him. If she had forgotten or surrendered, she felt that she would have been giving up so much more than just hope to help one ruined man. But she was unsure about what to do next. Days went by, and each one brought more rumors about Stewart’s reckless path toward the Yuma penitentiary. He had crossed into Cochise County, Arizona, where the sheriffs enforced the law more strictly. Finally, a letter arrived from a friend of Nels’s in Chiricahua saying that Stewart had been hurt in a fight there. His injuries weren't serious, but it would likely keep him quiet long enough to sober up. This, the informant said, would be a good chance for Stewart’s friends to take him home before he got locked up. This letter included a note to Stewart from his sister. Clearly, it had been found on him. It shared a story of illness and asked for help. Nels’s friend sent this letter without Stewart knowing, thinking Stillwell might want to assist Stewart’s family. Stewart had no money, he said.
The sister’s letter found its way to Madeline. She read it, tears in her eyes. It told Madeline much more than its brief story of illness and poverty and wonder why Gene had not written home for so long. It told of motherly love, sisterly love, brotherly love—dear family ties that had not been broken. It spoke of pride in this El Capitan brother who had become famous. It was signed “your loving sister Letty.”
The sister's letter reached Madeline. She read it with tears in her eyes. It revealed much more than its short tale of sickness and struggle and questioned why Gene hadn’t written home in so long. It expressed motherly love, sisterly love, and brotherly love—precious family bonds that remained unbroken. It celebrated pride in this El Capitan brother who had become famous. It was signed "your loving sister Letty."
Not improbably, Madeline revolved in mind, this letter was one reason for Stewart’s headstrong, long-continued abasement. It had been received too late—after he had squandered the money that would have meant so much to mother and sister. Be that as it might, Madeline immediately sent a bank-draft to Stewart’s sister with a letter explaining that the money was drawn in advance on Stewart’s salary. This done, she impulsively determined to go to Chiricahua herself.
Not surprisingly, Madeline thought, this letter was one reason for Stewart’s stubborn and prolonged humiliation. It had arrived too late—after he had wasted the money that would have meant so much to their mother and sister. Regardless, Madeline quickly sent a bank draft to Stewart’s sister along with a letter explaining that the money was taken in advance from Stewart’s salary. With that done, she impulsively decided to go to Chiricahua herself.
The horseback-rides Madeline had taken to this little Arizona hamlet had tried her endurance to the utmost; but the journey by automobile, except for some rocky bits of road and sandy stretches, was comfortable, and a matter of only a few hours. The big touring-car was still a kind of seventh wonder to the Mexicans and cowboys; not that automobiles were very new and strange, but because this one was such an enormous machine and capable of greater speed than an express-train. The chauffeur who had arrived with the car found his situation among the jealous cowboys somewhat far removed from a bed of roses. He had been induced to remain long enough to teach the operating and mechanical technique of the car. And choice fell upon Link Stevens, for the simple reason that of all the cowboys he was the only one with any knack for mechanics. Now Link had been a hard-riding, hard-driving cowboy, and that winter he had sustained an injury to his leg, caused by a bad fall, and was unable to sit his horse. This had been gall and wormwood to him. But when the big white automobile came and he was elected to drive it, life was once more worth living for him. But all the other cowboys regarded Link and his machine as some correlated species of demon. They were deathly afraid of both.
The horseback rides Madeline had taken to this small Arizona town had pushed her endurance to the limit; however, the drive in the car, aside from some rocky patches and sandy stretches, was comfortable and only took a few hours. The large touring car was still a sort of marvel to the Mexicans and cowboys; not because cars were entirely new and unfamiliar, but because this one was such a massive vehicle capable of going faster than an express train. The chauffeur who had come with the car found himself in a situation with the envious cowboys that was anything but easy. He had been persuaded to stay long enough to teach them how to operate and maintain the car. The job went to Link Stevens simply because he was the only cowboy with any mechanical skills. Link had once been a hard-riding, tough cowboy, but that winter he had injured his leg from a bad fall and couldn’t ride his horse. This had been incredibly frustrating for him. But when the big white car arrived and he was chosen to drive it, life felt worthwhile again. However, all the other cowboys saw Link and his car as some kind of related evil. They were terrified of both.
It was for this reason that Nels, when Madeline asked him to accompany her to Chiricahua, replied, reluctantly, that he would rather follow on his horse. However, she prevailed over his hesitancy, and with Florence also in the car they set out. For miles and miles the valley road was smooth, hard-packed, and slightly downhill. And when speeding was perfectly safe, Madeline was not averse to it. The grassy plain sailed backward in gray sheets, and the little dot in the valley grew larger and larger. From time to time Link glanced round at unhappy Nels, whose eyes were wild and whose hands clutched his seat. While the car was crossing the sandy and rocky places, going slowly, Nels appeared to breathe easier. And when it stopped in the wide, dusty street of Chiricahua Nels gladly tumbled out.
It was for this reason that Nels, when Madeline asked him to go with her to Chiricahua, reluctantly said he would prefer to ride his horse instead. However, she convinced him to come along, and with Florence also in the car, they set off. For miles, the valley road was smooth, well-packed, and gently sloped downhill. And when speeding was completely safe, Madeline had no issue with it. The grassy plain rushed past in gray sheets, and the small dot in the valley kept growing larger. Occasionally, Link looked back at Nels, who looked anxious, his eyes wide and hands gripping his seat. When the car moved slowly over the sandy and rocky spots, Nels seemed to relax a bit. And when it finally stopped in the wide, dusty street of Chiricahua, Nels eagerly jumped out.
“Nels, we shall wait here in the car while you find Stewart,” said Madeline.
“Nels, we’ll wait here in the car while you go find Stewart,” said Madeline.
“Miss Hammond, I reckon Gene’ll run when he sees us, if he’s able to run,” replied Nels. “Wal, I’ll go find him an’ make up my mind then what we’d better do.”
“Miss Hammond, I think Gene will take off when he sees us, if he can run,” replied Nels. “Well, I’ll go find him and decide what we should do then.”
Nels crossed the railroad track and disappeared behind the low, flat houses. After a little time he reappeared and hurried up to the car. Madeline felt his gray gaze searching her face.
Nels crossed the train tracks and vanished behind the low, flat houses. After a short while, he reemerged and quickly walked up to the car. Madeline felt his gray eyes scanning her face.
“Miss Hammond, I found him,” said Nels. “He was sleepin’. I woke him. He’s sober an’ not bad hurt; but I don’t believe you ought to see him. Mebbe Florence—”
“Miss Hammond, I found him,” said Nels. “He was sleeping. I woke him. He’s sober and not badly hurt; but I don’t think you should see him. Maybe Florence—”
“Nels, I want to see him myself. Why not? What did he say when you told him I was here?”
“Nels, I want to see him myself. Why not? What did he say when you told him I was here?”
“Shore I didn’t tell him that. I jest says, ‘Hullo, Gene!’ an’ he says, ‘My Gawd! Nels! mebbe I ain’t glad to see a human bein’.’ He asked me who was with me, an’ I told him Link an’ some friends. I said I’d fetch them in. He hollered at thet. But I went, anyway. Now, if you really will see him, Miss Hammond, it’s a good chance. But shore it’s a touchy matter, an’ you’ll be some sick at sight of him. He’s layin’ in a Greaser hole over here. Likely the Greasers hev been kind to him. But they’re shore a poor lot.”
“Sure I didn’t tell him that. I just said, ‘Hey, Gene!’ and he says, ‘My God! Nels! maybe I’m so glad to see another person.’ He asked me who was with me, and I told him Link and some friends. I said I’d go get them. He yelled at that. But I went anyway. Now, if you really want to see him, Miss Hammond, it’s a good opportunity. But it’s definitely a sensitive situation, and you might feel sick when you see him. He’s lying in a Greaser place over here. The Greasers have probably been nice to him. But they’re really a rough crowd.”
Madeline did not hesitate a moment.
Madeline didn't hesitate for a second.
“Thank you, Nels. Take me at once. Come, Florence.”
“Thanks, Nels. Take me right away. Come on, Florence.”
They left the car, now surrounded by gaping-eyed Mexican children, and crossed the dusty space to a narrow lane between red adobe walls. Passing by several houses, Nels stopped at the door of what appeared to be an alleyway leading back. It was filthy.
They got out of the car, now surrounded by wide-eyed Mexican kids, and crossed the dusty area to a narrow path between red adobe walls. After passing a few houses, Nels stopped at the door of what looked like an alley leading to the back. It was dirty.
“He’s in there, around thet first corner. It’s a patio, open an’ sunny. An’, Miss Hammond, if you don’t mind, I’ll wait here for you. I reckon Gene wouldn’t like any fellers around when he sees you girls.”
“He's in there, around that first corner. It's a patio, open and sunny. And, Miss Hammond, if you don't mind, I'll wait here for you. I think Gene wouldn’t want any guys around when he sees you girls.”
It was that which made Madeline hesitate then and go forward slowly. She had given no thought at all to what Stewart might feel when suddenly surprised by her presence.
It was that which made Madeline pause and move forward slowly. She hadn't considered at all how Stewart might feel when he was unexpectedly confronted by her presence.
“Florence, you wait also,” said Madeline, at the doorway, and turned in alone.
“Florence, you wait too,” said Madeline at the door, and went in by herself.
And she had stepped into a broken-down patio littered with alfalfa straw and debris, all clear in the sunlight. Upon a bench, back toward her, sat a man looking out through the rents in the broken wall. He had not heard her. The place was not quite so filthy and stifling as the passages Madeline had come through to get there. Then she saw that it had been used as a corral. A rat ran boldly across the dirt floor. The air swarmed with flies, which the man brushed at with weary hand. Madeline did not recognize Stewart. The side of his face exposed to her gaze was black, bruised, bearded. His clothes were ragged and soiled. There were bits of alfalfa in his hair. His shoulders sagged. He made a wretched and hopeless figure sitting there. Madeline divined something of why Nels shrank from being present.
And she had stepped into a rundown patio scattered with alfalfa straw and debris, all visible in the sunlight. On a bench, facing away from her, sat a man looking out through the gaps in the broken wall. He hadn’t heard her. The place wasn’t quite as filthy and suffocating as the paths Madeline had walked through to get there. Then she noticed it had been used as a corral. A rat scurried boldly across the dirt floor. The air was thick with flies, which the man swatted away with a tired hand. Madeline didn’t recognize Stewart. The side of his face that was visible to her was dark, bruised, and bearded. His clothes were tattered and dirty. There were bits of alfalfa in his hair. His shoulders drooped. He looked like a miserable and hopeless figure sitting there. Madeline sensed why Nels wanted to avoid being there.
“Mr. Stewart. It is I, Miss Hammond, come to see you,” she said.
“Mr. Stewart. It's me, Miss Hammond, here to see you,” she said.
He grew suddenly perfectly motionless, as if he had been changed to stone. She repeated her greeting.
He suddenly became completely still, as if he had turned to stone. She repeated her greeting.
His body jerked. He moved violently as if instinctively to turn and face this intruder; but a more violent movement checked him.
His body twitched. He moved sharply as if driven by instinct to turn and confront this intruder; but a stronger force stopped him.
Madeline waited. How singular that this ruined cowboy had pride which kept him from showing his face! And was it not shame more than pride?
Madeline waited. How strange that this broken cowboy had enough pride to hide his face! And wasn't it more about shame than pride?
“Mr. Stewart, I have come to talk with you, if you will let me.”
“Mr. Stewart, I’d like to talk with you, if that’s okay.”
“Go away,” he muttered.
“Leave me alone,” he muttered.
“Mr. Stewart!” she began, with involuntary hauteur. But instantly she corrected herself, became deliberate and cool, for she saw that she might fail to be even heard by this man. “I have come to help you. Will you let me?”
“Mr. Stewart!” she started, with an unintended attitude. But right away she adjusted herself, becoming calm and composed, because she realized she might not even be heard by this man. “I’m here to help you. Will you let me?”
“For God’s sake! You—you—” he choked over the words. “Go away!”
“For God’s sake! You—you—” he struggled to get the words out. “Just leave!”
“Stewart, perhaps it was for God’s sake that I came,” said Madeline, gently. “Surely it was for yours—and your sister’s—” Madeline bit her tongue, for she had not meant to betray her knowledge of Letty.
“Stewart, maybe I came for God’s sake,” Madeline said softly. “It must have been for yours—and your sister’s—” Madeline bit her tongue, as she hadn’t intended to reveal what she knew about Letty.
He groaned, and, staggering up to the broken wall, he leaned there with his face hidden. Madeline reflected that perhaps the slip of speech had been well.
He groaned and, stumbling over to the broken wall, leaned against it with his face hidden. Madeline thought that maybe the slip of the tongue wasn't such a bad thing.
“Stewart, please let me say what I have to say?”
“Stewart, can I say what I need to?”
He was silent. And she gathered courage and inspiration.
He was quiet. And she found her courage and inspiration.
“Stillwell is deeply hurt, deeply grieved that he could not turn you back from this—this fatal course. My brother is also. They wanted to help you. And so do I. I have come, thinking somehow I might succeed where they have failed. Nels brought your sister’s letter. I—I read it. I was only the more determined to try to help you, and indirectly help your mother and Letty. Stewart, we want you to come to the ranch. Stillwell needs you for his foreman. The position is open to you, and you can name your salary. Both Al and Stillwell are worried about Don Carlos, the vaqueros, and the raids down along the border. My cowboys are without a capable leader. Will you come?”
“Stillwell is really hurt and sad that he couldn’t change your mind about this—this dangerous path. My brother feels the same way. They wanted to help you, and so do I. I came here hoping I might succeed where they couldn’t. Nels brought your sister’s letter. I—I read it, and it made me even more determined to help you, and indirectly help your mother and Letty. Stewart, we want you to come to the ranch. Stillwell needs you as his foreman. The position is yours if you want it, and you can set your salary. Both Al and Stillwell are concerned about Don Carlos, the vaqueros, and the raids along the border. My cowboys need a strong leader. Will you come?”
“No,” he answered.
“No,” he replied.
“But Stillwell wants you so badly.”
“But Stillwell wants you so much.”
“No.”
“Nope.”
“Stewart, I want you to come.”
“Stewart, I want you to come over.”
“No.”
“No.”
His replies had been hoarse, loud, furious. They disconcerted Madeline, and she paused, trying to think of a way to proceed. Stewart staggered away from the wall, and, falling upon the bench, he hid his face in his hands. All his motions, like his speech, had been violent.
His responses were rough, loud, and angry. They unsettled Madeline, and she stopped to figure out how to move forward. Stewart lurched away from the wall, and, collapsing onto the bench, he buried his face in his hands. Everything he did, just like what he said, was intense.
“Will you please go away?” he asked.
“Could you please leave?” he asked.
“Stewart, certainly I cannot remain here longer if you insist upon my going. But why not listen to me when I want so much to help you? Why?”
“Stewart, I really can't stay here any longer if you want me to leave. But why not listen to me when I genuinely want to help you? Why?”
“I’m a damned blackguard,” he burst out. “But I was a gentleman once, and I’m not so low that I can stand for you seeing me here.”
“I’m a damn scoundrel,” he exclaimed. “But I was a gentleman once, and I’m not so low that I can let you see me here.”
“When I made up my mind to help you I made it up to see you wherever you were. Stewart, come away, come back with us to the ranch. You are in a bad condition now. Everything looks black to you. But that will pass. When you are among friends again you will get well. You will be your old self. The very fact that you were once a gentleman, that you come of good family, makes you owe so much more to yourself. Why, Stewart, think how young you are! It is a shame to waste your life. Come back with me.”
“When I decided to help you, I committed to finding you wherever you were. Stewart, come on, come back with us to the ranch. You're in a tough spot right now. Everything seems bleak to you, but that will change. Once you're around friends again, you'll recover. You’ll be your old self again. The simple fact that you used to be a gentleman and come from a good family means you owe it to yourself to do better. Stewart, just think about how young you are! It’s a shame to throw your life away. Come back with me.”
“Miss Hammond, this was my last plunge,” he replied, despondently. “It’s too late.”
“Miss Hammond, this was my last attempt,” he said, feeling defeated. “It’s too late.”
“Oh no, it is not so bad as that.”
“Oh no, it's not that bad.”
“It’s too late.”
"It's too late."
“At least make an effort, Stewart. Try!”
“At least put in some effort, Stewart. Give it a try!”
“No. There’s no use. I’m done for. Please leave me—thank you for—”
“No. There’s no point. I’m finished. Please go—thank you for—”
He had been savage, then sullen, and now he was grim. Madeline all but lost power to resist his strange, deadly, cold finality. No doubt he knew he was doomed. Yet something halted her—held her even as she took a backward step. And she became conscious of a subtle change in her own feeling. She had come into that squalid hole, Madeline Hammond, earnest enough, kind enough in her own intentions; but she had been almost imperious—a woman habitually, proudly used to being obeyed. She divined that all the pride, blue blood, wealth, culture, distinction, all the impersonal condescending persuasion, all the fatuous philanthropy on earth would not avail to turn this man a single hair’s-breadth from his downward career to destruction. Her coming had terribly augmented his bitter hate of himself. She was going to fail to help him. She experienced a sensation of impotence that amounted almost to distress. The situation assumed a tragic keenness. She had set forth to reverse the tide of a wild cowboy’s fortunes; she faced the swift wasting of his life, the damnation of his soul. The subtle consciousness of change in her was the birth of that faith she had revered in Stillwell. And all at once she became merely a woman, brave and sweet and indomitable.
He had been fierce, then withdrawn, and now he was serious. Madeline felt she was losing her ability to resist his strange, lethal, icy finality. He probably realized he was doomed. Yet something stopped her—held her even as she took a step back. She became aware of a subtle change in her own feelings. She had entered that grim place as Madeline Hammond, earnest enough, kind enough in her intentions; but she had been almost commanding—a woman used to being obeyed. She realized that none of her pride, heritage, wealth, culture, or status, no amount of condescending persuasion or empty charity, would change this man even a little from his downward path to ruin. Her presence had only intensified his deep self-loathing. She was going to fail to help him. She felt a sense of powerlessness that was almost distressing. The situation took on a stark tragedy. She had set out to change the fortune of a wild cowboy; now she faced the rapid decline of his life, the damnation of his soul. The subtle awareness of change within her marked the beginning of the faith she had admired in Stillwell. Suddenly, she became simply a woman, courageous, kind, and unyielding.
“Stewart, look at me,” she said.
“Stewart, look at me,” she said.
He shuddered. She advanced and laid a hand on his bent shoulder. Under the light touch he appeared to sink.
He shuddered. She stepped closer and placed a hand on his hunched shoulder. Under her light touch, he seemed to slump even more.
“Look at me,” she repeated.
“Check me out,” she repeated.
But he could not lift his head. He was abject, crushed. He dared not show his swollen, blackened face. His fierce, cramped posture revealed more than his features might have shown; it betrayed the torturing shame of a man of pride and passion, a man who had been confronted in his degradation by the woman he had dared to enshrine in his heart. It betrayed his love.
But he couldn’t lift his head. He felt defeated and crushed. He didn’t dare show his swollen, bruised face. His tense, hunched posture revealed more than his appearance might have; it exposed the unbearable shame of a proud and passionate man, one who had been confronted in his humiliation by the woman he had dared to hold in his heart. It revealed his love.
“Listen, then,” went on Madeline, and her voice was unsteady. “Listen to me, Stewart. The greatest men are those who have fallen deepest into the mire, sinned most, suffered most, and then have fought their evil natures and conquered. I think you can shake off this desperate mood and be a man.”
“Listen to me, Stewart,” Madeline continued, her voice shaky. “The greatest people are those who have fallen the hardest, messed up the most, suffered the most, and then fought their inner demons and won. I believe you can overcome this hopeless feeling and be a better man.”
“No!” he cried.
“No!” he shouted.
“Listen to me again. Somehow I know you’re worthy of Stillwell’s love. Will you come back with us—for his sake?”
“Listen to me again. Somehow, I know you’re deserving of Stillwell’s love. Will you come back with us—for his sake?”
“No. It’s too late, I tell you.”
“No. It’s too late, I’m telling you.”
“Stewart, the best thing in life is faith in human nature. I have faith in you. I believe you are worth it.”
“Stewart, the best thing in life is believing in people. I believe in you. I think you’re worth it.”
“You’re only kind and good—saying that. You can’t mean it.”
“You're just being nice by saying that. You can't really mean it.”
“I mean it with all my heart,” she replied, a sudden rich warmth suffusing her body as she saw the first sign of his softening. “Will you come back—if not for your own sake or Stillwell’s—then for mine?”
“I mean it with all my heart,” she replied, a sudden warmth spreading through her as she saw the first sign of him softening. “Will you come back—if not for your own sake or Stillwell’s—then for mine?”
“What am I to such a woman as you?”
“What am I to someone like you?”
“A man in trouble, Stewart. But I have come to help you, to show my faith in you.”
“A man in trouble, Stewart. But I’m here to help you, to show my belief in you.”
“If I believed that I might try,” he said.
“If I thought I could, I would give it a shot,” he said.
“Listen,” she began, softly, hurriedly. “My word is not lightly given. Let it prove my faith in you. Look at me now and say you will come.”
“Listen,” she started, softly and quickly. “I don’t give my word lightly. Let this show my trust in you. Look at me now and promise you’ll come.”
He heaved up his big frame as if trying to cast off a giant’s burden, and then slowly he turned toward her. His face was a blotched and terrible thing. The physical brutalizing marks were there, and at that instant all that appeared human to Madeline was the dawning in dead, furnace-like eyes of a beautiful light.
He lifted his large frame as if trying to shake off a huge burden, and then slowly turned toward her. His face was disfigured and awful. The signs of physical brutality were there, and in that moment, the only thing that seemed human to Madeline was the glimmer of a beautiful light emerging in his dead, furnace-like eyes.
“I’ll come,” he whispered, huskily. “Give me a few days to straighten up, then I’ll come.”
“I’ll come,” he whispered, raspy. “Give me a few days to get things together, then I’ll come.”
IX. The New Foreman
Toward the end of the week Stillwell informed Madeline that Stewart had arrived at the ranch and had taken up quarters with Nels.
Toward the end of the week, Stillwell told Madeline that Stewart had arrived at the ranch and was staying with Nels.
“Gene’s sick. He looks bad,” said the old cattleman. “He’s so weak an’ shaky he can’t lift a cup. Nels says that Gene has hed some bad spells. A little liquor would straighten him up now. But Nels can’t force him to drink a drop, an’ has hed to sneak some liquor in his coffee. Wal, I think we’ll pull Gene through. He’s forgotten a lot. I was goin’ to tell him what he did to me up at Rodeo. But I know if he’d believe it he’d be sicker than he is. Gene’s losin’ his mind, or he’s got somethin’ powerful strange on it.”
“Gene’s sick. He looks terrible,” said the old cattleman. “He’s so weak and shaky he can’t even lift a cup. Nels says that Gene has had some bad episodes. A little liquor would help him out right now. But Nels can’t make him drink a drop and has had to sneak some liquor into his coffee. Well, I think we’ll get Gene through this. He’s forgotten a lot. I was going to tell him what he did to me at Rodeo. But I know if he believed it, he’d be even sicker than he is. Gene’s losing his mind, or he’s got something really strange on it.”
From that time Stillwell, who evidently found Madeline his most sympathetic listener, unburdened himself daily of his hopes and fears and conjectures.
From that time on, Stillwell, who obviously found Madeline to be his most understanding listener, shared his hopes, fears, and speculations with her every day.
Stewart was really ill. It became necessary to send Link Stevens for a physician. Then Stewart began slowly to mend and presently was able to get up and about. Stillwell said the cowboy lacked interest and seemed to be a broken man. This statement, however, the old cattleman modified as Stewart continued to improve. Then presently it was a good augury of Stewart’s progress that the cowboys once more took up the teasing relation which had been characteristic of them before his illness. A cowboy was indeed out of sorts when he could not vent his peculiar humor on somebody or something. Stewart had evidently become a broad target for their badinage.
Stewart was really sick. It became necessary to send Link Stevens for a doctor. Then Stewart slowly started to recover and was eventually able to get up and move around. Stillwell remarked that the cowboy seemed disinterested and appeared to be a broken man. However, the old cattleman adjusted his opinion as Stewart continued to improve. It was a good sign of Stewart’s recovery that the cowboys resumed their playful teasing, which had been their norm before his illness. A cowboy was truly out of sorts when he couldn't express his unique sense of humor on someone or something. Stewart had clearly become an easy target for their jokes.
“Wal, the boys are sure after Gene,” said Stillwell, with his huge smile. “Joshin’ him all the time about how he sits around an’ hangs around an’ loafs around jest to get a glimpse of you, Miss Majesty. Sure all the boys hev a pretty bad case over their pretty boss, but none of them is a marker to Gene. He’s got it so bad, Miss Majesty, thet he actooly don’t know they are joshin’ him. It’s the amazin’est strange thing I ever seen. Why, Gene was always a feller thet you could josh. An’ he’d laugh an’ get back at you. But he was never before deaf to talk, an’ there was a certain limit no feller cared to cross with him. Now he takes every word an’ smiles dreamy like, an’ jest looks an’ looks. Why, he’s beginnin’ to make me tired. He’ll never run thet bunch of cowboys if he doesn’t wake up quick.”
“Wow, the guys are definitely into Gene,” said Stillwell, flashing his big smile. “They’re joking about how he just sits around and hangs out, trying to catch a glimpse of you, Miss Majesty. All the guys have a serious crush on their pretty boss, but none of them can compete with Gene. He’s so into you, Miss Majesty, that he doesn’t even realize they’re joking with him. It’s the strangest thing I’ve ever seen. Gene used to be the type of guy you could tease. He’d laugh and give it right back to you. But he’s never been this oblivious to talk, and there was always a line no guy wanted to cross with him. Now he takes everything to heart, smiling dreamily and just staring. Honestly, he’s starting to wear me out. He won’t be able to manage that group of cowboys if he doesn’t wake up soon.”
Madeline smiled her amusement and expressed a belief that Stillwell wanted too much in such short time from a man who had done body and mind a grievous injury.
Madeline smiled with amusement and believed that Stillwell was asking too much in such a short time from a man who had suffered a serious injury to both body and mind.
It had been impossible for Madeline to fail to observe Stewart’s singular behavior. She never went out to take her customary walks and rides without seeing him somewhere in the distance. She was aware that he watched for her and avoided meeting her. When she sat on the porch during the afternoon or at sunset Stewart could always be descried at some point near. He idled listlessly in the sun, lounged on the porch of his bunk-house, sat whittling the top bar of the corral fence, and always it seemed to Madeline he was watching her. Once, while going the rounds with her gardener, she encountered Stewart and greeted him kindly. He said little, but he was not embarrassed. She did not recognize in his face any feature that she remembered. In fact, on each of the few occasions when she had met Stewart he had looked so different that she had no consistent idea of his facial appearance. He was now pale, haggard, drawn. His eyes held a shadow through which shone a soft, subdued light; and, once having observed this, Madeline fancied it was like the light in Majesty’s eyes, in the dumb, worshiping eyes of her favorite stag-hound. She told Stewart that she hoped he would soon be in the saddle again, and passed on her way.
It was impossible for Madeline to miss Stewart’s unusual behavior. She never went out for her usual walks and rides without spotting him somewhere in the distance. She knew he was waiting to catch a glimpse of her while avoiding an encounter. When she sat on the porch in the afternoon or at sunset, Stewart was always visible nearby. He lounged lazily in the sun, sprawled on the porch of his bunkhouse, or sat whittling the top bar of the corral fence, and it always seemed to Madeline like he was watching her. Once, while walking with her gardener, she ran into Stewart and greeted him warmly. He said little, but he didn’t seem awkward. She couldn’t recognize any familiar features in his face. In fact, during the few times she had seen Stewart, he looked so different each time that she had no clear image of how he appeared. He was now pale, worn, and drawn. His eyes had a shadow, yet there was a soft, muted light in them; once she noticed this, Madeline thought it resembled the light in Majesty’s eyes, the silent, adoring eyes of her favorite stag-hound. She told Stewart that she hoped he would be back in the saddle soon, and then continued on her way.
That Stewart loved her Madeline could not help but see. She endeavored to think of him as one of the many who, she was glad to know, liked her. But she could not regulate her thoughts to fit the order her intelligence prescribed. Thought of Stewart dissociated itself from thought of the other cowboys. When she discovered this she felt a little surprise and annoyance. Then she interrogated herself, and concluded that it was not that Stewart was so different from his comrades, but that circumstances made him stand out from them. She recalled her meeting with him that night when he had tried to force her to marry him. This was unforgettable in itself. She called subsequent mention of him, and found it had been peculiarly memorable. The man and his actions seemed to hinge on events. Lastly, the fact standing clear of all others in its relation to her interest was that he had been almost ruined, almost lost, and she had saved him. That alone was sufficient to explain why she thought of him differently. She had befriended, uplifted the other cowboys; she had saved Stewart’s life. To be sure, he had been a ruffian, but a woman could not save the life of even a ruffian without remembering it with gladness. Madeline at length decided her interest in Stewart was natural, and that her deeper feeling was pity. Perhaps the interest had been forced from her; however, she gave the pity as she gave everything.
Madeline couldn’t help but see that Stewart loved her. She tried to think of him as just one of the many who liked her, which made her happy. But she couldn’t quite control her thoughts to fit what she knew was logical. Thoughts of Stewart separated themselves from thoughts of the other cowboys. When she realized this, she felt a bit surprised and annoyed. Then she questioned herself and concluded that it wasn't that Stewart was so different from his peers, but that the situation made him stand out. She remembered their encounter that night when he had tried to force her to marry him. That was unforgettable on its own. She recalled later mentions of him and found them particularly memorable. His actions seemed tied to certain events. The most important fact in relation to her feelings was that he had been nearly ruined, nearly lost, and she had saved him. That alone explained why she thought of him differently. She had befriended and uplifted the other cowboys, but she had saved Stewart’s life. He had indeed been a troublemaker, but a woman couldn’t save the life of even a troublemaker without remembering it fondly. In the end, Madeline decided her interest in Stewart was natural and that her deeper feeling was pity. Perhaps her interest was forced, but she gave her pity just as she gave everything else.
Stewart recovered his strength, though not in time to ride at the spring round-up; and Stillwell discussed with Madeline the advisability of making the cowboy his foreman.
Stewart regained his strength, but not in time to participate in the spring round-up; and Stillwell talked with Madeline about whether it would be wise to make the cowboy his foreman.
“Wal, Gene seems to be gettin’ along,” said Stillwell. “But he ain’t like his old self. I think more of him at thet. But where’s his spirit? The boys’d ride rough-shod all over him. Mebbe I’d do best to wait longer now, as the slack season is on. All the same, if those vaquero of Don Carlos’s don’t lay low I’ll send Gene over there. Thet’ll wake him up.”
“Well, Gene seems to be doing okay,” said Stillwell. “But he’s not like his old self. I actually think better of him for that. But where's his spirit? The guys would run all over him. Maybe I should wait a bit longer since it's the slow season. Still, if those cowboys of Don Carlos don’t keep it down, I’ll send Gene over there. That’ll wake him up.”
A few days afterward Stillwell came to Madeline, rubbing his big hands in satisfaction and wearing a grin that was enormous.
A few days later, Stillwell approached Madeline, rubbing his large hands together in satisfaction and sporting a huge grin.
“Miss Majesty, I reckon before this I’ve said things was amazin’ strange. But now Gene Stewart has gone an’ done it! Listen to me. Them Greasers down on our slope hev been gettin’ prosperous. They’re growin’ like bad weeds. An’ they got a new padre—the little old feller from El Cajon, Padre Marcos. Wal, this was all right, all the boys thought, except Gene. An’ he got blacker ’n thunder an’ roared round like a dehorned bull. I was sure glad to see he could get mad again. Then Gene haids down the slope fer the church. Nels an’ me follered him, thinkin’ he might hev been took sudden with a crazy spell or somethin’. He hasn’t never been jest right yet since he left off drinkin’. Wal, we run into him comin’ out of the church. We never was so dumfounded in our lives. Gene was crazy, all right—he sure hed a spell. But it was the kind of a spell he hed thet paralyzed us. He ran past us like a streak, an’ we follered. We couldn’t ketch him. We heerd him laugh—the strangest laugh I ever heerd! You’d thought the feller was suddenly made a king. He was like thet feller who was tied in a bunyin’-sack an’ throwed into the sea, an’ cut his way out, an’ swam to the island where the treasures was, an’ stood up yellin’, ‘The world is mine.’ Wal, when we got up to his bunk-house he was gone. He didn’t come back all day an’ all night. Frankie Slade, who has a sharp tongue, says Gene hed gone crazy for liquor an’ thet was his finish. Nels was some worried. An’ I was sick.
“Miss Majesty, I think I’ve mentioned before how strange things were. But now Gene Stewart has really outdone himself! Listen to this. Those Greasers down the hill have been doing well. They're spreading like weeds. And they have a new priest—the little old guy from El Cajon, Padre Marcos. Well, everyone thought this was fine, except for Gene. He got angrier than ever and stomped around like a bull without its horns. I was really glad to see he could get mad again. Then Gene heads down the hill toward the church. Nels and I followed him, thinking he might have suddenly lost his mind or something. He’s never really been the same since he stopped drinking. So, we ran into him coming out of the church. We’d never been so shocked in our lives. Gene was definitely crazy—he had a fit for sure. But it was the kind of fit that left us frozen. He dashed past us like a flash, and we chased after him. We couldn’t catch up. We heard him laugh—the strangest laugh I ever heard! You’d think the guy had suddenly become a king. He was like that dude tied in a bag and thrown into the ocean, who cut his way out, swam to an island full of treasures, and stood there shouting, ‘The world is mine.’ Well, when we got to his bunkhouse, he was gone. He didn’t come back all day and all night. Frankie Slade, who has a sharp tongue, says Gene has gone crazy from liquor, and that’s the end of him. Nels was pretty worried. And I felt sick.
“Wal’ this mawnin’ I went over to Nels’s bunk. Some of the fellers was there, all speculatin’ about Gene. Then big as life Gene struts round the corner. He wasn’t the same Gene. His face was pale an’ his eyes burned like fire. He had thet old mockin’, cool smile, an’ somethin’ besides thet I couldn’t understand. Frankie Slade up an’ made a remark—no wuss than he’d been makin’ fer days—an’ Gene tumbled him out of his chair, punched him good, walked all over him. Frankie wasn’t hurt so much as he was bewildered. ‘Gene,’ he says, ‘what the hell struck you?’ An’ Gene says, kind of sweet like, ‘Frankie, you may be a nice feller when you’re alone, but your talk’s offensive to a gentleman.’
“Well, this morning I went over to Nels’s place. Some of the guys were there, all speculating about Gene. Then suddenly, there he was, strutting around the corner. He wasn’t the same Gene. His face was pale and his eyes burned like fire. He had that old mocking, cool smile, and something else I couldn’t quite understand. Frankie Slade made a comment—just like he had for days—and Gene knocked him out of his chair, punched him hard, and really went after him. Frankie wasn’t hurt too badly, but he was confused. ‘Gene,’ he said, ‘what the hell’s gotten into you?’ And Gene replied, kind of sweetly, ‘Frankie, you might be a nice guy when you’re alone, but your words are offensive to a gentleman.’”
“After thet what was said to Gene was with a nice smile. Now, Miss Majesty, it’s beyond me what to allow for Gene’s sudden change. First off, I thought Padre Marcos had converted him. I actooly thought thet. But I reckon it’s only Gene Stewart come back—the old Gene Stewart an’ some. Thet’s all I care about. I’m rememberin’ how I once told you thet Gene was the last of the cowboys. Perhaps I should hev said he’s the last of my kind of cowboys. Wal, Miss Majesty, you’ll be apprecatin’ of what I meant from now on.”
“After that, what was said to Gene was with a nice smile. Now, Miss Majesty, I really don’t understand why Gene changed so suddenly. At first, I thought Padre Marcos had converted him. I actually thought that. But I guess it’s just Gene Stewart coming back—the old Gene Stewart and then some. That’s all I care about. I’m remembering how I once told you that Gene was the last of the cowboys. Maybe I should have said he’s the last of my kind of cowboys. Well, Miss Majesty, you’ll understand what I meant from now on.”
It was also beyond Madeline to account for Gene Stewart’s antics, and, making allowance for the old cattleman’s fancy, she did not weigh his remarks very heavily. She guessed why Stewart might have been angry at the presence of Padre Marcos. Madeline supposed that it was rather an unusual circumstance for a cowboy to be converted to religious belief. But it was possible. And she knew that religious fervor often manifested itself in extremes of feeling and action. Most likely, in Stewart’s case, his real manner had been both misunderstood and exaggerated. However, Madeline had a curious desire, which she did not wholly admit to herself, to see the cowboy and make her own deductions.
It was also beyond Madeline to make sense of Gene Stewart’s antics, and, considering the old cattleman’s eccentricities, she didn’t take his remarks too seriously. She suspected why Stewart might have been upset about Padre Marcos being around. Madeline thought it was quite unusual for a cowboy to embrace religious belief. But it was possible. And she knew that religious enthusiasm often showed itself in extreme feelings and actions. Most likely, in Stewart’s case, his true demeanor had been both misunderstood and exaggerated. Still, Madeline had a strange desire, which she didn’t fully acknowledge, to meet the cowboy and form her own opinions.
The opportunity did not present itself for nearly two weeks. Stewart had taken up his duties as foreman, and his activities were ceaseless. He was absent most of the time, ranging down toward the Mexican line. When he returned Stillwell sent for him.
The opportunity didn't come up for almost two weeks. Stewart had taken on his role as foreman, and he was always busy. He was gone most of the time, heading down toward the Mexican border. When he came back, Stillwell called for him.
This was late in the afternoon of a day in the middle of April. Alfred and Florence were with Madeline on the porch. They saw the cowboy turn his horse over to one of the Mexican boys at the corral and then come with weary step up to the house, beating the dust out of his gauntlets. Little streams of gray sand trickled from his sombrero as he removed it and bowed to the women.
This was late in the afternoon on a day in the middle of April. Alfred and Florence were with Madeline on the porch. They watched the cowboy hand his horse over to one of the Mexican boys at the corral and then walk up to the house with a tired stride, shaking the dust out of his gloves. Small streams of gray sand fell from his sombrero as he took it off and nodded to the women.
Madeline saw the man she remembered, but with a singularly different aspect. His skin was brown; his eyes were piercing and dark and steady; he carried himself erect; he seemed preoccupied, and there was not a trace of embarrassment in his manner.
Madeline saw the man she remembered, but he looked completely different. His skin was brown; his eyes were sharp, dark, and steady; he held himself upright; he seemed lost in thought, and there was no hint of embarrassment in how he acted.
“Wal, Gene, I’m sure glad to see you,” Stillwell was saying. “Where do you hail from?”
“Hey, Gene, I’m really glad to see you,” Stillwell said. “Where are you coming from?”
“Guadaloupe Canyon,” replied the cowboy.
“Guadaloupe Canyon,” replied the cowboy.
Stillwell whistled.
Stillwell whistled.
“Way down there! You don’t mean you follered them hoss tracks thet far?”
“Way down there! You can’t be serious that you followed those horse tracks that far?”
“All the way from Don Carlos’s rancho across the Mexican line. I took Nick Steele with me. Nick is the best tracker in the outfit. This trail we were on led along the foothill valleys. First we thought whoever made it was hunting for water. But they passed two ranches without watering. At Seaton’s Wash they dug for water. Here they met a pack-train of burros that came down the mountain trail. The burros were heavily loaded. Horse and burro tracks struck south from Seaton’s to the old California emigrant road. We followed the trail through Guadelope Canyon and across the border. On the way back we stopped at Slaughter’s ranch, where the United States cavalry are camping. There we met foresters from the Peloncillo forest reserve. If these fellows knew anything they kept it to themselves. So we hit the trail home.”
“All the way from Don Carlos’s ranch across the Mexican border. I took Nick Steele with me. Nick is the best tracker in the group. This trail we were on led along the foothill valleys. At first, we thought whoever made it was looking for water. But they passed two ranches without stopping to water. At Seaton’s Wash, they dug for water. Here, they encountered a pack train of burros coming down the mountain trail. The burros were carrying heavy loads. Horse and burro tracks headed south from Seaton’s to the old California emigrant road. We followed the trail through Guadelope Canyon and across the border. On the way back, we stopped at Slaughter’s ranch, where the United States cavalry was camping. There, we met foresters from the Peloncillo forest reserve. If these guys knew anything, they kept it to themselves. So we hit the trail home.”
“Wal, I reckon you know enough?” inquired Stillwell, slowly.
“Well, I guess you know enough?” asked Stillwell, slowly.
“I reckon,” replied Stewart.
“I think,” replied Stewart.
“Wal, out with it, then,” said Stillwell, gruffly. “Miss Hammond can’t be kept in the dark much longer. Make your report to her.”
“Come on, just say it,” Stillwell said gruffly. “Miss Hammond can’t be kept in the dark much longer. Give her your report.”
The cowboy shifted his dark gaze to Madeline. He was cool and slow.
The cowboy turned his dark gaze toward Madeline. He was calm and deliberate.
“We’re losing a few cattle on the open range. Night-drives by the vaqueros. Some of these cattle are driven across the valley, others up to the foothills. So far as I can find out no cattle are being driven south. So this raiding is a blind to fool the cowboys. Don Carlos is a Mexican rebel. He located his rancho here a few years ago and pretended to raise cattle. All that time he has been smuggling arms and ammunition across the border. He was for Madero against Diaz. Now he is against Madero because he and all the rebels think Madero failed to keep his promises. There will be another revolution. And all the arms go from the States across the border. Those burros I told about were packed with contraband goods.”
“We're losing some cattle out on the open range. The vaqueros are doing night drives. Some of the cattle are being moved across the valley, while others are headed up to the foothills. As far as I can tell, no cattle are being driven south. So this raiding seems to be a decoy to trick the cowboys. Don Carlos is a Mexican rebel. He set up his ranch here a few years back and pretended to raise cattle. All this time, he’s been smuggling arms and ammunition across the border. He supported Madero against Diaz, but now he’s against Madero because he and all the rebels believe Madero didn't keep his promises. Another revolution is coming, and all the arms are being transported from the States across the border. Those burros I mentioned earlier were loaded with illegal goods.”
“That’s a matter for the United States cavalry. They are patrolling the border,” said Alfred.
“That’s something for the U.S. cavalry. They’re patrolling the border,” said Alfred.
“They can’t stop the smuggling of arms, not down in that wild corner,” replied Stewart.
“They can’t stop the arms smuggling, not in that wild corner,” replied Stewart.
“What is my—my duty? What has it to do with me?” inquired Madeline, somewhat perturbed.
“What is my—my duty? What does it have to do with me?” Madeline asked, a bit unsettled.
“Wal, Miss Majesty, I reckon it hasn’t nothing to do with you,” put in Stillwell. “Thet’s my bizness an’ Stewart’s. But I jest wanted you to know. There might be some trouble follerin’ my orders.”
“Well, Miss Majesty, I don’t think it has anything to do with you,” Stillwell interjected. “That’s my business and Stewart’s. But I just wanted you to know. There might be some trouble following my orders.”
“Your orders?”
“What's your order?”
“I want to send Stewart over to fire Don Carlos an’ his vaqueros off the range. They’ve got to go. Don Carlos is breakin’ the law of the United States, an’ doin’ it on our property an’ with our hosses. Hev I your permission, Miss Hammond?”
“I want to send Stewart over to fire Don Carlos and his cowboys from the range. They have to go. Don Carlos is breaking the law of the United States, and he's doing it on our property and with our horses. Do I have your permission, Miss Hammond?”
“Why, assuredly you have! Stillwell, you know what to do. Alfred, what do you think best?”
“Of course you have! Stillwell, you know what to do. Alfred, what do you think is best?”
“It’ll make trouble, Majesty, but it’s got to be done,” replied Alfred. “Here you have a crowd of Eastern friends due next month. We want the range to ourselves then. But, Stillwell, if you drive those vaqueros off, won’t they hang around in the foothills? I declare they are a bad lot.”
“It’s going to cause problems, Your Majesty, but it has to be done,” Alfred replied. “You have a bunch of Eastern friends coming next month. We want the place to ourselves by then. But, Stillwell, if you run those cowboys off, won’t they just stick around in the foothills? I truly believe they’re a bad crowd.”
Stillwell’s mind was not at ease. He paced the porch with a frown clouding his brow.
Stillwell's mind was troubled. He walked back and forth on the porch, a frown on his face.
“Gene, I reckon you got this Greaser deal figgered better’n me,” said Stillwell. “Now what do you say?”
“Gene, I think you've got this Greaser situation figured out better than I do,” said Stillwell. “So, what do you say?”
“He’ll have to be forced off,” replied Stewart, quietly. “The Don’s pretty slick, but his vaqueros are bad actors. It’s just this way. Nels said the other day to me, ‘Gene, I haven’t packed a gun for years until lately, and it feels good whenever I meet any of those strange Greasers.’ You see, Stillwell, Don Carlos has vaqueros coming and going all the time. They’re guerrilla bands, that’s all. And they’re getting uglier. There have been several shooting-scrapes lately. A rancher named White, who lives up the valley, was badly hurt. It’s only a matter of time till something stirs up the boys here. Stillwell, you know Nels and Monty and Nick.”
"He'll need to be forced out," Stewart replied quietly. "The Don’s pretty smooth, but his cowboys are troublemakers. It’s just like this. Nels said to me the other day, 'Gene, I haven’t carried a gun in years until recently, and it feels good whenever I run into any of those sketchy Greasers.' You see, Stillwell, Don Carlos has cowboys coming and going all the time. They’re just guerrilla groups, that’s all. And they’re getting more aggressive. There have been a few shootouts lately. A rancher named White, who lives up the valley, was badly injured. It’s only a matter of time before something stirs up the guys here. Stillwell, you know Nels and Monty and Nick."
“Sure I know ’em. An’ you’re not mentionin’ one more particular cowboy in my outfit,” said Stillwell, with a dry chuckle and a glance at Stewart.
“Sure, I know them. And you’re not bringing up one specific cowboy in my crew,” said Stillwell, with a dry laugh and a look at Stewart.
Madeline divined the covert meaning, and a slight chill passed over her, as if a cold wind had blown in from the hills.
Madeline understood the hidden meaning, and a slight chill ran through her, as if a cold wind had swept in from the hills.
“Stewart, I see you carry a gun,” she said, pointing to a black handle protruding from a sheath swinging low along his leather chaps.
“Stewart, I see you have a gun,” she said, pointing to a black handle sticking out from a sheath that was swinging low along his leather chaps.
“Yes, ma’am.”
“Yes, ma'am.”
“Why do you carry it?” she asked.
“Why do you have it?” she asked.
“Well,” he said, “it’s not a pretty gun—and it’s heavy.” She caught the inference. The gun was not an ornament. His keen, steady, dark gaze caused her vague alarm. What had once seemed cool and audacious about this cowboy was now cold and powerful and mystical. Both her instinct and her intelligence realized the steel fiber of the man’s nature. As she was his employer, she had the right to demand that he should not do what was so chillingly manifest that he might do. But Madeline could not demand. She felt curiously young and weak, and the five months of Western life were as if they had never been. She now had to do with a question involving human life. And the value she placed upon human life and its spiritual significance was a matter far from her cowboy’s thoughts. A strange idea flashed up. Did she place too much value upon all human life? She checked that, wondering, almost horrified at herself. And then her intuition told her that she possessed a far stronger power to move these primitive men than any woman’s stern rule or order.
“Well,” he said, “it’s not a pretty gun—and it’s heavy.” She understood the implication. The gun wasn’t a decoration. His sharp, piercing gaze made her uneasy. What had once seemed cool and daring about this cowboy now felt cold, powerful, and mysterious. Both her instincts and her intelligence recognized the man's steely nature. Since she was his employer, she had the right to insist that he refrain from doing something that was so chillingly clear he might do. But Madeline couldn’t bring herself to demand it. She felt oddly young and weak, and the five months of life in the West felt like they had never happened. Now she was faced with a question involving human life. The value she placed on human life and its spiritual significance was far from her cowboy’s thoughts. A strange idea popped into her mind. Did she put too much value on all human life? She pushed that thought away, almost appalled at herself. And then her intuition told her that she had a much stronger ability to influence these primitive men than any stern rule or command from a woman could.
“Stewart, I do not fully understand what you hint that Nels and his comrades might do. Please be frank with me. Do you mean Nels would shoot upon little provocation?”
“Stewart, I don’t completely get what you’re suggesting about Nels and his friends. Please be honest with me. Are you saying Nels would shoot at any little provocation?”
“Miss Hammond, as far as Nels is concerned, shooting is now just a matter of his meeting Don Carlos’s vaqueros. It’s wonderful what Nels has stood from them, considering the Mexicans he’s already killed.”
“Miss Hammond, as far as Nels is concerned, shooting is now just about him meeting Don Carlos’s cowboys. It’s impressive what Nels has dealt with from them, considering the Mexicans he’s already killed.”
“Already killed! Stewart, you are not in earnest?” cried Madeline, shocked.
“Already killed! Stewart, are you serious?” cried Madeline, shocked.
“I am. Nels has seen hard life along the Arizona border. He likes peace as well as any man. But a few years of that doesn’t change what the early days made of him. As for Nick Steele and Monty, they’re just bad men, and looking for trouble.”
“I am. Nels has experienced a tough life along the Arizona border. He appreciates peace just like anyone else. But a few years of that doesn’t erase what the early days shaped him into. As for Nick Steele and Monty, they’re just bad guys, and they're looking for trouble.”
“How about yourself, Stewart? Stillwell’s remark was not lost upon me,” said Madeline, prompted by curiosity.
“How about you, Stewart? I definitely noticed Stillwell’s comment,” said Madeline, her curiosity piqued.
Stewart did not reply. He looked at her in respectful silence. In her keen earnestness Madeline saw beneath his cool exterior and was all the more baffled. Was there a slight, inscrutable, mocking light in his eyes, or was it only her imagination? However, the cowboy’s face was as hard as flint.
Stewart didn’t say anything. He just looked at her with respectful silence. In her intense seriousness, Madeline could see past his calm facade and felt even more confused. Was there a subtle, mysterious, mocking glint in his eyes, or was it just her imagination? Either way, the cowboy’s face was as tough as flint.
“Stewart, I have come to love my ranch,” said Madeline, slowly, “and I care a great deal for my—my cowboys. It would be dreadful if they were to kill anybody, or especially if one of them should be killed.”
“Stewart, I’ve come to love my ranch,” Madeline said slowly, “and I care a lot about my—my cowboys. It would be terrible if they were to hurt anyone, or especially if one of them got hurt.”
“Miss Hammond, you’ve changed things considerable out here, but you can’t change these men. All that’s needed to start them is a little trouble. And this Mexican revolution is bound to make rough times along some of the wilder passes across the border. We’re in line, that’s all. And the boys are getting stirred up.”
“Miss Hammond, you’ve changed things a lot out here, but you can’t change these men. All it takes to get them going is a little trouble. And this Mexican revolution is sure to cause rough times along some of the more dangerous routes across the border. We’re next in line, that’s all. And the guys are getting agitated.”
“Very well, then, I must accept the inevitable. I am facing a rough time. And some of my cowboys cannot be checked much longer. But, Stewart, whatever you have been in the past, you have changed.” She smiled at him, and her voice was singularly sweet and rich. “Stillwell has so often referred to you as the last of his kind of cowboy. I have just a faint idea of what a wild life you have led. Perhaps that fits you to be a leader of such rough men. I am no judge of what a leader should do in this crisis. My cowboys are entailing risk in my employ; my property is not safe; perhaps my life even might be endangered. I want to rely upon you, since Stillwell believes, and I, too, that you are the man for this place. I shall give you no orders. But is it too much to ask that you be my kind of a cowboy?”
“Okay, I guess I have to accept what's coming. I'm going through a tough time. And some of my cowboys can’t be managed for much longer. But, Stewart, no matter who you were in the past, you've changed.” She smiled at him, and her voice was particularly sweet and rich. “Stillwell has often called you the last of his kind of cowboy. I have a slight idea of the wild life you've lived. Maybe that makes you suited to lead such rough men. I’m not an expert on what a leader should do in this situation. My cowboys are taking risks while working for me; my property isn't safe; my life could be at risk too. I want to depend on you, since Stillwell believes, and I do too, that you are the right man for this job. I won’t give you any orders. But is it too much to ask you to be my kind of cowboy?”
Madeline remembered Stewart’s former brutality and shame and abject worship, and she measured the great change in him by the contrast afforded now in his dark, changeless, intent face.
Madeline remembered Stewart's past harshness, humiliation, and complete devotion, and she gauged the significant transformation in him by the stark difference shown in his dark, unchanging, focused expression.
“Miss Hammond, what kind of a cowboy is that?” he asked.
“Miss Hammond, what kind of cowboy is that?” he asked.
“I—I don’t exactly know. It is that kind which I feel you might be. But I do know that in the problem at hand I want your actions to be governed by reason, not passion. Human life is not for any man to sacrifice unless in self-defense or in protecting those dependent upon him. What Stillwell and you hinted makes me afraid of Nels and Nick Steele and Monty. Cannot they be controlled? I want to feel that they will not go gunning for Don Carlos’s men. I want to avoid all violence. And yet when my guests come I want to feel that they will be safe from danger or fright or even annoyance. May I not rely wholly upon you, Stewart? Just trust you to manage these obstreperous cowboys and protect my property and Alfred’s, and take care of us—of me, until this revolution is ended? I have never had a day’s worry since I bought the ranch. It is not that I want to shirk my responsibilities; it is that I like being happy. May I put so much faith in you?”
“I—I’m not really sure. It’s the kind of thing I think you might be. But I do know that in this situation, I want your actions to be driven by reason, not emotion. Human life shouldn’t be sacrificed by anyone unless it’s for self-defense or to protect those who depend on him. What Stillwell and you hinted at makes me anxious about Nels and Nick Steele and Monty. Can’t they be controlled? I need to feel that they won’t go after Don Carlos’s men. I want to avoid all violence. And yet when my guests arrive, I want to be sure they’ll be safe from danger, fear, or even annoyance. Can I fully rely on you, Stewart? Just trust you to handle these unruly cowboys and protect my property and Alfred’s, and take care of us—of me, until this revolution is over? I haven’t had a single worry since I bought the ranch. It’s not that I want to avoid my responsibilities; it’s that I enjoy being happy. Can I place this much trust in you?”
“I hope so, Miss Hammond,” replied Stewart. It was an instant response, but none the less fraught with consciousness of responsibility. He waited a moment, and then, as neither Stillwell nor Madeline offered further speech, he bowed and turned down the path, his long spurs clinking in the gravel.
“I hope so, Miss Hammond,” Stewart replied. It was an immediate response, but still filled with awareness of his responsibilities. He paused for a moment, and when neither Stillwell nor Madeline spoke again, he bowed and walked down the path, his long spurs clinking on the gravel.
“Wal, wal,” exclaimed Stillwell, “thet’s no little job you give him, Miss Majesty.”
“Wow, wow,” exclaimed Stillwell, “that’s no small task you’ve given him, Miss Majesty.”
“It was a woman’s cunning, Stillwell,” said Alfred. “My sister used to be a wonder at getting her own way when we were kids. Just a smile or two, a few sweet words or turns of thought, and she had what she wanted.”
“It was a woman's cleverness, Stillwell,” said Alfred. “My sister was amazing at getting her way when we were kids. Just a smile or two, a few kind words or clever ideas, and she got what she wanted.”
“Al, what a character to give me!” protested Madeline. “Indeed, I was deeply in earnest with Stewart. I do not understand just why, but I trust him. He seems like iron and steel. Then I was a little frightened at the prospect of trouble with the vaqueros. Both you and Stillwell have influenced me to look upon Stewart as invaluable. I thought it best to confess my utter helplessness and to look to him for support.”
“Al, what a character to give me!” protested Madeline. “Honestly, I was serious about Stewart. I don't really know why, but I trust him. He seems solid and reliable. Then I got a little worried about potential trouble with the cowboys. Both you and Stillwell have made me see Stewart as essential. I figured it was best to admit my total helplessness and rely on him for support.”
“Majesty, whatever actuated you, it was a stroke of diplomacy,” replied her brother. “Stewart has got good stuff in him. He was down and out. Well, he’s made a game fight, and it looks as if he’d win. Trusting him, giving him responsibility, relying upon him, was the surest way to strengthen his hold upon himself. Then that little touch of sentiment about being your kind of cowboy and protecting you—well, if Gene Stewart doesn’t develop into an Argus-eyed knight I’ll say I don’t know cowboys. But, Majesty, remember, he’s a composite of tiger breed and forked lightning, and don’t imagine he has failed you if he gets into a fight.
“Majesty, whatever motivated you, it was a clever diplomatic move,” her brother replied. “Stewart has a lot of potential. He was down and out, but now he’s really putting up a fight, and it looks like he might actually win. Trusting him, giving him responsibility, and relying on him was the best way to help him gain confidence. And that little bit of sentiment about being your kind of cowboy and protecting you—if Gene Stewart doesn’t turn out to be a sharp-eyed knight, then I don’t know cowboys. But, Majesty, keep in mind that he’s a mix of danger and unpredictability, so don’t think he’s let you down if he ends up in a fight.”
“I’ll sure tell you what Gene Stewart will do,” said Florence. “Don’t I know cowboys? Why, they used to take me up on their horses when I was a baby. Gene Stewart will be the kind of cowboy your sister said he might be, whatever that is. She may not know and we may not guess, but he knows.”
“I can definitely tell you what Gene Stewart will do,” said Florence. “Don’t I know cowboys? They used to take me on their horses when I was a baby. Gene Stewart will be the kind of cowboy your sister said he might be, whatever that is. She might not know, and we might not guess, but he definitely knows.”
“Wal, Flo, there you hit plumb center,” replied the old cattleman. “An’ I couldn’t be gladder if he was my own son.”
“Well, Flo, you really hit the nail on the head,” replied the old cattleman. “And I couldn’t be happier if he were my own son.”
X. Don Carlos’s Vaqueros
Early the following morning Stewart, with a company of cowboys, departed for Don Carlos’s rancho. As the day wore on without any report from him, Stillwell appeared to grow more at ease; and at nightfall he told Madeline that he guessed there was now no reason for concern.
Early the next morning, Stewart, along with some cowboys, left for Don Carlos’s ranch. As the day went on without any news from him, Stillwell seemed to relax more; and by nightfall, he told Madeline that he thought there was no longer any reason to worry.
“Wal, though it’s sure amazin’ strange,” he continued, “I’ve been worryin’ some about how we was goin’ to fire Don Carlos. But Gene has a way of doin’ things.”
“Well, even though it’s definitely odd,” he continued, “I’ve been a bit worried about how we were going to let Don Carlos go. But Gene has a way of handling things.”
Next day Stillwell and Alfred decided to ride over Don Carlos’s place, taking Madeline and Florence with them, and upon the return trip to stop at Alfred’s ranch. They started in the cool, gray dawn, and after three hours’ riding, as the sun began to get bright, they entered a mesquite grove, surrounding corrals and barns, and a number of low, squat buildings and a huge, rambling structure, all built of adobe and mostly crumbling to ruin. Only one green spot relieved the bald red of grounds and walls; and this evidently was made by the spring which had given both value and fame to Don Carlos’s range. The approach to the house was through a wide courtyard, bare, stony, hard packed, with hitching-rails and watering-troughs in front of a long porch. Several dusty, tired horses stood with drooping heads and bridles down, their wet flanks attesting to travel just ended.
The next day, Stillwell and Alfred decided to ride over to Don Carlos’s place, bringing Madeline and Florence along. On the way back, they planned to stop at Alfred’s ranch. They set out in the cool, gray dawn, and after three hours of riding, as the sun started to shine brightly, they entered a mesquite grove that surrounded corrals and barns, along with a number of low, squat buildings and a huge, sprawling structure, all made of adobe and mostly falling apart. Only one green spot broke up the bald red of the ground and walls, clearly created by the spring that had given both value and fame to Don Carlos’s range. The path to the house led through a wide courtyard, which was bare, stony, and hard-packed, featuring hitching rails and watering troughs in front of a long porch. Several dusty, tired horses stood with drooping heads and loosened bridles, their wet flanks showing that their travel had just ended.
“Wal, dog-gone it, Al, if there ain’t Pat Hawe’s hoss I’ll eat it,” exclaimed Stillwell.
“Wow, no way, Al, if that isn’t Pat Hawe’s horse, I’ll eat my words,” exclaimed Stillwell.
“What’s Pat want here, anyhow?” growled Alfred.
“What does Pat want here, anyway?” grumbled Alfred.
No one was in sight; but Madeline heard loud voices coming from the house. Stillwell dismounted at the porch and stalked in at the door. Alfred leaped off his horse, helped Florence and Madeline down, and, bidding them rest and wait on the porch, he followed Stillwell.
No one was around, but Madeline heard loud voices coming from the house. Stillwell got off his horse at the porch and walked in through the door. Alfred jumped off his horse, helped Florence and Madeline down, and told them to relax and wait on the porch while he followed Stillwell.
“I hate these Greaser places,” said Florence, with a grimace. “They’re so mysterious and creepy. Just watch now! They’ll be dark-skinned, beady-eyed, soft-footed Greasers slip right up out of the ground! There’ll be an ugly face in every door and window and crack.”
“I hate these Greaser places,” Florence said, scrunching her face. “They’re so mysterious and creepy. Just watch! Dark-skinned, beady-eyed, silent Greasers will slip right out of the ground! There’ll be an ugly face in every door, window, and crack.”
“It’s like a huge barn with its characteristic odor permeated by tobacco smoke,” replied Madeline, sitting down beside Florence. “I don’t think very much of this end of my purchase. Florence, isn’t that Don Carlos’s black horse over there in the corral?”
“It’s like a big barn with that familiar smell of tobacco smoke,” said Madeline, sitting down next to Florence. “I’m not really impressed with this part of my purchase. Florence, isn’t that Don Carlos’s black horse over there in the corral?”
“It sure is. Then the Don’s heah yet. I wish we hadn’t been in such a hurry to come over. There! that doesn’t sound encouraging.”
“It sure is. So the Don is here already. I wish we hadn't rushed over. There! That doesn’t sound encouraging.”
From the corridor came the rattling of spurs, tramping of boots, and loud voices. Madeline detected Alfred’s quick notes when he was annoyed: “We’ll rustle back home, then,” he said. The answer came, “No!” Madeline recognized Stewart’s voice, and she quickly straightened up. “I won’t have them in here,” went on Alfred.
From the hallway came the sound of spurs clanking, boots stomping, and loud voices. Madeline could tell when Alfred was irritated by his sharp tone: “Let’s head back home then,” he said. The response was, “No!” Madeline recognized Stewart’s voice and quickly sat up straight. “I won’t let them in here,” Alfred continued.
“Outdoors or in, they’ve got to be with us!” replied Stewart, sharply. “Listen, Al,” came the boom of Stillwell’s big voice, “now that we’ve butted in over hyar with the girls, you let Stewart run things.”
“Whether it's outside or inside, they have to be with us!” replied Stewart, sharply. “Listen, Al,” boomed Stillwell’s deep voice, “now that we’ve interrupted things here with the girls, you let Stewart take charge.”
Then a crowd of men tramped pell-mell out upon the porch. Stewart, dark-browed and somber, was in the lead. Nels hung close to him, and Madeline’s quick glance saw that Nels had undergone some indescribable change. The grinning, brilliant-eyed Don Carlos came jostling out beside a gaunt, sharp-featured man wearing a silver shield. This, no doubt, was Pat Hawe. In the background behind Stillwell and Alfred stood Nick Steele, head and shoulders over a number of vaqueros and cowboys.
Then a group of men rushed out onto the porch. Stewart, with his dark brows and serious expression, was at the front. Nels stayed close to him, and Madeline noticed with a quick glance that Nels had gone through some indescribable change. The grinning, bright-eyed Don Carlos came weaving out next to a skinny, sharp-featured man wearing a silver badge. This was definitely Pat Hawe. In the background behind Stillwell and Alfred stood Nick Steele, towering over several vaqueros and cowboys.
“Miss Hammond, I’m sorry you came,” said Stewart, bluntly. “We’re in a muddle here. I’ve insisted that you and Flo be kept close to us. I’ll explain later. If you can’t stop your ears I beg you to overlook rough talk.”
“Miss Hammond, I’m sorry you came,” Stewart said directly. “Things are a bit chaotic here. I’ve insisted that you and Flo stay close to us. I’ll explain more later. If you can’t block out the noise, I ask you to overlook the harsh language.”
With that he turned to the men behind him: “Nick, take Booly, go back to Monty and the boys. Fetch out that stuff. All of it. Rustle, now!”
With that, he turned to the guys behind him: “Nick, take Booly, go back to Monty and the crew. Grab that stuff. All of it. Hurry up, now!”
Stillwell and Alfred disengaged themselves from the crowd to take up positions in front of Madeline and Florence. Pat Hawe leaned against a post and insolently ogled Madeline and then Florence. Don Carlos pressed forward. His whole figure filled Madeline’s reluctant but fascinated eyes. He wore tight velveteen breeches, with a heavy fold down the outside seam, which was ornamented with silver buttons. Round his waist was a sash, and a belt with fringed holster, from which protruded a pearl-handled gun. A vest or waistcoat, richly embroidered, partly concealed a blouse of silk and wholly revealed a silken scarf round his neck. His swarthy face showed dark lines, like cords, under the surface. His little eyes were exceedingly prominent and glittering. To Madeline his face seemed to be a bold, handsome mask through which his eyes piercingly betrayed the evil nature of the man.
Stillwell and Alfred pulled away from the crowd to stand in front of Madeline and Florence. Pat Hawe leaned against a post, shamelessly checking out Madeline and then Florence. Don Carlos pushed forward. His entire figure filled Madeline's reluctant but intrigued gaze. He wore tight velveteen pants with a heavy seam adorned with silver buttons. Around his waist was a sash and a belt with a fringed holster, from which poked a pearl-handled gun. A richly embroidered vest partly covered a silk blouse and completely revealed a silk scarf around his neck. His dark complexion showed deep lines under the surface. His small eyes were very prominent and sparkling. To Madeline, his face seemed like a bold, handsome mask, through which his eyes sharply revealed the man's wicked nature.
He bowed low with elaborate and sinuous grace. His smile revealed brilliant teeth, enhanced the brilliance of his eyes. He slowly spread deprecatory hands.
He bowed deeply with smooth and flowing elegance. His smile showed off his bright teeth, making his eyes shine even more. He gradually opened his hands in a humble gesture.
“Senoritas, I beg a thousand pardons,” he said. How strange it was for Madeline to hear English spoken in a soft, whiningly sweet accent! “The gracious hospitality of Don Carlos has passed with his house.”
“Ladies, I sincerely apologize,” he said. How strange it was for Madeline to hear English spoken in such a soft, whiny, sweet accent! “The kind hospitality of Don Carlos has vanished with his home.”
Stewart stepped forward and, thrusting Don Carlos aside, he called, “Make way, there!”
Stewart stepped forward and, pushing Don Carlos aside, he called, “Clear the way!”
The crowd fell back to the tramp of heavy boots. Cowboys appeared staggering out of the corridor with long boxes. These they placed side by side upon the floor of the porch.
The crowd moved back at the sound of heavy boots. Cowboys came out of the corridor carrying long boxes. They set them down side by side on the porch floor.
“Now, Hawe, we’ll proceed with our business,” said Stewart. “You see these boxes, don’t you?”
“Now, Hawe, let’s get down to business,” said Stewart. “You see these boxes, right?”
“I reckon I see a good many things round hyar,” replied Hawe, meaningly.
“I think I see a lot of things around here,” replied Hawe, with meaning.
“Well, do you intend to open these boxes upon my say-so?”
“Well, are you planning to open these boxes just because I said so?”
“No!” retorted Hawe. “It’s not my place to meddle with property as come by express an’ all accounted fer regular.”
“No!” Hawe shot back. “It’s not my place to interfere with property that’s been properly obtained and all accounted for.”
“You call yourself a sheriff!” exclaimed Stewart, scornfully.
“You call yourself a sheriff?” Stewart exclaimed with disdain.
“Mebbe you’ll think so before long,” rejoined Hawe, sullenly.
“Maybe you’ll think that way before long,” Hawe replied, glumly.
“I’ll open them. Here, one of you boys, knock the tops off these boxes,” ordered Stewart. “No, not you, Monty. You use your eyes. Let Booly handle the ax. Rustle, now!”
“I’ll open them. Hey, one of you guys, pop the tops off these boxes,” ordered Stewart. “No, not you, Monty. Use your eyes. Let Booly handle the axe. Get moving, now!”
Monty Price had jumped out of the crowd into the middle of the porch. The manner in which he gave way to Booly and faced the vaqueros was not significant of friendliness or trust.
Monty Price had leaped out of the crowd and into the center of the porch. The way he stepped aside for Booly and confronted the vaqueros didn't show any signs of friendliness or trust.
“Stewart, you’re dead wrong to bust open them boxes. Thet’s ag’in’ the law,” protested Hawe, trying to interfere.
“Stewart, you're completely wrong to break open those boxes. That's against the law,” protested Hawe, trying to intervene.
Stewart pushed him back. Then Don Carlos, who had been stunned by the appearance of the boxes, suddenly became active in speech and person. Stewart thrust him back also. The Mexican’s excitement increased. He wildly gesticulated; he exclaimed shrilly in Spanish. When, however, the lids were wrenched open and an inside packing torn away he grew rigid and silent. Madeline raised herself behind Stillwell to see that the boxes were full of rifles and ammunition.
Stewart pushed him away. Then Don Carlos, who had been taken aback by the sight of the boxes, suddenly became animated in his words and actions. Stewart pushed him back again. The Mexican’s excitement ramped up. He flailed his arms wildly and shouted urgently in Spanish. However, when the lids were ripped open and the internal packing was torn away, he went totally still and silent. Madeline leaned around Stillwell to see that the boxes were filled with rifles and ammunition.
“There, Hawe! What did I tell you?” demanded Stewart. “I came over here to take charge of this ranch. I found these boxes hidden in an unused room. I suspected what they were. Contraband goods!”
“There, Hawe! What did I tell you?” demanded Stewart. “I came over here to take charge of this ranch. I found these boxes hidden in an unused room. I had a feeling about what they were. Smuggled goods!”
“Wal, supposin’ they are? I don’t see any call fer sech all-fired fuss as you’re makin’. Stewart, I calkilate you’re some stuck on your new job an’ want to make a big show before—”
“Well, what if they are? I don’t see any reason for all the fuss you’re creating. Stewart, I think you’re really into your new job and want to make a big deal before—”
“Hawe, stop slinging that kind of talk,” interrupted Stewart. “You got too free with your mouth once before! Now here, I’m supposed to be consulting an officer of the law. Will you take charge of these contraband goods?”
“Hawe, stop talking like that,” Stewart interrupted. “You got a bit too careless with your words last time! Now, I’m supposed to be consulting a law officer. Will you take responsibility for these illegal goods?”
“Say, you’re holdin’ on high an’ mighty,” replied Hawe, in astonishment that was plainly pretended. “What ‘re you drivin’ at?”
“Look, you’re acting all high and mighty,” replied Hawe, feigning astonishment. “What’s your point?”
Stewart muttered an imprecation. He took several swift strides across the porch; he held out his hands to Stillwell as if to indicate the hopelessness of intelligent and reasonable arbitration; he looked at Madeline with a glance eloquent of his regret that he could not handle the situation to please her. Then as he wheeled he came face to face with Nels, who had slipped forward out of the crowd.
Stewart muttered a curse. He took a few quick steps across the porch and held out his hands to Stillwell as if to show the hopelessness of finding a smart and reasonable solution. He looked at Madeline with a glance full of regret that he couldn't manage the situation to her satisfaction. Then, as he turned around, he came face to face with Nels, who had stepped out of the crowd.
Madeline gathered serious import from the steel-blue meaning flash of eyes whereby Nels communicated something to Stewart. Whatever that something was, it dispelled Stewart’s impatience. A slight movement of his hand brought Monty Price forward with a jump. In these sudden jumps of Monty’s there was a suggestion of restrained ferocity. Then Nels and Monty lined up behind Stewart. It was a deliberate action, even to Madeline, unmistakably formidable. Pat Hawe’s face took on an ugly look; his eyes had a reddish gleam. Don Carlos added a pale face and extreme nervousness to his former expressions of agitation. The cowboys edged away from the vaqueros and the bronzed, bearded horsemen who were evidently Hawe’s assistants.
Madeline sensed the serious message in Nels's steel-blue eyes as he communicated something to Stewart. Whatever it was, it calmed Stewart’s impatience. A slight gesture from him made Monty Price jump forward. Monty’s sudden movements hinted at a restrained intensity. Then Nels and Monty fell in line behind Stewart. It was a calculated move, even to Madeline, clearly intimidating. Pat Hawe's face twisted into an ugly expression; his eyes had a reddish gleam. Don Carlos added a pale face and extreme nervousness to his earlier signs of agitation. The cowboys slowly moved away from the vaqueros and the rugged, bearded horsemen who were obviously Hawe’s associates.
“I’m driving at this,” spoke up Stewart, presently; and now he was slow and caustic. “Here’s contraband of war! Hawe, do you get that? Arms and ammunition for the rebels across the border! I charge you as an officer to confiscate these goods and to arrest the smuggler—Don Carlos.”
“I’m getting to the point,” Stewart said, his tone now slow and biting. “Here’s illegal stuff! Hawe, do you see that? Weapons and ammo for the rebels on the other side of the border! I’m ordering you as an officer to seize these goods and arrest the smuggler—Don Carlos.”
These words of Stewart’s precipitated a riot among Don Carlos and his followers, and they surged wildly around the sheriff. There was an upflinging of brown, clenching hands, a shrill, jabbering babel of Mexican voices. The crowd around Don Carlos grew louder and denser with the addition of armed vaqueros and barefooted stable-boys and dusty-booted herdsmen and blanketed Mexicans, the last of whom suddenly slipped from doors and windows and round comers. It was a motley assemblage. The laced, fringed, ornamented vaqueros presented a sharp contrast to the bare-legged, sandal-footed boys and the ragged herders. Shrill cries, evidently from Don Carlos, somewhat quieted the commotion. Then Don Carlos could be heard addressing Sheriff Hawe in an exhortation of mingled English and Spanish. He denied, he avowed, he proclaimed, and all in rapid, passionate utterance. He tossed his black hair in his vehemence; he waved his fists and stamped the floor; he rolled his glittering eyes; he twisted his thin lips into a hundred different shapes, and like a cornered wolf showed snarling white teeth.
These words from Stewart sparked a riot among Don Carlos and his followers, who swarmed around the sheriff in chaos. There were raised, clenched brown hands and a loud, chattering mix of Mexican voices. The crowd around Don Carlos grew louder and denser with the arrival of armed cowboys, barefoot stable boys, dusty-booted herdsmen, and wrapped Mexicans, the last of whom suddenly emerged from doors, windows, and around corners. It was a diverse group. The laced, fringed, and decorated cowboys stood in stark contrast to the bare-legged, sandal-wearing boys and the ragged herders. High-pitched cries, clearly from Don Carlos, slightly calmed the frenzy. Then Don Carlos could be heard addressing Sheriff Hawe with a passionate mix of English and Spanish. He denied, asserted, and proclaimed everything in a rapid, fervent manner. His black hair flew as he spoke passionately; he waved his fists and stomped the floor; his eyes sparkled; his thin lips twisted into a hundred shapes, and like a cornered wolf, he bared his snarling white teeth.
It seemed to Madeline that Don Carlos denied knowledge of the boxes of contraband goods, then knowledge of their real contents, then knowledge of their destination, and, finally, everything except that they were there in sight, damning witnesses to somebody’s complicity in the breaking of neutrality laws. Passionate as had been his denial of all this, it was as nothing compared to his denunciation of Stewart.
It seemed to Madeline that Don Carlos claimed he didn't know about the boxes of illegal goods, then he said he didn’t know what was actually inside them, then he denied knowing where they were headed, and finally, he acted like he didn't know anything except that they were right there, the evidence against someone for violating neutrality laws. As intense as his denial had been about all this, it paled in comparison to how fiercely he condemned Stewart.
“Senor Stewart, he keel my Vaquero!” shouted Don Carlos, as, sweating and spent, he concluded his arraignment of the cowboy. “Him you must arrest! Senor Stewart a bad man! He keel my vaquero!”
“Senor Stewart, he killed my cowboy!” shouted Don Carlos, as he finished his accusations against the cowboy, visibly exhausted. “You have to arrest him! Senor Stewart is a bad man! He killed my cowboy!”
“Do you hear thet?” yelled Hawe. “The Don’s got you figgered fer thet little job at El Cajon last fall.”
“Do you hear that?” yelled Hawe. “The Don’s got you figured for that little job at El Cajon last fall.”
The clamor burst into a roar. Hawe began shaking his finger in Stewart’s face and hoarsely shouting. Then a lithe young vaquero, swift as an Indian, glided under Hawe’s uplifted arm. Whatever the action he intended, he was too late for its execution. Stewart lunged out, struck the vaquero, and knocked him off the porch. As he fell a dagger glittered in the sunlight and rolled clinking over the stones. The man went down hard and did not move. With the same abrupt violence, and a manner of contempt, Stewart threw Hawe off the porch, then Don Carlos, who, being less supple, fell heavily. Then the mob backed before Stewart’s rush until all were down in the courtyard.
The noise erupted into a huge roar. Hawe started pointing his finger in Stewart’s face and shouting hoarsely. Then a quick young cowboy, as fast as an Indian, slipped under Hawe’s raised arm. Whatever he was trying to do, he was too late. Stewart lunged forward, hit the cowboy, and sent him flying off the porch. As he fell, a dagger sparkled in the sunlight and rolled clinking over the stones. The man hit the ground hard and didn’t move. With the same sudden force and a look of disdain, Stewart pushed Hawe off the porch, then Don Carlos, who, being less agile, fell heavily. The crowd stepped back in fear of Stewart’s advance until everyone was down in the courtyard.
The shuffling of feet ceased, the clanking of spurs, and the shouting. Nels and Monty, now reinforced by Nick Steele, were as shadows of Stewart, so closely did they follow him. Stewart waved them back and stepped down into the yard. He was absolutely fearless; but what struck Madeline so keenly was his magnificent disdain. Manifestly, he knew the nature of the men with whom he was dealing. From the look of him it was natural for Madeline to expect them to give way before him, which they did, even Hawe and his attendants sullenly retreating.
The sound of footsteps stopped, along with the clanking of spurs and the shouting. Nels and Monty, now joined by Nick Steele, followed Stewart like shadows, so closely behind him. Stewart waved them back and stepped into the yard. He showed no fear at all; but what really struck Madeline was his amazing contempt. Clearly, he understood the kind of men he was dealing with. From his demeanor, it was only natural for Madeline to expect them to back down, which they did, even Hawe and his attendants reluctantly falling away.
Don Carlos got up to confront Stewart. The prostrate vaquero stirred and moaned, but did not rise.
Don Carlos stood up to face Stewart. The fallen vaquero stirred and groaned, but did not get up.
“You needn’t jibber Spanish to me,” said Stewart. “You can talk American, and you can understand American. If you start a rough-house here you and your Greasers will be cleaned up. You’ve got to leave this ranch. You can have the stock, the packs and traps in the second corral. There’s grub, too. Saddle up and hit the trail. Don Carlos, I’m dealing more than square with you. You’re lying about these boxes of guns and cartridges. You’re breaking the laws of my country, and you’re doing it on property in my charge. If I let smuggling go on here I’d be implicated myself. Now you get off the range. If you don’t I’ll have the United States cavalry here in six hours, and you can gamble they’ll get what my cowboys leave of you.”
“You don’t need to speak Spanish to me,” said Stewart. “You can talk in English, and you can understand it too. If you start any trouble here, you and your gang will be dealt with. You have to leave this ranch. You can take the livestock, the packs, and traps in the second corral. There's food too. Saddle up and hit the road. Don Carlos, I’m being more than fair with you. You're lying about these boxes of guns and ammo. You're breaking my country's laws, and you're doing it on property I manage. If I allow smuggling to happen here, I'd be in trouble myself. Now get out of here. If you don’t, I’ll have the U.S. cavalry here in six hours, and you can bet they’ll take care of what’s left of you after my cowboys are done.”
Don Carlos was either a capital actor and gratefully relieved at Stewart’s leniency or else he was thoroughly cowed by references to the troops. “Si, Senor! Gracias, Senor!” he exclaimed; and then, turning away, he called to his men. They hurried after him, while the fallen vaquero got to his feet with Stewart’s help and staggered across the courtyard. In a moment they were gone, leaving Hawe and his several comrades behind.
Don Carlos was either a great actor, genuinely relieved by Stewart’s leniency, or he was completely intimidated by mentions of the troops. “Yes, Sir! Thank you, Sir!” he exclaimed, and then, turning away, he called to his men. They rushed after him, while the injured vaquero got to his feet with Stewart’s help and staggered across the courtyard. In a moment, they were gone, leaving Hawe and his fellow comrades behind.
Hawe was spitefully ejecting a wad of tobacco from his mouth and swearing in an undertone about “white-livered Greasers.” He cocked his red eye speculatively at Stewart.
Hawe was angrily spitting out a lump of tobacco from his mouth and quietly cursing about “spineless Mexicans.” He eyed Stewart with a skeptical glare.
“Wal, I reckon as you’re so hell-bent on doin’ it up brown thet you’ll try to fire me off’n the range, too?”
“Well, I guess since you’re so determined to go all out, you’ll try to kick me off the range too?”
“If I ever do, Pat, you’ll need to be carried off,” replied Stewart. “Just now I’m politely inviting you and your deputy sheriffs to leave.”
“If that ever happens, Pat, you’ll need to be taken away,” Stewart replied. “Right now, I’m politely asking you and your deputy sheriffs to leave.”
“We’ll go; but we’re comin’ back one of these days, an’ when we do we’ll put you in irons.”
“We're leaving, but we'll be back one of these days, and when we do, we'll put you in shackles.”
“Hawe, if you’ve got it in that bad for me, come over here in the corral and let’s fight it out.”
“Hawe, if you’re really that worked up about me, come over here in the corral and let’s settle this.”
“I’m an officer, an’ I don’t fight outlaws an’ sich except when I hev to make arrests.”
“I’m an officer, and I don’t go after outlaws and stuff unless I have to make arrests.”
“Officer! You’re a disgrace to the county. If you ever did get irons on me you’d take me some place out of sight, shoot me, and then swear you killed me in self-defense. It wouldn’t be the first time you pulled that trick, Pat Hawe.”
“Officer! You’re a shame to the county. If you ever did manage to arrest me, you’d take me somewhere hidden, shoot me, and then lie and say you killed me in self-defense. It wouldn’t be the first time you pulled that stunt, Pat Hawe.”
“Ho, ho!” laughed Hawe, derisively. Then he started toward the horses.
“Ha, ha!” laughed Hawe, mockingly. Then he walked over to the horses.
Stewart’s long arm shot out, his hand clapped on Hawe’s shoulder, spinning him round like a top.
Stewart’s arm shot out, his hand grabbed Hawe’s shoulder, spinning him around like a top.
“You’re leaving, Pat, but before you leave you’ll come out with your play or you’ll crawl,” said Stewart. “You’ve got it in for me, man to man. Speak up now and prove you’re not the cowardly skunk I’ve always thought you. I’ve called your hand.”
“You’re leaving, Pat, but before you go, you’re either going to come out with your play or you’ll crawl,” said Stewart. “You’ve got a personal issue with me. Speak up now and show that you’re not the cowardly loser I’ve always believed you to be. I’m calling you out.”
Pat Hawe’s face turned a blackish-purple hue.
Pat Hawe’s face turned a dark purple color.
“You can jest bet thet I’ve got it in fer you,” he shouted, hoarsely. “You’re only a low-down cow-puncher. You never hed a dollar or a decent job till you was mixed up with thet Hammond woman—”
“You can bet I’ve got it in for you,” he shouted, hoarsely. “You’re just a worthless cowhand. You never had a dollar or a decent job until you got involved with that Hammond woman—”
Stewart’s hand flashed out and hit Hawe’s face in a ringing slap. The sheriff’s head jerked back, his sombrero fell to the ground. As he bent over to reach it his hand shook, his arm shook, his whole body shook.
Stewart’s hand shot out and slapped Hawe’s face loudly. The sheriff’s head snapped back, and his sombrero dropped to the ground. As he leaned down to pick it up, his hand trembled, his arm shook, and his entire body quivered.
Monty Price jumped straight forward and crouched down with a strange, low cry.
Monty Price leaped forward and crouched down with an odd, low sound.
Stewart seemed all at once rigid, bending a little.
Stewart appeared stiff at first, then relaxed slightly.
“Say Miss Hammond, if there’s occasion to use her name,” said Stewart, in a voice that seemed coolly pleasant, yet had a deadly undernote.
“Say Miss Hammond, if you need to use her name,” said Stewart, in a tone that sounded casually friendly, yet carried a deadly edge.
Hawe did a moment’s battle with strangling fury, which he conquered in some measure.
Hawe struggled for a moment with overwhelming anger, which he managed to control somewhat.
“I said you was a low-down, drunken cow-puncher, a tough as damn near a desperado as we ever hed on the border,” went on Hawe, deliberately. His speech appeared to be addressed to Stewart, although his flame-pointed eyes were riveted upon Monty Price. “I know you plugged that vaquero last fall, an’ when I git my proof I’m comin’ after you.”
“I said you were a low-down, drunken cowboy, as tough a desperado as we've ever dealt with on the border,” Hawe continued, deliberately. His words seemed directed at Stewart, even though his piercing gaze was locked on Monty Price. “I know you shot that vaquero last fall, and when I get my proof, I’m coming after you.”
“That’s all right, Hawe. You can call me what you like, and you can come after me when you like,” replied Stewart. “But you’re going to get in bad with me. You’re in bad now with Monty and Nels. Pretty soon you’ll queer yourself with all the cowboys and the ranchers, too. If that don’t put sense into you—Here, listen to this. You knew what these boxes contained. You know Don Carlos has been smuggling arms and ammunition across the border. You know he is hand and glove with the rebels. You’ve been wearing blinders, and it has been to your interest. Take a hunch from me. That’s all. Light out now, and the less we see of your handsome mug the better we’ll like you.”
“That’s fine, Hawe. You can call me whatever you want, and you can come after me whenever you feel like it,” Stewart replied. “But you’re going to get on my bad side. You’re already in trouble with Monty and Nels. Soon enough, you’ll mess things up with all the cowboys and ranchers, too. If that doesn’t make you rethink things—Listen to this. You knew what was in these boxes. You know Don Carlos has been smuggling weapons and ammo across the border. You know he’s tight with the rebels. You’ve been ignoring all this, and it’s been convenient for you. Take my advice. That’s it. Get lost now, and the less we see of your pretty face, the better off we’ll be.”
Muttering, cursing, pallid of face, Hawe climbed astride his horse. His comrades followed suit. Certain it appeared that the sheriff was contending with more than fear and wrath. He must have had an irresistible impulse to fling more invective and threat upon Stewart, but he was speechless. Savagely he spurred his horse, and as it snorted and leaped he turned in his saddle, shaking his fist. His comrades led the way, with their horses clattering into a canter. They disappeared through the gate.
Muttering and cursing, Hawe climbed onto his horse, looking pale. His teammates did the same. It was clear that the sheriff was dealing with more than just fear and anger. He must have felt a strong urge to shout more insults and threats at Stewart, but he was at a loss for words. Fiercely, he kicked his horse into action, and as it snorted and jumped, he turned in his saddle, shaking his fist. His comrades took the lead, their horses clattering into a canter as they vanished through the gate.
When, later in the day, Madeline and Florence, accompanied by Alfred and Stillwell, left Don Carlos’s ranch it was not any too soon for Madeline. The inside of the Mexican’s home was more unprepossessing and uncomfortable than the outside. The halls were dark, the rooms huge, empty, and musty; and there was an air of silence and secrecy and mystery about them most fitting to the character Florence had bestowed upon the place.
When Madeline and Florence, along with Alfred and Stillwell, left Don Carlos’s ranch later in the day, it couldn’t come soon enough for Madeline. The inside of the Mexican’s home was even more uninviting and uncomfortable than the outside. The hallways were dark, the rooms large, empty, and musty; and there was an atmosphere of silence, secrecy, and mystery that matched the vibe Florence had given to the place.
On the other hand, Alfred’s ranch-house, where the party halted to spend the night, was picturesquely located, small and cozy, camplike in its arrangement, and altogether agreeable to Madeline.
On the other hand, Alfred’s ranch house, where the party stopped for the night, was charmingly situated, small and cozy, with a campsite feel to its layout, and completely pleasant for Madeline.
The day’s long rides and the exciting events had wearied her. She rested while Florence and the two men got supper. During the meal Stillwell expressed satisfaction over the good riddance of the vaqueros, and with his usual optimism trusted he had seen the last of them. Alfred, too, took a decidedly favorable view of the day’s proceedings. However, it was not lost upon Madeline that Florence appeared unusually quiet and thoughtful. Madeline wondered a little at the cause. She remembered that Stewart had wanted to come with them, or detail a few cowboys to accompany them, but Alfred had laughed at the idea and would have none of it.
The long rides and exciting events of the day had worn her out. She took a break while Florence and the two men prepared dinner. During the meal, Stillwell expressed his relief at getting rid of the vaqueros and, with his usual optimism, hoped he had seen the last of them. Alfred also had a pretty positive view of the day's events. However, Madeline noticed that Florence seemed unusually quiet and pensive. Madeline wondered what was bothering her. She remembered that Stewart had wanted to come with them or send a few cowboys along, but Alfred had laughed off the idea and refused it.
After supper Alfred monopolized the conversation by describing what he wanted to do to improve his home before he and Florence were married.
After dinner, Alfred took over the conversation by explaining what he wanted to do to improve his home before he and Florence got married.
Then at an early hour they all retired.
Then at an early hour, they all went to bed.
Madeline’s deep slumbers were disturbed by a pounding upon the wall, and then by Florence’s crying out in answer to a call:
Madeline’s deep sleep was interrupted by a banging on the wall, followed by Florence shouting in response to a call:
“Get up! Throw some clothes on and come out!”
“Get up! Put on some clothes and come outside!”
It was Alfred’s voice.
It was Alfred's voice.
“What’s the matter?” asked Florence, as she slipped out of bed.
“What’s wrong?” asked Florence, as she got out of bed.
“Alfred, is there anything wrong?” added Madeline, sitting up.
“Alfred, is everything okay?” Madeline asked, sitting up.
The room was dark as pitch, but a faint glow seemed to mark the position of the window.
The room was pitch black, but a faint glow seemed to indicate where the window was.
“Oh, nothing much,” replied Alfred. “Only Don Carlos’s rancho going up in smoke.”
“Oh, nothing much,” replied Alfred. “Just Don Carlos’s ranch burning down.”
“Fire!” cried Florence, sharply.
“Fire!” shouted Florence, sharply.
“You’ll think so when you see it. Hurry out. Majesty, old girl, now you won’t have to tear down that heap of adobe, as you threatened. I don’t believe a wall will stand after that fire.”
“You’ll feel that way when you see it. Get moving. Majesty, my dear, you won’t need to demolish that pile of adobe, as you said you would. I doubt any wall will survive after that fire.”
“Well, I’m glad of it,” said Madeline. “A good healthy fire will purify the atmosphere over there and save me expense. Ugh! that haunted rancho got on my nerves! Florence, I do believe you’ve appropriated part of my riding-habit. Doesn’t Alfred have lights in this house?”
“Well, I’m glad to hear that,” said Madeline. “A nice, healthy fire will clear the air over there and save me some money. Ugh! That haunted ranch really got on my nerves! Florence, I think you’ve taken part of my riding outfit. Doesn’t Alfred have any lights in this house?”
Florence laughingly helped Madeline to dress. Then they hurriedly stumbled over chairs, and, passing through the dining-room, went out upon the porch.
Florence laughed as she helped Madeline get dressed. Then they quickly stumbled over chairs and, passing through the dining room, stepped out onto the porch.
Away to the westward, low down along the horizon, she saw leaping red flames and wind-swept columns of smoke.
Away to the west, low along the horizon, she saw jumping red flames and columns of smoke being blown by the wind.
Stillwell appeared greatly perturbed.
Stillwell looked very upset.
“Al, I’m lookin’ fer that ammunition to blow up,” he said. “There was enough of it to blow the roof off the rancho.”
“Al, I’m looking for that ammo to blow up,” he said. “There was enough of it to blow the roof off the ranch.”
“Bill, surely the cowboys would get that stuff out the first thing,” replied Alfred, anxiously.
“Bill, the cowboys will definitely take care of that right away,” Alfred replied, anxiously.
“I reckon so. But all the same, I’m worryin’. Mebbe there wasn’t time. Supposin’ thet powder went off as the boys was goin’ fer it or carryin’ it out! We’ll know soon. If the explosion doesn’t come quick now we can figger the boys got the boxes out.”
“I think so. But still, I’m worried. Maybe there wasn’t enough time. Supposing that powder went off while the guys were going for it or carrying it out! We’ll know soon. If the explosion doesn’t happen soon, we can assume the guys got the boxes out.”
For the next few moments there was a silence of sustained and painful suspense. Florence gripped Madeline’s arm. Madeline felt a fullness in her throat and a rapid beating of her heart. Presently she was relieved with the others when Stillwell declared the danger of an explosion needed to be feared no longer.
For the next few moments, there was a tense and painful silence. Florence held onto Madeline’s arm. Madeline felt a lump in her throat and her heart racing. She felt relief alongside the others when Stillwell announced that the threat of an explosion was no longer a concern.
“Sure you can gamble on Gene Stewart,” he added.
“Of course you can bet on Gene Stewart,” he added.
The night happened to be partly cloudy, with broken rifts showing the moon, and the wind blew unusually strong. The brightness of the fire seemed subdued. It was like a huge bonfire smothered by some great covering, penetrated by different, widely separated points of flame. These corners of flame flew up, curling in the wind, and then died down. Thus the scene was constantly changing from dull light to dark. There came a moment when a blacker shade overspread the wide area of flickering gleams and then obliterated them. Night enfolded the scene. The moon peeped a curved yellow rim from under broken clouds. To all appearances the fire had burned itself out. But suddenly a pinpoint of light showed where all had been dense black. It grew and became long and sharp. It moved. It had life. It leaped up. Its color warmed from white to red. Then from all about it burst flame on flame, to leap into a great changing pillar of fire that climbed high and higher. Huge funnels of smoke, yellow, black, white, all tinged with the color of fire, slanted skyward, drifting away on the wind.
The night was partly cloudy, with breaks revealing the moon, and the wind was unusually strong. The brightness of the fire felt dimmed, like a massive bonfire being smothered, with distant, scattered points of flame breaking through. These flickers danced in the wind before fading away. The scene constantly shifted from dull light to darkness. At one point, a darker shadow covered the area of flickering lights, completely extinguishing them. Night enveloped everything. The moon peeked out with a curved yellow edge from behind the broken clouds. It looked like the fire had gone out. But suddenly, a tiny point of light appeared in the thick darkness. It grew, becoming long and sharp. It moved, full of life. It leaped up, changing from white to red. Then flames erupted all around it, forming a towering column of fire that climbed higher and higher. Massive spirals of smoke—yellow, black, white, all tinged with the color of the flames—rose into the sky, drifting away with the wind.
“Wal, I reckon we won’t hev the good of them two thousand tons of alfalfa we was figgerin’ on,” remarked Stillwell.
“Well, I guess we won’t get any use out of those two thousand tons of alfalfa we were counting on,” said Stillwell.
“Ah! Then that last outbreak of fire was burning hay,” said Madeline. “I do not regret the rancho. But it’s too bad to lose such a quantity of good feed for the stock.”
“Ah! So that last fire was burning hay,” said Madeline. “I don’t regret the rancho. But it’s a shame to lose so much good feed for the livestock.”
“It’s lost, an’ no mistake. The fire’s dyin’ as quick as she flared up. Wal, I hope none of the boys got risky to save a saddle or blanket. Monty—he’s hell on runnin’ the gantlet of fire. He’s like a hoss that’s jest been dragged out of a burnin’ stable an’ runs back sure locoed. There! She’s smolderin’ down now. Reckon we-all might jest as well turn in again. It’s only three o’clock.”
“It’s lost, no doubt about it. The fire’s dying down just as fast as it flared up. Well, I hope none of the guys took the chance to save a saddle or a blanket. Monty—he’s crazy when it comes to running through fire. He’s like a horse that just got dragged out of a burning stable and runs back in all out of its mind. There! It’s smoldering down now. I guess we all might as well go back to bed. It’s only three o’clock.”
“I wonder how the fire originated?” remarked Alfred. “Some careless cowboy’s cigarette, I’ll bet.”
“I wonder how the fire started?” Alfred said. “I’ll bet it was some careless cowboy’s cigarette.”
Stillwell rolled out his laugh.
Stillwell let out a laugh.
“Al, you sure are a free-hearted, trustin’ feller. I’m some doubtin’ the cigarette idee; but you can gamble if it was a cigarette it belonged to a cunnin’ vaquero, an’ wasn’t dropped accident-like.”
“Al, you really are a generous, trusting guy. I have some doubts about the whole cigarette thing; but you can bet if it was a cigarette, it belonged to a crafty cowboy and wasn’t just dropped by accident.”
“Now, Bill, you don’t mean Don Carlos burned the rancho?” ejaculated Alfred, in mingled amaze and anger.
“Now, Bill, you can’t be saying Don Carlos burned the ranch?” exclaimed Alfred, in a mix of shock and anger.
Again the old cattleman laughed.
Again, the old rancher laughed.
“Powerful strange to say, my friend, ole Bill means jest thet.”
“Interestingly enough, my friend, old Bill really means that.”
“Of course Don Carlos set that fire,” put in Florence, with spirit. “Al, if you live out heah a hundred years you’ll never learn that Greasers are treacherous. I know Gene Stewart suspected something underhand. That’s why he wanted us to hurry away. That’s why he put me on the black horse of Don Carlos’s. He wants that horse for himself, and feared the Don would steal or shoot him. And you, Bill Stillwell, you’re as bad as Al. You never distrust anybody till it’s too late. You’ve been singing ever since Stewart ordered the vaqueros off the range. But you sure haven’t been thinking.”
“Of course Don Carlos started that fire,” Florence interjected passionately. “Al, even if you live out here for a hundred years, you'll never realize that Greasers are deceitful. I know Gene Stewart thought something shady was going on. That’s why he wanted us to leave quickly. That’s why he put me on Don Carlos’s black horse. He wants that horse for himself and is worried the Don might steal it or shoot him. And you, Bill Stillwell, you're just as clueless as Al. You never doubt anyone until it’s too late. You've been singing ever since Stewart told the vaqueros to get off the range. But you really haven't been thinking.”
“Wal, now, Flo, you needn’t pitch into me jest because I hev a natural Christian spirit,” replied Stillwell, much aggrieved. “I reckon I’ve hed enough trouble in my life so’s not to go lookin’ fer more. Wal, I’m sorry about the hay burnin’. But mebbe the boys saved the stock. An’ as fer that ole adobe house of dark holes an’ under-ground passages, so long’s Miss Majesty doesn’t mind, I’m darn glad it burned. Come, let’s all turn in again. Somebody’ll ride over early an’ tell us what’s what.”
"Well, now, Flo, you don’t need to come at me just because I have a good Christian attitude," Stillwell replied, quite upset. "I think I've had enough trouble in my life not to go looking for more. Well, I’m sorry about the hay burning. But maybe the guys saved the animals. And as for that old adobe house full of dark holes and underground passages, as long as Miss Majesty doesn’t mind, I’m really glad it burned down. Come on, let’s all get some rest again. Someone will ride over early and fill us in on what’s going on."
Madeline awakened early, but not so early as the others, who were up and had breakfast ready when she went into the dining-room. Stillwell was not in an amiable frame of mind. The furrows of worry lined his broad brow and he continually glanced at his watch, and growled because the cowboys were so late in riding over with the news. He gulped his breakfast, and while Madeline and the others ate theirs he tramped up and down the porch. Madeline noted that Alfred grew nervous and restless. Presently he left the table to join Stillwell outside.
Madeline woke up early, but not as early as the others, who were already up and had breakfast ready when she walked into the dining room. Stillwell wasn't in a good mood. The worry lines on his broad forehead showed how stressed he was, and he kept checking his watch, grumbling about how late the cowboys were in bringing the news. He hurried through his breakfast, and while Madeline and the others enjoyed theirs, he paced back and forth on the porch. Madeline noticed that Alfred seemed anxious and restless. Soon, he got up from the table to join Stillwell outside.
“They’ll slope off to Don Carlos’s rancho and leave us to ride home alone,” observed Florence.
“They'll take off to Don Carlos's ranch and leave us to ride home by ourselves,” said Florence.
“Do you mind?” questioned Madeline.
"Do you mind?" asked Madeline.
“No, I don’t exactly mind; we’ve got the fastest horses in this country. I’d like to run that big black devil off his legs. No, I don’t mind; but I’ve no hankering for a situation Gene Stewart thinks—”
“No, I don’t really mind; we have the fastest horses in this country. I’d love to run that big black devil off his legs. No, I don’t mind; but I’m not interested in a situation Gene Stewart thinks—”
Florence began disconnectedly, and she ended evasively. Madeline did not press the point, although she had some sense of misgiving. Stillwell tramped in, shaking the floor with his huge boots; Alfred followed him, carrying a field-glass.
Florence started talking aimlessly, and she finished on an unclear note. Madeline didn't pursue the topic, even though she felt uneasy about it. Stillwell stomped in, making the floor shake with his large boots; Alfred came in behind him, holding a pair of binoculars.
“Not a hoss in sight,” complained Stillwell. “Some-thin’ wrong over Don Carlos’s way. Miss Majesty, it’ll be jest as well fer you an’ Flo to hit the home trail. We can telephone over an’ see that the boys know you’re comin’.”
“Not a horse in sight,” complained Stillwell. “Something's not right over at Don Carlos’s place. Miss Majesty, it’ll be just as well for you and Flo to head back home. We can call over and make sure the guys know you’re coming.”
Alfred, standing in the door, swept the gray valley with his field-glass.
Alfred, standing in the doorway, scanned the gray valley with his binoculars.
“Bill, I see running stock-horses or cattle; I can’t make out which. I guess we’d better rustle over there.”
“Bill, I see some horses or cattle running; I can’t tell which. I think we should head over there.”
Both men hurried out, and while the horses were being brought up and saddled Madeline and Florence put away the breakfast-dishes, then speedily donned spurs, sombreros, and gauntlets.
Both men rushed out, and while the horses were being brought up and saddled, Madeline and Florence cleaned up the breakfast dishes, then quickly put on their spurs, hats, and gloves.
“Here are the horses ready,” called Alfred. “Flo, that black Mexican horse is a prince.”
“Here are the horses, ready,” called Alfred. “Flo, that black Mexican horse is a champ.”
The girls went out in time to hear Stillwell’s good-by as he mounted and spurred away. Alfred went through the motions of assisting Madeline and Florence to mount, which assistance they always flouted, and then he, too, swung up astride.
The girls went out just in time to hear Stillwell say goodbye as he got on his horse and rode off. Alfred pretended to help Madeline and Florence mount, which they always ignored, and then he got on his horse as well.
“I guess it’s all right,” he said, rather dubiously. “You really must not go over toward Don Carlos’s. It’s only a few miles home.”
“I guess it’s fine,” he said, somewhat uncertainly. “You really shouldn’t go toward Don Carlos’s. It’s only a few miles back home.”
“Sure it’s all right. We can ride, can’t we?” retorted Florence. “Better have a care for yourself, going off over there to mix in goodness knows what.”
“Sure, it’s fine. We can ride, can’t we?” replied Florence. “You should be more careful, heading over there to get involved in who knows what.”
Alfred said good-by, spurred his horse, and rode away.
Alfred said goodbye, urged his horse forward, and rode off.
“If Bill didn’t forget to telephone!” exclaimed Florence. “I declare he and Al were sure rattled.”
“If Bill didn’t forget to call!” exclaimed Florence. “I swear he and Al were definitely shaken up.”
Florence dismounted and went into the house. She left the door open. Madeline had some difficulty in holding Majesty. It struck Madeline that Florence stayed rather long indoors. Presently she came out with sober face and rather tight lips.
Florence got off her horse and went into the house, leaving the door ajar. Madeline struggled a bit to keep Majesty steady. It occurred to Madeline that Florence was taking quite a while inside. Eventually, Florence came out with a serious expression and slightly pursed lips.
“I couldn’t get anybody on the ’phone. No answer. I tried a dozen times.”
“I couldn’t get anyone on the phone. No answer. I tried a dozen times.”
“Why, Florence!” Madeline was more concerned by the girl’s looks than by the information she imparted.
“Why, Florence!” Madeline was more worried about how the girl looked than the information she was sharing.
“The wire’s been cut,” said Florence. Her gray glance swept swiftly after Alfred, who was now far out of earshot. “I don’t like this a little bit. Heah’s where I’ve got to ‘figger,’ as Bill says.”
“The wire’s been cut,” said Florence. Her gray eyes quickly followed Alfred, who was now too far away to hear. “I really don’t like this. This is where I need to figure things out,” as Bill says.
She pondered a moment, then hurried into the house, to return presently with the field-glass that Alfred had used. With this she took a survey of the valley, particularly in the direction of Madeline’s ranch-house. This was hidden by low, rolling ridges which were quite close by.
She thought for a moment, then rushed into the house, returning shortly with the binoculars that Alfred had used. With these, she scanned the valley, especially toward Madeline’s ranch. It was obscured by low, rolling hills that were quite close.
“Anyway, nobody in that direction can see us leave heah,” she mused. “There’s mesquite on the ridges. We’ve got cover long enough to save us till we can see what’s ahead.”
“Anyway, no one that way can see us leave here,” she thought. “There’s mesquite on the ridges. We’ve got enough cover to keep us safe until we can see what’s ahead.”
“Florence, what—what do you expect?” asked Madeline, nervously.
“Florence, what do you expect?” Madeline asked, nervously.
“I don’t know. There’s never any telling about Greasers. I wish Bill and Al hadn’t left us. Still, come to think of that, they couldn’t help us much in case of a chase. We’d run right away from them. Besides, they’d shoot. I guess I’m as well as satisfied that we’ve got the job of getting home on our own hands. We don’t dare follow Al toward Don Carlos’s ranch. We know there’s trouble over there. So all that’s left is to hit the trail for home. Come, let’s ride. You stick like a Spanish needle to me.”
“I don’t know. You can never really predict what Greasers will do. I wish Bill and Al hadn’t left us. But thinking about it, they wouldn’t have been much help if we needed to run. We’d outpace them anyway. Plus, they’d probably shoot. I guess I’m okay with us handling the task of getting home on our own. We can’t dare follow Al toward Don Carlos's ranch. We know there’s trouble over there. So all that’s left is to head home. Come on, let’s ride. Stick close to me like a needle.”
A heavy growth of mesquite covered the top of the first ridge, and the trail went through it. Florence took the lead, proceeding cautiously, and as soon as she could see over the summit she used the field-glass. Then she went on. Madeline, following closely, saw down the slope of the ridge to a bare, wide, grassy hollow, and onward to more rolling land, thick with cactus and mesquite. Florence appeared cautious, deliberate, yet she lost no time. She was ominously silent. Madeline’s misgivings took definite shape in the fear of vaqueros in ambush.
A thick growth of mesquite covered the top of the first ridge, and the trail went right through it. Florence took the lead, moving carefully, and as soon as she could see over the summit, she used the binoculars. Then she continued on. Madeline, following closely, saw down the slope of the ridge to a wide, open grassy hollow, and further to more rolling land, dense with cactus and mesquite. Florence seemed careful and purposeful, yet she wasted no time. She was eerily silent. Madeline’s concerns took a clear form as the fear of vaqueros hiding in ambush settled in.
Upon the ascent of the third ridge, which Madeline remembered was the last uneven ground between the point she had reached and home, Florence exercised even more guarded care in advancing. Before she reached the top of this ridge she dismounted, looped her bridle round a dead snag, and, motioning Madeline to wait, she slipped ahead through the mesquite out of sight. Madeline waited, anxiously listening and watching. Certain it was that she could not see or hear anything alarming. The sun began to have a touch of heat; the morning breeze rustled the thin mesquite foliage; the deep magenta of a cactus flower caught her eye; a long-tailed, cruel-beaked, brown bird sailed so close to her she could have touched it with her whip. But she was only vaguely aware of these things. She was watching for Florence, listening for some sound fraught with untoward meaning. All of a sudden she saw Majesty’s ears were held straight up. Then Florence’s face, now strangely white, showed round the turn of the trail.
As they climbed the third ridge, which Madeline remembered was the last rough patch before reaching home, Florence took extra care in moving forward. Before reaching the top of the ridge, she got off her horse, tied the bridle to a dead branch, and, signaling Madeline to wait, slipped ahead through the mesquite and out of view. Madeline waited, anxiously listening and watching. She was sure there was nothing alarming to see or hear. The sun was starting to feel hot; the morning breeze rustled the delicate mesquite leaves; the deep magenta of a cactus flower caught her attention; a long-tailed, sharp-beaked brown bird sailed so close that she could have touched it with her whip. But she was only vaguely aware of these things. She was focused on watching for Florence, listening for any sound that might hint at trouble. Suddenly, she noticed Majesty’s ears perked straight up. Then, Florence’s face, unusually pale, appeared around the bend of the trail.
“’S-s-s-sh!” whispered Florence, holding up a warning finger. She reached the black horse and petted him, evidently to still an uneasiness he manifested. “We’re in for it,” she went on. “A whole bunch of vaqueros hiding among the mesquite over the ridge! They’ve not seen or heard us yet. We’d better risk riding ahead, cut off the trail, and beat them to the ranch. Madeline, you’re white as death! Don’t faint now!”
“Shh!” whispered Florence, holding up a warning finger. She approached the black horse and petted him, clearly trying to calm his uneasiness. “We’re in trouble,” she continued. “There’s a whole group of cowboys hiding in the mesquite over the ridge! They haven’t seen or heard us yet. We should ride ahead, avoid the trail, and reach the ranch before they do. Madeline, you look as pale as a ghost! Don’t faint now!”
“I shall not faint. But you frighten me. Is there danger? What shall we do?”
“I won’t give up. But you’re scaring me. Is there a threat? What should we do?”
“There’s danger. Madeline, I wouldn’t deceive you,” went on Florence, in an earnest whisper. “Things have turned out just as Gene Stewart hinted. Oh, we should—Al should have listened to Gene! I believe—I’m afraid Gene knew!”
“There's danger. Madeline, I wouldn't lie to you,” Florence continued in a serious whisper. “Things have happened just as Gene Stewart suggested. Oh, we should—Al should have paid attention to Gene! I believe—I'm scared Gene knew!”
“Knew what?” asked Madeline.
"Knew what?" Madeline asked.
“Never mind now. Listen. We daren’t take the back trail. We’ll go on. I’ve a scheme to fool that grinning Don Carlos. Get down, Madeline—hurry.”
“Forget it for now. Listen. We can't take the back trail. We'll keep going. I have a plan to outsmart that smirking Don Carlos. Get down, Madeline—hurry.”
Madeline dismounted.
Madeline got off.
“Give me your white sweater. Take it off—And that white hat! Hurry, Madeline.”
“Give me your white sweater. Take it off—and that white hat! Hurry, Madeline.”
“Florence, what on earth do you mean?” cried Madeline.
“Florence, what do you mean?” Madeline exclaimed.
“Not so loud,” whispered the other. Her gray eyes snapped. She had divested herself of sombrero and jacket, which she held out to Madeline. “Heah. Take these. Give me yours. Then get up on the black. I’ll ride Majesty. Rustle now, Madeline. This is no time to talk.”
“Not so loud,” whispered the other. Her gray eyes flashed. She had taken off her sombrero and jacket, which she held out to Madeline. “Here. Take these. Give me yours. Then get on the black. I’ll ride Majesty. Hurry up, Madeline. This isn’t the time to talk.”
“But, dear, why—why do you want—? Ah! You’re going to make the vaqueros take you for me!”
“But, darling, why—why do you want to—? Ah! You're going to have the cowboys think you're me!”
“You guessed it. Will you—”
“You guessed it. Will you—”
“I shall not allow you to do anything of the kind,” returned Madeline.
"I won't let you do anything like that," Madeline replied.
It was then that Florence’s face, changing, took on the hard, stern sharpness so typical of a cowboy’s. Madeline had caught glimpses of that expression in Alfred’s face, and on Stewart’s when he was silent, and on Stillwell’s always. It was a look of iron and fire—unchangeable, unquenchable will. There was even much of violence in the swift action whereby Florence compelled Madeline to the change of apparel.
It was at that moment that Florence’s face transformed, adopting the tough, serious sharpness typical of a cowboy. Madeline had seen flashes of that expression in Alfred’s face, and on Stewart’s when he was quiet, and it was always present on Stillwell’s. It was a look of iron and fire—an unyielding, relentless will. There was even a hint of violence in the quick way Florence pushed Madeline to change her clothes.
“It ’d been my idea, anyhow, if Stewart hadn’t told me to do it,” said Florence, her words as swift as her hands. “Don Carlos is after you—you, Miss Madeline Hammond! He wouldn’t ambush a trail for any one else. He’s not killing cowboys these days. He wants you for some reason. So Gene thought, and now I believe him. Well, we’ll know for sure in five minutes. You ride the black; I’ll ride Majesty. We’ll slip round through the brush, out of sight and sound, till we can break out into the open. Then we’ll split. You make straight for the ranch. I’ll cut loose for the valley where Gene said positively the cowboys were with the cattle. The vaqueros will take me for you. They all know those striking white things you wear. They’ll chase me. They’ll never get anywhere near me. And you’ll be on a fast horse. He can take you home ahead of any vaqueros. But you won’t be chased. I’m staking all on that. Trust me, Madeline. If it were only my calculation, maybe I’d—It’s because I remember Stewart. That cowboy knows things. Come, this heah’s the safest and smartest way to fool Don Carlos.” Madeline felt herself more forced than persuaded into acquiescence. She mounted the black and took up the bridle. In another moment she was guiding her horse off the trail in the tracks of Majesty. Florence led off at right angles, threading a slow passage through the mesquite. She favored sandy patches and open aisles between the trees, and was careful not to break a branch. Often she stopped to listen. This detour of perhaps half a mile brought Madeline to where she could see open ground, the ranch-house only a few miles off, and the cattle dotting the valley. She had not lost her courage, but it was certain that these familiar sights somewhat lightened the pressure upon her breast. Excitement gripped her. The shrill whistle of a horse made both the black and Majesty jump. Florence quickened the gait down the slope. Soon Madeline saw the edge of the brush, the gray-bleached grass and level ground.
“It was my idea anyway, if Stewart hadn’t told me to do it,” said Florence, her words flowing as quickly as her hands. “Don Carlos is after you—you, Miss Madeline Hammond! He wouldn’t set up an ambush for anyone else. He’s not going after cowboys these days. He wants you for some reason. So Gene thought, and now I believe him. Well, we’ll know for sure in five minutes. You ride the black horse; I’ll ride Majesty. We’ll sneak through the brush, out of sight and sound, until we can break into the open. Then we’ll split up. You head straight for the ranch. I’ll make my way to the valley where Gene said the cowboys are with the cattle. The vaqueros will mistake me for you. They all know those striking white things you wear. They’ll chase me. They’ll never catch up. And you’ll be on a fast horse. He can get you home ahead of any vaqueros. But you won’t be chased. I’m counting on that. Trust me, Madeline. If it were just my calculation, maybe I’d hesitate—it’s because I remember Stewart. That cowboy knows things. Come on, this is the safest and smartest way to fool Don Carlos.” Madeline felt more forced than convinced to agree. She mounted the black horse and picked up the reins. In a moment, she was guiding her horse off the trail in the path of Majesty. Florence went off at an angle, carefully navigating a slow route through the mesquite. She preferred sandy patches and clear spots between the trees, being careful not to break any branches. Often she paused to listen. This detour of about half a mile brought Madeline to a point where she could see open ground, the ranch house just a few miles away, and the cattle scattered across the valley. She hadn’t lost her courage, but it was clear that these familiar sights somewhat eased the tension in her chest. Excitement took hold of her. The sharp whistle of a horse startled both the black and Majesty. Florence quickened the pace down the slope. Soon Madeline spotted the edge of the brush, the gray-bleached grass, and the flat ground.
Florence waited at the opening between the low trees. She gave Madeline a quick, bright glance.
Florence waited at the gap between the short trees. She shot Madeline a quick, bright look.
“All over but the ride! That’ll sure be easy. Bolt now and keep your nerve!”
“All done except for the ride! That should be a piece of cake. Take off now and stay calm!”
When Florence wheeled the fiery roan and screamed in his ear Madeline seemed suddenly to grow lax and helpless. The big horse leaped into thundering action. This was memorable of Bonita of the flying hair and the wild night ride. Florence’s hair streamed on the wind and shone gold in the sunlight. Yet Madeline saw her with the same thrill with which she had seen the wild-riding Bonita. Then hoarse shouts unclamped Madeline’s power of movement, and she spurred the black into the open.
When Florence directed the fiery roan and yelled in his ear, Madeline suddenly felt weak and vulnerable. The big horse sprang into a powerful gallop. It reminded her of Bonita with the flowing hair and the exhilarating nighttime ride. Florence’s hair streamed in the wind, shining golden in the sunlight. Yet Madeline looked at her with the same excitement she had felt for the wild-riding Bonita. Then, loud shouts released Madeline’s ability to move, and she urged the black horse out into the open.
He wanted to run and he was swift. Madeline loosened the reins—laid them loose upon his neck. His action was strange to her. He was hard to ride. But he was fast, and she cared for nothing else. Madeline knew horses well enough to realize that the black had found he was free and carrying a light weight. A few times she took up the bridle and pulled to right or left, trying to guide him. He kept a straight course, however, and crashed through small patches of mesquite and jumped the cracks and washes. Uneven ground offered no perceptible obstacle to his running. To Madeline there was now a thrilling difference in the lash of wind and the flash of the gray ground underneath. She was running away from something; what that was she did not know. But she remembered Florence, and she wanted to look back, yet hated to do so for fear of the nameless danger Florence had mentioned.
He wanted to run, and he was fast. Madeline loosened the reins—let them hang loosely on his neck. His behavior was strange to her. He was hard to control. But he was quick, and that was all she cared about. Madeline knew horses well enough to realize that the black horse had discovered he was free and carrying a light rider. A few times, she took the bridle and tried to pull him to the right or left, attempting to steer him. However, he kept going straight, crashing through small patches of mesquite and jumping over cracks and washes. The uneven ground posed no real challenge to his running. To Madeline, there was now an exhilarating difference in the rush of the wind and the blur of the gray ground beneath her. She was running away from something; she didn't know what. But she remembered Florence and wanted to look back, yet she was afraid to do so because of the unnamed danger Florence had warned her about.
Madeline listened for the pounding of pursuing hoofs in her rear. Involuntarily she glanced back. On the mile or more of gray level between her and the ridge there was not a horse, a man, or anything living. She wheeled to look back on the other side, down the valley slope.
Madeline listened for the sound of hooves chasing her from behind. Without meaning to, she looked back. Over the mile or so of gray terrain between her and the ridge, there was no horse, no man, or anything alive. She turned to look back on the other side, down the slope of the valley.
The sight of Florence riding Majesty in zigzag flight before a whole troop of vaqueros blanched Madeline’s cheek and made her grip the pommel of her saddle in terror. That strange gait of her roan was not his wonderful stride. Could Majesty be running wild? Madeline saw one vaquero draw closer, whirling his lasso round his head, but he did not get near enough to throw. So it seemed to Madeline. Another vaquero swept across in front of the first one. Then, when Madeline gasped in breathless expectancy, the roan swerved to elude the attack. It flashed over Madeline that Florence was putting the horse to some such awkward flight as might have been expected of an Eastern girl frightened out of her wits. Madeline made sure of this when, after looking again, she saw that Florence, in spite of the horse’s breaking gait and the irregular course, was drawing slowly and surely down the valley.
The sight of Florence riding Majesty in a zigzag pattern in front of a group of vaqueros made Madeline’s face go pale and caused her to grip the saddle horn in fear. That strange movement of her roan wasn’t his usual impressive stride. Could Majesty be out of control? Madeline noticed one vaquero moving in closer, swinging his lasso above his head, but he didn’t get close enough to throw it. At least, that’s how it seemed to Madeline. Another vaquero rode across in front of the first one. Then, just as Madeline held her breath in anticipation, the roan dodged the attempt to capture her. It struck Madeline that Florence was handling the horse in a way that seemed more like an Eastern girl panicking. She confirmed this when she took another look and saw that, despite the horse's awkward movements and erratic path, Florence was gradually making her way down the valley.
Madeline had not lost her head to the extent of forgetting her own mount and the nature of the ground in front. When, presently, she turned again to watch Florence, uncertainty ceased in her mind. The strange features of that race between girl and vaqueros were no longer in evidence. Majesty was in his beautiful, wonderful stride, low down along the ground, stretching, with his nose level and straight for the valley. Between him and the lean horses in pursuit lay an ever-increasing space. He was running away from the vaqueros. Florence was indeed “riding the wind,” as Stewart had aptly expressed his idea of flight upon the fleet roan.
Madeline hadn't lost her composure to the point of forgetting her own horse or the terrain ahead. When she turned back to watch Florence, her uncertainty vanished. The oddity of the race between the girl and the cowboys was gone. Majesty was in his stunning, powerful stride, low to the ground, stretching out with his nose straight ahead toward the valley. An ever-increasing distance lay between him and the lean horses chasing after him. He was pulling away from the cowboys. Florence was truly “riding the wind,” just as Stewart had perfectly described the feeling of flying on the swift roan.
A dimness came over Madeline’s eyes, and it was not all owing to the sting of the wind. She rubbed it away, seeing Florence as a flying dot in a strange blur. What a daring, intrepid girl! This kind of strength—and aye, splendid thought for a weaker sister—was what the West inculcated in a woman.
A dimness fell over Madeline’s eyes, and it wasn’t just because of the sting of the wind. She wiped it away, seeing Florence as a small dot in a strange blur. What a bold, fearless girl! This kind of strength—and truly, a wonderful idea for a more vulnerable sister—was what the West instilled in a woman.
The next time Madeline looked back Florence was far ahead of her pursuers and going out of sight behind a low knoll. Assured of Florence’s safety, Madeline put her mind to her own ride and the possibilities awaiting at the ranch. She remembered the failure to get any of her servants or cowboys on the telephone. To be sure, a wind-storm had once broken the wire. But she had little real hope of such being the case in this instance. She rode on, pulling the black as she neared the ranch. Her approach was from the south and off the usual trail, so that she went up the long slope of the knoll toward the back of the house. Under these circumstances she could not consider it out of the ordinary that she did not see any one about the grounds.
The next time Madeline looked back, Florence was far ahead of her pursuers and disappearing behind a low hill. Confident in Florence’s safety, Madeline focused on her own ride and the possibilities waiting for her at the ranch. She recalled the failed attempts to reach any of her staff or cowboys on the phone. Sure, a windstorm had once knocked out the wires. But she didn’t genuinely believe that was the case this time. She continued riding, guiding the black horse as she got closer to the ranch. Her approach was from the south and off the usual path, taking her up the long slope of the hill toward the back of the house. Given these circumstances, it didn’t seem unusual that she didn’t see anyone around the grounds.
It was perhaps fortunate for her, she thought, that the climb up the slope cut the black’s speed so she could manage him. He was not very hard to stop. The moment she dismounted, however, he jumped and trotted off. At the edge of the slope, facing the corrals, he halted to lift his head and shoot up his ears. Then he let out a piercing whistle and dashed down the lane.
It was probably a good thing for her, she thought, that the uphill climb slowed the horse down enough for her to handle him. He wasn’t very difficult to stop. However, as soon as she got off, he took off and trotted away. At the top of the slope, facing the corrals, he stopped to lift his head and perk up his ears. Then he let out a loud whinny and sprinted down the lane.
Madeline, prepared by that warning whistle, tried to fortify herself for a new and unexpected situation; but as she espied an unfamiliar company of horsemen rapidly riding down a hollow leading from the foothills she felt the return of fears gripping at her like cold hands, and she fled precipitously into the house.
Madeline, alerted by that warning whistle, tried to brace herself for a new and unexpected situation; but as she saw a group of unfamiliar horsemen quickly riding down a valley from the foothills, she felt her fears returning, gripping her like icy hands, and she rushed into the house.
XI. A Band of Guerrillas
Madeline bolted the door, and, flying into the kitchen, she told the scared servants to shut themselves in. Then she ran to her own rooms. It was only a matter of a few moments for her to close and bar the heavy shutters, yet even as she was fastening the last one in the room she used as an office a clattering roar of hoofs seemed to swell up to the front of the house. She caught a glimpse of wild, shaggy horses and ragged, dusty men. She had never seen any vaqueros that resembled these horsemen. Vaqueros had grace and style; they were fond of lace and glitter and fringe; they dressed their horses in silvered trappings. But the riders now trampling into the driveway were uncouth, lean, savage. They were guerrillas, a band of the raiders who had been harassing the border since the beginning of the revolution. A second glimpse assured Madeline that they were not all Mexicans.
Madeline locked the door and rushed into the kitchen, telling the frightened staff to lock themselves in. Then she dashed to her own rooms. It took her just a moment to close and secure the heavy shutters, but as she was fastening the last one in her office, she heard a loud clattering of hooves approaching the front of the house. She caught a quick glimpse of wild, shaggy horses and ragged, dusty men. She had never seen any cowboys like these horsemen. Cowboys had style and flair; they loved lace and sparkle and fringe; they adorned their horses with shiny gear. But the riders now storming into the driveway were rough, lean, and fierce. They were guerrillas, part of the raiders who had been causing trouble at the border since the revolution began. A second glance confirmed to Madeline that not all of them were Mexicans.
The presence of outlaws in that band brought home to Madeline her real danger. She remembered what Stillwell had told her about recent outlaw raids along the Rio Grande. These flying bands, operating under the excitement of the revolution, appeared here and there, everywhere, in remote places, and were gone as quickly as they came. Mostly they wanted money and arms, but they would steal anything, and unprotected women had suffered at their hands.
The presence of outlaws in that group made Madeline realize her real danger. She recalled what Stillwell had told her about recent outlaw raids along the Rio Grande. These bands, taking advantage of the chaos from the revolution, would show up in remote areas and disappear just as fast. Mostly, they were after money and weapons, but they would steal anything, and vulnerable women had faced terrible consequences because of them.
Madeline, hurriedly collecting her securities and the considerable money she had in her desk, ran out, closed and locked the door, crossed the patio to the opposite side of the house, and, entering again, went down a long corridor, trying to decide which of the many unused rooms would be best to hide in. And before she made up her mind she came to the last room. Just then a battering on door or window in the direction of the kitchen and shrill screams from the servant women increased Madeline’s alarm.
Madeline quickly gathered her valuables and the significant amount of cash in her desk, rushed out, locked the door, crossed the patio to the other side of the house, and, upon entering again, walked down a long hallway, trying to figure out which of the many empty rooms would be the best place to hide. Just as she was about to make a decision, she reached the last room. At that moment, loud banging on the door or window from the kitchen, along with the high-pitched screams of the maidservants, heightened Madeline’s fear.
She entered the last room. There was no lock or bar upon the door. But the room was large and dark, and it was half full of bales of alfalfa hay. Probably it was the safest place in the house; at least time would be necessary to find any one hidden there. She dropped her valuables in a dark corner and covered them with loose hay. That done, she felt her way down a narrow aisle between the piled-up bales and presently crouched in a niche.
She entered the last room. There was no lock or bar on the door. But the room was large and dark, and it was half full of bales of alfalfa hay. It was probably the safest place in the house; at least it would take time to find anyone hidden there. She dropped her valuables in a dark corner and covered them with loose hay. After that, she felt her way down a narrow aisle between the stacked bales and eventually crouched in a niche.
With the necessity of action over for the immediate present, Madeline became conscious that she was quivering and almost breathless. Her skin felt tight and cold. There was a weight on her chest; her mouth was dry, and she had a strange tendency to swallow. Her listening faculty seemed most acute. Dull sounds came from parts of the house remote from her. In the intervals of silence between these sounds she heard the squeaking and rustling of mice in the hay. A mouse ran over her hand.
With the need for action pressing on her in the moment, Madeline realized she was trembling and nearly out of breath. Her skin felt tight and cold. There was a heaviness on her chest; her mouth was dry, and she had an odd urge to swallow. Her hearing felt exceptionally sharp. Faint noises came from areas of the house far from her. In the quiet moments between these sounds, she heard the squeaking and scurrying of mice in the hay. A mouse scurried across her hand.
She listened, waiting, hoping yet dreading to hear the clattering approach of her cowboys. There would be fighting—blood—men injured, perhaps killed. Even the thought of violence of any kind hurt her. But perhaps the guerrillas would run in time to avoid a clash with her men. She hoped for that, prayed for it. Through her mind flitted what she knew of Nels, of Monty, of Nick Steele; and she experienced a sensation that left her somewhat chilled and sick. Then she thought of the dark-browed, fire-eyed Stewart. She felt a thrill drive away the cold nausea. And her excitement augmented.
She listened, waiting, both hopeful and fearful for the sound of her cowboys approaching. There would be fighting—blood—men hurt, maybe killed. Just the thought of any violence made her uneasy. But maybe the guerrillas would leave in time to avoid a confrontation with her men. She wished for that, prayed for it. Memories of Nels, Monty, and Nick Steele raced through her mind, leaving her feeling somewhat cold and sick. Then she thought of dark-browed, fiery Stewart. A thrill swept away her nausea, and her excitement grew.
Waiting, listening increased all her emotions. Nothing appeared to be happening. Yet hours seemed to pass while she crouched there. Had Florence been overtaken? Could any of those lean horses outrun Majesty? She doubted it; she knew it could not be true. Nevertheless, the strain of uncertainty was torturing.
Waiting and listening heightened all her feelings. Nothing seemed to be happening. Yet hours felt like they passed while she crouched there. Had Florence been caught? Could any of those slim horses outpace Majesty? She didn't believe it; she knew it couldn't be true. Still, the pressure of not knowing was torturous.
Suddenly the bang of the corridor door pierced her through and through with the dread of uncertainty. Some of the guerrillas had entered the east wing of the house. She heard a babel of jabbering voices, the shuffling of boots and clinking of spurs, the slamming of doors and ransacking of rooms.
Suddenly, the loud bang of the corridor door hit her with a wave of anxiety. Some of the guerrillas had entered the east wing of the house. She heard a mix of chattering voices, the sound of boots shuffling and spurs clinking, doors slamming, and rooms being ransacked.
Madeline lost faith in her hiding-place. Moreover, she found it impossible to take the chance. The idea of being caught in that dark room by those ruffians filled her with horror. She must get out into the light. Swiftly she rose and went to the window. It was rather more of a door than window, being a large aperture closed by two wooden doors on hinges. The iron hook yielded readily to her grasp, and one door stuck fast, while the other opened a few inches. She looked out upon a green slope covered with flowers and bunches of sage and bushes. Neither man nor horse showed in the narrow field of her vision. She believed she would be safer hidden out there in the shrubbery than in the house. The jump from the window would be easy for her. And with her quick decision came a rush and stir of spirit that warded off her weakness.
Madeline lost trust in her hiding spot. Besides, she felt like she couldn't take the risk. The thought of being trapped in that dark room by those thugs filled her with dread. She needed to get out into the light. Quickly, she stood up and walked to the window. It was more like a door than a window, being a large opening covered by two wooden doors on hinges. The iron hook came off easily in her hand, and one door stuck while the other opened a few inches. She peered out at a green slope dotted with flowers, sage, and bushes. There was no sign of people or horses in her limited view. She thought she would be safer hiding out there in the shrubs than in the house. Jumping from the window would be easy for her. With her quick decision came a surge of energy that pushed away her weakness.
She pulled at the door. It did not budge. It had caught at the bottom. Pulling with all her might proved to be in vain. Pausing, with palms hot and bruised, she heard a louder, closer approach of the invaders of her home. Fear, wrath, and impotence contested for supremacy over her and drove her to desperation. She was alone here, and she must rely on herself. And as she strained every muscle to move that obstinate door and heard the quick, harsh voices of men and the sounds of a hurried search she suddenly felt sure that they were hunting for her. She knew it. She did not wonder at it. But she wondered if she were really Madeline Hammond, and if it were possible that brutal men would harm her. Then the tramping of heavy feet on the floor of the adjoining room lent her the last strength of fear. Pushing with hands and shoulders, she moved the door far enough to permit the passage of her body. Then she stepped up on the sill and slipped through the aperture. She saw no one. Lightly she jumped down and ran in among the bushes. But these did not afford her the cover she needed. She stole from one clump to another, finding too late that she had chosen with poor judgment. The position of the bushes had drawn her closer to the front of the house rather than away from it, and just before her were horses, and beyond a group of excited men. With her heart in her throat Madeline crouched down.
She tugged at the door. It wouldn’t move. It was stuck at the bottom. Pulling with all her strength proved useless. Pausing, with her palms hot and bruised, she heard the loud, fast approach of the intruders in her home. Fear, anger, and helplessness battled within her, pushing her to desperation. She was alone, and she had to depend on herself. As she strained every muscle to move that stubborn door and heard the quick, harsh voices of men and the sounds of a frantic search, she suddenly felt sure they were looking for her. She knew it. She didn’t question it. But she wondered if she was really Madeline Hammond, and if it was possible that these brutal men would hurt her. Then the sound of heavy footsteps on the floor of the next room gave her the final boost of fear. Pushing with her hands and shoulders, she managed to move the door just enough to let her body through. Then she stepped up onto the sill and slipped through the opening. She saw no one. Lightly, she jumped down and ran into the bushes. But they didn’t offer her the cover she needed. She moved from one patch to another, realizing too late that she had made a poor choice. The arrangement of the bushes had brought her closer to the front of the house instead of away from it, and right in front of her were horses and a group of agitated men. With her heart racing, Madeline crouched down.
A shrill yell, followed by running and mounting guerrillas, roused her hope. They had sighted the cowboys and were in flight. Rapid thumping of boots on the porch told of men hurrying from the house. Several horses dashed past her, not ten feet distant. One rider saw her, for he turned to shout back. This drove Madeline into a panic. Hardly knowing what she did, she began to run away from the house. Her feet seemed leaden. She felt the same horrible powerlessness that sometimes came over her when she dreamed of being pursued. Horses with shouting riders streaked past her in the shrubbery. There was a thunder of hoofs behind her. She turned aside, but the thundering grew nearer. She was being run down.
A loud scream, followed by the sound of running and mounted fighters, sparked her hope. They had spotted the cowboys and were fleeing. The rapid thud of boots on the porch indicated that men were rushing from the house. Several horses galloped past her, not even ten feet away. One rider noticed her and turned to shout back. This pushed Madeline into a panic. Barely aware of her actions, she started to run away from the house. Her legs felt like they were made of lead. She experienced the same terrible powerlessness that sometimes overwhelmed her when she dreamed of being chased. Horses with yelling riders zoomed past her through the bushes. There was a thundering of hooves behind her. She veered to the side, but the thunder was getting closer. She was being hunted down.
As Madeline shut her eyes and, staggering, was about to fall, apparently right under pounding hoofs, a rude, powerful hand clapped round her waist, clutched deep and strong, and swung her aloft. She felt a heavy blow when the shoulder of the horse struck her, and then a wrenching of her arm as she was dragged up. A sudden blighting pain made sight and feeling fade from her.
As Madeline closed her eyes and, swaying, was about to collapse, seemingly right under thundering hooves, a rough, strong hand grabbed her around the waist, gripping tightly and lifting her up. She felt a hard impact when the horse's shoulder hit her, followed by a jarring pull on her arm as she was hoisted up. A sudden, excruciating pain caused her vision and sensation to disappear.
But she did not become unconscious to the extent that she lost the sense of being rapidly borne away. She seemed to hold that for a long time. When her faculties began to return the motion of the horse was no longer violent. For a few moments she could not determine her position. Apparently she was upside down. Then she saw that she was facing the ground, and must be lying across a saddle with her head hanging down. She could not move a hand; she could not tell where her hands were. Then she felt the touch of soft leather. She saw a high-topped Mexican boot, wearing a huge silver spur, and the reeking flank and legs of a horse, and a dusty, narrow trail. Soon a kind of red darkness veiled her eyes, her head swam, and she felt motion and pain only dully.
But she didn’t lose consciousness completely; she was still aware that she was being carried away quickly. She seemed to hold onto that sensation for a while. When her senses started to come back, the horse’s movement wasn’t as jarring anymore. For a few moments, she couldn’t figure out her position. It felt like she was upside down. Then she realized she was facing the ground, lying across a saddle with her head hanging down. She couldn’t move her hands; she didn’t even know where they were. Then she felt the softness of leather. She saw a high Mexican boot, with a huge silver spur, along with the sweaty side and legs of a horse, and a dusty, narrow path. Soon, a kind of red darkness covered her vision, her head started to spin, and she felt motion and pain only faintly.
After what seemed a thousand weary hours some one lifted her from the horse and laid her upon the ground, where, gradually, as the blood left her head and she could see, she began to get the right relation of things.
After what felt like a thousand exhausting hours, someone lifted her off the horse and laid her on the ground, where, as the blood drained from her head and her vision cleared, she started to understand her surroundings.
She lay in a sparse grove of firs, and the shadows told of late afternoon. She smelled wood smoke, and she heard the sharp crunch of horses’ teeth nipping grass. Voices caused her to turn her face. A group of men stood and sat round a camp-fire eating like wolves. The looks of her captors made Madeline close her eyes, and the fascination, the fear they roused in her made her open them again. Mostly they were thin-bodied, thin-bearded Mexicans, black and haggard and starved. Whatever they might be, they surely were hunger-stricken and squalid. Not one had a coat. A few had scarfs. Some wore belts in which were scattered cartridges. Only a few had guns, and these were of diverse patterns. Madeline could see no packs, no blankets, and only a few cooking-utensils, all battered and blackened. Her eyes fastened upon men she believed were white men; but it was from their features and not their color that she judged. Once she had seen a band of nomad robbers in the Sahara, and somehow was reminded of them by this motley outlaw troop.
She was lying in a sparse grove of fir trees, and the shadows indicated it was late afternoon. She could smell wood smoke and heard the sharp crunch of horses munching on grass. Voices made her turn her face. A group of men were sitting and standing around a campfire, eating like wolves. The looks of her captors made Madeline shut her eyes, but the fascination and fear they stirred in her forced her to open them again. Most of them were thin, bearded Mexicans, looking haggard and starved. Regardless of who they were, they clearly looked hungry and destitute. Not a single one had a coat. A few had scarves, and some wore belts with scattered cartridges. Only a few had guns, which were of various styles. Madeline noticed there were no packs, no blankets, and just a few battered and blackened cooking utensils. Her gaze landed on a few men she thought were white, judging them by their features rather than their skin color. Once, she had seen a band of nomadic robbers in the Sahara, and somehow this ragtag group of outlaws reminded her of them.
They divided attention between the satisfying of ravenous appetites and a vigilant watching down the forest aisles. They expected some one, Madeline thought, and, manifestly, if it were a pursuing posse, they did not show anxiety. She could not understand more than a word here and there that they uttered. Presently, however, the name of Don Carlos revived keen curiosity in her and realization of her situation, and then once more dread possessed her breast.
They split their focus between satisfying their intense hunger and keeping a careful eye on the paths through the forest. They seemed to be expecting someone, Madeline thought, and clearly, if it was a pursuing group, they weren't showing any signs of worry. She could barely understand more than a word here and there of what they were saying. However, when she heard the name Don Carlos, it sparked her curiosity and reminded her of her situation, and once again, fear took hold of her.
A low exclamation and a sweep of arm from one of the guerrillas caused the whole band to wheel and concentrate their attention in the opposite direction. They heard something. They saw some one. Grimy hands sought weapons, and then every man stiffened. Madeline saw what hunted men looked like at the moment of discovery, and the sight was terrible. She closed her eyes, sick with what she saw, fearful of the moment when the guns would leap out.
A quiet shout and a wave of an arm from one of the guerrillas made the whole group turn and focus their attention the other way. They heard something. They saw someone. Dirty hands grabbed for weapons, and then every man tensed up. Madeline witnessed what hunted people looked like at the moment of being found, and the sight was horrifying. She shut her eyes, feeling sick from what she saw, fearing the moment when the guns would come out.
There were muttered curses, a short period of silence followed by whisperings, and then a clear voice rang out, “El Capitan!”
There were muttered curses, a brief silence followed by whispers, and then a clear voice called out, “El Capitan!”
A strong shock vibrated through Madeline, and her eyelids swept open. Instantly she associated the name El Capitan with Stewart and experienced a sensation of strange regret. It was not pursuit or rescue she thought of then, but death. These men would kill Stewart. But surely he had not come alone. The lean, dark faces, corded and rigid, told her in what direction to look. She heard the slow, heavy thump of hoofs. Soon into the wide aisle between the trees moved the form of a man, arms flung high over his head. Then Madeline saw the horse, and she recognized Majesty, and she knew it was really Stewart who rode the roan. When doubt was no longer possible she felt a suffocating sense of gladness and fear and wonder.
A strong jolt shook Madeline, and her eyelids flew open. Right away, she linked the name El Capitan with Stewart and felt a strange sense of regret. It wasn't about being chased or rescued that she thought of then, but death. These men would kill Stewart. But surely he hadn’t come alone. The lean, dark faces, tense and unyielding, pointed her to where she should look. She heard the slow, heavy thud of hoofs. Soon, a figure emerged in the wide path between the trees, arms raised high over his head. Then Madeline saw the horse, and she recognized Majesty, knowing it was really Stewart riding the roan. When doubt disappeared, she was overwhelmed with a mix of happiness, fear, and amazement.
Many of the guerrillas leaped up with drawn weapons. Still Stewart approached with his hands high, and he rode right into the camp-fire circle. Then a guerrilla, evidently the chief, waved down the threatening men and strode up to Stewart. He greeted him. There was amaze and pleasure and respect in the greeting. Madeline could tell that, though she did not know what was said. At the moment Stewart appeared to her as cool and careless as if he were dismounting at her porch steps. But when he got down she saw that his face was white. He shook hands with the guerrilla, and then his glittering eyes roved over the men and around the glade until they rested upon Madeline. Without moving from his tracks he seemed to leap, as if a powerful current had shocked him. Madeline tried to smile to assure him she was alive and well; but the intent in his eyes, the power of his controlled spirit telling her of her peril and his, froze the smile on her lips.
Many of the guerrillas jumped up with their weapons drawn. Still, Stewart approached with his hands raised, riding right into the campfire circle. Then a guerrilla, clearly the leader, signaled the armed men to lower their weapons and walked up to Stewart. He greeted him with a mix of surprise, pleasure, and respect. Madeline could sense this, even though she didn’t know the words exchanged. In that moment, Stewart seemed completely calm and relaxed, as if he were just getting off his horse at her front porch. But when he dismounted, she noticed his face was pale. He shook hands with the guerrilla, and then his sharp eyes scanned the men and the clearing until they landed on Madeline. Without stepping off his path, he seemed to jump back, as if he had been hit by a powerful shock. Madeline attempted to smile to reassure him that she was safe, but the intensity in his gaze and the strength of his controlled spirit, which conveyed their shared danger, froze her smile in place.
With that he faced the chief and spoke rapidly in the Mexican jargon Madeline had always found so difficult to translate. The chief answered, spreading wide his hands, one of which indicated Madeline as she lay there. Stewart drew the fellow a little aside and said something for his ear alone. The chief’s hands swept up in a gesture of surprise and acquiescence. Again Stewart spoke swiftly. His hearer then turned to address the band. Madeline caught the words “Don Carlos” and “pesos.” There was a brief muttering protest which the chief thundered down. Madeline guessed her release had been given by this guerrilla and bought from the others of the band.
With that, he turned to the chief and spoke quickly in the Mexican slang that Madeline always found so hard to translate. The chief responded, spreading his hands wide, one of which pointed to Madeline as she lay there. Stewart pulled the chief a little aside and said something just for him. The chief raised his hands in a gesture of surprise and agreement. Stewart spoke quickly again. The chief then turned to address the group. Madeline caught the words “Don Carlos” and “pesos.” There was a brief murmur of protest that the chief silenced. Madeline guessed that her release had been granted by this guerrilla and paid for by the others in the group.
Stewart strode to her side, leading the roan. Majesty reared and snorted when he saw his mistress prostrate. Stewart knelt, still holding the bridle.
Stewart walked up to her, guiding the roan. Majesty reared up and snorted when he saw his owner lying on the ground. Stewart knelt down, still holding the bridle.
“Are you all right?” he asked.
“Are you alright?” he asked.
“I think so,” she replied, essaying a laugh that was rather a failure. “My feet are tied.”
“I think so,” she replied, trying to laugh but failing. “My feet are tied.”
Dark blood blotted out all the white from his face, and lightning shot from his eyes. She felt his hands, like steel tongs, loosening the bonds round her ankles. Without a word he lifted her upright and then upon Majesty. Madeline reeled a little in the saddle, held hard to the pommel with one hand, and tried to lean on Stewart’s shoulder with the other.
Dark blood smeared across his face, and lightning flashed in his eyes. She felt his hands, like steel clamps, releasing the ties around her ankles. Without saying a word, he stood her up and then put her on Majesty. Madeline swayed slightly in the saddle, gripping the pommel with one hand, and tried to lean on Stewart’s shoulder with the other.
“Don’t give up,” he said.
"Don't give up," he said.
She saw him gaze furtively into the forest on all sides. And it surprised her to see the guerrillas riding away. Putting the two facts together, Madeline formed an idea that neither Stewart nor the others desired to meet with some one evidently due shortly in the glade. Stewart guided the roan off to the right and walked beside Madeline, steadying her in the saddle. At first Madeline was so weak and dizzy that she could scarcely retain her seat. The dizziness left her presently, and then she made an effort to ride without help. Her weakness, however, and a pain in her wrenched arm made the task laborsome.
She saw him glancing nervously into the forest all around. It surprised her to see the guerrillas riding away. Putting the two facts together, Madeline realized that neither Stewart nor the others wanted to encounter someone who was clearly due to arrive in the glade soon. Stewart led the roan to the right and walked next to Madeline, helping her stay steady in the saddle. At first, Madeline felt so weak and dizzy that she could hardly keep her seat. The dizziness passed after a while, and then she tried to ride without any help. However, her weakness and the pain in her injured arm made it difficult.
Stewart had struck off the trail, if there were one, and was keeping to denser parts of the forest. The sun sank low, and the shafts of gold fell with a long slant among the firs. Majesty’s hoofs made no sound on the soft ground, and Stewart strode on without speaking. Neither his hurry nor vigilance relaxed until at least two miles had been covered. Then he held to a straighter course and did not send so many glances into the darkening woods. The level of the forest began to be cut up by little hollows, all of which sloped and widened. Presently the soft ground gave place to bare, rocky soil. The horse snorted and tossed his head. A sound of splashing water broke the silence. The hollow opened into a wider one through which a little brook murmured its way over the stones. Majesty snorted again and stopped and bent his head.
Stewart had veered off the path, if there even was one, and was sticking to the thicker parts of the forest. The sun was setting, casting golden rays at a long angle through the fir trees. Majesty’s hooves made no noise on the soft ground, and Stewart walked on without saying a word. He didn’t ease his pace or let his guard down until he had covered at least two miles. Then he kept a straighter direction and glanced into the darkening woods less often. The forest floor began to change, with little dips that sloped and widened. Soon, the soft ground turned into bare, rocky soil. The horse snorted and shook his head. A sound of splashing water interrupted the quiet. The hollow opened up into a larger one, where a small brook babbled over the stones. Majesty snorted again, stopped, and lowered his head.
“He wants a drink,” said Madeline. “I’m thirsty, too, and very tired.”
“He wants a drink,” said Madeline. “I’m thirsty, too, and really tired.”
Stewart lifted her out of the saddle, and as their hands parted she felt something moist and warm. Blood was running down her arm and into the palm of her hand.
Stewart lifted her off the saddle, and as their hands separated, she felt something moist and warm. Blood was running down her arm and into her palm.
“I’m—bleeding,” she said, a little unsteadily. “Oh, I remember. My arm was hurt.”
“I’m—bleeding,” she said, a bit unsteadily. “Oh, I remember. My arm was injured.”
She held it out, the blood making her conscious of her weakness. Stewart’s fingers felt so firm and sure. Swiftly he ripped the wet sleeve. Her forearm had been cut or scratched. He washed off the blood.
She held it out, the blood reminding her of her vulnerability. Stewart’s fingers felt strong and confident. Quickly, he tore the wet sleeve. Her forearm had been cut or scraped. He cleaned off the blood.
“Why, Stewart, it’s nothing. I was only a little nervous. I guess that’s the first time I ever saw my own blood.”
“Why, Stewart, it’s nothing. I was just a bit nervous. I guess that’s the first time I ever saw my own blood.”
He made no reply as he tore her handkerchief into strips and bound her arm. His swift motions and his silence gave her a hint of how he might meet a more serious emergency. She felt safe. And because of that impression, when he lifted his head and she saw that he was pale and shaking, she was surprised. He stood before her folding his scarf, which was still wet, and from which he made no effort to remove the red stains.
He didn't say anything as he ripped her handkerchief into strips and wrapped it around her arm. His quick movements and silence suggested to her how he might handle a bigger crisis. She felt secure. So, when he looked up and she noticed that he was pale and trembling, it took her by surprise. He stood in front of her folding his scarf, which was still damp, and he didn't try to wipe away the red stains.
“Miss Hammond,” he said, hoarsely, “it was a man’s hands—a Greaser’s finger-nails—that cut your arm. I know who he was. I could have killed him. But I mightn’t have got your freedom. You understand? I didn’t dare.”
“Miss Hammond,” he said, hoarsely, “it was a man’s hands—a Greaser’s finger-nails—that cut your arm. I know who he was. I could have killed him. But I might not have gotten your freedom. Do you understand? I didn’t dare.”
Madeline gazed at Stewart, astounded more by his speech than his excessive emotion.
Madeline stared at Stewart, more amazed by what he was saying than by how emotional he was.
“My dear boy!” she exclaimed. And then she paused. She could not find words.
“My dear boy!” she exclaimed. Then she paused. She couldn't find the words.
He was making an apology to her for not killing a man who had laid a rough hand upon her person. He was ashamed and seemed to be in a torture that she would not understand why he had not killed the man. There seemed to be something of passionate scorn in him that he had not been able to avenge her as well as free her.
He was apologizing to her for not killing the man who had harmed her. He felt ashamed and was in a kind of agony because she wouldn’t understand why he hadn’t done it. There was a hint of passionate disdain in him for not being able to both avenge her and set her free.
“Stewart, I understand. You were being my kind of cowboy. I thank you.”
“Stewart, I get it. You were being my kind of cowboy. Thank you.”
But she did not understand so much as she implied. She had heard many stories of this man’s cool indifference to peril and death. He had always seemed as hard as granite. Why should the sight of a little blood upon her arm pale his cheek and shake his hand and thicken his voice? What was there in his nature to make him implore her to see the only reason he could not kill an outlaw? The answer to the first question was that he loved her. It was beyond her to answer the second. But the secret of it lay in the same strength from which his love sprang—an intensity of feeling which seemed characteristic of these Western men of simple, lonely, elemental lives. All at once over Madeline rushed a tide of realization of how greatly it was possible for such a man as Stewart to love her. The thought came to her in all its singular power. All her Eastern lovers who had the graces that made them her equals in the sight of the world were without the only great essential that a lonely, hard life had given to Stewart. Nature here struck a just balance. Something deep and dim in the future, an unknown voice, called to Madeline and disturbed her. And because it was not a voice to her intelligence she deadened the ears of her warm and throbbing life and decided never to listen.
But she didn't understand as much as she claimed. She had heard plenty of stories about this man's calm indifference to danger and death. He always seemed as tough as stone. Why should the sight of a little blood on her arm make him pale, shake his hand, and thicken his voice? What was it in his nature that made him beg her to understand the only reason he couldn’t kill an outlaw? The answer to the first question was that he loved her. She couldn’t answer the second. But the secret was tied to the same strength from which his love came—an intensity of feeling that seemed typical of these Western men with their simple, solitary, elemental lives. Suddenly, Madeline was flooded with the realization of how deeply someone like Stewart could love her. The thought hit her with all its might. All her Eastern lovers, who had the charm that made them her equals in the eyes of the world, lacked the one essential thing that a harsh, lonely life had given to Stewart. Nature had found a fair balance here. Something deep and unclear in her future, an unknown voice, called out to Madeline and unsettled her. And because it didn't resonate with her rational mind, she shut out the sounds of her warm and vibrant life and decided never to listen.
“Is it safe to rest a little?” she asked. “I am so tired. Perhaps I’ll be stronger if I rest.”
“Is it okay to take a break?” she asked. “I’m so tired. Maybe I’ll feel better if I rest.”
“We’re all right now,” he said. “The horse will be better, too. I ran him out. And uphill, at that.”
“We're all good right now,” he said. “The horse will be fine, too. I took him out for a run. And it was uphill, to boot.”
“Where are we?”
“Where are we at?”
“Up in the mountains, ten miles and more from the ranch. There’s a trail just below here. I can get you home by midnight. They’ll be some worried down there.”
“Up in the mountains, ten miles or more from the ranch. There’s a trail just below here. I can get you home by midnight. They’ll be worried down there.”
“What happened?”
"What’s going on?"
“Nothing much to any one but you. That’s the—the hard luck of it. Florence caught us out on the slope. We were returning from the fire. We were dead beat. But we got to the ranch before any damage was done. We sure had trouble in finding a trace of you. Nick spotted the prints of your heels under the window. And then we knew. I had to fight the boys. If they’d come after you we’d never have gotten you without a fight. I didn’t want that. Old Bill came out packing a dozen guns. He was crazy. I had to rope Monty. Honest, I tied him to the porch. Nels and Nick promised to stay and hold him till morning. That was the best I could do. I was sure lucky to come up with the band so soon. I had figured right. I knew that guerrilla chief. He’s a bandit in Mexico. It’s a business with him. But he fought for Madero, and I was with him a good deal. He may be a Greaser, but he’s white.”
“Nothing much to anyone but you. That’s the hard luck of it. Florence caught us on the slope. We were coming back from the fire. We were completely exhausted. But we made it to the ranch before any damage was done. We really had a hard time finding you. Nick noticed the prints of your heels under the window. That’s when we knew. I had to fight the guys. If they’d gone after you, we wouldn’t have gotten you without a fight. I didn’t want that. Old Bill came out with a dozen guns. He was out of his mind. I had to tie up Monty. Seriously, I tied him to the porch. Nels and Nick promised to stay and hold him until morning. That was the best I could do. I was really lucky to find the band so soon. I had it figured out. I knew that guerrilla leader. He’s a bandit in Mexico. It’s a business for him. But he fought for Madero, and I was with him quite a bit. He may be a Greaser, but he’s white.”
“How did you effect my release?”
“How did you manage to get me released?”
“I offered them money. That’s what the rebels all want. They need money. They’re a lot of poor, hungry devils.”
“I offered them money. That’s what the rebels all want. They need money. They’re just a bunch of poor, hungry people.”
“I gathered that you offered to pay ransom. How much?”
“I heard you offered to pay a ransom. How much?”
“Two thousand dollars Mex. I gave my word. I’ll have to take the money. I told them when and where I’d meet them.”
“Two thousand dollars Mexican. I promised. I have to take the money. I told them when and where I’d meet them.”
“Certainly. I’m glad I’ve got the money.” Madeline laughed. “What a strange thing to happen to me! I wonder what dad would say to that? Stewart, I’m afraid he’d say two thousand dollars is more than I’m worth. But tell me. That rebel chieftain did not demand money?”
“Of course. I’m glad I have the money.” Madeline laughed. “What a weird thing to happen to me! I wonder what Dad would say about that? Stewart, I’m worried he’d say two thousand dollars is more than I’m worth. But tell me, that rebel leader didn’t ask for money, did he?”
“No. The money is for his men.”
“No. The money is for his guys.”
“What did you say to him? I saw you whisper in his ear.”
“What did you tell him? I saw you lean in and whisper to him.”
Stewart dropped his head, averting her direct gaze.
Stewart looked down, avoiding her direct gaze.
“We were comrades before Juarez. One day I dragged him out of a ditch. I reminded him. Then I—I told him something I—I thought—”
“We were friends before Juarez. One day I pulled him out of a ditch. I reminded him of that. Then I—I told him something I—I thought—”
“Stewart, I know from the way he looked at me that you spoke of me.”
“Stewart, I can tell by the way he looked at me that you talked about me.”
Her companion did not offer a reply to this, and Madeline did not press the point.
Her friend didn’t respond to this, and Madeline didn’t push the issue.
“I heard Don Carlos’s name several times. That interests me. What have Don Carlos and his vaqueros to do with this?”
“I heard Don Carlos’s name several times. That intrigues me. What do Don Carlos and his cowboys have to do with this?”
“That Greaser has all to do with it,” replied Stewart, grimly. “He burned his ranch and corrals to keep us from getting them. But he also did it to draw all the boys away from your home. They had a deep plot, all right. I left orders for some one to stay with you. But Al and Stillwell, who’re both hot-headed, rode off this morning. Then the guerrillas came down.”
“That Greaser is behind all of this,” Stewart replied grimly. “He set fire to his ranch and corrals to keep us from getting them. But he also did it to lure all the guys away from your home. They had a serious plan, for sure. I left instructions for someone to stay with you. But Al and Stillwell, who are both impulsive, took off this morning. Then the guerrillas showed up.”
“Well, what was the idea—the plot—as you call it?”
“Well, what was the concept—the plot—as you call it?”
“To get you,” he said, bluntly.
“To get you,” he said, straightforwardly.
“Me! Stewart, you do not mean my capture—whatever you call it—was anything more than mere accident?”
“Me! Stewart, you can't be saying that my capture—whatever you want to call it—was anything more than just an accident?”
“I do mean that. But Stillwell and your brother think the guerrillas wanted money and arms, and they just happened to make off with you because you ran under a horse’s nose.”
“I really mean that. But Stillwell and your brother believe the guerrillas were after money and weapons, and they just happened to grab you when you ran right in front of a horse.”
“You do not incline to that point of view?”
“You don’t agree with that perspective?”
“I don’t. Neither does Nels nor Nick Steele. And we know Don Carlos and the Greasers. Look how the vaqueros chased Flo for you!”
“I don’t. Neither does Nels or Nick Steele. And we know Don Carlos and the Greasers. Just look at how the vaqueros went after Flo for you!”
“What do you think, then?”
“What do you think?”
“I’d rather not say.”
"I'd prefer not to say."
“But, Stewart, I would like to know. If it is about me, surely I ought to know,” protested Madeline. “What reason have Nels and Nick to suspect Don Carlos of plotting to abduct me?”
“But, Stewart, I want to know. If it’s about me, I definitely should know,” Madeline insisted. “What reason do Nels and Nick have to think Don Carlos is planning to kidnap me?”
“I suppose they’ve no reason you’d take. Once I heard Nels say he’d seen the Greaser look at you, and if he ever saw him do it again he’d shoot him.”
“I guess they have no reason for you to take. Once I heard Nels say he saw the Greaser looking at you, and if he ever saw him do it again, he’d shoot him.”
“Why, Stewart, that is ridiculous. To shoot a man for looking at a woman! This is a civilized country.”
“Why, Stewart, that's ridiculous. To shoot a guy for looking at a woman! This is a civilized country.”
“Well, maybe it would be ridiculous in a civilized country. There’s some things about civilization I don’t care for.”
“Well, maybe it would be ridiculous in a civilized country. There are some things about civilization I don’t like.”
“What, for instance?”
"What do you mean?"
“For one thing, I can’t stand for the way men let other men treat women.”
“For one thing, I can’t stand how men let other men treat women.”
“But, Stewart, this is strange talk from you, who, that night I came—”
“But, Stewart, this is odd coming from you, considering that night I arrived—”
She broke off, sorry that she had spoken. His shame was not pleasant to see. Suddenly he lifted his head, and she felt scorched by flaming eyes.
She stopped, regretting that she had said anything. His shame was hard to watch. Then, he suddenly lifted his head, and she felt burned by his intense gaze.
“Suppose I was drunk. Suppose I had met some ordinary girl. Suppose I had really made her marry me. Don’t you think I would have stopped being a drunkard and have been good to her?”
“Imagine if I was drunk. Imagine if I had met some regular girl. Imagine if I had actually gotten her to marry me. Don’t you think I would have stopped being a drunk and treated her well?”
“Stewart, I do not know what to think about you,” replied Madeline.
“Stewart, I don't know what to think about you,” replied Madeline.
Then followed a short silence. Madeline saw the last bright rays of the setting sun glide up over a distant crag. Stewart rebridled the horse and looked at the saddle-girths.
Then there was a brief silence. Madeline watched the last bright rays of the setting sun rise over a distant rock formation. Stewart rebridled the horse and checked the saddle straps.
“I got off the trail. About Don Carlos I’ll say right out, not what Nels and Nick think, but what I know. Don Carlos hoped to make off with you for himself, the same as if you had been a poor peon slave-girl down in Sonora. Maybe he had a deeper plot than my rebel friend told me. Maybe he even went so far as to hope for American troops to chase him. The rebels are trying to stir up the United States. They’d welcome intervention. But, however that may be, the Greaser meant evil to you, and has meant it ever since he saw you first. That’s all.”
“I got off the trail. About Don Carlos, I’ll be direct; not what Nels and Nick think, but what I know. Don Carlos wanted to take you for himself, just like you were a poor peon slave-girl down in Sonora. Maybe he had a bigger plan than my rebel friend told me. Maybe he even hoped for American troops to come after him. The rebels are trying to provoke the United States. They’d welcome intervention. But, regardless, the Greaser intended harm towards you, and has since he first laid eyes on you. That’s all.”
“Stewart, you have done me and my family a service we can never hope to repay.”
“Stewart, you have done a huge favor for me and my family that we can never repay.”
“I’ve done the service. Only don’t mention pay to me. But there’s one thing I’d like you to know, and I find it hard to say. It’s prompted, maybe, by what I know you think of me and what I imagine your family and friends would think if they knew. It’s not prompted by pride or conceit. And it’s this: Such a woman as you should never have come to this God-forsaken country unless she meant to forget herself. But as you did come, and as you were dragged away by those devils, I want you to know that all your wealth and position and influence—all that power behind you—would never have saved you from hell to-night. Only such a man as Nels or Nick Steele or I could have done that.”
“I’ve done the service. Just don’t bring up payment with me. But there’s one thing I want you to know, and it’s difficult for me to say. It’s probably influenced by what I believe you think of me and what I guess your family and friends would think if they knew. It’s not out of pride or arrogance. And it’s this: A woman like you should have never come to this God-forsaken country unless you intended to lose yourself. But since you did come, and since you were taken away by those devils, I want you to understand that all your wealth, status, and influence—all that power behind you—would never have saved you from hell tonight. Only a man like Nels or Nick Steele or I could have done that.”
Madeline Hammond felt the great leveling force of the truth. Whatever the difference between her and Stewart, or whatever the imagined difference set up by false standards of class and culture, the truth was that here on this wild mountain-side she was only a woman and he was simply a man. It was a man that she needed, and if her choice could have been considered in this extremity it would have fallen upon him who had just faced her in quiet, bitter speech. Here was food for thought.
Madeline Hammond felt the powerful force of the truth. No matter the differences between her and Stewart, or the imagined divides created by false standards of class and culture, the reality was that here on this wild mountainside, she was just a woman and he was just a man. It was a man she needed, and if she had the choice in this extreme situation, it would have been him who had just confronted her with quiet, bitter words. This was worth thinking about.
“I reckon we’d better start now,” he said, and drew the horse close to a large rock. “Come.”
“I think we should get going now,” he said, pulling the horse closer to a large rock. “Let’s go.”
Madeline’s will greatly exceeded her strength. For the first time she acknowledged to herself that she had been hurt. Still, she did not feel much pain except when she moved her shoulder. Once in the saddle, where Stewart lifted her, she drooped weakly. The way was rough; every step the horse took hurt her; and the slope of the ground threw her forward on the pommel. Presently, as the slope grew rockier and her discomfort increased, she forgot everything except that she was suffering.
Madeline’s determination was far greater than her physical strength. For the first time, she admitted to herself that she had been injured. Still, she didn’t feel much pain except when she moved her shoulder. Once she was in the saddle, where Stewart helped her, she felt weak and slumped. The path was bumpy; every step the horse took caused her pain, and the incline of the ground pushed her forward against the saddle. As the trail became rockier and her discomfort grew, she forgot everything except that she was in pain.
“Here is the trail,” said Stewart, at length.
“Here’s the trail,” said Stewart, finally.
Not far from that point Madeline swayed, and but for Stewart’s support would have fallen from the saddle. She heard him swear under his breath.
Not far from there, Madeline swayed, and if it weren't for Stewart's support, she would have fallen off the saddle. She heard him curse quietly.
“Here, this won’t do,” he said. “Throw your leg over the pommel. The other one—there.”
“Here, this isn’t right,” he said. “Swing your leg over the pommel. The other one—there.”
Then, mounting, he slipped behind her and lifted and turned her, and then held her with his left arm so that she lay across the saddle and his knees, her head against his shoulder.
Then, getting on, he positioned himself behind her, lifted and turned her, and held her with his left arm so she lay across the saddle and his knees, her head resting against his shoulder.
As the horse started into a rapid walk Madeline gradually lost all pain and discomfort when she relaxed her muscles. Presently she let herself go and lay inert, greatly to her relief. For a little while she seemed to be half drunk with the gentle swaying of a hammock. Her mind became at once dreamy and active, as if it thoughtfully recorded the slow, soft impressions pouring in from all her senses.
As the horse began to walk quickly, Madeline slowly felt all her pain and discomfort fade away as she relaxed her muscles. Eventually, she allowed herself to go completely limp, which brought her a lot of relief. For a while, it felt like she was half asleep from the gentle rocking of a hammock. Her mind shifted to a dreamy yet alert state, as if it were carefully registering the slow, soft sensations coming in from all her senses.
A red glow faded in the west. She could see out over the foothills, where twilight was settling gray on the crests, dark in the hollows. Cedar and pinyon trees lined the trail, and there were no more firs. At intervals huge drab-colored rocks loomed over her. The sky was clear and steely. A faint star twinkled. And lastly, close to her, she saw Stewart’s face, once more dark and impassive, with the inscrutable eyes fixed on the trail.
A red glow disappeared in the west. She could see over the foothills, where twilight was settling gray on the peaks, dark in the valleys. Cedar and pinyon trees lined the trail, and there were no more firs. At intervals, huge dull-colored rocks loomed over her. The sky was clear and steely. A faint star twinkled. And finally, close to her, she saw Stewart’s face, once again dark and expressionless, with his unreadable eyes focused on the trail.
His arm, like a band of iron, held her, yet it was flexible and yielded her to the motion of the horse. One instant she felt the brawn, the bone, heavy and powerful; the next the stretch and ripple, the elasticity of muscles. He held her as easily as if she were a child. The roughness of his flannel shirt rubbed her cheek, and beneath that she felt the dampness of the scarf he had used to bathe her arm, and deeper still the regular pound of his heart. Against her ear, filling it with strong, vibrant beat, his heart seemed a mighty engine deep within a great cavern. Her head had never before rested on a man’s breast, and she had no liking for it there; but she felt more than the physical contact. The position was mysterious and fascinating, and something natural in it made her think of life. Then as the cool wind blew down from the heights, loosening her tumbled hair, she was compelled to see strands of it curl softly into Stewart’s face, before his eyes, across his lips. She was unable to reach it with her free hand, and therefore could not refasten it. And when she shut her eyes she felt those loosened strands playing against his cheeks.
His arm, like a steel band, held her, yet it was flexible and adjusted to the movement of the horse. One moment she felt the strength, the bone, heavy and powerful; the next, the stretch and ripple, the elasticity of muscles. He held her as easily as if she were a child. The roughness of his flannel shirt brushed against her cheek, and underneath, she felt the dampness of the scarf he had used to clean her arm, and even deeper, the steady pounding of his heart. Against her ear, filling it with a strong, vibrant rhythm, his heart felt like a powerful engine deep within a vast cavern. Her head had never rested on a man's chest before, and she didn't really like it there; but she felt more than just the physical closeness. The position was mysterious and intriguing, and something about it felt natural, making her think of life. Then, as the cool wind blew down from the heights, loosening her messy hair, she couldn’t help but see strands curl gently into Stewart’s face, right in front of his eyes, across his lips. She couldn't reach it with her free hand, so she couldn’t fix it. And when she closed her eyes, she felt those loose strands brushing against his cheeks.
In the keener press of such sensations she caught the smell of dust and a faint, wild, sweet tang on the air. There was a low, rustling sigh of wind in the brush along the trail. Suddenly the silence ripped apart to the sharp bark of a coyote, and then, from far away, came a long wail. And then Majesty’s metal-rimmed hoof rang on a stone.
In the heightened awareness of those sensations, she noticed the smell of dust and a faint, wild, sweet scent in the air. A soft, rustling breeze moved through the brush along the trail. Suddenly, the silence shattered with the sharp bark of a coyote, followed by a distant, haunting wail. Then, Majesty’s metal-rimmed hoof clanged against a stone.
These later things lent probability to that ride for Madeline. Otherwise it would have seemed like a dream. Even so it was hard to believe. Again she wondered if this woman who had begun to think and feel so much was Madeline Hammond. Nothing had ever happened to her. And here, playing about her like her hair played about Stewart’s face, was adventure, perhaps death, and surely life. She could not believe the evidence of the day’s happenings. Would any of her people, her friends, ever believe it? Could she tell it? How impossible to think that a cunning Mexican might have used her to further the interests of a forlorn revolution. She remembered the ghoulish visages of those starved rebels, and marveled at her blessed fortune in escaping them. She was safe, and now self-preservation had some meaning for her. Stewart’s arrival in the glade, the courage with which he had faced the outlawed men, grew as real to her now as the iron arm that clasped her. Had it been an instinct which had importuned her to save this man when he lay ill and hopeless in the shack at Chiricahua? In helping him had she hedged round her forces that had just operated to save her life, or if not that, more than life was to her? She believed so.
These later events made that ride for Madeline seem believable. Otherwise, it would have felt like a dream. Still, it was hard to accept. Once again, she questioned if this woman who had started to think and feel so deeply was truly Madeline Hammond. Nothing significant had ever happened to her. And now, swirling around her like her hair around Stewart’s face, was adventure, maybe death, and definitely life. She couldn’t believe everything that had happened that day. Would any of her family or friends ever believe it? Could she even share it? It seemed absurd to think that a clever Mexican could have used her to support a lost cause. She recalled the ghastly faces of those starving rebels and marveled at her incredible luck in avoiding them. She was safe, and now the idea of self-preservation held real meaning for her. Stewart’s arrival in the glade and the bravery with which he confronted the outlaws felt as tangible to her now as the strong arm that held her. Had it been an instinct that compelled her to save this man when he was sick and hopeless in the shack at Chiricahua? In helping him, had she fortified her own defenses that had just acted to save her life, or maybe something even more precious to her? She believed so.
Madeline opened her eyes after a while and found that night had fallen. The sky was a dark, velvety blue blazing with white stars. The cool wind tugged at her hair, and through waving strands she saw Stewart’s profile, bold and sharp against the sky.
Madeline opened her eyes after a bit and realized night had come. The sky was a deep, velvety blue filled with bright white stars. The cool wind pulled at her hair, and through the swaying strands, she saw Stewart’s profile, strong and defined against the sky.
Then, as her mind succumbed to her bodily fatigue, again her situation became unreal and wild. A heavy languor, like a blanket, began to steal upon her. She wavered and drifted. With the last half-conscious sense of a muffled throb at her ear, a something intangibly sweet, deep-toned, and strange, like a distant calling bell, she fell asleep with her head on Stewart’s breast.
Then, as her mind gave in to her physical exhaustion, her situation again felt unreal and chaotic. A heavy weariness, like a blanket, began to wrap around her. She swayed and floated. With the last half-aware feeling of a muffled throb at her ear, something vaguely sweet, deep, and strange, like a distant doorbell, she fell asleep with her head on Stewart’s chest.
XII. Friends from the East
Three days after her return to the ranch Madeline could not discover any physical discomfort as a reminder of her adventurous experiences. This surprised her, but not nearly so much as the fact that after a few weeks she found she scarcely remembered the adventures at all. If it had not been for the quiet and persistent guardianship of her cowboys she might almost have forgotten Don Carlos and the raiders. Madeline was assured of the splendid physical fitness to which this ranch life had developed her, and that she was assimilating something of the Western disregard of danger. A hard ride, an accident, a day in the sun and dust, an adventure with outlaws—these might once have been matters of large import, but now for Madeline they were in order with all the rest of her changed life.
Three days after coming back to the ranch, Madeline发现 she had no physical discomfort reminding her of her adventurous experiences. This surprised her, but not nearly as much as the fact that after a few weeks, she barely remembered the adventures at all. If it hadn't been for the quiet and constant support of her cowboys, she might have almost forgotten about Don Carlos and the raiders. Madeline was aware of the excellent physical condition that ranch life had brought her, and that she was adopting some of the Western attitude toward danger. A tough ride, an accident, a day in the sun and dust, an encounter with outlaws—these may have once seemed significant, but now for Madeline, they were just part of her changed life.
There was never a day that something interesting was not brought to her notice. Stillwell, who had ceaselessly reproached himself for riding away the morning Madeline was captured, grew more like an anxious parent than a faithful superintendent. He was never at ease regarding her unless he was near the ranch or had left Stewart there, or else Nels and Nick Steele. Naturally, he trusted more to Stewart than to any one else.
There was never a day when something interesting didn't catch her attention. Stillwell, who constantly blamed himself for leaving the morning Madeline was taken, became more like an anxious parent than a dedicated superintendent. He was never comfortable about her unless he was close to the ranch or had left Stewart there, or if Nels and Nick Steele were around. Naturally, he relied on Stewart more than anyone else.
“Miss Majesty, it’s sure amazin’ strange about Gene,” said the old cattleman, as he tramped into Madeline’s office.
“Miss Majesty, it’s really weird about Gene,” said the old cattleman, as he walked into Madeline’s office.
“What’s the matter now?” she inquired.
“What’s going on now?” she asked.
“Wal, Gene has rustled off into the mountains again.”
“Well, Gene has wandered off into the mountains again.”
“Again? I did not know he had gone. I gave him money for that band of guerrillas. Perhaps he went to take it to them.”
“Again? I didn’t know he had left. I gave him money for that group of guerrillas. Maybe he went to deliver it to them.”
“No. He took that a day or so after he fetched you back home. Then in about a week he went a second time. An’ he packed some stuff with him. Now he’s sneaked off, an’ Nels, who was down to the lower trail, saw him meet somebody that looked like Padre Marcos. Wal, I went down to the church, and, sure enough, Padre Marcos is gone. What do you think of that, Miss Majesty?”
“No. He took that a day or so after he brought you back home. Then about a week later, he went a second time. He packed some stuff with him. Now he’s snuck off, and Nels, who was down by the lower trail, saw him meet someone who looked like Padre Marcos. Well, I went down to the church, and sure enough, Padre Marcos is gone. What do you think of that, Miss Majesty?”
“Maybe Stewart is getting religious,” laughed Madeline. You told me so once.
“Maybe Stewart is becoming religious,” laughed Madeline. You told me that once.
Stillwell puffed and wiped his red face.
Stillwell huffed and wiped his flushed face.
“If you’d heerd him cuss Monty this mawnin’ you’d never guess it was religion. Monty an’ Nels hev been givin’ Gene a lot of trouble lately. They’re both sore an’ in fightin’ mood ever since Don Carlos hed you kidnapped. Sure they’re goin’ to break soon, an’ then we’ll hev a couple of wild Texas steers ridin’ the range. I’ve a heap to worry me.”
“If you’d heard him curse Monty this morning you’d never guess it was about religion. Monty and Nels have been giving Gene a lot of trouble lately. They’re both angry and in a fighting mood ever since Don Carlos had you kidnapped. They’re definitely going to snap soon, and then we’ll have a couple of wild Texas steers running around. I have a lot to worry about.”
“Let Stewart take his mysterious trips into the mountains. Here, Stillwell, I have news for you that may give you reason for worry. I have letters from home. And my sister, with a party of friends, is coming out to visit me. They are society folk, and one of them is an English lord.”
“Let Stewart go on his mysterious trips to the mountains. Here, Stillwell, I have news for you that might be concerning. I have letters from home. My sister is coming to visit me with a group of friends. They're from high society, and one of them is an English lord.”
“Wal, Miss Majesty, I reckon we’ll all be glad to see them,” said Stillwell. “Onless they pack you off back East.”
“Well, Miss Majesty, I think we’ll all be happy to see them,” said Stillwell. “Unless they send you back East.”
“That isn’t likely,” replied Madeline, thoughtfully. “I must go back some time, though. Well, let me read you a few extracts from my mail.”
“That’s not likely,” Madeline replied, deep in thought. “I do need to go back at some point, though. Anyway, let me read you a few excerpts from my mail.”
Madeline took up her sister’s letter with a strange sensation of how easily sight of a crested monogram and scent of delicately perfumed paper could recall the brilliant life she had given up. She scanned the pages of beautiful handwriting. Helen’s letter was in turn gay and brilliant and lazy, just as she was herself; but Madeline detected more of curiosity in it than of real longing to see the sister and brother in the Far West. Much of what Helen wrote was enthusiastic anticipation of the fun she expected to have with bashful cowboys. Helen seldom wrote letters, and she never read anything, not even popular novels of the day. She was as absolutely ignorant of the West as the Englishman, who, she said, expected to hunt buffalo and fight Indians. Moreover, there was a satiric note in the letter that Madeline did not like, and which roused her spirit. Manifestly, Helen was reveling in the prospect of new sensation.
Madeline picked up her sister’s letter, feeling oddly how a simple monogram and the scent of lightly perfumed paper could bring back memories of the vibrant life she had left behind. She looked over the pages filled with beautiful handwriting. Helen’s letter was cheerful, lively, and relaxed, just like her; but Madeline sensed more curiosity than genuine longing to see her sister and brother in the Far West. A lot of what Helen wrote was excited anticipation about the fun she expected to have with shy cowboys. Helen rarely wrote letters and never read anything, not even the popular novels of the time. She was completely unaware of the West, just like the Englishman who, she said, thought he would be hunting buffalo and fighting Indians. Furthermore, there was a sarcastic tone in the letter that Madeline found off-putting and that stirred her emotions. Clearly, Helen was enjoying the thought of new experiences.
When she finished reading aloud a few paragraphs the old cattleman snorted and his face grew redder.
When she finished reading a few paragraphs out loud, the old cattleman snorted, and his face turned even redder.
“Did your sister write that?” he asked.
“Did your sister write that?” he asked.
“Yes.”
"Yep."
“Wal, I—I beg pawdin, Miss Majesty. But it doesn’t seem like you. Does she think we’re a lot of wild men from Borneo?”
“Um, I—I apologize, Miss Majesty. But that doesn't seem like you. Does she think we're a bunch of wild guys from Borneo?”
“Evidently she does. I rather think she is in for a surprise. Now, Stillwell, you are clever and you can see the situation. I want my guests to enjoy their stay here, but I do not want that to be at the expense of the feelings of all of us, or even any one. Helen will bring a lively crowd. They’ll crave excitement—the unusual. Let us see that they are not disappointed. You take the boys into your confidence. Tell them what to expect, and tell them how to meet it. I shall help you in that. I want the boys to be on dress-parade when they are off duty. I want them to be on their most elegant behavior. I do not care what they do, what measures they take to protect themselves, what tricks they contrive, so long as they do not overstep the limit of kindness and courtesy. I want them to play their parts seriously, naturally, as if they had lived no other way. My guests expect to have fun. Let us meet them with fun. Now what do you say?”
“Clearly, she does. I think she’s in for a surprise. Now, Stillwell, you’re sharp and you understand the situation. I want my guests to enjoy their time here, but I don’t want that to come at the expense of our feelings, or anyone’s. Helen will bring a lively group. They’ll be looking for excitement—the unusual. Let’s make sure they’re not let down. Share what to expect with the boys. Let them know how to handle it. I’ll support you with that. I want the boys to look their best when they’re off duty. I want them to act their most polite and refined. I don’t mind what they do, how they protect themselves, or what tricks they come up with, as long as they don’t cross the line of kindness and courtesy. I want them to play their roles seriously and naturally, as if they’ve always lived this way. My guests are looking for fun. Let’s greet them with fun. So, what do you think?”
Stillwell rose, his great bulk towering, his huge face beaming.
Stillwell stood up, his large frame towering over everyone, his big face glowing with happiness.
“Wal, I say it’s the most amazin’ fine idee I ever heerd in my life.”
“Well, I think it’s the most amazing idea I’ve ever heard in my life.”
“Indeed, I am glad you like it,” went on Madeline.
“Yeah, I'm really glad you like it,” Madeline continued.
“Come to me again, Stillwell, after you have spoken to the boys. But, now that I have suggested it, I am a little afraid. You know what cowboy fun is. Perhaps—”
“Come back to me again, Stillwell, after you’ve talked to the guys. But now that I’ve brought it up, I’m a bit worried. You know what cowboy fun is like. Maybe—”
“Don’t you go back on that idee,” interrupted Stillwell. He was assuring and bland, but his hurry to convince Madeline betrayed him. “Leave the boys to me. Why, don’t they all swear by you, same as the Mexicans do to the Virgin? They won’t disgrace you, Miss Majesty. They’ll be simply immense. It’ll beat any show you ever seen.”
“Don’t you back out of that idea,” interrupted Stillwell. He was calm and friendly, but his eagerness to convince Madeline gave him away. “Leave the boys to me. I mean, don’t they all look up to you, just like the Mexicans do to the Virgin? They won’t let you down, Miss Majesty. They’ll be fantastic. It’ll outshine any show you’ve ever seen.”
“I believe it will,” replied Madeline. She was still doubtful of her plan, but the enthusiasm of the old cattleman was infectious and irresistible. “Very well, we will consider it settled. My guests will arrive on May ninth. Meanwhile let us get Her Majesty’s Rancho in shape for this invasion.”
“I believe it will,” replied Madeline. She still had doubts about her plan, but the enthusiasm of the old cattleman was contagious and hard to resist. “Alright, we’ll consider it settled. My guests will arrive on May ninth. In the meantime, let’s get Her Majesty’s Rancho ready for this invasion.”
On the afternoon of the ninth of May, perhaps half an hour after Madeline had received a telephone message from Link Stevens announcing the arrival of her guests at El Cajon, Florence called her out upon the porch. Stillwell was there with his face wrinkled by his wonderful smile and his eagle eyes riveted upon the distant valley. Far away, perhaps twenty miles, a thin streak of white dust rose from the valley floor and slanted skyward.
On the afternoon of May ninth, about half an hour after Madeline got a phone call from Link Stevens letting her know her guests had arrived at El Cajon, Florence called her out onto the porch. Stillwell was there with his face lit up by a big smile and his sharp eyes focused on the distant valley. Far away, maybe twenty miles, a thin line of white dust rose from the valley floor and drifted up into the sky.
“Look!” said Florence, excitedly.
“Check this out!” said Florence, excitedly.
“What is that?” asked Madeline.
"What’s that?" asked Madeline.
“Link Stevens and the automobile!”
“Link Stevens and the car!”
“Oh no! Why, it’s only a few minutes since he telephoned saying the party had just arrived.”
“Oh no! It’s only been a few minutes since he called saying the party just got here.”
“Take a look with the glasses,” said Florence.
“Take a look with the glasses,” said Florence.
One glance through the powerful binoculars convinced Madeline that Florence was right. And another glance at Stillwell told her that he was speechless with delight. She remembered a little conversation she had had with Link Stevens a short while previous.
One look through the powerful binoculars convinced Madeline that Florence was right. Another look at Stillwell showed her that he was speechless with delight. She recalled a brief conversation she had with Link Stevens not long ago.
“Stevens, I hope the car is in good shape,” she had said. “Now, Miss Hammond, she’s as right as the best-trained hoss I ever rode,” he had replied.
“Stevens, I hope the car is in good condition,” she had said. “Now, Miss Hammond, she’s as reliable as the best-trained horse I ever rode,” he had replied.
“The valley road is perfect,” she had gone on, musingly. “I never saw such a beautiful road, even in France. No fences, no ditches, no rocks, no vehicles. Just a lonely road on the desert.”
“The valley road is amazing,” she continued, thoughtfully. “I’ve never seen such a beautiful road, even in France. No fences, no ditches, no rocks, no cars. Just a quiet road in the desert.”
“Shore, it’s lonely,” Stevens had answered, with slowly brightening eyes. “An’ safe, Miss Hammond.”
“Sure, it’s lonely,” Stevens had replied, his eyes gradually lighting up. “And safe, Miss Hammond.”
“My sister used to like fast riding. If I remember correctly, all of my guests were a little afflicted with the speed mania. It is a common disease with New-Yorkers. I hope, Stevens, that you will not give them reason to think we are altogether steeped in the slow, dreamy manana languor of the Southwest.”
“My sister used to love fast riding. If I remember right, all my guests were a bit caught up in the speed craze. It's a common thing among New Yorkers. I hope, Stevens, that you won’t make them think we’re completely stuck in the slow, dreamy laziness of the Southwest.”
Link doubtfully eyed her, and then his bronze face changed its dark aspect and seemed to shine.
Link looked at her skeptically, and then his bronze face shifted from a dark expression to one that seemed to glow.
“Beggin’ your pardon, Miss Hammond, thet’s shore tall talk fer Link Stevens to savvy. You mean—as long as I drive careful an’ safe I can run away from my dust, so to say, an’ get here in somethin’ less than the Greaser’s to-morrow?”
“Excuse me, Miss Hammond, that's quite a bit for Link Stevens to understand. You mean—as long as I drive carefully and safely, I can escape my past, so to speak, and get here in less time than the Greaser’s tomorrow?”
Madeline had laughed her assent. And now, as she watched the thin streak of dust, at that distance moving with snail pace, she reproached herself. She trusted Stevens; she had never known so skilful, daring, and iron-nerved a driver as he was. If she had been in the car herself she would have had no anxiety. But, imagining what Stevens would do on forty miles and more of that desert road, Madeline suffered a prick of conscience.
Madeline had laughed in agreement. And now, as she watched the thin line of dust moving slowly in the distance, she felt frustrated with herself. She trusted Stevens; she had never known a driver as skilled, bold, and unflappable as he was. If she had been in the car herself, she wouldn’t have worried. But imagining what Stevens would face on over forty miles of that desert road made Madeline feel a twinge of guilt.
“Oh, Stillwell!” she exclaimed. “I am afraid I will go back on my wonderful idea. What made me do it?”
“Oh, Stillwell!” she exclaimed. “I’m afraid I’m going to give up on my amazing idea. What made me think I could do it?”
“Your sister wanted the real thing, didn’t she? Said they all wanted it. Wal, I reckon they’ve begun gettin’ it,” replied Stillwell.
“Your sister wanted the real thing, didn’t she? Said they all wanted it. Well, I guess they’ve started getting it,” replied Stillwell.
That statement from the cattleman allayed Madeline’s pangs of conscience. She understood just what she felt, though she could not have put it in words. She was hungry for a sight of well-remembered faces; she longed to hear the soft laughter and gay repartee of old friends; she was eager for gossipy first-hand news of her old world. Nevertheless, something in her sister’s letter, in messages from the others who were coming, had touched Madeline’s pride. In one sense the expected guests were hostile, inasmuch as they were scornful and curious about the West that had claimed her. She imagined what they would expect in a Western ranch. They would surely get the real thing, too, as Stillwell said; and in that certainty was satisfaction for a small grain of something within Madeline which approached resentment. She wistfully wondered, however, if her sister or friends would come to see the West even a little as she saw it. That, perhaps, would he hoping too much. She resolved once for all to do her best to give them the sensation their senses craved, and equally to show them the sweetness and beauty and wholesomeness and strength of life in the Southwest.
That statement from the cattleman eased Madeline's conscience. She knew exactly how she felt, even if she couldn't put it into words. She was eager to see familiar faces; she missed the cheerful laughter and playful banter of old friends; she wanted juicy updates about her past life. Still, something in her sister’s letter and the messages from others who were coming had hit Madeline’s pride. In a way, the expected guests felt like a threat, as they were judgmental and curious about the West that had taken her in. She imagined what they would picture in a Western ranch. They would definitely get the authentic experience, just as Stillwell said; and in that certainty was a sense of satisfaction for a small part of Madeline that leaned toward resentment. However, she wondered if her sister or friends would see the West even slightly as she did. That might be asking too much. She decided once and for all to do her best to give them the thrill they craved, while also showing them the sweetness, beauty, wholesomeness, and strength of life in the Southwest.
“Wal, as Nels says, I wouldn’t be in that there ottomobile right now for a million pesos,” remarked Stillwell.
“Well, as Nels says, I wouldn’t be in that car right now for a million pesos,” remarked Stillwell.
“Why? Is Stevens driving fast?”
“Why? Is Stevens speeding?”
“Good Lord! Fast? Miss Majesty, there hain’t ever been anythin’ except a streak of lightnin’ run so fast in this country. I’ll bet Link for once is in heaven. I can jest see him now, the grim, crooked-legged little devil, hunchin’ down over that wheel as if it was a hoss’s neck.”
“Good Lord! Fast? Miss Majesty, there hasn’t ever been anything that moved as quickly in this country except for a flash of lightning. I bet Link is finally in heaven. I can just picture him now, that grim, crooked-legged little devil, hunched down over that wheel like it was a horse’s neck.”
“I told him not to let the ride be hot or dusty,” remarked Madeline.
“I told him not to let the ride be too hot or dusty,” Madeline said.
“Haw, haw!” roared Stillwell. “Wal, I’ll be goin’. I reckon I’d like to be hyar when Link drives up, but I want to be with the boys down by the bunks. It’ll be some fun to see Nels an’ Monty when Link comes flyin’ along.”
“Haw, haw!” laughed Stillwell. “Well, I’ll be on my way. I guess I’d like to be here when Link shows up, but I want to hang out with the guys down by the bunks. It’ll be a blast to see Nels and Monty when Link comes racing in.”
“I wish Al had stayed to meet them,” said Madeline.
“I wish Al had stuck around to meet them,” said Madeline.
Her brother had rather hurried a shipment of cattle to California: and it was Madeline’s supposition that he had welcomed the opportunity to absent himself from the ranch.
Her brother had rushed a shipment of cattle to California, and Madeline thought that he was eager to leave the ranch for a while.
“I am sorry he wouldn’t stay,” replied Florence. “But Al’s all business now. And he’s doing finely. It’s just as well, perhaps.”
“I’m sorry he didn’t stick around,” Florence replied. “But Al’s all about work now. And he’s doing great. Maybe it’s for the best, anyway.”
“Surely. That was my pride speaking. I would like to have all my family and all my old friends see what a man Al has become. Well, Link Stevens is running like the wind. The car will be here before we know it. Florence, we’ve only a few moments to dress. But first I want to order many and various and exceedingly cold refreshments for that approaching party.”
“Of course. That was my ego talking. I want all my family and old friends to see what a great guy Al has turned into. Anyway, Link Stevens is driving like crazy. The car will be here any minute. Florence, we have just a few moments to get ready. But first, I want to order lots of different cold drinks for the upcoming party.”
Less than a half-hour later Madeline went again to the porch and found Florence there.
Less than half an hour later, Madeline went back to the porch and found Florence there.
“Oh, you look just lovely!” exclaimed Florence, impulsively, as she gazed wide-eyed up at Madeline. “And somehow so different!”
“Oh, you look so lovely!” Florence exclaimed, impulsively, as she looked up at Madeline with wide eyes. “And somehow so different!”
Madeline smiled a little sadly. Perhaps when she had put on that exquisite white gown something had come to her of the manner which befitted the wearing of it. She could not resist the desire to look fair once more in the eyes of these hypercritical friends. The sad smile had been for the days that were gone. For she knew that what society had once been pleased to call her beauty had trebled since it had last been seen in a drawing-room. Madeline wore no jewels, but at her waist she had pinned two great crimson roses. Against the dead white they had the life and fire and redness of the desert.
Madeline smiled a bit sadly. Maybe when she put on that beautiful white dress, she had taken on a certain grace that went with it. She couldn't help but want to look lovely again in front of these critical friends. The sad smile was for the days gone by. She knew that what society had once called her beauty had only increased since it had last been seen in a living room. Madeline didn’t wear any jewelry, but she had pinned two large crimson roses at her waist. Against the stark white, they brought the vibrancy and intensity of the desert.
“Link’s hit the old round-up trail,” said Florence, “and oh, isn’t he riding that car!”
“Link's back on the old round-up trail,” said Florence, “and wow, isn't he driving that car!”
With Florence, as with most of the cowboys, the car was never driven, but ridden.
With Florence, like most of the cowboys, the car was never driven, but ridden.
A white spot with a long trail of dust showed low down in the valley. It was now headed almost straight for the ranch. Madeline watched it growing larger moment by moment, and her pleasurable emotion grew accordingly. Then the rapid beat of a horse’s hoofs caused her to turn.
A white spot with a long trail of dust appeared low in the valley. It was now heading almost directly for the ranch. Madeline watched it get bigger moment by moment, and her excitement grew with it. Then the fast sound of a horse's hooves made her turn.
Stewart was riding in on his black horse. He had been absent on an important mission, and his duty had taken him to the international boundary-line. His presence home long before he was expected was particularly gratifying to Madeline, for it meant that his mission had been brought to a successful issue. Once more, for the hundredth time, the man’s reliability struck Madeline. He was a doer of things. The black horse halted wearily without the usual pound of hoofs on the gravel, and the dusty rider dismounted wearily. Both horse and rider showed the heat and dust and wind of many miles.
Stewart was riding in on his black horse. He had been away on an important mission that took him to the international border. His unexpected early return was particularly pleasing to Madeline, as it indicated that his mission had been successfully completed. Once again, for the hundredth time, she was struck by his reliability. He was someone who got things done. The black horse came to a tired stop without the usual thud of hooves on the gravel, and the dusty rider dismounted wearily. Both horse and rider showed the effects of the heat, dust, and wind from many miles traveled.
Madeline advanced to the porch steps. And Stewart, after taking a parcel of papers from a saddle-bag, turned toward her.
Madeline walked up to the porch steps. Stewart, after grabbing a bundle of papers from a saddlebag, turned to face her.
“Stewart, you are the best of couriers,” she said. “I am pleased.”
“Stewart, you’re the best courier,” she said. “I’m pleased.”
Dust streamed from his sombrero as he doffed it. His dark face seemed to rise as he straightened weary shoulders.
Dust blew off his sombrero as he took it off. His dark face appeared to lift as he straightened his tired shoulders.
“Here are the reports, Miss Hammond,” he replied.
“Here are the reports, Miss Hammond,” he said.
As he looked up to see her standing there, dressed to receive her Eastern guests, he checked his advance with a violent action which recalled to Madeline the one he had made on the night she had met him, when she disclosed her identity. It was not fear nor embarrassment nor awkwardness. And it was only momentary. Yet, slight as had been his pause, Madeline received from it an impression of some strong halting force. A man struck by a bullet might have had an instant jerk of muscular control such as convulsed Stewart. In that instant, as her keen gaze searched his dust-caked face, she met the full, free look of his eyes. Her own did not fall, though she felt a warmth steal to her cheeks. Madeline very seldom blushed. And now, conscious of her sudden color a genuine blush flamed on her face. It was irritating because it was incomprehensible. She received the papers from Stewart and thanked him. He bowed, then led the black down the path toward the corrals.
As he looked up and saw her standing there, dressed to welcome her Eastern guests, he abruptly halted, reminding Madeline of the moment they first met when she revealed her identity. It wasn't fear, embarrassment, or awkwardness. And it only lasted a moment. Yet, despite the brevity of his pause, Madeline sensed a powerful force holding him back. A man hit by a bullet might have reacted with a jolt like the one that shook Stewart. In that instant, as her sharp gaze scanned his dust-covered face, she locked eyes with him. Her gaze didn't drop, even though she felt warmth creeping to her cheeks. Madeline rarely blushed. Now, aware of her sudden flush, a genuine blush ignited on her face. It was frustrating because it was confusing. She accepted the papers from Stewart and thanked him. He bowed and then led the black horse down the path toward the corrals.
“When Stewart looks like that he’s been riding,” said Florence. “But when his horse looks like that he’s sure been burning the wind.”
“When Stewart looks like that, it’s clear he’s been riding,” said Florence. “But when his horse looks that way, it’s obvious he’s been going full speed.”
Madeline watched the weary horse and rider limp down the path. What had made her thoughtful? Mostly it was something new or sudden or inexplicable that stirred her mind to quick analysis. In this instance the thing that had struck Madeline was Stewart’s glance. He had looked at her, and the old burning, inscrutable fire, the darkness, had left his eyes. Suddenly they had been beautiful. The look had not been one of surprise or admiration; nor had it been one of love. She was familiar, too familiar with all three. It had not been a gaze of passion, for there was nothing beautiful in that. Madeline pondered. And presently she realized that Stewart’s eyes had expressed a strange joy of pride. That expression Madeline had never before encountered in the look of any man. Probably its strangeness had made her notice it and accounted for her blushing. The longer she lived among these outdoor men the more they surprised her. Particularly, how incomprehensible was this cowboy Stewart! Why should he have pride or joy at sight of her?
Madeline watched the tired horse and rider make their way down the path. What had made her think? Mostly, it was something new, sudden, or hard to explain that prompted her to analyze quickly. In this case, what struck Madeline was Stewart's look. He had glanced at her, and the old, burning, mysterious fire—the darkness—had left his eyes. Suddenly, they had become beautiful. The look wasn’t one of surprise or admiration; nor was it one of love. She was too familiar with all three. It hadn’t been a look of passion, as there was nothing appealing about that. Madeline reflected. And soon she realized that Stewart's eyes had shown a strange joy of pride. She had never seen that expression in the eyes of any man before. Probably its oddness made her notice it and was the reason for her blushing. The longer she spent time with these outdoor men, the more they surprised her. Especially how incomprehensible this cowboy Stewart was! Why would he feel pride or joy at the sight of her?
Florence’s exclamation made Madeline once more attend to the approaching automobile. It was on the slope now, some miles down the long gradual slant. Two yellow funnel-shaped clouds of dust seemed to shoot out from behind the car and roll aloft to join the column that stretched down the valley.
Florence's shout made Madeline pay attention to the approaching car again. It was on the slope now, a few miles down the long, gentle incline. Two yellow, funnel-shaped clouds of dust appeared to shoot out from behind the car and rise up to join the cloud that stretched down the valley.
“I wonder what riding a mile a minute would be like,” said Florence. “I’ll sure make Link take me. Oh, but look at him come!”
“I wonder what it would be like to ride a mile a minute,” said Florence. “I’m definitely going to make Link take me. Oh, but look at him coming!”
The giant car resembled a white demon, and but for the dust would have appeared to be sailing in the air. Its motion was steadily forward, holding to the road as if on rails. And its velocity was astounding. Long, gray veils, like pennants, streamed in the wind. A low rushing sound became perceptible, and it grew louder, became a roar. The car shot like an arrow past the alfalfa-field, by the bunk-houses, where the cowboys waved and cheered. The horses and burros in the corrals began to snort and tramp and race in fright. At the base of the long slope of the foothill Link cut the speed more than half. Yet the car roared up, rolling the dust, flying capes and veils and ulsters, and crashed and cracked to a halt in the yard before the porch.
The massive car looked like a white demon, and if it weren't for the dust, it would have seemed to be floating in the air. It moved steadily forward, sticking to the road like it was on tracks. Its speed was incredible. Long, gray banners streamed in the wind. A low rushing sound became noticeable, growing louder until it turned into a roar. The car sped like an arrow past the alfalfa field, by the bunkhouses, where the cowboys waved and cheered. The horses and donkeys in the pens started to snort and stomp, racing in fear. At the bottom of the long slope of the foothill, Link cut the speed by more than half. Still, the car roared up, kicking up dust, flying capes, and veils, and came to a crashing halt in the yard before the porch.
Madeline descried a gray, disheveled mass of humanity packed inside the car. Besides the driver there were seven occupants, and for a moment they appeared to be coming to life, moving and exclaiming under the veils and wraps and dust-shields.
Madeline spotted a gray, messy crowd of people crammed inside the car. Aside from the driver, there were seven passengers, and for a moment, they seemed to be coming alive, moving and shouting under the layers of clothes and dust covers.
Link Stevens stepped out and, removing helmet and goggles, coolly looked at his watch.
Link Stevens stepped out and, taking off his helmet and goggles, casually checked his watch.
“An hour an’ a quarter, Miss Hammond,” he said. “It’s sixty-three miles by the valley road, an’ you know there’s a couple of bad hills. I reckon we made fair time, considerin’ you wanted me to drive slow an’ safe.”
“An hour and fifteen minutes, Miss Hammond,” he said. “It’s sixty-three miles by the valley road, and you know there are a couple of tough hills. I think we did pretty well, considering you wanted me to drive slow and safe.”
From the mass of dusty-veiled humanity in the car came low exclamations and plaintive feminine wails.
From the crowd of dust-covered people in the car came soft exclamations and sorrowful feminine cries.
Madeline stepped to the front of the porch. Then the deep voices of men and softer voices of women united in one glad outburst, as much a thanksgiving as a greeting, “MAJESTY!”
Madeline walked to the front of the porch. Then the deep voices of men and the softer voices of women came together in one joyful shout, as much a thank you as a hello, “MAJESTY!”
Helen Hammond was three years younger than Madeline, and a slender, pretty girl. She did not resemble her sister, except in whiteness and fineness of skin, being more of a brown-eyed, brown-haired type. Having recovered her breath soon after Madeline took her to her room, she began to talk.
Helen Hammond was three years younger than Madeline and a slim, attractive girl. She didn't look like her sister, except for their fair and delicate skin, as she had brown eyes and brown hair instead. After catching her breath shortly after Madeline brought her to her room, she started to talk.
“Majesty, old girl, I’m here; but you can bet I would never have gotten here if I had known about that ride from the railroad. You never wrote that you had a car. I thought this was out West—stage-coach, and all that sort of thing. Such a tremendous car! And the road! And that terrible little man with the leather trousers! What kind of a chauffeur is he?”
“Your Majesty, I’m here; but you can bet I would never have come if I had known about that ride from the train station. You never mentioned that you had a car. I thought this was out West—stagecoach and all that! What an amazing car! And the road! And that awful little guy in the leather pants! What kind of chauffeur is he?”
“He’s a cowboy. He was crippled by falling under his horse, so I had him instructed to run the car. He can drive, don’t you think?”
“He's a cowboy. He got hurt after falling from his horse, so I had him trained to drive the car. He can drive, right?”
“Drive? Good gracious! He scared us to death, except Castleton. Nothing could scare that cold-blooded little Englishman. I am dizzy yet. Do you know, Majesty, I was delighted when I saw the car. Then your cowboy driver met us at the platform. What a queer-looking individual! He had a big pistol strapped to those leather trousers. That made me nervous. When he piled us all in with our grips, he put me in the seat beside him, whether I liked it or not. I was fool enough to tell him I loved to travel fast. What do you think he said? Well, he eyed me in a rather cool and speculative way and said, with a smile, ‘Miss, I reckon anything you love an’ want bad will be coming to you out here!’ I didn’t know whether it was delightful candor or impudence. Then he said to all of us: ‘Shore you had better wrap up in the veils an’ dusters. It’s a long, slow, hot, dusty ride to the ranch, an’ Miss Hammond’s order was to drive safe.’ He got our baggage checks and gave them to a man with a huge wagon and a four-horse team. Then he cranked the car, jumped in, wrapped his arms round the wheel, and sank down low in his seat. There was a crack, a jerk, a kind of flash around us, and that dirty little town was somewhere on the map behind. For about five minutes I had a lovely time. Then the wind began to tear me to pieces. I couldn’t hear anything but the rush of wind and roar of the car. I could see only straight ahead. What a road! I never saw a road in my life till to-day. Miles and miles and miles ahead, with not even a post or tree. That big car seemed to leap at the miles. It hummed and sang. I was fascinated, then terrified. We went so fast I couldn’t catch my breath. The wind went through me, and I expected to be disrobed by it any minute. I was afraid I couldn’t hold any clothes on. Presently all I could see was a flashing gray wall with a white line in the middle. Then my eyes blurred. My face burned. My ears grew full of a hundred thousand howling devils. I was about ready to die when the car stopped. I looked and looked, and when I could see, there you stood!”
“Drive? Goodness! He nearly scared us to death, except for Castleton. Nothing seems to frighten that icy little Englishman. I’m still feeling dizzy. You know, Majesty, I was thrilled when I saw the car. Then your cowboy driver met us at the platform. What a strange-looking guy! He had a big gun strapped to those leather pants. That made me anxious. When he shoved us all in with our bags, he put me in the seat next to him, whether I wanted to or not. I was silly enough to tell him I loved to travel fast. What do you think he said? Well, he looked at me in a cool, thoughtful way and said, with a grin, ‘Miss, I guess anything you love and want badly will be coming to you out here!’ I couldn’t tell if it was charming honesty or cheekiness. Then he told all of us: ‘You’d better wrap up in the veils and dusters. It’s a long, slow, hot, dusty ride to the ranch, and Miss Hammond’s order was to drive safe.’ He took our baggage checks and handed them to a guy with a huge wagon and a four-horse team. Then he cranked the car, jumped in, wrapped his arms around the wheel, and sank down low in his seat. There was a crack, a jerk, a kind of flash around us, and that dusty little town was somewhere behind us. For about five minutes, I was having an amazing time. Then the wind started tearing at me. I couldn’t hear anything except the rush of the wind and the roar of the car. I could only see straight ahead. What a road! I’d never seen a road like it until today. Miles and miles and miles ahead, with not even a post or tree in sight. That big car seemed to leap at the distance. It hummed and sang. I was fascinated, then terrified. We were going so fast I couldn’t catch my breath. The wind whipped through me, and I feared I’d be stripped of my clothes any moment. I was worried I couldn’t keep anything on. Soon all I could see was a flashing gray wall with a white line down the middle. Then my vision blurred. My face felt like it was on fire. My ears were full of a hundred thousand howling devils. I was about ready to pass out when the car stopped. I looked and looked, and when I could see, there you were!”
“Helen, I thought you were fond of speeding,” said Madeline, with a laugh.
“Helen, I thought you liked to speed,” said Madeline, laughing.
“I was. But I assure you I never before was in a fast car; I never saw a road; I never met a driver.”
“I was. But I promise you, I’ve never been in a fast car before; I’ve never seen a road; I’ve never met a driver.”
“Perhaps I may have a few surprises for you out here in the wild and woolly West.”
“Maybe I have a few surprises for you out here in the wild and woolly West.”
Helen’s dark eyes showed a sister’s memory of possibilities.
Helen’s dark eyes reflected a sister’s memory of what could have been.
“You’ve started well,” she said. “I am simply stunned. I expected to find you old and dowdy. Majesty, you’re the handsomest thing I ever laid eyes on. You’re so splendid and strong, and your skin is like white gold. What’s happened to you? What’s changed you? This beautiful room, those glorious roses out there, the cool, dark sweetness of this wonderful house! I know you, Majesty, and, though you never wrote it, I believe you have made a home out here. That’s the most stunning surprise of all. Come, confess. I know I’ve always been selfish and not much of a sister; but if you are happy out here I am glad. You were not happy at home. Tell me about yourself and about Alfred. Then I shall give you all the messages and news from the East.”
“You’ve made a great start,” she said. “I’m honestly amazed. I thought I’d find you old and boring. Your Majesty, you’re the most beautiful person I’ve ever seen. You look incredible and strong, and your skin is like white gold. What’s happened to you? What’s changed? This beautiful room, those gorgeous roses outside, the cool, dark charm of this amazing house! I know you, Your Majesty, and even though you’ve never written it down, I believe you’ve created a home here. That’s the most surprising thing of all. Come on, fess up. I know I’ve always been selfish and not the best sister, but if you’re happy here, then I’m glad. You weren’t happy at home. Tell me about yourself and about Alfred. Then I’ll give you all the messages and news from the East.”
It afforded Madeline exceeding pleasure to have from one and all of her guests varied encomiums of her beautiful home, and a real and warm interest in what promised to be a delightful and memorable visit.
It gave Madeline immense pleasure to hear from all her guests various compliments about her beautiful home, along with a genuine and warm interest in what was sure to be a wonderful and memorable visit.
Of them all Castleton was the only one who failed to show surprise. He greeted her precisely as he had when he had last seen her in London. Madeline, rather to her astonishment, found meeting him again pleasurable. She discovered she liked this imperturbable Englishman. Manifestly her capacity for liking any one had immeasurably enlarged. Quite unexpectedly her old girlish love for her younger sister sprang into life, and with it interest in these half-forgotten friends, and a warm regard for Edith Wayne, a chum of college days.
Of all of them, Castleton was the only one who didn’t seem surprised. He greeted her exactly like he had when they last met in London. Madeline, to her surprise, found it enjoyable to see him again. She realized she liked this calm Englishman. Clearly, her ability to like someone had greatly increased. Quite unexpectedly, her old, girlish love for her younger sister came back to life, along with interest in these somewhat forgotten friends and a warm affection for Edith Wayne, a college friend.
Helen’s party was smaller than Madeline had expected it to be. Helen had been careful to select a company of good friends, all of whom were well known to Madeline. Edith Wayne was a patrician brunette, a serious, soft-voiced woman, sweet and kindly, despite a rather bitter experience that had left her worldly wise. Mrs. Carrollton Beck, a plain, lively person, had chaperoned the party. The fourth and last of the feminine contingent was Miss Dorothy Coombs—Dot, as they called her—a young woman of attractive blond prettiness.
Helen’s party was smaller than Madeline expected. Helen had been careful to choose a group of close friends, all of whom were familiar to Madeline. Edith Wayne was a classy brunette, a serious, soft-spoken woman who was sweet and kind, despite having a rather tough experience that left her wise to the ways of the world. Mrs. Carrollton Beck, a plain but lively woman, had chaperoned the party. The fourth and final woman was Miss Dorothy Coombs—Dot, as they called her—a young woman with appealing blonde beauty.
For a man Castleton was of very small stature. He had a pink-and-white complexion, a small golden mustache, and his heavy eyelids, always drooping, made him look dull. His attire, cut to what appeared to be an exaggerated English style, attracted attention to his diminutive size. He was immaculate and fastidious. Robert Weede was a rather large florid young man, remarkable only for his good nature. Counting Boyd Harvey, a handsome, pale-faced fellow, with the careless smile of the man for whom life had been easy and pleasant, the party was complete.
For a man, Castleton was quite short. He had a fair complexion, a small golden mustache, and his heavy eyelids, always half-closed, made him look dull. His clothing, tailored in what seemed to be an exaggerated English style, drew attention to his small stature. He was meticulous and very particular about his appearance. Robert Weede was a fairly large, rosy-faced young man, notable only for his easygoing nature. With Boyd Harvey, a good-looking, pale-faced guy who had the carefree smile of someone who had always had it easy and enjoyable, the group was complete.
Dinner was a happy hour, especially for the Mexican women who served it and who could not fail to note its success. The mingling of low voices and laughter, the old, gay, superficial talk, the graciousness of a class which lived for the pleasure of things and to make time pass pleasurably for others—all took Madeline far back into the past. She did not care to return to it, but she saw that it was well she had not wholly cut herself off from her people and friends.
Dinner was a joyful time, especially for the Mexican women who served it and who couldn't help but notice how well it was going. The blend of soft voices and laughter, the light, cheerful banter, and the charm of a group that lived for enjoyment and to make time enjoyable for others—all reminded Madeline of her past. She didn’t want to go back to it, but she realized it was good that she hadn’t completely disconnected from her family and friends.
When the party adjourned to the porch the heat had markedly decreased and the red sun was sinking over the red desert. An absence of spoken praise, a gradually deepening silence, attested to the impression on the visitors of that noble sunset. Just as the last curve of red rim vanished beyond the dim Sierra Madres and the golden lightning began to flare brighter Helen broke the silence with an exclamation.
When the gathering moved to the porch, the heat had noticeably lessened, and the red sun was setting over the red desert. The lack of spoken admiration and the slowly deepening silence showed how the visitors were affected by that beautiful sunset. Just as the last curve of the red sun disappeared beyond the dim Sierra Madres and the golden light began to shine brighter, Helen broke the silence with an exclamation.
“It wants only life. Ah, there’s a horse climbing the hill! See, he’s up! He has a rider!”
“It wants only life. Ah, there’s a horse climbing the hill! Look, he’s up! He has a rider!”
Madeline knew before she looked the identity of the man riding up the mesa. But she did not know until that moment how the habit of watching for him at this hour had grown upon her. He rode along the rim of the mesa and out to the point, where, against the golden background, horse and rider stood silhouetted in bold relief.
Madeline knew before she looked who the man was riding up the mesa. But she hadn't realized until that moment how much she had come to expect him at this hour. He rode along the edge of the mesa and out to the point, where, against the golden backdrop, horse and rider stood out in sharp contrast.
“What’s he doing there? Who is he?” inquired the curious Helen.
“What’s he doing there? Who is he?” Helen asked, intrigued.
“That is Stewart, my right-hand man,” replied Madeline. “Every day when he is at the ranch he rides up there at sunset. I think he likes the ride and the scene; but he goes to take a look at the cattle in the valley.”
“That’s Stewart, my right-hand man,” Madeline said. “Every day when he’s at the ranch, he rides up there at sunset. I think he enjoys the ride and the view, but he goes to check out the cattle in the valley.”
“Is he a cowboy?” asked Helen.
“Is he a cowboy?” Helen asked.
“Indeed yes!” replied Madeline, with a little laugh. “You will think so when Stillwell gets hold of you and begins to talk.”
“Definitely!” replied Madeline, with a small laugh. “You'll feel that way once Stillwell gets a hold of you and starts talking.”
Madeline found it necessary to explain who Stillwell was, and what he thought of Stewart, and, while she was about it, of her own accord she added a few details of Stewart’s fame.
Madeline felt it was important to explain who Stillwell was and what he thought of Stewart. While she was at it, she also volunteered a few details about Stewart's fame.
“El Capitan. How interesting!” mused Helen. “What does he look like?”
“El Capitan. How interesting!” Helen pondered. “What does he look like?”
“He is superb.”
"He's amazing."
Florence handed the field-glass to Helen and bade her look.
Florence handed the binoculars to Helen and told her to take a look.
“Oh, thank you!” said Helen, as she complied. “There. I see him. Indeed, he is superb. What a magnificent horse! How still he stands! Why, he seems carved in stone.”
“Oh, thank you!” said Helen as she agreed. “There. I see him. Wow, he is amazing. What a magnificent horse! Look how still he stands! He looks like he's carved from stone.”
“Let me look?” said Dorothy Coombs, eagerly.
“Can I take a look?” said Dorothy Coombs, eagerly.
Helen gave her the glass.
Helen handed her the glass.
“You can look, Dot, but that’s all. He’s mine. I saw him first.”
“You can look, Dot, but that’s it. He’s mine. I saw him first.”
Whereupon Madeline’s feminine guests held a spirited contest over the field-glass, and three of them made gay, bantering boasts not to consider Helen’s self-asserted rights. Madeline laughed with the others while she watched the dark figure of Stewart and his black outline against the sky. There came over her a thought not by any means new or strange—she wondered what was in Stewart’s mind as he stood there in the solitude and faced the desert and the darkening west. Some day she meant to ask him. Presently he turned the horse and rode down into the shadow creeping up the mesa.
Whereupon Madeline’s female guests had a lively competition over the binoculars, and three of them made cheerful, teasing claims to ignore Helen’s self-proclaimed rights. Madeline laughed with the others while she watched Stewart’s dark figure and his silhouette against the sky. A thought came to her that was neither new nor unusual—she wondered what was going through Stewart’s mind as he stood there alone, facing the desert and the darkening west. One day, she planned to ask him. Soon, he turned the horse and rode down into the shadow moving up the mesa.
“Majesty, have you planned any fun, any excitement for us?” asked Helen. She was restless, nervous, and did not seem to be able to sit still a moment.
“Your Majesty, have you organized any fun or excitement for us?” asked Helen. She was restless, anxious, and couldn't seem to stay still for a second.
“You will think so when I get through with you,” replied Madeline.
“You'll see when I'm done with you,” replied Madeline.
“What, for instance?” inquired Helen and Dot and Mrs. Beck, in unison. Edith Wayne smiled her interest.
“What, for example?” asked Helen, Dot, and Mrs. Beck together. Edith Wayne smiled, showing her interest.
“Well, I am not counting rides and climbs and golf; but these are necessary to train you for trips over into Arizona. I want to show you the desert and the Aravaipa Canyon. We have to go on horseback and pack our outfit. If any of you are alive after those trips and want more we shall go up into the mountains. I should like very much to know what you each want particularly.”
“Well, I’m not counting rides, climbs, and golf, but those are important to prepare you for trips into Arizona. I want to show you the desert and Aravaipa Canyon. We need to go on horseback and pack our gear. If any of you are still up for it after those trips and want more, we can head into the mountains. I’d really like to know what each of you particularly wants.”
“I’ll tell you,” replied Helen, promptly. “Dot will be the same out here as she was in the East. She wants to look bashfully down at her hand—a hand imprisoned in another, by the way—and listen to a man talk poetry about her eyes. If cowboys don’t make love that way Dot’s visit will be a failure. Now Elsie Beck wants solely to be revenged upon us for dragging her out here. She wants some dreadful thing to happen to us. I don’t know what’s in Edith’s head, but it isn’t fun. Bobby wants to be near Elsie, and no more. Boyd wants what he has always wanted—the only thing he ever wanted that he didn’t get. Castleton has a horrible bloodthirsty desire to kill something.”
“I’ll tell you,” replied Helen quickly. “Dot will be just the same out here as she was back East. She wants to shyly glance down at her hand—a hand currently held in someone else's—and listen to a guy recite poetry about her eyes. If cowboys don’t flirt like that, Dot’s visit will be a bust. Now, Elsie Beck is just looking to get back at us for bringing her out here. She wants something terrible to happen to us. I don’t know what’s going on in Edith’s mind, but it’s not fun. Bobby just wants to be close to Elsie, and that’s it. Boyd wants what he’s always wanted—the one thing he’s never gotten. Castleton has a disturbing craving to kill something.”
“I declare now, I want to ride and camp out, also,” protested Castleton.
“I’m saying right now, I want to go riding and camping, too,” protested Castleton.
“As for myself,” went on Helen, “I want—Oh, if I only knew what it is that I want! Well, I know I want to be outdoors, to get into the open, to feel sun and wind, to burn some color into my white face. I want some flesh and blood and life. I am tired out. Beyond all that I don’t know very well. I’ll try to keep Dot from attaching all the cowboys to her train.”
“As for me,” Helen continued, “I want—Oh, if I only knew what it is that I want! Well, I know I want to be outside, to get some fresh air, to feel the sun and wind, to add some color to my pale face. I want some energy and vitality. I’m worn out. Beyond that, I’m not really sure. I’ll try to stop Dot from latching on to all the cowboys.”
“What a diversity of wants!” said Madeline.
“What a variety of wants!” said Madeline.
“Above all, Majesty, we want something to happen,” concluded Helen, with passionate finality.
“Above all, Your Majesty, we want something to happen,” concluded Helen, with passionate finality.
“My dear sister, maybe you will have your wish fulfilled,” replied Madeline, soberly. “Edith, Helen has made me curious about your especial yearning.”
“My dear sister, maybe you’ll get what you want,” replied Madeline, seriously. “Edith, Helen has made me curious about what you really desire.”
“Majesty, it is only that I wanted to be with you for a while,” replied this old friend.
“Your Majesty, I just wanted to spend some time with you,” replied this old friend.
There was in the wistful reply, accompanied by a dark and eloquent glance of eyes, what told Madeline of Edith’s understanding, of her sympathy, and perhaps a betrayal of her own unquiet soul. It saddened Madeline. How many women might there not be who had the longing to break down the bars of their cage, but had not the spirit!
There was something in the nostalgic reply, paired with a deep and expressive look in her eyes, that revealed to Madeline Edith’s understanding, her sympathy, and maybe even a hint of her own restless soul. It made Madeline feel sad. How many women might there be who want to break free from their confines but lack the courage?
XIII. Cowboy Golf
In the whirl of the succeeding days it was a mooted question whether Madeline’s guests or her cowboys or herself got the keenest enjoyment out of the flying time. Considering the sameness of the cowboys’ ordinary life, she was inclined to think they made the most of the present. Stillwell and Stewart, however, had found the situation trying. The work of the ranch had to go on, and some of it got sadly neglected. Stillwell could not resist the ladies any more than he could resist the fun in the extraordinary goings-on of the cowboys. Stewart alone kept the business of cattle-raising from a serious setback. Early and late he was in the saddle, driving the lazy Mexicans whom he had hired to relieve the cowboys.
In the whirlwind of the days that followed, it was debated whether Madeline’s guests, her cowboys, or she herself enjoyed the passing time the most. Given the monotony of the cowboys' everyday lives, she thought they made the most of the moment. However, Stillwell and Stewart found the situation challenging. Ranch work had to continue, and some of it was regrettably overlooked. Stillwell couldn't resist the ladies any more than he could resist the excitement of the cowboys’ unusual antics. Only Stewart kept the cattle-raising business from facing a serious setback. Early and late, he was in the saddle, managing the lazy Mexicans he had hired to assist the cowboys.
One morning in June Madeline was sitting on the porch with her merry friends when Stillwell appeared on the corral path. He had not come to consult Madeline for several days—an omission so unusual as to be remarked.
One June morning, Madeline was sitting on the porch with her cheerful friends when Stillwell showed up on the corral path. He hadn’t come to see Madeline for several days—a break that was so unusual it stood out.
“Here comes Bill—in trouble,” laughed Florence.
“Here comes Bill—in trouble,” Florence laughed.
Indeed, he bore some faint resemblance to a thundercloud as he approached the porch; but the greetings he got from Madeline’s party, especially from Helen and Dorothy, chased away the blackness from his face and brought the wonderful wrinkling smile.
Indeed, he looked a bit like a thundercloud as he walked up to the porch; but the warm welcomes he received from Madeline's group, especially from Helen and Dorothy, wiped the gloom off his face and brought out a wonderful, wrinkling smile.
“Miss Majesty, sure I’m a sad demoralized old cattleman,” he said, presently. “An’ I’m in need of a heap of help.”
“Miss Majesty, I’m just a sad, worn-out cattleman,” he said, after a moment. “And I really need a lot of help.”
“What’s wrong now?” asked Madeline, with her encouraging smile.
“What’s wrong now?” Madeline asked, giving her encouraging smile.
“Wal, it’s so amazin’ strange what cowboys will do. I jest am about to give up. Why, you might say my cowboys were all on strike for vacations. What do you think of that? We’ve changed the shifts, shortened hours, let one an’ another off duty, hired Greasers, an’, in fact, done everythin’ that could be thought of. But this vacation idee growed worse. When Stewart set his foot down, then the boys begin to get sick. Never in my born days as a cattleman have I heerd of so many diseases. An’ you ought to see how lame an’ crippled an’ weak many of the boys have got all of a sudden. The idee of a cowboy comin’ to me with a sore finger an’ askin’ to be let off for a day! There’s Booly. Now I’ve knowed a hoss to fall all over him, an’ onct he rolled down a canyon. Never bothered him at all. He’s got a blister on his heel, a ridin’ blister, an’ he says it’s goin’ to blood-poisonin’ if he doesn’t rest. There’s Jim Bell. He’s developed what he says is spinal mengalootis, or some such like. There’s Frankie Slade. He swore he had scarlet fever because his face burnt so red, I guess, an’ when I hollered that scarlet fever was contagious an’ he must be put away somewhere, he up an’ says he guessed it wasn’t that. But he was sure awful sick an’ needed to loaf around an’ be amused. Why, even Nels doesn’t want to work these days. If it wasn’t for Stewart, who’s had Greasers with the cattle, I don’t know what I’d do.”
"Well, it’s really strange what cowboys will do. I'm about to give up. You could say my cowboys are all on strike for vacations. What do you think about that? We’ve adjusted the shifts, shortened hours, let some of them take time off, hired extra help, and really done everything we could think of. But this vacation idea just got worse. When Stewart laid down the law, the boys started getting sick. Never in my life as a cattleman have I heard of so many ailments. And you should see how suddenly lame, crippled, and weak many of them have become. The idea of a cowboy coming to me with a sore finger and asking for a day off! There’s Booly. I’ve seen a horse fall all over him, and once he rolled down a canyon. Never bothered him at all. Now he has a blister on his heel, a riding blister, and he says it’s going to cause blood poisoning if he doesn’t rest. Then there’s Jim Bell. He claims he has spinal meningitis or something like that. And Frankie Slade? He swore he had scarlet fever because his face was so red, I guess, and when I shouted that scarlet fever is contagious and he needed to be isolated, he said maybe it wasn’t that after all. But he sure felt awful and needed to lounge around and be entertained. Even Nels doesn’t want to work these days. If it wasn’t for Stewart, who’s been dealing with the cattle and extra help, I don’t know what I’d do."
“Why all this sudden illness and idleness?” asked Madeline.
“Why is there all this sudden sickness and inactivity?” asked Madeline.
“Wal, you see, the truth is every blamed cowboy on the range except Stewart thinks it’s his bounden duty to entertain the ladies.”
“Yeah, the truth is every single cowboy out on the range, except for Stewart, thinks it’s his responsibility to entertain the ladies.”
“I think that is just fine!” exclaimed Dorothy Coombs; and she joined in the general laugh.
“I think that’s just great!” exclaimed Dorothy Coombs, and she joined in the general laughter.
“Stewart, then, doesn’t care to help entertain us?” inquired Helen, in curious interest. “Wal, Miss Helen, Stewart is sure different from the other cowboys,” replied Stillwell. “Yet he used to be like them. There never was a cowboy fuller of the devil than Gene. But he’s changed. He’s foreman here, an’ that must be it. All the responsibility rests on him. He sure has no time for amusin’ the ladies.”
“Stewart doesn't want to help entertain us?” Helen asked, intrigued. “Well, Miss Helen, Stewart is definitely different from the other cowboys,” Stillwell replied. “He used to be just like them. There wasn’t a cowboy more reckless than Gene. But he’s changed. He’s the foreman here, and that has to be part of it. All the responsibility is on him. He really doesn’t have time to entertain the ladies.”
“I imagine that is our loss,” said Edith Wayne, in her earnest way. “I admire him.”
“I guess that's our loss,” said Edith Wayne, in her sincere way. “I really admire him.”
“Stillwell, you need not be so distressed with what is only gallantry in the boys, even if it does make a temporary confusion in the work,” said Madeline.
“Stillwell, you don’t need to be so upset about what is just the boys being chivalrous, even if it does cause a bit of a mix-up in the work,” said Madeline.
“Miss Majesty, all I said is not the half, nor the quarter, nor nuthin’ of what’s troublin’ me,” answered he, sadly.
“Miss Majesty, everything I said is barely the half, not even a quarter, or anything close to what’s really bothering me,” he replied, sadly.
“Very well; unburden yourself.”
"Go ahead, share your thoughts."
“Wal, the cowboys, exceptin’ Gene, have gone plumb batty, jest plain crazy over this heah game of gol-lof.”
“Wow, the cowboys, except for Gene, have totally lost it, just plain crazy over this game of golf.”
A merry peal of mirth greeted Stillwell’s solemn assertion.
A cheerful burst of laughter responded to Stillwell’s serious statement.
“Oh, Stillwell, you are in fun,” replied Madeline.
“Oh, Stillwell, you’re just joking,” replied Madeline.
“I hope to die if I’m not in daid earnest,” declared the cattleman. “It’s an amazin’ strange fact. Ask Flo. She’ll tell you. She knows cowboys, an’ how if they ever start on somethin’ they ride it as they ride a hoss.”
“I hope to die if I’m not being dead serious,” declared the cattleman. “It’s an incredibly strange fact. Ask Flo. She’ll tell you. She knows cowboys, and how if they ever start on something they stick with it just like they ride a horse.”
Florence being appealed to, and evidently feeling all eyes upon her, modestly replied that Stillwell had scarcely misstated the situation.
Florence, noticing the attention on her and feeling everyone’s gaze, modestly responded that Stillwell had barely misrepresented the situation.
“Cowboys play like they work or fight,” she added. “They give their whole souls to it. They are great big simple boys.”
“Cowboys play like they work or fight,” she added. “They put their whole hearts into it. They are just big, simple guys.”
“Indeed they are,” said Madeline. “Oh, I’m glad if they like the game of golf. They have so little play.”
“Yeah, they are,” said Madeline. “I’m really happy if they enjoy playing golf. They don’t get to have much fun.”
“Wal, somethin’s got to be did if we’re to go on raisin’ cattle at Her Majesty’s Rancho,” replied Stillwell. He appeared both deliberate and resigned.
“Well, something has to be done if we’re going to keep raising cattle at Her Majesty’s Rancho,” replied Stillwell. He seemed both thoughtful and accepting.
Madeline remembered that despite Stillwell’s simplicity he was as deep as any of his cowboys, and there was absolutely no gaging him where possibilities of fun were concerned. Madeline fancied that his exaggerated talk about the cowboys’ sudden craze for golf was in line with certain other remarkable tales that had lately emanated from him. Some very strange things had occurred of late, and it was impossible to tell whether or not they were accidents, mere coincidents, or deep-laid, skilfully worked-out designs of the fun-loving cowboys. Certainly there had been great fun, and at the expense of her guests, particularly Castleton. So Madeline was at a loss to know what to think about Stillwell’s latest elaboration. From mere force of habit she sympathized with him and found difficulty in doubting his apparent sincerity.
Madeline recalled that even though Stillwell seemed simple, he was as complex as any of his cowboys, and there was no way to predict his sense of fun. She thought that his over-the-top talk about the cowboys suddenly getting into golf fit with some other remarkable stories he had recently shared. Some very odd things had happened lately, and it was impossible to determine whether they were accidents, mere coincidences, or cleverly planned schemes by the fun-loving cowboys. There had definitely been a lot of fun, especially at her guests’ expense, particularly Castleton's. So, Madeline was unsure what to make of Stillwell’s latest story. Out of habit, she felt sympathy for him and found it hard to doubt his seeming sincerity.
“To go back a ways,” went on Stillwell, as Madeline looked up expectantly, “you recollect what pride the boys took in fixin’ up that gol-lof course out on the mesa? Wal, they worked on that job, an’ though I never seen any other course, I’ll gamble yours can’t be beat. The boys was sure curious about that game. You recollect also how they all wanted to see you an’ your brother play, an’ be caddies for you? Wal, whenever you’d quit they’d go to work tryin’ to play the game. Monty Price, he was the leadin’ spirit. Old as I am, Miss Majesty, an’ used as I am to cowboy excentrikities, I nearly dropped daid when I heered that little hobble-footed, burned-up Montana cow-puncher say there wasn’t any game too swell for him, an’ gol-lof was just his speed. Serious as a preacher, mind you, he was. An’ he was always practisin’. When Stewart gave him charge of the course an’ the club-house an’ all them funny sticks, why, Monty was tickled to death. You see, Monty is sensitive that he ain’t much good any more for cowboy work. He was glad to have a job that he didn’t feel he was hangin’ to by kindness. Wal, he practised the game, an’ he read the books in the club-house, an’ he got the boys to doin’ the same. That wasn’t very hard, I reckon. They played early an’ late an’ in the moonlight. For a while Monty was coach, an’ the boys stood it. But pretty soon Frankie Slade got puffed on his game, an’ he had to have it out with Monty. Wal, Monty beat him bad. Then one after another the other boys tackled Monty. He beat them all. After that they split up an’ begin to play matches, two on a side. For a spell this worked fine. But cowboys can’t never be satisfied long onless they win all the time. Monty an’ Link Stevens, both cripples, you might say, joined forces an’ elected to beat all comers. Wal, they did, an’ that’s the trouble. Long an’ patient the other cowboys tried to beat them two game legs, an’ hevn’t done it. Mebbe if Monty an’ Link was perfectly sound in their legs like the other cowboys there wouldn’t hev been such a holler. But no sound cowboys’ll ever stand for a disgrace like that. Why, down at the bunks in the evenin’s it’s some mortifyin’ the way Monty an’ Link crow over the rest of the outfit. They’ve taken on superior airs. You couldn’t reach up to Monty with a trimmed spruce pole. An’ Link—wal, he’s just amazin’ scornful.
“To go back a bit,” Stillwell continued, as Madeline looked up expectantly, “you remember how proud the guys were about setting up that golf course out on the mesa? Well, they really put in the effort, and even though I’ve never seen any other course, I bet yours can’t top it. The guys were really into that game. You also remember how they all wanted to watch you and your brother play and be your caddies? Well, whenever you’d stop playing, they’d try their hand at it. Monty Price was the ringleader. Even at my age, Miss Majesty, and with all my cowboy experience, I almost died laughing when I heard that little, hobbled, sunburned Montana ranch hand say there wasn’t any game too good for him, and golf was just his thing. He was serious as a preacher, I tell you. And he was always practicing. When Stewart put him in charge of the course and the clubhouse and all those funny clubs, Monty was over the moon. You see, Monty feels self-conscious about not being much good for cowboy work anymore. He was happy to have a job that didn’t feel like a charity case. So, he practiced the game, read the books in the clubhouse, and got the other guys to do the same. That wasn’t too hard, I guess. They played early and late and even under the moonlight. For a while, Monty was the coach, and the guys put up with it. But soon Frankie Slade got cocky about his game and had to challenge Monty. Well, Monty beat him badly. Then one by one, the other guys challenged Monty. He beat them all. After that, they split up and started playing matches, two against two. For a while, that worked fine. But cowboys can’t stay satisfied for long unless they win all the time. Monty and Link Stevens, both of them a bit crippled, teamed up to beat everyone else. And they did, which is the problem. The other cowboys tried long and hard to beat those two game legs and haven’t managed it. Maybe if Monty and Link were perfectly fit like the other cowboys, there wouldn’t be such a fuss. But no healthy cowboys will ever accept a humiliation like that. You should hear the way Monty and Link brag about it in the evenings down at the bunks. They’ve started acting all high and mighty. You might as well try to reach Monty with a trimmed spruce pole. And Link—well, he’s just downright scornful.”
“‘It’s a swell game, ain’t it?’ says Link, powerful sarcastic. ‘Wal, what’s hurtin’ you low-down common cowmen? You keep harpin’ on Monty’s game leg an’ on my game leg. If we hed good legs we’d beat you all the wuss. It’s brains that wins in gol-lof. Brains an’ airstoocratik blood, which of the same you fellers sure hev little.’
“‘It’s a great game, isn’t it?’ Link says, sounding very sarcastic. ‘Well, what’s bothering you lowly common cowboys? You keep going on about Monty’s bad leg and mine. If we had good legs, we’d beat you all even worse. It’s brains that win in golf. Brains and aristocratic blood, which you guys surely have little of.’”
“An’ then Monty he blows smoke powerful careless an’ superior, an’ he says:
“Then Monty blows smoke really carelessly and arrogantly, and he says:
“‘Sure it’s a swell game. You cow-headed gents think beef an’ brawn ought to hev the call over skill an’ gray matter. You’ll all hev to back up an’ get down. Go out an’ learn the game. You don’t know a baffy from a Chinee sandwich. All you can do is waggle with a club an’ fozzle the ball.’
“‘Sure, it’s a great game. You thick-headed guys think strength and muscle should take priority over skill and smarts. You’ll all have to step back and get grounded. Go out and learn the game. You couldn’t tell a putt from a hot dog. All you can do is swing a club and mess up the ball.’”
“Whenever Monty gets to usin’ them queer names the boys go round kind of dotty. Monty an’ Link hev got the books an’ directions of the game, an’ they won’t let the other boys see them. They show the rules, but that’s all. An’, of course, every game ends in a row almost before it’s started. The boys are all turrible in earnest about this gol-lof. An’ I want to say, for the good of ranchin’, not to mention a possible fight, that Monty an’ Link hev got to be beat. There’ll be no peace round this ranch till that’s done.”
“Whenever Monty starts using those strange names, the guys go a bit crazy. Monty and Link have the books and the rules for the game, and they won't let the other guys see them. They show the rules, but that’s about it. And, of course, every game ends in a fight almost before it even starts. The guys are all really serious about this golf thing. And I want to say, for the sake of ranching, not to mention a possible brawl, that Monty and Link have to be defeated. There won’t be any peace around this ranch until that happens.”
Madeline’s guests were much amused. As for herself, in spite of her scarcely considered doubt, Stillwell’s tale of woe occasioned her anxiety. However, she could hardly control her mirth.
Madeline's guests found it very amusing. As for her, despite her barely acknowledged doubt, Stillwell's sad story made her anxious. However, she could hardly hold back her laughter.
“What in the world can I do?”
“What am I supposed to do?”
“Wal, I reckon I couldn’t say. I only come to you for advice. It seems that a queer kind of game has locoed my cowboys, an’ for the time bein’ ranchin’ is at a standstill. Sounds ridiculous, I know, but cowboys are as strange as wild cattle. All I’m sure of is that the conceit has got to be taken out of Monty an’ Link. Onct, just onct, will square it, an’ then we can resoome our work.”
“Well, I guess I can't say for sure. I'm just coming to you for advice. It seems like a weird kind of game has messed up my cowboys, and for now, ranching is on hold. Sounds silly, I know, but cowboys can be as unpredictable as wild cattle. All I know is that we need to knock the arrogance out of Monty and Link. Once, just once, will settle things, and then we can get back to work.”
“Stillwell, listen,” said Madeline, brightly. “We’ll arrange a match game, a foursome, between Monty and Link and your best picked team. Castleton, who is an expert golfer, will umpire. My sister, and friends, and I will take turns as caddies for your team. That will be fair, considering yours is the weaker. Caddies may coach, and perhaps expert advice is all that is necessary for your team to defeat Monty’s.”
“Stillwell, listen,” said Madeline, cheerfully. “We’ll set up a match game, a foursome, with Monty and Link on one side and your best team on the other. Castleton, who’s a great golfer, will be the umpire. My sister, friends, and I will take turns being caddies for your team. That seems fair, since yours is the weaker one. Caddies can give tips, and maybe some expert advice is all your team needs to beat Monty’s.”
“A grand idee,” declared Stillwell, with instant decision. “When can we have this match game?”
“A great idea,” said Stillwell, without hesitation. “When can we have this match game?”
“Why, to-day—this afternoon. We’ll all ride out to the links.”
“Why, today—this afternoon. We’ll all head out to the golf course.”
“Wal, I reckon I’ll be some indebted to you, Miss Majesty, an’ all your guests,” replied Stillwell, warmly. He rose with sombrero in hand, and a twinkle in his eye that again prompted Madeline to wonder. “An’ now I’ll be goin’ to fix up for the game of cowboy gol-lof. Adios.”
“Well, I guess I owe you and all your guests a favor, Miss Majesty,” Stillwell said warmly. He stood up, holding his sombrero, with a sparkle in his eye that made Madeline curious again. “Now I’m off to get ready for the game of cowboy golf. Goodbye.”
The idea was as enthusiastically received by Madeline’s guests as it had been by Stillwell. They were highly amused and speculative to the point of taking sides and making wagers on their choice. Moreover, this situation so frankly revealed by Stillwell had completed their deep mystification. They were now absolutely nonplussed by the singular character of American cowboys. Madeline was pleased to note how seriously they had taken the old cattleman’s story. She had a little throb of wild expectancy that made her both fear and delight in the afternoon’s prospect.
The idea was met with just as much enthusiasm by Madeline’s guests as it had been by Stillwell. They found it highly entertaining and even started taking sides and betting on their favorites. Furthermore, the situation that Stillwell had frankly revealed completely unraveled their deep confusion. They were now totally bewildered by the unique nature of American cowboys. Madeline was happy to see how seriously they had taken the old cattleman’s story. She felt a thrill of wild anticipation that made her both anxious and excited about the afternoon ahead.
The June days had set in warm; in fact, hot during the noon hours: and this had inculcated in her insatiable visitors a tendency to profit by the experience of those used to the Southwest. They indulged in the restful siesta during the heated term of the day.
The June days had started warm; in fact, hot during the afternoons: and this had inspired her relentless visitors to take a cue from those familiar with the Southwest. They enjoyed a relaxing siesta during the hottest part of the day.
Madeline was awakened by Majesty’s well-known whistle and pounding on the gravel. Then she heard the other horses. When she went out she found her party assembled in gala golf attire, and with spirits to match their costumes. Castleton, especially, appeared resplendent in a golf coat that beggared description. Madeline had faint misgivings when she reflected on what Monty and Nels and Nick might do under the influence of that blazing garment.
Madeline was roused by Majesty’s familiar whistle and the sound of footsteps on the gravel. Then she heard the other horses. When she stepped outside, she found her friends gathered in fancy golf outfits, their energy matching their attire. Castleton, in particular, looked stunning in a golf jacket that was hard to describe. Madeline felt a slight unease when she considered what Monty, Nels, and Nick might do under the influence of that eye-catching garment.
“Oh. Majesty,” cried Helen, as Madeline went up to her horse, “don’t make him kneel! Try that flying mount. We all want to see it. It’s so stunning.”
“Oh, Your Majesty,” cried Helen, as Madeline approached her horse, “don’t make him kneel! Try that flying mount. We all want to see it. It’s so amazing.”
“But that way, too, I must have him kneel,” said Madeline, “or I can’t reach the stirrup. He’s so tremendously high.”
“But that way, I need him to kneel,” said Madeline, “or I can’t reach the stirrup. He’s just so tall.”
Madeline had to yield to the laughing insistence of her friends, and after all of them except Florence were up she made Majesty go down on one knee. Then she stood on his left side, facing back, and took a good firm grip on the bridle and pommel and his mane. After she had slipped the toe of her boot firmly into the stirrup she called to Majesty. He jumped and swung her up into the saddle.
Madeline had to give in to the teasing insistence of her friends, and once everyone except Florence was up, she made Majesty go down on one knee. Then she stood on his left side, facing backwards, and firmly gripped the bridle, pommel, and his mane. After she had securely placed the toe of her boot in the stirrup, she called to Majesty. He jumped and lifted her up into the saddle.
“Now just to see how it ought to be done watch Florence,” said Madeline.
“Now just watch Florence to see how it should be done,” Madeline said.
The Western girl was at her best in riding-habit and with her horse. It was beautiful to see the ease and grace with which she accomplished the cowboys’ flying mount. Then she led the party down the slope and across the flat to climb the mesa.
The Western girl looked her best in riding clothes and on her horse. It was stunning to watch how effortlessly and gracefully she performed the cowboys’ flying mount. Then she guided the group down the slope and across the flat to ascend the mesa.
Madeline never saw a group of her cowboys without looking them over, almost unconsciously, for her foreman, Gene Stewart. This afternoon, as usual, he was not present. However, she now had a sense—of which she was wholly conscious—that she was both disappointed and irritated. He had really not been attentive to her guests, and he, of all her cowboys, was the one of whom they wanted most to see something. Helen, particularly, had asked to have him attend the match. But Stewart was with the cattle. Madeline thought of his faithfulness, and was ashamed of her momentary lapse into that old imperious habit of desiring things irrespective of reason.
Madeline always checked out her cowboys, almost automatically, for her foreman, Gene Stewart. This afternoon, like usual, he wasn’t around. Still, she clearly felt a mix of disappointment and irritation. He hadn’t really paid attention to her guests, and out of all her cowboys, he was the one they wanted to see the most. Helen, in particular, had asked for him to be at the match. But Stewart was busy with the cattle. Madeline thought about his loyalty and felt ashamed for her brief return to that old demanding habit of wanting things without considering the reasons.
Stewart, however, immediately slipped out of her mind as she surveyed the group of cowboys on the links. By actual count there were sixteen, not including Stillwell. And the same number of splendid horses, all shiny and clean, grazed on the rim in the care of Mexican lads. The cowboys were on dress-parade, looking very different in Madeline’s eyes, at least, from the way cowboys usually appeared. But they were real and natural to her guests; and they were so picturesque that they might have been stage cowboys instead of real ones. Sombreros with silver buckles and horsehair bands were in evidence; and bright silk scarfs, embroidered vests, fringed and ornamented chaps, huge swinging guns, and clinking silver spurs lent a festive appearance.
Stewart, however, quickly faded from her thoughts as she scanned the group of cowboys on the green. There were actually sixteen, not counting Stillwell. The same number of beautiful horses, all shiny and clean, grazed at the edge under the care of Mexican boys. The cowboys were put together, looking very different in Madeline’s eyes, at least, from the way cowboys typically looked. But they felt genuine and familiar to her guests; they were so striking that they could have been actors playing cowboys instead of the real deal. Sombreros with silver buckles and horsehair bands were clearly visible; and bright silk scarves, embroidered vests, fringed and decorated chaps, large swinging guns, and jingling silver spurs created a festive vibe.
Madeline and her party were at once eagerly surrounded by the cowboys, and she found it difficult to repress a smile. If these cowboys were still remarkable to her, what must they be to her guests?
Madeline and her group were quickly surrounded by the cowboys, and she struggled to hold back a smile. If these cowboys still amazed her, how must they look to her guests?
“Wal, you-all raced over, I seen,” said Stillwell, taking Madeline’s bridle. “Get down—get down. We’re sure amazin’ glad an’ proud. An’, Miss Majesty, I’m offerin’ to beg pawdin for the way the boys are packin’ guns. Mebbe it ain’t polite. But it’s Stewart’s orders.”
“Wow, I saw you all racing over,” said Stillwell, taking Madeline’s bridle. “Get down—get down. We’re really glad and proud. And, Miss Majesty, I’m asking for forgiveness for the way the guys are carrying guns. Maybe it’s not polite. But it’s Stewart’s orders.”
“Stewart’s orders!” echoed Madeline. Her friends were suddenly silent.
“Stewart’s orders!” Madeline shouted. Her friends immediately fell silent.
“I reckon he won’t take no chances on the boys bein’ surprised sudden by raiders. An’ there’s raiders operatin’ in from the Guadalupes. That’s all. Nothin’ to worry over. I was just explainin’.”
“I think he won’t take any chances on the boys being caught off guard by raiders. And there are raiders coming in from the Guadalupes. That’s it. Nothing to worry about. I was just explaining.”
Madeline, with several of her party, expressed relief, but Helen showed excitement and then disappointment.
Madeline, along with a few of her friends, felt relieved, but Helen was excited at first and then disappointed.
“Oh, I want something to happen!” she cried.
“Oh, I want something to happen!” she exclaimed.
Sixteen pairs of keen cowboy eyes fastened intently upon her pretty, petulant face; and Madeline divined, if Helen did not, that the desired consummation was not far off.
Sixteen pairs of sharp cowboy eyes were focused intently on her pretty, sulky face; and Madeline figured out, if Helen didn’t, that the desired outcome was close at hand.
“So do I,” said Dot Coombs. “It would be perfectly lovely to have a real adventure.”
“So do I,” said Dot Coombs. “It would be so great to have a real adventure.”
The gaze of the sixteen cowboys shifted and sought the demure face of this other discontented girl. Madeline laughed, and Stillwell wore his strange, moving smile.
The eyes of the sixteen cowboys turned to the shy face of the other unhappy girl. Madeline laughed, and Stillwell had his unusual, shifting smile.
“Wal, I reckon you ladies sure won’t have to go home unhappy,” he said. “Why, as boss of this heah outfit I’d feel myself disgraced forever if you didn’t have your wish. Just wait. An’ now, ladies, the matter on hand may not be amusin’ or excitin’ to you; but to this heah cowboy outfit it’s powerful important. An’ all the help you can give us will sure be thankfully received. Take a look across the links. Do you-all see them two apologies for human bein’s prancin’ like a couple of hobbled broncs? Wal, you’re gazin’ at Monty Price an’ Link Stevens, who have of a sudden got too swell to associate with their old bunkies. They’re practisin’ for the toornament. They don’t want my boys to see how they handle them crooked clubs.”
“Well, I guess you ladies definitely won’t have to go home unhappy,” he said. “As the boss of this outfit, I’d feel completely embarrassed forever if you didn’t get what you wanted. Just wait. Now, ladies, the situation we have might not be entertaining or exciting to you; but for this cowboy crew, it's really important. Any help you can give us will be greatly appreciated. Look across the links. Do you see those two sorry excuses for human beings prancing around like a couple of hobbled horses? Well, you’re looking at Monty Price and Link Stevens, who suddenly think they’re too good to hang out with their old buddies. They’re practicing for the tournament. They don’t want my guys to see how they handle those crooked clubs.”
“Have you picked your team?” inquired Madeline.
“Did you choose your team?” Madeline asked.
Stillwell mopped his red face with an immense bandana, and showed something of confusion and perplexity.
Stillwell wiped his red face with a huge bandana, looking somewhat confused and puzzled.
“I’ve sixteen boys, an’ they all want to play,” he replied. “Pickin’ the team ain’t goin’ to be an easy job. Mebbe it won’t be healthy, either. There’s Nels and Nick. They just stated cheerful-like that if they didn’t play we won’t have any game at all. Nick never tried before, an’ Nels, all he wants is to get a crack at Monty with one of them crooked clubs.”
“I have sixteen boys, and they all want to play,” he replied. “Choosing the team isn’t going to be an easy task. It might not be safe, either. There’s Nels and Nick. They just said cheerfully that if they don’t play, we won’t have a game at all. Nick has never tried before, and all Nels wants is to get a shot at Monty with one of those crooked clubs.”
“I suggest you let all your boys drive from the tee and choose the two who drive the farthest,” said Madeline.
“I suggest you let all your guys hit from the tee and pick the two who hit the farthest,” said Madeline.
Stillwell’s perplexed face lighted up.
Stillwell's confused expression brightened.
“Wal, that’s a plumb good idee. The boys’ll stand for that.”
“Wow, that’s a really good idea. The guys will go for that.”
Wherewith he broke up the admiring circle of cowboys round the ladies.
Wherewith he broke up the admiring group of cowboys around the ladies.
“Grap a rope—I mean a club—all you cow-punchers, an’ march over hyar an’ take a swipe at this little white bean.”
“Grab a rope—I mean a club—all you cowboys, and march over here and take a swing at this little white bean.”
The cowboys obeyed with alacrity. There was considerable difficulty over the choice of clubs and who should try first. The latter question had to be adjusted by lot. However, after Frankie Slade made several ineffectual attempts to hit the ball from the teeing-ground, at last to send it only a few yards, the other players were not so eager to follow. Stillwell had to push Booly forward, and Booly executed a most miserable shot and retired to the laughing comments of his comrades. The efforts of several succeeding cowboys attested to the extreme difficulty of making a good drive.
The cowboys quickly complied. There was quite a bit of debate over which clubs to use and who should go first. They decided to sort that out by drawing lots. However, after Frankie Slade made several unsuccessful attempts to hit the ball from the tee, only managing to send it a few yards, the other players were less enthusiastic about taking their turns. Stillwell had to give Booly a nudge to go next, and Booly made a terrible shot, leading to laughter from his friends. The struggles of the other cowboys showed just how tough it was to make a good drive.
“Wal, Nick, it’s your turn,” said Stillwell.
“Alright, Nick, it's your turn,” said Stillwell.
“Bill, I ain’t so all-fired particular about playin’,” replied Nick.
“Bill, I'm not really that picky about playing,” replied Nick.
“Why? You was roarin’ about it a little while ago. Afraid to show how bad you’ll play?”
“Why? You were complaining about it not long ago. Are you scared to show how poorly you’ll play?”
“Nope, jest plain consideration for my feller cow-punchers,” answered Nick, with spirit. “I’m appreciatin’ how bad they play, an’ I’m not mean enough to show them up.”
“Nope, just plain consideration for my fellow cowboys,” answered Nick, with spirit. “I appreciate how badly they play, and I’m not mean enough to embarrass them.”
“Wal, you’ve got to show me,” said Stillwell. “I know you never seen a gol-lof stick in your life. What’s more, I’ll bet you can’t hit that little ball square—not in a dozen cracks at it.”
“Well, you’ve got to show me,” said Stillwell. “I know you’ve never seen a golf club in your life. What’s more, I’ll bet you can’t hit that little ball straight—not even after a dozen tries.”
“Bill, I’m also too much of a gent to take your money. But you know I’m from Missouri. Gimme a club.”
“Bill, I’m also too much of a gentleman to take your money. But you know I’m from Missouri. Give me a club.”
Nick’s angry confidence seemed to evaporate as one after another he took up and handled the clubs. It was plain that he had never before wielded one. But, also, it was plain that he was not the kind of a man to give in. Finally he selected a driver, looked doubtfully at the small knob, and then stepped into position on the teeing-ground.
Nick's angry confidence seemed to fade away as he picked up and handled the clubs one by one. It was clear that he had never used one before. However, it was also clear that he wasn't the type to back down. In the end, he chose a driver, glanced uncertainly at the small knob, and then took his stance on the teeing ground.
Nick Steele stood six feet four inches in height. He had the rider’s wiry slenderness, yet he was broad of shoulder. His arms were long. Manifestly he was an exceedingly powerful man. He swung the driver aloft and whirled it down with a tremendous swing. Crack! The white ball disappeared, and from where it had been rose a tiny cloud of dust.
Nick Steele was six feet four inches tall. He had the lean build of a rider, but his shoulders were broad. His arms were long. Clearly, he was an incredibly strong man. He lifted the driver high and brought it down with a massive swing. Crack! The white ball vanished, leaving a small cloud of dust where it had been.
Madeline’s quick sight caught the ball as it lined somewhat to the right. It was shooting low and level with the speed of a bullet. It went up and up in swift, beautiful flight, then lost its speed and began to sail, to curve, to drop; and it fell out of sight beyond the rim of the mesa. Madeline had never seen a drive that approached this one. It was magnificent, beyond belief except for actual evidence of her own eyes.
Madeline’s sharp eyes caught the ball as it veered slightly to the right. It shot low and straight, moving as fast as a bullet. It climbed higher in a swift, graceful arc, then slowed down and began to glide, to curve, to drop; and it disappeared beyond the edge of the mesa. Madeline had never witnessed a hit that came close to this one. It was stunning, unbelievable, except for the undeniable proof of her own eyes.
The yelling of the cowboys probably brought Nick Steele out of the astounding spell with which he beheld his shot. Then Nick, suddenly alive to the situation, recovered from his trance and, resting nonchalantly upon his club, he surveyed Stillwell and the boys. After their first surprised outburst they were dumb.
The shouting of the cowboys likely snapped Nick Steele out of the incredible daze he was in while watching his shot. Then Nick, suddenly aware of what was happening, shook off his trance and leaned casually on his club, looking over at Stillwell and the guys. After their initial shocked reaction, they fell silent.
“You-all seen thet?” Nick grandly waved his hand. “Thaught I was joshin’, didn’t you? Why, I used to go to St. Louis an’ Kansas City to play this here game. There was some talk of the golf clubs takin’ me down East to play the champions. But I never cared fer the game. Too easy fer me! Them fellers back in Missouri were a lot of cheap dubs, anyhow, always kickin’ because whenever I hit a ball hard I always lost it. Why, I hed to hit sort of left-handed to let ’em stay in my class. Now you-all can go ahead an’ play Monty an’ Link. I could beat ’em both, playin’ with one hand, if I wanted to. But I ain’t interested. I jest hit thet ball off the mesa to show you. I sure wouldn’t be seen playin’ on your team.”
“You all see that?” Nick waved his hand dramatically. “Thought I was joking, didn’t you? I used to go to St. Louis and Kansas City to play this game. There was some talk about the golf clubs taking me down East to compete against the champions. But I never really liked the game. It was too easy for me! Those guys back in Missouri were a bunch of losers anyway, always complaining because whenever I hit a ball hard, I always lost it. I had to hit somewhat left-handed just to keep them in my league. Now you all can go ahead and play Monty and Link. I could beat both of them playing with one hand if I wanted to. But I’m not interested. I just hit that ball off the mesa to show you. I definitely wouldn’t want to be seen playing on your team.”
With that Nick sauntered away toward the horses. Stillwell appeared crushed. And not a scornful word was hurled after Nick, which fact proved the nature of his victory. Then Nels strode into the limelight. As far as it was possible for this iron-faced cowboy to be so, he was bland and suave. He remarked to Stillwell and the other cowboys that sometimes it was painful for them to judge of the gifts of superior cowboys such as belonged to Nick and himself. He picked up the club Nick had used and called for a new ball. Stillwell carefully built up a little mound of sand and, placing the ball upon it, squared away to watch. He looked grim and expectant.
With that, Nick walked away toward the horses. Stillwell looked defeated. Not a single insulting word was thrown at Nick, which showed what kind of victory he had. Then Nels stepped into the spotlight. As much as this tough cowboy could be, he seemed relaxed and smooth. He told Stillwell and the other cowboys that sometimes it was hard for them to appreciate the skills of superior cowboys like Nick and him. He picked up the club Nick had used and asked for a new ball. Stillwell carefully created a small mound of sand and, setting the ball on top, readied himself to watch. He looked serious and anticipating.
Nels was not so large a man as Nick, and did not look so formidable as he waved his club at the gaping cowboys. Still he was lithe, tough, strong. Briskly, with a debonair manner, he stepped up and then delivered a mighty swing at the ball. He missed. The power and momentum of his swing flung him off his feet, and he actually turned upside down and spun round on his head. The cowboys howled. Stillwell’s stentorian laugh rolled across the mesa. Madeline and her guests found it impossible to restrain their mirth. And when Nels got up he cast a reproachful glance at Madeline. His feelings were hurt.
Nels wasn't as big as Nick and didn't look as intimidating as he waved his club at the staring cowboys. Still, he was agile, tough, and strong. With a confident attitude, he stepped up and took a powerful swing at the ball. He missed. The force and momentum of his swing caused him to lose his balance, flipping him upside down and spinning on his head. The cowboys howled with laughter. Stillwell's loud laugh echoed across the mesa. Madeline and her guests couldn't hold back their laughter. When Nels finally got up, he shot a hurt look at Madeline. His feelings were genuinely hurt.
His second attempt, not by any means so violent, resulted in as clean a miss as the first, and brought jeers from the cowboys. Nels’s red face flamed redder. Angrily he swung again. The mound of sand spread over the teeing-ground and the exasperating little ball rolled a few inches. This time he had to build up the sand mound and replace the ball himself. Stillwell stood scornfully by, and the boys addressed remarks to Nels.
His second try, not nearly as intense, missed just as cleanly as the first and earned him mockery from the cowboys. Nels’s face turned even redder. Furious, he swung again. The pile of sand on the teeing ground scattered, and the irritating little ball only rolled a few inches. This time, he had to reshape the sand mound and set the ball back up himself. Stillwell stood by with a sneer, while the boys made comments directed at Nels.
“Take off them blinders,” said one.
“Take off those blinders,” said one.
“Nels, your eyes are shore bad,” said another.
“Nels, your eyes are really bad,” said another.
“You don’t hit where you look.”
“You don’t strike where you’re looking.”
“Nels, your left eye has sprung a limp.”
“Nels, your left eye is drooping.”
“Why, you dog-goned old fule, you cain’t hit thet bawl.”
“Why, you crazy old fool, you can’t hit that ball.”
Nels essayed again, only to meet ignominious failure. Then carefully he gathered himself together, gaged distance, balanced the club, swung cautiously. And the head of the club made a beautiful curve round the ball.
Nels tried again, only to face embarrassing failure. Then he focused, measured the distance, steadied the club, and swung gently. The head of the club made a lovely arc around the ball.
“Shore it’s jest thet crooked club,” he declared.
“Sure it’s just that crooked club,” he declared.
He changed clubs and made another signal failure. Rage suddenly possessing him, he began to swing wildly. Always, it appeared, the illusive little ball was not where he aimed. Stillwell hunched his huge bulk, leaned hands on knees, and roared his riotous mirth. The cowboys leaped up and down in glee.
He switched clubs and made another terrible shot. In a fit of rage, he started swinging wildly. No matter what, it seemed the elusive little ball was never where he aimed. Stillwell bent over his massive frame, resting his hands on his knees, and laughed out loud. The cowboys jumped up and down in excitement.
“You cain’t hit thet bawl,” sang out one of the noisiest. A few more whirling, desperate lunges on the part of Nels, all as futile as if the ball had been thin air, finally brought to the dogged cowboy a realization that golf was beyond him.
“You can't hit that ball,” shouted one of the loudest. A few more wild, desperate attempts by Nels, all as pointless as if the ball had been made of thin air, finally led the determined cowboy to the realization that golf was out of his reach.
Stillwell bawled: “Oh, haw, haw, haw! Nels, you’re—too old—eyes no good!”
Stillwell laughed loudly: “Oh, ha ha ha! Nels, you’re too old—your eyes aren’t good anymore!”
Nels slammed down the club, and when he straightened up with the red leaving his face, then the real pride and fire of the man showed. Deliberately he stepped off ten paces and turned toward the little mound upon which rested the ball. His arm shot down, elbow crooked, hand like a claw.
Nels slammed the club down, and when he straightened up with the red fading from his face, the true pride and intensity of the man emerged. He purposefully stepped back ten paces and turned toward the small mound where the ball lay. His arm shot down, elbow bent, hand like a claw.
“Aw, Nels, this is fun!” yelled Stillwell.
“Aw, Nels, this is so much fun!” shouted Stillwell.
But swift as a gleam of light Nels flashed his gun, and the report came with the action. Chips flew from the golf-ball as it tumbled from the mound. Nels had hit it without raising the dust. Then he dropped the gun back in its sheath and faced the cowboys.
But as quick as a flash of light, Nels drew his gun, and the shot rang out with the movement. Chips flew from the golf ball as it rolled off the mound. Nels had struck it without stirring up any dust. Then he put the gun back in its holster and turned to face the cowboys.
“Mebbe my eyes ain’t so orful bad,” he said, coolly, and started to walk off.
“Might be my eyes aren't that bad,” he said calmly, and started to walk away.
“But look ah-heah, Nels,” yelled Stillwell, “we come out to play gol-lof! We can’t let you knock the ball around with your gun. What’d you want to get mad for? It’s only fun. Now you an’ Nick hang round heah an’ be sociable. We ain’t depreciatin’ your company none, nor your usefulness on occasions. An’ if you just hain’t got inborn politeness sufficient to do the gallant before the ladies, why, remember Stewart’s orders.”
“But look here, Nels,” yelled Stillwell, “we came out to play golf! We can’t let you mess around with your gun. Why are you getting so upset? It’s just for fun. Now you and Nick stick around here and be social. We’re not belittling your company or your usefulness sometimes. And if you don’t have enough basic courtesy to be polite around the ladies, just remember Stewart’s orders.”
“Stewart’s orders?” queried Nels, coming to a sudden halt.
“Stewart’s orders?” asked Nels, stopping abruptly.
“That’s what I said,” replied Stillwell, with asperity. “His orders. Are you forgettin’ orders? Wal, you’re a fine cowboy. You an’ Nick an’ Monty, ’specially, are to obey orders.”
"That's what I said," Stillwell replied sharply. "His orders. Are you forgetting orders? Well, you're a great cowboy. You, Nick, and Monty, especially, need to follow orders."
Nels took off his sombrero and scratched his head. “Bill, I reckon I’m some forgetful. But I was mad. I’d ‘a’ remembered pretty soon, an’ mebbe my manners.”
Nels took off his hat and scratched his head. “Bill, I guess I'm a bit forgetful. But I was angry. I would have remembered soon enough, and maybe my manners too.”
“Sure you would,” replied Stillwell. “Wal, now, we don’t seem to be proceedin’ much with my gol-lof team. Next ambitious player step up.”
“Sure you would,” replied Stillwell. “Well, we don’t seem to be making much progress with my golf team. Next ambitious player, step up.”
In Ambrose, who showed some skill in driving, Stillwell found one of his team. The succeeding players, however, were so poor and so evenly matched that the earnest Stillwell was in despair. He lost his temper just as speedily as Nels had. Finally Ed Linton’s wife appeared riding up with Ambrose’s wife, and perhaps this helped, for Ed suddenly disclosed ability that made Stillwell single him out.
In Ambrose, who showed some talent in driving, Stillwell found one of his team members. The next players, however, were so bad and so evenly matched that the determined Stillwell became frustrated. He lost his temper just as quickly as Nels had. Finally, Ed Linton’s wife showed up, riding alongside Ambrose’s wife, and maybe this helped because Ed suddenly revealed skills that made Stillwell pick him out.
“Let me coach you a little,” said Bill.
“Let me give you some coaching,” said Bill.
“Sure, if you like,” replied Ed. “But I know more about this game than you do.”
“Sure, if you want,” Ed replied. “But I know more about this game than you do.”
“Wal, then, let’s see you hit a ball straight. Seems to me you got good all-fired quick. It’s amazin’ strange,” ere Bill looked around to discover the two young wives modestly casting eyes of admiration upon their husbands. “Haw, haw! It ain’t so darned strange. Mebbe that’ll help some. Now, Ed, stand up and don’t sling your club as if you was ropin’ a steer. Come round easy-like an’ hit straight.”
“Alright, then, let’s see you hit a ball straight. It looks to me like you got really quick. It’s pretty amazing and strange,” Bill said as he noticed the two young wives admiring their husbands. “Ha, ha! It’s not that strange. Maybe that’ll help a bit. Now, Ed, stand up and don’t swing your club like you’re trying to rope a steer. Come around smoothly and hit straight.”
Ed made several attempts which, although better than those of his predecessors, were rather discouraging to the exacting coach. Presently, after a particularly atrocious shot, Stillwell strode in distress here and there, and finally stopped a dozen paces or more in front of the teeing-ground. Ed, who for a cowboy was somewhat phlegmatic, calmly made ready for another attempt.
Ed made several attempts that, while better than those of his predecessors, were still pretty discouraging for the demanding coach. After a particularly bad shot, Stillwell walked around in distress, finally stopping a dozen paces or more in front of the teeing ground. Ed, who was somewhat laid-back for a cowboy, calmly got ready for another try.
“Fore!” he called.
"Fore!" he shouted.
Stillwell stared.
Stillwell looked on.
“Fore!” yelled Ed.
“Fore!” shouted Ed.
“Why’re you hollerin’ that way at me?” demanded Bill.
“Why are you yelling at me like that?” Bill asked.
“I mean for you to lope off the horizon. Get back from in front.”
“I want you to move away from the horizon. Step back from the front.”
“Oh, that was one of them durned crazy words Monty is always hollerin’. Wal, I reckon I’m safe enough hyar. You couldn’t hit me in a million years.”
“Oh, that was one of those darn crazy words Monty is always shouting. Well, I guess I’m safe enough here. You couldn’t hit me in a million years.”
“Bill, ooze away,” urged Ed.
“Bill, fade away,” urged Ed.
“Didn’t I say you couldn’t hit me? What am I coachin’ you for? It’s because you hit crooked, ain’t it? Wal, go ahaid an’ break your back.”
“Didn’t I say you couldn’t hit me? What am I coaching you for? It’s because you hit wrong, isn’t it? Well, go ahead and break your back.”
Ed Linton was a short, heavy man, and his stocky build gave evidence of considerable strength. His former strokes had not been made at the expense of exertion, but now he got ready for a supreme effort. A sudden silence clamped down upon the exuberant cowboys. It was one of those fateful moments when the air was charged with disaster. As Ed swung the club it fairly whistled.
Ed Linton was a short, stocky man, and his robust build showed he was quite strong. His past actions hadn't come from a place of hard work, but now he was gearing up for a big push. A sudden quiet fell over the lively cowboys. It was one of those critical moments when the atmosphere felt tense with impending trouble. As Ed swung the club, it practically whistled through the air.
Crack! Instantly came a thump. But no one saw the ball until it dropped from Stillwell’s shrinking body. His big hands went spasmodically to the place that hurt, and a terrible groan rumbled from him.
Crack! Instantly, there was a thump. But no one noticed the ball until it fell from Stillwell’s collapsing body. His large hands moved frantically to the spot that hurt, and a deep groan escaped him.
Then the cowboys broke into a frenzy of mirth that seemed to find adequate expression only in dancing and rolling accompaniment to their howls. Stillwell recovered his dignity as soon as he caught his breath, and he advanced with a rueful face.
Then the cowboys burst into a frenzy of laughter that could only be matched by dancing and their howling. Stillwell regained his composure as soon as he caught his breath, and he approached them with a sad expression.
“Wal, boys, it’s on Bill,” he said. “I’m a livin’ proof of the pig-headedness of mankind. Ed, you win. You’re captain of the team. You hit straight, an’ if I hadn’t been obstructin’ the general atmosphere that ball would sure have gone clear to the Chiricahuas.”
“Well, guys, it’s on Bill,” he said. “I’m living proof of how stubborn people can be. Ed, you win. You’re the team captain. You hit straight, and if I hadn’t been getting in the way, that ball would have definitely gone all the way to the Chiricahuas.”
Then making a megaphone of his huge hands, he yelled a loud blast of defiance at Monty and Link.
Then, cupping his huge hands like a megaphone, he shouted a loud challenge at Monty and Link.
“Hey, you swell gol-lofers! We’re waitin’. Come on if you ain’t scared.”
“Hey, you awesome golfers! We're waiting. Come on if you're not scared.”
Instantly Monty and Link quit practising, and like two emperors came stalking across the links.
Instantly, Monty and Link stopped practicing and, like two rulers, strode confidently across the course.
“Guess my bluff didn’t work much,” said Stillwell. Then he turned to Madeline and her friends. “Sure I hope, Miss Majesty, that you-all won’t weaken an’ go over to the enemy. Monty is some eloquent, an’, besides, he has a way of gettin’ people to agree with him. He’ll be plumb wild when he heahs what he an’ Link are up against. But it’s a square deal, because he wouldn’t help us or lend the book that shows how to play. An’, besides, it’s policy for us to beat him. Now, if you’ll elect who’s to be caddies an’ umpire I’ll be powerful obliged.”
“Looks like my bluff didn’t work out,” said Stillwell. Then he turned to Madeline and her friends. “I really hope, Miss Majesty, that you all won’t weaken and switch sides. Monty is pretty persuasive, and besides, he knows how to get people to see things his way. He’ll be furious when he hears what he and Link are up against. But it’s fair because he wouldn’t help us or share the book that shows how to play. Also, it’s our policy to beat him. Now, if you’ll decide who’s going to be caddies and umpire, I’d really appreciate it.”
Madeline’s friends were hugely amused over the prospective match; but, except for Dorothy and Castleton, they disclaimed any ambition for active participation. Accordingly, Madeline appointed Castleton to judge the play, Dorothy to act as caddie for Ed Linton, and she herself to be caddie for Ambrose. While Stillwell beamingly announced this momentous news to his team and supporters Monty and Link were striding up.
Madeline’s friends were really entertained by the possible match; however, aside from Dorothy and Castleton, they showed no desire to get involved. So, Madeline assigned Castleton to judge the game, Dorothy to be caddie for Ed Linton, and she would be caddie for Ambrose. While Stillwell happily shared this big news with his team, Monty and Link were walking up.
Both were diminutive in size, bow-legged, lame in one foot, and altogether unprepossessing. Link was young, and Monty’s years, more than twice Link’s, had left their mark. But it would have been impossible to tell Monty’s age. As Stillwell said, Monty was burned to the color and hardness of a cinder. He never minded the heat, and always wore heavy sheepskin chaps with the wool outside. This made him look broader than he was long. Link, partial to leather, had, since he became Madeline’s chauffeur, taken to leather altogether. He carried no weapon, but Monty wore a huge gun-sheath and gun. Link smoked a cigarette and looked coolly impudent. Monty was dark-faced, swaggering, for all the world like a barbarian chief.
Both were small in size, bow-legged, limping on one foot, and not very attractive. Link was young, while Monty, more than twice Link’s age, showed the signs of his years. However, it was hard to guess Monty’s age. As Stillwell put it, Monty was the color and toughness of a cinder. He didn’t mind the heat and always wore heavy sheepskin chaps with the wool on the outside, making him look wider than he was long. Link, who liked leather, had fully embraced it since becoming Madeline’s chauffeur. He didn’t carry a weapon, but Monty had a large gun sheath and gun. Link smoked a cigarette and looked coolly defiant. Monty had a dark face and carried himself with the swagger of a barbarian chief.
“That Monty makes my flesh creep,” said Helen, low-voiced. “Really, Mr. Stillwell, is he so bad—desperate—as I’ve heard? Did he ever kill anybody?”
“That Monty gives me the creeps,” Helen said quietly. “Honestly, Mr. Stillwell, is he really that bad—desperate—as I’ve heard? Did he ever kill anyone?”
“Sure. ’Most as many as Nels,” replied Stillwell, cheerfully.
“Sure. Almost as many as Nels,” replied Stillwell, cheerfully.
“Oh! And is that nice Mr. Nels a desperado, too? I wouldn’t have thought so. He’s so kind and old-fashioned and soft-voiced.”
“Oh! And is that nice Mr. Nels a criminal, too? I wouldn’t have thought so. He’s so kind and old-school and gentle-sounding.”
“Nels is sure an example of the dooplicity of men, Miss Helen. Don’t you listen to his soft voice. He’s really as bad as a side-winder rattlesnake.”
“Nels is definitely an example of how duplicitous men can be, Miss Helen. Don’t be fooled by his smooth talk. He’s just as dangerous as a side-winder rattlesnake.”
At this juncture Monty and Link reached the teeing-ground, and Stillwell went out to meet them. The other cowboys pressed forward to surround the trio. Madeline heard Stillwell’s voice, and evidently he was explaining that his team was to have skilled advice during the play. Suddenly there came from the center of the group a loud, angry roar that broke off as suddenly. Then followed excited voices all mingled together. Presently Monty appeared, breaking away from restraining hands, and he strode toward Madeline.
At this point, Monty and Link reached the tee box, and Stillwell went out to greet them. The other cowboys pushed forward to crowd around the three of them. Madeline heard Stillwell’s voice, and it sounded like he was explaining that his team would have expert advice during the game. Suddenly, a loud, angry shout erupted from the center of the group, only to stop just as abruptly. Then, excited voices started to mingle together. Soon, Monty broke free from the hands holding him back and walked toward Madeline.
Monty Price was a type of cowboy who had never been known to speak to a woman unless he was first addressed, and then he answered in blunt, awkward shyness. Upon this great occasion, however, it appeared that he meant to protest or plead with Madeline, for he showed stress of emotion. Madeline had never gotten acquainted with Monty. She was a little in awe, if not in fear, of him, and now she found it imperative for her to keep in mind that more than any other of the wild fellows on her ranch this one should be dealt with as if he were a big boy.
Monty Price was a cowboy who never talked to a woman unless she spoke to him first, and even then, he responded with blunt, awkward shyness. However, on this significant occasion, it seemed like he intended to protest or plead with Madeline, as he was clearly emotionally stressed. Madeline had never really gotten to know Monty. She felt a bit intimidated, if not scared, of him, and now she realized that, more than any of the other rugged guys on her ranch, this one needed to be treated like a big kid.
Monty removed his sombrero—something he had never done before—and the single instant when it was off was long enough to show his head entirely bald. This was one of the hall-marks of that terrible Montana prairie fire through which he had fought to save the life of a child. Madeline did not forget it, and all at once she wanted to take Monty’s side. Remembering Stillwell’s wisdom, however, she forebore yielding to sentiment, and called upon her wits.
Monty took off his sombrero—something he had never done before—and the brief moment it was off revealed his completely bald head. This was a reminder of that awful Montana prairie fire he had battled to save a child's life. Madeline didn't forget it, and suddenly she felt like supporting Monty. Remembering Stillwell's advice, though, she held back her emotions and relied on her intellect.
“Miss—Miss Hammond,” began Monty, stammering, “I’m extendin’ admirin’ greetin’s to you an’ your friends. Link an’ me are right down proud to play the match game with you watchin’. But Bill says you’re goin’ to caddie for his team an’ coach ’em on the fine points. An’ I want to ask, all respectful, if thet’s fair an’ square?”
“Miss—Miss Hammond,” Monty started, stammering, “I’m here to extend my warm greetings to you and your friends. Link and I are really proud to play in the match game with you watching. But Bill says you’re going to caddy for his team and coach them on the fine points. I want to respectfully ask if that’s fair and square?”
“Monty, that is for you to say,” replied Madeline. “It was my suggestion. But if you object in the least, of course we shall withdraw. It seems fair to me, because you have learned the game; you are expert, and I understand the other boys have no chance with you. Then you have coached Link. I think it would be sportsmanlike of you to accept the handicap.”
“Monty, that’s for you to decide,” Madeline replied. “It was my idea. But if you have any objections at all, we’ll definitely back off. It seems fair to me since you know the game; you’re an expert, and I hear the other guys don’t stand a chance against you. Plus, you’ve coached Link. I think it would be fair of you to take the handicap.”
“Aw, a handicap! Thet was what Bill was drivin’ at. Why didn’t he say so? Every time Bill comes to a word thet’s pie to us old golfers he jest stumbles. Miss Majesty, you’ve made it all clear as print. An’ I may say with becomin’ modesty thet you wasn’t mistaken none about me bein’ sportsmanlike. Me an’ Link was born thet way. An’ we accept the handicap. Lackin’ thet handicap, I reckon Link an’ me would have no ambish to play our most be-ootiful game. An’ thankin’ you, Miss Majesty, an’ all your friends, I want to add thet if Bill’s outfit couldn’t beat us before, they’ve got a swell chanct now, with you ladies a-watchin’ me an’ Link.”
“Aw, a handicap! That’s what Bill was getting at. Why didn’t he just say so? Every time Bill comes to a word that’s easy for us old golfers, he just trips up. Miss Majesty, you’ve made everything clear as day. And I can say with modesty that you were absolutely right about me being sportsmanlike. Link and I were born that way. And we accept the handicap. Without that handicap, I guess Link and I wouldn’t have any desire to play our most beautiful game. So, thank you, Miss Majesty, and all your friends. I want to add that if Bill’s team couldn’t beat us before, they’ve got a great chance now, with you ladies watching me and Link.”
Monty had seemed to expand with pride as he delivered this speech, and at the end he bowed low and turned away. He joined the group round Stillwell. Once more there was animated discussion and argument and expostulation. One of the cowboys came for Castleton and led him away to exploit upon ground rules.
Monty appeared to swell with pride as he gave this speech, and when he finished, he bowed deeply and turned to leave. He joined the group around Stillwell. Yet again, there was lively discussion, argument, and debate. One of the cowboys came for Castleton and took him away to discuss the ground rules.
It seemed to Madeline that the game never would begin. She strolled on the rim of the mesa, arm in arm with Edith Wayne, and while Edith talked she looked out over the gray valley leading to the rugged black mountains and the vast red wastes. In the foreground on the gray slope she saw cattle in movement and cowboys riding to and fro. She thought of Stewart. Then Boyd Harvey came for them, saying all details had been arranged. Stillwell met them half-way, and this cool, dry, old cattleman, whose face and manner scarcely changed at the announcement of a cattle-raid, now showed extreme agitation.
It felt to Madeline like the game would never start. She walked along the edge of the mesa, arm in arm with Edith Wayne, and while Edith talked, she gazed out over the gray valley that led to the rugged black mountains and the vast red plains. In the foreground, on the gray slope, she spotted cattle moving and cowboys riding back and forth. She thought of Stewart. Then Boyd Harvey came to get them, saying all the details had been taken care of. Stillwell met them halfway, and this cool, dry old cattleman, whose face and demeanor barely changed at the mention of a cattle raid, now showed a lot of agitation.
“Wal, Miss Majesty, we’ve gone an’ made a foozle right at the start,” he said, dejectedly.
“Wow, Miss Majesty, we really messed things up right at the start,” he said, feeling down.
“A foozle? But the game has not yet begun,” replied Madeline.
“A foozle? But the game hasn't started yet,” replied Madeline.
“A bad start, I mean. It’s amazin’ bad, an’ we’re licked already.”
“A terrible start, I mean. It’s really bad, and we’re already defeated.”
“What in the world is wrong?”
“What the heck is going on?”
She wanted to laugh, but Stillwell’s distress restrained her.
She wanted to laugh, but Stillwell's discomfort held her back.
“Wal, it’s this way. That darn Monty is as cute an’ slick as a fox. After he got done declaimin’ about the handicap he an’ Link was so happy to take, he got Castleton over hyar an’ drove us all dotty with his crazy gol-lof names. Then he borrowed Castleton’s gol-lof coat. I reckon borrowed is some kind word. He just about took that blazin’ coat off the Englishman. Though I ain’t sayin’ but that Casleton was agreeable when he tumbled to Monty’s meanin’. Which was nothin’ more ’n to break Ambrose’s heart. That coat dazzles Ambrose. You know how vain Ambrose is. Why, he’d die to get to wear that Englishman’s gol-lof coat. An’ Monty forestalled him. It’s plumb pitiful to see the look in Ambrose’s eyes. He won’t be able to play much. Then what do you think? Monty fixed Ed Linton, all right. Usually Ed is easy-goin’ an’ cool. But now he’s on the rampage. Wal, mebbe it’s news to you to learn that Ed’s wife is powerful, turrible jealous of him. Ed was somethin’ of a devil with the wimmen. Monty goes over an’ tells Beulah—that’s Ed’s wife—that Ed is goin’ to have for caddie the lovely Miss Dorothy with the goo-goo eyes. I reckon this was some disrespectful, but with all doo respect to Miss Dorothy she has got a pair of unbridled eyes. Mebbe it’s just natural for her to look at a feller like that. Oh, it’s all right; I’m not sayin’ any-thin’! I know it’s all proper an’ regular for girls back East to use their eyes. But out hyar it’s bound to result disastrous. All the boys talk about among themselves is Miss Dot’s eyes, an’ all they brag about is which feller is the luckiest. Anyway, sure Ed’s wife knows it. An’ Monty up an’ told her that it was fine for her to come out an’ see how swell Ed was prancin’ round under the light of Miss Dot’s brown eyes. Beulah calls over Ed, figgertively speakin’, ropes him for a minnit. Ed comes back huggin’ a grouch as big as a hill. Oh, it was funny! He was goin’ to punch Monty’s haid off. An’ Monty stands there an’ laughs. Says Monty, sarcastic as alkali water: ‘Ed, we-all knowed you was a heap married man, but you’re some locoed to give yourself away.’ That settled Ed. He’s some touchy about the way Beulah henpecks him. He lost his spirit. An’ now he couldn’t play marbles, let alone gol-lof. Nope, Monty was too smart. An’ I reckon he was right about brains bein’ what wins.”
“Listen, here’s the deal. That darn Monty is as cute and slick as a fox. After he finished talking about the handicap he and Link were so happy to take, he got Castleton over here and drove us all crazy with his wild golf names. Then he borrowed Castleton’s golf coat. I guess “borrowed” is a nice way to put it. He practically took that blazing coat off the Englishman. But I’m not saying that Castleton didn’t go along with it once he realized what Monty was up to. And that was nothing more than to break Ambrose’s heart. That coat dazzles Ambrose. You know how vain Ambrose is. He’d do anything to wear that Englishman’s golf coat. And Monty beat him to it. It’s pretty pitiful to see the look in Ambrose’s eyes. He won’t be able to play much. Then what do you think happened? Monty got to Ed Linton, all right. Usually, Ed is pretty easygoing and calm. But now he’s on the warpath. Well, maybe you didn’t know that Ed’s wife is really, really jealous of him. Ed had quite the reputation with women. Monty went over and told Beulah—that’s Ed’s wife—that Ed is going to have the lovely Miss Dorothy with the doe eyes as his caddie. I guess that was a bit disrespectful, but with all due respect to Miss Dorothy, she has a pair of captivating eyes. Maybe it’s just natural for her to look at a guy like that. Oh, it’s fine; I’m not saying anything! I know it’s all proper and normal for girls back East to use their looks. But out here, it’s bound to end in disaster. All the guys talk about among themselves is Miss Dot’s eyes, and all they boast about is who’s the luckiest one. Anyway, you can bet Ed’s wife is aware of it. And Monty went and told her it was great for her to come out and see how great Ed was strutting around under the glow of Miss Dot’s brown eyes. Beulah calls over Ed, figuratively speaking, and keeps him occupied for a minute. Ed comes back sulking like crazy. Oh, it was hilarious! He was ready to punch Monty’s lights out. And Monty just stands there laughing. Monty says, sarcastic as can be: ‘Ed, we all knew you were a very married man, but you’re a bit crazy to let yourself be that obvious.’ That put Ed in his place. He’s touchy about how Beulah bosses him around. He lost his spirit. And now he couldn’t play marbles, let alone golf. Nope, Monty was too clever. And I think he was right about brains being what wins.”
The game began. At first Madeline and Dorothy essayed to direct the endeavors of their respective players. But all they said and did only made their team play the worse. At the third hole they were far behind and hopelessly bewildered. What with Monty’s borrowed coat, with its dazzling effect upon Ambrose, and Link’s oft-repeated allusion to Ed’s matrimonial state, and Stillwell’s vociferated disgust, and the clamoring good intention and pursuit of the cowboy supporters, and the embarrassing presence of the ladies, Ambrose and Ed wore through all manner of strange play until it became ridiculous.
The game started. At first, Madeline and Dorothy tried to guide their players' efforts. But everything they said and did only made their team play worse. By the third hole, they were far behind and completely confused. With Monty’s borrowed coat causing a dazzling distraction for Ambrose, Link’s constant mentions of Ed’s marriage, Stillwell’s loud complaints, and the enthusiastic but chaotic support from the cowboy fans, along with the awkward presence of the ladies, Ambrose and Ed went through all kinds of ridiculous plays.
“Hey, Link,” came Monty’s voice booming over the links, “our esteemed rivals are playin’ shinny.”
“Hey, Link,” Monty shouted over the links, “our respected rivals are playing shinny.”
Madeline and Dorothy gave up, presently, when the game became a rout, and they sat down with their followers to watch the fun. Whether by hook or crook, Ed and Ambrose forged ahead to come close upon Monty and Link. Castleton disappeared in a mass of gesticulating, shouting cowboys. When that compact mass disintegrated Castleton came forth rather hurriedly, it appeared, to stalk back toward his hostess and friends.
Madeline and Dorothy decided to give up when the game turned into a total blowout, and they sat down with their friends to enjoy the show. However they managed it, Ed and Ambrose pushed on to catch up with Monty and Link. Castleton got lost in a group of wild, shouting cowboys. When that chaotic group broke apart, Castleton appeared to hurry back toward his hostess and friends.
“Look!” exclaimed Helen, in delight. “Castleton is actually excited. Whatever did they do to him? Oh, this is immense!”
“Look!” Helen exclaimed, thrilled. “Castleton is actually excited. What on earth did they do to him? Oh, this is huge!”
Castleton was excited, indeed, and also somewhat disheveled.
Castleton was really excited and also a bit messy.
“By Jove! that was a rum go,” he said, as he came up. “Never saw such blooming golf! I resigned my office as umpire.”
“Wow! That was a strange situation,” he said as he arrived. “I've never seen such ridiculous golf! I quit my job as umpire.”
Only upon considerable pressure did he reveal the reason. “It was like this, don’t you know. They were all together over there, watching each other. Monty Price’s ball dropped into a hazard, and he moved it to improve the lie. By Jove! they’ve all been doing that. But over there the game was waxing hot. Stillwell and his cowboys saw Monty move the ball, and there was a row. They appealed to me. I corrected the play, showed the rules. Monty agreed he was in the wrong. However, when it came to moving his ball back to its former lie in the hazard there was more blooming trouble. Monty placed the ball to suit him, and then he transfixed me with an evil eye.
Only after a lot of pressure did he finally explain what happened. “It was like this, you know. They were all over there, watching each other. Monty Price’s ball landed in a hazard, and he moved it to improve his lie. Honestly! They’ve all been doing that. But over there, the game was getting intense. Stillwell and his cowboys saw Monty move the ball, and there was an uproar. They turned to me for help. I corrected the play and showed them the rules. Monty admitted he was wrong. However, when it came time to move his ball back to its original lie in the hazard, there was even more drama. Monty positioned the ball to his liking, and then he shot me a menacing glare.”
“‘Dook,’ he said. I wish the bloody cowboy would not call me that. ‘Dook, mebbe this game ain’t as important as international politics or some other things relatin’, but there’s some health an’ peace dependin’ on it. Savvy? For some space our opponents have been dead to honor an’ sportsmanlike conduct. I calculate the game depends on my next drive. I’m placin’ my ball as near to where it was as human eyesight could. You seen where it was same as I seen it. You’re the umpire, an’, Dook, I take you as a honorable man. Moreover, never in my born days has my word been doubted without sorrow. So I’m askin’ you, wasn’t my ball layin’ just about here?’
“‘Dook,’ he said. I wish that annoying cowboy would stop calling me that. ‘Dook, maybe this game isn’t as important as international politics or some other stuff, but there’s some health and peace riding on it. Got it? For a while now, our opponents have completely disregarded honor and sportsmanship. I figure the game hinges on my next shot. I’m placing my ball as close to where it was as anyone could see. You saw where it was just like I did. You’re the umpire, and, Dook, I see you as an honorable man. Besides, I’ve never had my word doubted without feeling regret. So I’m asking you, wasn’t my ball lying right about here?’”
“The bloody little desperado smiled cheerfully, and he dropped his right hand down to the butt of his gun. By Jove, he did! Then I had to tell a blooming lie!”
“The bloody little desperado smiled happily and dropped his right hand down to the handle of his gun. By God, he really did! Then I had to tell a damn lie!”
Castleton even caught the tone of Monty’s voice, but it was plain that he had not the least conception that Monty had been fooling. Madeline and her friends divined it, however; and, there being no need of reserve, they let loose the fountains of mirth.
Castleton even picked up on the tone of Monty’s voice, but it was clear that he had no idea Monty was joking. Madeline and her friends, however, figured it out; and since there was no need to hold back, they let their laughter flow freely.
XIV. Bandits
When Madeline and her party recovered composure they sat up to watch the finish of the match. It came with spectacular suddenness. A sharp yell pealed out, and all the cowboys turned attentively in its direction. A big black horse had surmounted the rim of the mesa and was just breaking into a run. His rider yelled sharply to the cowboys. They wheeled to dash toward their grazing horses.
When Madeline and her group collected themselves, they sat up to watch the end of the match. It happened with astonishing speed. A loud shout rang out, and all the cowboys turned their attention to it. A large black horse had crested the edge of the mesa and was just starting to sprint. His rider shouted sharply to the cowboys. They quickly turned to rush toward their grazing horses.
“That’s Stewart. There is something wrong,” said Madeline, in alarm.
"That’s Stewart. Something isn’t right," Madeline said, alarmed.
Castleton stared. The other men exclaimed uneasily. The women sought Madeline’s face with anxious eyes.
Castleton stared. The other guys reacted nervously. The women looked to Madeline with worried expressions.
The black got into his stride and bore swiftly down upon them.
The man in black picked up speed and quickly rushed toward them.
“Oh, look at that horse run!” cried Helen. “Look at that fellow ride!”
“Oh, check out that horse running!” shouted Helen. “Look at that guy riding!”
Helen was not alone in her admiration, for Madeline divided her emotions between growing alarm of some danger menacing and a thrill and quickening of pulse-beat that tingled over her whenever she saw Stewart in violent action. No action of his was any longer insignificant, but violent action meant so much. It might mean anything. For one moment she remembered Stillwell and all his talk about fun, and plots, and tricks to amuse her guest. Then she discountenanced the thought. Stewart might lend himself to a little fun, but he cared too much for a horse to run him at that speed unless there was imperious need. That alone sufficed to answer Madeline’s questioning curiosity. And her alarm mounted to fear not so much for herself as for her guests. But what danger could there be? She could think of nothing except the guerrillas.
Helen wasn’t the only one who admired him; Madeline felt a mix of rising alarm about some unseen danger and a thrill that quickened her heartbeat whenever she saw Stewart in intense action. Every move he made felt significant now, and his violent actions could mean anything. For a brief moment, she remembered Stillwell and all his chatter about fun, schemes, and tricks to entertain their guest. But she shook off that thought. Stewart might be up for some fun, but he valued a horse too much to push it to that speed unless it was absolutely necessary. That was enough to satisfy Madeline’s curious mind. Her worry turned into fear, not so much for herself but for her guests. But what kind of danger could there be? All she could think of were the guerrillas.
Whatever threatened, it would be met and checked by this man Stewart, who was thundering up on his fleet horse; and as he neared her, so that she could see the dark gleam of face and eyes, she had a strange feeling of trust in her dependence upon him.
Whatever posed a threat would be confronted and dealt with by this man Stewart, who was charging forward on his fast horse; and as he got closer, enough for her to see the dark shine of his face and eyes, she felt an odd sense of trust in her reliance on him.
The big black was so close to Madeline and her friends that when Stewart pulled him the dust and sand kicked up by his pounding hoofs flew in their faces.
The big black horse was so close to Madeline and her friends that when Stewart pulled him, the dust and sand kicked up by his pounding hooves flew into their faces.
“Oh, Stewart, what is it?” cried Madeline.
“Oh, Stewart, what’s wrong?” cried Madeline.
“Guess I scared you, Miss Hammond,” he replied. “But I’m pressed for time. There’s a gang of bandits hiding on the ranch, most likely in a deserted hut. They held up a train near Agua Prieta. Pat Hawe is with the posse that’s trailing them, and you know Pat has no use for us. I’m afraid it wouldn’t be pleasant for you or your guests to meet either the posse or the bandits.”
“Looks like I scared you, Miss Hammond,” he said. “But I’m on a tight schedule. There’s a group of bandits hiding on the ranch, probably in an abandoned hut. They robbed a train near Agua Prieta. Pat Hawe is with the posse that’s tracking them, and you know Pat isn’t a fan of us. I’m worried it wouldn’t be a nice experience for you or your guests to run into either the posse or the bandits.”
“I fancy not,” said Madeline, considerably relieved. “We’ll hurry back to the house.”
“I don’t think so,” said Madeline, feeling a lot better. “Let’s hurry back to the house.”
They exchanged no more speech at the moment, and Madeline’s guests were silent. Perhaps Stewart’s actions and looks belied his calm words. His piercing eyes roved round the rim of the mesa, and his face was as hard and stern as chiseled bronze.
They said no more at that moment, and Madeline’s guests were quiet. Maybe Stewart’s actions and expressions contradicted his calm words. His intense gaze scanned the edge of the mesa, and his face was as tough and serious as chiseled bronze.
Monty and Nick came galloping up, each leading several horses by the bridles. Nels appeared behind them with Majesty, and he was having trouble with the roan. Madeline observed that all the other cowboys had disappeared.
Monty and Nick rushed in, each holding a few horses by the reins. Nels followed them with Majesty, struggling with the roan. Madeline noticed that all the other cowboys were gone.
One sharp word from Stewart calmed Madeline’s horse; the other horses, however, were frightened and not inclined to stand. The men mounted without trouble, and likewise Madeline and Florence. But Edith Wayne and Mrs. Beck, being nervous and almost helpless, were with difficulty gotten into the saddle.
One quick word from Stewart calmed Madeline’s horse; the other horses, however, were scared and refused to stand still. The men got on without any issues, and so did Madeline and Florence. But Edith Wayne and Mrs. Beck, being anxious and nearly helpless, had a hard time getting into the saddle.
“Beg pardon, but I’m pressed for time,” said Stewart, coolly, as with iron arm he forced Dorothy’s horse almost to its knees. Dorothy, who was active and plucky, climbed astride; and when Stewart loosed his hold on bit and mane the horse doubled up and began to buck. Dorothy screamed as she shot into the air. Stewart, as quick as the horse, leaped forward and caught Dorothy in his arms. She had slipped head downward and, had he not caught her, would have had a serious fall. Stewart, handling her as if she were a child, turned her right side up to set her upon her feet. Dorothy evidently thought only of the spectacle she presented, and made startled motions to readjust her riding-habit. It was no time to laugh, though Madeline felt as if she wanted to. Besides, it was impossible to be anything but sober with Stewart in violent mood. For he had jumped at Dorothy’s stubborn mount. All cowboys were masters of horses. It was wonderful to see him conquer the vicious animal. He was cruel, perhaps, yet it was from necessity. When, presently, he led the horse back to Dorothy she mounted without further trouble. Meanwhile, Nels and Nick had lifted Helen into her saddle.
“Excuse me, but I’m in a hurry,” said Stewart coolly, as he used his strong arm to force Dorothy’s horse almost down to its knees. Dorothy, who was energetic and brave, quickly climbed on. When Stewart released his grip on the bit and mane, the horse reared up and started to buck. Dorothy screamed as she shot into the air. Stewart, as quick as the horse, jumped forward and caught her in his arms. She had slipped headfirst, and if he hadn’t caught her, she would have taken a serious fall. Stewart handled her like she was a child, turning her upright to set her on her feet. Dorothy clearly was worried about how she looked and made frantic gestures to adjust her riding outfit. It wasn’t the time to laugh, although Madeline felt like it. Plus, it was impossible to be anything but serious with Stewart in such a fierce mood. He had charged at Dorothy’s stubborn horse. All cowboys knew how to handle horses. It was impressive to see him control the wild animal. He might have been harsh, but it was out of necessity. When he finally led the horse back to Dorothy, she mounted without any more issues. Meanwhile, Nels and Nick had lifted Helen back into her saddle.
“We’ll take the side trail,” said Stewart, shortly, as he swung upon the big black. Then he led the way, and the other cowboys trotted in the rear.
“We'll take the side trail,” said Stewart, shortly, as he got on the big black. Then he led the way, and the other cowboys followed behind.
It was only a short distance to the rim of the mesa, and when Madeline saw the steep trail, narrow and choked with weathered stone, she felt that her guests would certainly flinch.
It was just a short distance to the edge of the mesa, and when Madeline saw the steep path, narrow and filled with worn stone, she knew her guests would definitely hesitate.
“That’s a jolly bad course,” observed Castleton.
"That's a really bad idea," Castleton said.
The women appeared to be speechless.
The women seemed to be at a loss for words.
Stewart checked his horse at the deep cut where the trail started down.
Stewart stopped his horse at the steep drop where the trail began to descend.
“Boys, drop over, and go slow,” he said, dismounting. “Flo, you follow. Now, ladies, let your horses loose and hold on. Lean forward and hang to the pommel. It looks bad. But the horses are used to such trails.”
“Guys, drop by and take it easy,” he said, getting off his horse. “Flo, you follow. Now, ladies, let your horses go and hold on tight. Lean forward and grip the pommel. It might look rough. But the horses are familiar with these trails.”
Helen followed closely after Florence; Mrs. Beck went next, and then Edith Wayne. Dorothy’s horse balked.
Helen closely followed Florence; Mrs. Beck was next, and then came Edith Wayne. Dorothy's horse froze up.
“I’m not so—so frightened,” said Dorothy. “If only he would behave!”
“I’m not that scared,” said Dorothy. “If only he would just act right!”
She began to urge him into the trail, making him rear, when Stewart grasped the bit and jerked the horse down.
She started to push him toward the trail, making him rear up, when Stewart grabbed the reins and pulled the horse down.
“Put your foot in my stirrup,” said Stewart. “We can’t waste time.”
“Put your foot in my stirrup,” Stewart said. “We can’t waste any time.”
He lifted her upon his horse and started him down over the rim.
He helped her onto his horse and began to ride down over the edge.
“Go on, Miss Hammond. I’ll have to lead this nag down. It’ll save time.”
“Go ahead, Miss Hammond. I’ll take this horse down myself. It’ll save us some time.”
Then Madeline attended to the business of getting down herself. It was a loose trail. The weathered slopes seemed to slide under the feet of the horses. Dust-clouds formed; rocks rolled and rattled down; cactus spikes tore at horse and rider. Mrs. Beck broke into laughter, and there was a note in it that suggested hysteria. Once or twice Dorothy murmured plaintively. Half the time Madeline could not distinguish those ahead through the yellow dust. It was dry and made her cough. The horses snorted. She heared Stewart close behind, starting little avalanches that kept rolling on Majesty’s fetlocks. She feared his legs might be cut or bruised, for some of the stones cracked by and went rattling down the slope. At length the clouds of dust thinned and Madeline saw the others before her ride out upon a level. Soon she was down, and Stewart also.
Then Madeline focused on getting herself down. It was a rough trail. The worn slopes seemed to shift under the horses' feet. Clouds of dust formed; rocks rolled and rattled down; cactus spikes scratched at both horse and rider. Mrs. Beck burst into laughter, and there was something in it that hinted at hysteria. A few times, Dorothy murmured softly. Most of the time, Madeline couldn’t see those ahead of her through the yellow dust. It was dry and made her cough. The horses snorted. She heard Stewart close behind, causing small avalanches that kept cascading onto Majesty’s legs. She worried his legs might get cut or bruised as some of the stones cracked and rolled down the slope. Eventually, the dust clouds cleared, and Madeline saw the others ahead ride out onto flat ground. Soon she was down, and Stewart was too.
Here there was a delay, occasioned by Stewart changing Dorothy from his horse to her own. This struck Madeline as being singular, and made her thoughtful. In fact, the alert, quiet manner of all the cowboys was not reassuring. As they resumed the ride it was noticeable that Nels and Nick were far in advance, Monty stayed far in the rear, and Stewart rode with the party. Madeline heard Boyd Harvey ask Stewart if lawlessness such as he had mentioned was not unusual. Stewart replied that, except for occasional deeds of outlawry such as might break out in any isolated section of the country, there had been peace and quiet along the border for years. It was the Mexican revolution that had revived wild times, with all the attendant raids and holdups and gun-packing. Madeline knew that they were really being escorted home under armed guard.
There was a delay because Stewart was switching Dorothy from his horse to hers. This seemed odd to Madeline and left her deep in thought. In fact, the alert, calm demeanor of all the cowboys was unsettling. As they continued their ride, it was clear that Nels and Nick were way ahead, Monty was lagging far behind, and Stewart was riding with the group. Madeline overheard Boyd Harvey asking Stewart if the lawlessness he mentioned was common. Stewart replied that aside from occasional acts of outlaws that might erupt in any remote area, there had been peace and quiet along the border for years. It was the Mexican revolution that had stirred up trouble again, bringing all the associated raids, hold-ups, and armed men. Madeline realized they were essentially being escorted home under armed guard.
When they rounded the head of the mesa, bringing into view the ranch-house and the valley, Madeline saw dust or smoke hovering over a hut upon the outskirts of the Mexican quarters. As the sun had set and the light was fading, she could not distinguish which it was. Then Stewart set a fast pace for the house. In a few minutes the party was in the yard, ready and willing to dismount.
When they turned the corner of the mesa, revealing the ranch house and the valley, Madeline noticed dust or smoke rising above a hut at the edge of the Mexican neighborhood. Since the sun had gone down and the light was fading, she couldn't tell which it was. Then Stewart picked up the pace toward the house. Within a few minutes, the group was in the yard, ready and eager to get off their horses.
Stillwell appeared, ostensibly cheerful, too cheerful to deceive Madeline. She noted also that a number of armed cowboys were walking with their horses just below the house.
Stillwell showed up, looking cheerful—too cheerful for Madeline to be fooled. She also noticed that several armed cowboys were walking with their horses just below the house.
“Wal, you-all had a nice little run,” Stillwell said, speaking generally. “I reckon there wasn’t much need of it. Pat Hawe thinks he’s got some outlaws corralled on the ranch. Nothin’ at all to be fussed up about. Stewart’s that particular he won’t have you meetin’ with any rowdies.”
“Welp, you all had a nice little run,” Stillwell said, speaking generally. “I guess it wasn’t really necessary. Pat Hawe thinks he’s got some outlaws rounded up at the ranch. Nothing to get worked up about. Stewart’s so particular he doesn't want you meeting any troublemakers.”
Many and fervent were the expressions of relief from Madeline’s feminine guests as they dismounted and went into the house. Madeline lingered behind to speak with Stillwell and Stewart.
Many enthusiastic expressions of relief came from Madeline’s female guests as they got off their horses and entered the house. Madeline stayed behind to chat with Stillwell and Stewart.
“Now, Stillwell, out with it,” she said, briefly.
“Come on, Stillwell, just say it,” she said, shortly.
The cattleman stared, and then he laughed, evidently pleased with her keenness.
The cattleman looked at her, then laughed, clearly happy with her enthusiasm.
“Wal, Miss Majesty, there’s goin’ to be a fight somewhere, an’ Stewart wanted to get you-all in before it come off. He says the valley’s overrun by vaqueros an’ guerrillas an’ robbers, an’ Lord knows what else.”
“Well, Miss Majesty, there's going to be a fight somewhere, and Stewart wanted to get you all in before it happens. He says the valley’s overrun by cowboys and guerrillas and robbers, and God knows what else.”
He stamped off the porch, his huge spurs rattling, and started down the path toward the waiting men.
He stomped off the porch, his big spurs jingling, and headed down the path toward the waiting men.
Stewart stood in his familiar attentive position, erect, silent, with a hand on pommel and bridle.
Stewart stood in his usual attentive position, straight, silent, with a hand on the pommel and bridle.
“Stewart, you are exceedingly—thoughtful of my interests,” she said, wanting to thank him, and not readily finding words. “I would not know what to do without you. Is there danger?”
“Stewart, you are incredibly thoughtful of my interests,” she said, wanting to thank him but struggling to find the right words. “I don’t know what I would do without you. Is there danger?”
“I’m not sure. But I want to be on the safe side.”
“I’m not sure. But I want to play it safe.”
She hesitated. It was no longer easy for her to talk to him, and she did not know why.
She hesitated. It wasn't easy for her to talk to him anymore, and she didn't know why.
“May I know the special orders you gave Nels and Nick and Monty?” she asked.
“Can you tell me the special instructions you gave to Nels, Nick, and Monty?” she asked.
“Who said I gave those boys special orders?”
“Who said I gave those guys special instructions?”
“I heard Stillwell tell them so.”
“I heard Stillwell say that.”
“Of course I’ll tell you if you insist. But why should you worry over something that’ll likely never happen?”
“Sure, I’ll tell you if you really want to know. But why stress about something that probably won’t happen?”
“I insist, Stewart,” she replied, quietly.
“I insist, Stewart,” she said softly.
“My orders were that at least one of them must be on guard near you day and night—never to be out of hearing of your voice.”
“My instructions were that at least one of them had to be on guard near you day and night—always within earshot of your voice.”
“I thought as much. But why Nels or Monty or Nick? That seems rather hard on them. For that matter, why put any one to keep guard over me? Do you not trust any other of my cowboys?”
“I figured as much. But why Nels, Monty, or Nick? That feels pretty unfair to them. And why assign someone to keep watch over me at all? Don’t you trust any of my other cowboys?”
“I’d trust their honesty, but not their ability.”
“I’d trust them to be honest, but not to get things done.”
“Ability? Of what nature?”
"Ability? What kind?"
“With guns.”
"With firearms."
“Stewart!” she exclaimed.
"Stewart!" she shouted.
“Miss Hammond, you have been having such a good time entertaining your guests that you forget. I’m glad of that. I wish you had not questioned me.”
“Miss Hammond, you’ve been having such a great time hosting your guests that you forgot. I’m glad about that. I wish you hadn’t asked me.”
“Forget what?”
"What are you talking about?"
“Don Carlos and his guerrillas.”
“Don Carlos and his rebels.”
“Indeed I have not forgotten. Stewart, you still think Don Carlos tried to make off with me—may try it again?”
“Of course, I haven't forgotten. Stewart, you still believe Don Carlos attempted to run away with me—do you think he might try it again?”
“I don’t think. I know.”
"I don't think; I know."
“And besides all your other duties you have shared the watch with these three cowboys?”
“And on top of all your other responsibilities, you’ve been keeping watch with these three cowboys?”
“Yes.”
“Yep.”
“It has been going on without my knowledge?”
“It has been happening without my knowledge?”
“Yes.”
"Yep."
“Since when?”
“Since when?”
“Since I brought you down from the mountains last month.”
“Since I brought you down from the mountains last month.”
“How long is it to continue?”
“How long will it go on?”
“That’s hard to say. Till the revolution is over, anyhow.”
"That's tough to say. At least until the revolution is over."
She mused a moment, looking away to the west, where the great void was filling with red haze. She believed implicitly in him, and the menace hovering near her fell like a shadow upon her present happiness.
She thought for a moment, looking west, where the vast emptiness was filled with a red haze. She had complete faith in him, and the threat that loomed nearby cast a shadow over her current happiness.
“What must I do?” she asked.
“What should I do?” she asked.
“I think you ought to send your friends back East—and go with them, until this guerrilla war is over.”
“I think you should send your friends back East—and go with them, until this guerrilla war is over.”
“Why, Stewart, they would be broken-hearted, and so would I.”
“Why, Stewart, they would be heartbroken, and so would I.”
He had no reply for that.
He had no response to that.
“If I do not take your advice it will be the first time since I have come to look to you for so much,” she went on. “Cannot you suggest something else? My friends are having such a splendid visit. Helen is getting well. Oh, I should be sorry to see them go before they want to.”
“If I don’t take your advice, it’ll be the first time since I’ve started relying on you so much,” she continued. “Can’t you suggest something else? My friends are having such a great time. Helen is getting better. Oh, I would hate to see them leave before they’re ready.”
“We might take them up into the mountains and camp out for a while,” he said, presently. “I know a wild place up among the crags. It’s a hard climb, but worth the work. I never saw a more beautiful spot. Fine water, and it will be cool. Pretty soon it’ll be too hot here for your party to go out-of-doors.”
“We could take them up into the mountains and camp for a bit,” he said after a moment. “I know a wild spot among the cliffs. It’s a tough hike, but it’s worth it. I’ve never seen a more beautiful place. Clean water, and it’ll be cool. Soon it’ll be too hot here for your group to be outside.”
“You mean to hide me away among the crags and clouds?” replied Madeline, with a laugh.
“You want to hide me away in the hills and clouds?” Madeline replied, laughing.
“Well, it’d amount to that. Your friends need not know. Perhaps in a few weeks this spell of trouble on the border will be over till fall.”
“Well, that’s what it would come down to. Your friends don’t need to know. Maybe in a few weeks this trouble on the border will be over until fall.”
“You say it’s a hard climb up to this place?”
“You're saying it's a tough climb to get up here?”
“It surely is. Your friends will get the real thing if they make that trip.”
“It definitely is. Your friends will get the real experience if they take that trip.”
“That suits me. Helen especially wants something to happen. And they are all crazy for excitement.”
"That works for me. Helen really wants something to happen. And they're all eager for some excitement."
“They’d get it up there. Bad trails, canyons to head, steep climbs, wind-storms, thunder and lightning, rain, mountain-lions and wildcats.”
“They’d make it up there. Rough trails, canyons to navigate, steep climbs, wind storms, thunder and lightning, rain, mountain lions, and wildcats.”
“Very well, I am decided. Stewart, of course you will take charge? I don’t believe I—Stewart, isn’t there something more you could tell me—why you think, why you know my own personal liberty is in peril?”
“Alright, I’ve made up my mind. Stewart, you’ll be in charge, right? I don’t think I—Stewart, is there something more you could share with me—why you believe, why you know my own freedom is at risk?”
“Yes. But do not ask me what it is. If I hadn’t been a rebel soldier I would never have known.”
“Yes. But don’t ask me what it is. If I hadn’t been a rebel soldier, I would never have known.”
“If you had not been a rebel soldier, where would Madeline Hammond be now?” she asked, earnestly.
“If you hadn’t been a rebel soldier, where would Madeline Hammond be now?” she asked, earnestly.
He made no reply.
He didn't respond.
“Stewart,” she continued, with warm impulse, “you once mentioned a debt you owed me—” And seeing his dark face pale, she wavered, then went on. “It is paid.”
“Stewart,” she continued, with a warm instinct, “you once mentioned a debt you owed me—” And seeing his dark face turn pale, she hesitated, then added, “It’s been paid.”
“No, no,” he answered, huskily.
“No, no,” he replied, hoarsely.
“Yes. I will not have it otherwise.”
“Yes. I won’t have it any other way.”
“No. That never can be paid.”
“No. That can never be paid.”
Madeline held out her hand.
Madeline extended her hand.
“It is paid, I tell you,” she repeated.
“It’s paid, I’m telling you,” she repeated.
Suddenly he drew back from the outstretched white hand that seemed to fascinate him.
Suddenly, he pulled away from the outstretched white hand that seemed to captivate him.
“I’d kill a man to touch your hand. But I won’t touch it on the terms you offer.”
“I’d do anything to touch your hand. But I won’t do it on the terms you’re suggesting.”
His unexpected passion disconcerted her.
His surprise passion disconcerted her.
“Stewart, no man ever before refused to shake hands with me, for any reason. It—it is scarcely flattering,” she said, with a little laugh. “Why won’t you? Because you think I offer it as mistress to servant—rancher to cowboy?”
“Stewart, no one has ever refused to shake my hand before, for any reason. It—it’s hardly flattering,” she said with a small laugh. “Why won’t you? Is it because you think I’m offering it as mistress to servant—rancher to cowboy?”
“No.”
“No.”
“Then why? The debt you owed me is paid. I cancel it. So why not shake hands upon it, as men do?”
“Then why? The debt you owed me is settled. I’m letting it go. So why not shake hands on it, like guys do?”
“I won’t. That’s all.”
"I won't. That's it."
“I fear you are ungracious, whatever your reason,” she replied. “Still, I may offer it again some day. Good night.”
“I’m afraid you’re being ungrateful, no matter what your reasons are,” she responded. “Still, I might offer it again someday. Good night.”
He said good night and turned. Madeline wonderingly watched him go down the path with his hand on the black horse’s neck.
He said good night and turned away. Madeline watched him curiously as he walked down the path with his hand on the black horse's neck.
She went in to rest a little before dressing for dinner, and, being fatigued from the day’s riding and excitement, she fell asleep. When she awoke it was twilight. She wondered why her Mexican maid had not come to her, and she rang the bell. The maid did not put in an appearance, nor was there any answer to the ring. The house seemed unusually quiet. It was a brooding silence, which presently broke to the sound of footsteps on the porch. Madeline recognized Stillwell’s tread, though it appeared to be light for him. Then she heard him call softly in at the open door of her office. The suggestion of caution in his voice suited the strangeness of his walk. With a boding sense of trouble she hurried through the rooms. He was standing outside her office door.
She went in to rest a bit before getting ready for dinner, and, feeling tired from the day’s riding and excitement, she fell asleep. When she woke up, it was twilight. She wondered why her Mexican maid hadn’t come to see her, so she rang the bell. The maid didn’t show up, and there was no answer to the ring. The house felt unusually quiet. It was a heavy silence that was soon broken by the sound of footsteps on the porch. Madeline recognized Stillwell’s walk, even though it seemed lighter than usual. Then she heard him call softly through the open door of her office. The cautious tone in his voice matched the oddity of his footsteps. With a sense of unease, she hurried through the rooms. He was standing outside her office door.
“Stillwell!” she exclaimed.
“Stillwell!” she shouted.
“Anybody with you?” he asked, in a low tone.
“Is anyone with you?” he asked quietly.
“No.”
“Nope.”
“Please come out on the porch,” he added.
“Please come out on the porch,” he said.
She complied, and, once out, was enabled to see him. His grave face, paler than she had ever beheld it, caused her to stretch an appealing hand toward him. Stillwell intercepted it and held it in his own.
She agreed, and once outside, was able to see him. His serious face, paler than she had ever seen, made her reach out an inviting hand toward him. Stillwell caught her hand and held it in his own.
“Miss Majesty, I’m amazin’ sorry to tell worrisome news.” He spoke almost in a whisper, cautiously looked about him, and seemed both hurried and mysterious. “If you’d heerd Stewart cuss you’d sure know how we hate to hev to tell you this. But it can’t be avoided. The fact is we’re in a bad fix. If your guests ain’t scared out of their skins it’ll be owin’ to your nerve an’ how you carry out Stewart’s orders.”
“Miss Majesty, I’m really sorry to bring you some troubling news.” He spoke almost in a whisper, looked around him cautiously, and seemed both rushed and secretive. “If you’d heard Stewart swear, you’d definitely understand how much we hate to deliver this to you. But it can’t be avoided. The truth is, we’re in a tough spot. If your guests aren’t terrified, it’ll be thanks to your courage and how you follow Stewart’s orders.”
“You can rely upon me,” replied Madeline, firmly, though she trembled.
“You can count on me,” replied Madeline, firmly, though she shook.
“Wal, what we’re up against is this: that gang of bandits Pat Hawe was chasin’—they’re hidin’ in the house!”
“Well, here’s the situation: that gang of bandits Pat Hawe was chasing—they’re hiding in the house!”
“In the house?” echoed Madeline, aghast.
“In the house?” Madeline exclaimed, shocked.
“Miss Majesty, it’s the amazin’ truth, an’ shamed indeed am I to admit it. Stewart—why, he’s wild with rage to think it could hev happened. You see, it couldn’t hev happened if I hedn’t sloped the boys off to the gol-lof-links, an’ if Stewart hedn’t rid out on the mesa after us. It’s my fault. I’ve hed too much femininity around fer my old haid. Gene cussed me—he cussed me sure scandalous. But now we’ve got to face it—to figger.”
“Miss Majesty, it’s the amazing truth, and I’m really ashamed to admit it. Stewart—he’s so furious that it could have happened. You see, it couldn’t have happened if I hadn’t sent the boys off to the golf links, and if Stewart hadn’t ridden out to the mesa after us. It’s my fault. I’ve had too much femininity around for my old head. Gene yelled at me—he really cursed me out. But now we’ve got to face it—to figure things out.”
“Do you mean that a gang of hunted outlaws—bandits—have actually taken refuge somewhere in my house?” demanded Madeline.
“Are you saying that a group of hunted criminals—bandits—have actually taken refuge in my house?” demanded Madeline.
“I sure do. Seems powerful strange to me why you didn’t find somethin’ was wrong, seem’ all your servants hev sloped.”
“I definitely do. It seems really odd to me that you didn’t notice anything was wrong, given that all your servants have disappeared.”
“Gone? Ah, I missed my maid! I wondered why no lights were lit. Where did my servants go?”
“Gone? Oh, I really miss my maid! I was wondering why none of the lights were on. Where did my staff go?”
“Down to the Mexican quarters, an’ scared half to death. Now listen. When Stewart left you an hour or so ago he follered me direct to where me an’ the boys was tryin’ to keep Pat Hawe from tearin’ the ranch to pieces. At that we was helpin’ Pat all we could to find them bandits. But when Stewart got there he made a difference. Pat was nasty before, but seein’ Stewart made him wuss. I reckon Gene to Pat is the same as red to a Greaser bull. Anyway, when the sheriff set fire to an old adobe hut Stewart called him an’ called him hard. Pat Hawe hed six fellers with him, an’ from all appearances bandit-huntin’ was some fiesta. There was a row, an ‘it looked bad fer a little. But Gene was cool, an’ he controlled the boys. Then Pat an’ his tough de-pooties went on huntin’. That huntin’, Miss Majesty, petered out into what was only a farce. I reckon Pat could hev kept on foolin’ me an’ the boys, but as soon as Stewart showed up on the scene—wal, either Pat got to blunderin’ or else we-all shed our blinders. Anyway, the facts stood plain. Pat Hawe wasn’t lookin’ hard fer any bandits; he wasn’t daid set huntin’ anythin’, unless it was trouble fer Stewart. Finally, when Pat’s men made fer our storehouse, where we keep ammunition, grub, liquors, an’ sich, then Gene called a halt. An’ he ordered Pat Hawe off the ranch. It was hyar Hawe an’ Stewart locked horns.
“Down in the Mexican area, and scared half to death. Now listen. When Stewart left you about an hour ago, he followed me straight to where me and the guys were trying to keep Pat Hawe from tearing the ranch apart. We were actually helping Pat as much as we could to find those bandits. But when Stewart showed up, everything changed. Pat was already in a bad mood, but seeing Stewart made it worse. I guess Gene to Pat is like red to a Greaser bull. Anyway, when the sheriff set fire to an old adobe hut, Stewart really laid into him. Pat Hawe had six guys with him, and it looked like bandit-hunting was some kind of party. There was a commotion, and it looked bad for a moment. But Gene was calm and kept the guys under control. Then Pat and his tough deputies went off hunting. That hunting, Miss Majesty, turned into nothing more than a joke. I think Pat could have kept fooling me and the guys, but as soon as Stewart arrived—well, either Pat started messing up or we all woke up to the truth. Anyway, the facts were clear. Pat Hawe wasn’t really looking for any bandits; he wasn’t set on hunting for anything, unless it was trouble for Stewart. Finally, when Pat’s men made a move toward our storehouse, where we keep ammo, food, liquor, and such, Gene ordered a stop. And he told Pat Hawe to leave the ranch. It was here that Hawe and Stewart clashed.”
“An’ hyar the truth come out. There was a gang of bandits hid somewheres, an’ at fust Pat Hawe hed been powerful active an’ earnest in his huntin’. But sudden-like he’d fetched a pecooliar change of heart. He had been some flustered with Stewart’s eyes a-pryin’ into his moves, an’ then, mebbe to hide somethin’, mebbe jest nat’rul, he got mad. He hollered law. He pulled down off the shelf his old stock grudge on Stewart, accusin’ him over again of that Greaser murder last fall. Stewart made him look like a fool—showed him up as bein’ scared of the bandits or hevin’ some reason fer slopin’ off the trail. Anyway, the row started all right, an’ but fer Nels it might hev amounted to a fight. In the thick of it, when Stewart was drivin’ Pat an’ his crowd off the place, one of them de-pooties lost his head an’ went fer his gun. Nels throwed his gun an’ crippled the feller’s arm. Monty jumped then an’ throwed two forty-fives, an’ fer a second or so it looked ticklish. But the bandit-hunters crawled, an’ then lit out.”
“Here’s the truth. There was a group of bandits hiding somewhere, and at first, Pat Hawe was really active and determined in his search. But suddenly, he had a strange change of heart. He was a bit flustered with Stewart watching his every move, and maybe to hide something, or maybe just naturally, he got mad. He shouted about the law. He took down his old grudge against Stewart and accused him again of that Greaser murder last fall. Stewart made him look foolish—exposed him as being scared of the bandits or having some reason for backing off. Anyway, a fight was definitely brewing, and if it wasn't for Nels, it could have turned into a real brawl. In the heat of the moment, when Stewart was pushing Pat and his gang off the property, one of the deputies lost control and went for his gun. Nels shot and injured the guy’s arm. Monty then jumped in and fired two .45s, and for a second, things seemed really dangerous. But the bandit hunters backed off and then took off.”
Stillwell paused in the rapid delivery of his narrative; he still retained Madeline’s hand, as if by that he might comfort her.
Stillwell paused in the fast-paced telling of his story; he still held Madeline’s hand, as if that might offer her some comfort.
“After Pat left we put our haids together,” began the old cattleman, with a long respiration. “We rounded up a lad who hed seen a dozen or so fellers—he wouldn’t to they was Greasers—breakin’ through the shrubbery to the back of the house. That was while Stewart was ridin’ out to the mesa. Then this lad seen your servants all runnin’ down the hill toward the village. Now, heah’s the way Gene figgers. There sure was some deviltry down along the railroad, an’ Pat Hawe trailed bandits up to the ranch. He hunts hard an’ then all to onct he quits. Stewart says Pat Hawe wasn’t scared, but he discovered signs or somethin’, or got wind in some strange way that there was in the gang of bandits some fellers he didn’t want to ketch. Sabe? Then Gene, quicker ’n a flash, springs his plan on me. He’d go down to Padre Marcos an’ hev him help to find out all possible from your Mexican servants. I was to hurry up hyar an’ tell you—give you orders, Miss Majesty. Ain’t that amazin’ strange? Wal, you’re to assemble all your guests in the kitchen. Make a grand bluff an’ pretend, as your help has left, that it’ll be great fun fer your guests to cook dinner. The kitchen is the safest room in the house. While you’re joshin’ your party along, makin’ a kind of picnic out of it, I’ll place cowboys in the long corridor, an’ also outside in the corner where the kitchen joins on to the main house. It’s pretty sure the bandits think no one’s wise to where they’re hid. Stewart says they’re in that end room where the alfalfa is, an’ they’ll slope in the night. Of course, with me an’ the boys watchin’, you-all will be safe to go to bed. An’ we’re to rouse your guests early before daylight, to hit the trail up into the mountains. Tell them to pack outfits before goin’ to bed. Say as your servants hev sloped, you might as well go campin’ with the cowboys. That’s all. If we hev any luck your’ friends’ll never know they’ve been sittin’ on a powder-mine.”
“After Pat left, we put our heads together,” began the old cattleman, taking a deep breath. “We tracked down a kid who had seen about a dozen guys—he claimed they were Greasers—sneaking through the bushes to the back of the house. That was while Stewart was riding out to the mesa. Then this kid saw your servants all running down the hill toward the village. Now, here’s how Gene thinks. There was definitely some trouble down by the railroad, and Pat Hawe followed some bandits to the ranch. He searched hard and then all of a sudden he quit. Stewart says Pat Hawe wasn’t scared, but he noticed some signs or something, or somehow caught wind that there were some people in the gang he didn’t want to confront. Get it? Then Gene, quick as a flash, hits me with his plan. He’d go down to Padre Marcos and have him help find out everything he could from your Mexican servants. I was to hurry up here and tell you—give you instructions, Miss Majesty. Isn’t that incredibly strange? Well, you're to gather all your guests in the kitchen. Make a big show and pretend, since your help has left, that it’ll be a lot of fun for your guests to cook dinner. The kitchen is the safest room in the house. While you’re making it a fun picnic for your party, I’ll put cowboys in the long corridor and also outside at the corner where the kitchen connects to the main house. It’s pretty likely the bandits think nobody knows where they’re hiding. Stewart says they’re in that end room where the alfalfa is, and they’ll skip out at night. Of course, with me and the guys watching, you all will be safe to go to bed. And we’re supposed to wake your guests early before dawn, to head up into the mountains. Tell them to pack their things before going to bed. Say that since your servants have left, they might as well go camping with the cowboys. That’s all. If we have any luck, your friends won’t even know they’ve been sitting on a powder keg.”
“Stillwell, do you advise that trip up into the mountains?” asked Madeline.
“Stillwell, do you recommend that trip up into the mountains?” asked Madeline.
“I reckon I do, considerin’ everythin’. Now, Miss Majesty, I’ve used up a lot of time explainin’. You’ll sure keep your nerve?”
“I think I do, considering everything. Now, Miss Majesty, I’ve spent a lot of time explaining. You’ll definitely keep your cool?”
“Yes,” Madeline replied, and was surprised at herself. “Better tell Florence. She’ll be a power of comfort to you. I’m goin’ now to fetch up the boys.”
“Yes,” Madeline said, surprising herself. “You should tell Florence. She’ll be a great source of comfort for you. I’m going to go get the boys now.”
Instead of returning to her room Madeline went through the office into the long corridor. It was almost as dark as night. She fancied she saw a slow-gliding figure darker than the surrounding gloom; and she entered upon the fulfilment of her part of the plan in something like trepidation. Her footsteps were noiseless. Finding the door to the kitchen, and going in, she struck lights. Upon passing out again she made certain she discerned a dark shape, now motionless, crouching along the wall. But she mistrusted her vivid imagination. It took all her boldness to enable her unconcernedly and naturally to strike the corridor light. Then she went on through her own rooms and thence into the patio.
Instead of going back to her room, Madeline walked through the office into the long hallway. It was almost pitch black. She thought she saw a shadowy figure gliding slowly through the darkness, and she stepped into her part of the plan feeling a bit anxious. Her footsteps were silent. When she found the kitchen door and went inside, she turned on the lights. As she stepped back out, she was sure she spotted a dark shape, now still, crouched against the wall. But she questioned her vivid imagination. It took all her courage to casually and naturally switch on the corridor light. Then she continued through her rooms and into the patio.
Her guests laughingly and gladly entered into the spirit of the occasion. Madeline fancied her deceit must have been perfect, seeing that it deceived even Florence. They trooped merrily into the kitchen. Madeline, delaying at the door, took a sharp but unobtrusive glance down the great, barnlike hall. She saw nothing but blank dark space. Suddenly from one side, not a rod distant, protruded a pale, gleaming face breaking the even blackness. Instantly it flashed back out of sight. Yet that time was long enough for Madeline to see a pair of glittering eyes, and to recognize them as Don Carlos’s.
Her guests cheerfully embraced the vibe of the event. Madeline thought her deception must have been flawless since it fooled even Florence. They happily made their way into the kitchen. Madeline, pausing at the door, took a quick but discreet look down the vast, barn-like hall. She saw nothing but a blank dark space. Suddenly, from one side, not far away, a pale, shining face emerged from the deep shadows. Instantly, it disappeared again. But that moment was long enough for Madeline to catch a glimpse of a pair of glittering eyes and recognize them as belonging to Don Carlos.
Without betraying either hurry or alarm, she closed the door. It had a heavy bolt which she slowly, noiselessly shot. Then the cold amaze that had all but stunned her into inaction throbbed into wrath. How dared that Mexican steal into her home! What did he mean? Was he one of the bandits supposed to be hidden in her house? She was thinking herself into greater anger and excitement, and probably would have betrayed herself had not Florence, who had evidently seen her bolt the door and now read her thoughts, come toward her with a bright, intent, questioning look. Madeline caught herself in time.
Without showing any rush or panic, she closed the door. It had a heavy bolt that she slowly and quietly slid into place. Then the cold shock that had nearly frozen her into inaction turned into anger. How dared that Mexican sneak into her home! What did he want? Was he one of the bandits rumored to be hiding in her house? She was working herself up into more anger and excitement, and might have revealed her feelings if Florence, who had clearly noticed her bolt the door and was reading her thoughts, hadn't approached her with a bright, curious, questioning look. Madeline caught herself just in time.
Thereupon she gave each of her guests a duty to perform. Leading Florence into the pantry, she unburdened herself of the secret in one brief whisper. Florence’s reply was to point out of the little open window, passing which was a file of stealthily moving cowboys. Then Madeline lost both anger and fear, retaining only the glow of excitement.
Thereupon she assigned each of her guests a task. Taking Florence into the pantry, she quickly shared her secret in a quiet whisper. Florence responded by pointing out the small open window, where a line of quietly moving cowboys were passing by. At that moment, Madeline let go of both her anger and fear, feeling only a rush of excitement.
Madeline could be gay, and she initiated the abandonment of dignity by calling Castleton into the pantry, and, while interesting him in some pretext or other, imprinting the outlines of her flour-covered hands upon the back of his black coat. Castleton innocently returned to the kitchen to be greeted with a roar. That surprising act of the hostess set the pace, and there followed a merry, noisy time. Everybody helped. The miscellaneous collection of dishes so confusingly contrived made up a dinner which they all heartily enjoyed. Madeline enjoyed it herself, even with the feeling of a sword hanging suspended over her.
Madeline might be gay, and she started losing her dignity by calling Castleton into the pantry. While distracting him with some excuse, she left the prints of her flour-covered hands on the back of his black coat. Castleton unknowingly went back to the kitchen to be met with a loud cheer. That surprising move by the hostess set the tone, and soon there was a fun, noisy atmosphere. Everyone pitched in. The mix of dishes that were put together so haphazardly created a dinner that they all loved. Madeline enjoyed it too, even though she felt like there was a sword hanging over her head.
The hour was late when she rose from the table and told her guests to go to their rooms, don their riding-clothes, pack what they needed for the long and adventurous camping trip that she hoped would be the climax of their Western experience, and to snatch a little sleep before the cowboys roused them for the early start.
The hour was late when she stood up from the table and told her guests to head to their rooms, put on their riding clothes, pack what they needed for the long and exciting camping trip that she hoped would be the highlight of their Western adventure, and to grab a bit of sleep before the cowboys woke them for the early start.
Madeline went immediately to her room, and was getting out her camping apparel when a knock interrupted her. She thought Florence had come to help her pack. But this knock was upon the door opening out in the porch. It was repeated.
Madeline went straight to her room and started taking out her camping gear when a knock interrupted her. She thought Florence had arrived to help her pack. But this knock was on the door that opened to the porch. It was knocked again.
“Who’s there?” she questioned.
“Who’s there?” she asked.
“Stewart,” came the reply.
“Stewart,” was the response.
She opened the door. He stood on the threshold. Beyond him, indistinct in the gloom, were several cowboys.
She opened the door. He stood in the doorway. Beyond him, blurred in the shadows, were a few cowboys.
“May I speak to you?” he asked.
“Can I talk to you?” he asked.
“Certainly.” She hesitated a moment, then asked him in and closed the door. “Is—is everything all right?”
“Sure.” She paused for a moment, then let him in and shut the door. “Is—is everything okay?”
“No. These bandits stick to cover pretty close. They must have found out we’re on the watch. But I’m sure we’ll get you and your friends away before anything starts. I wanted to tell you that I’ve talked with your servants. They were just scared. They’ll come back to-morrow, soon as Bill gets rid of this gang. You need not worry about them or your property.”
“No. These bandits stay pretty close to cover. They must have realized we’re watching. But I’m sure we’ll get you and your friends out of here before anything happens. I wanted to let you know that I’ve spoken with your servants. They were just scared. They'll be back tomorrow as soon as Bill deals with this gang. You don’t have to worry about them or your property.”
“Do you have any idea who is hiding in the house?”
“Do you have any idea who’s hiding in the house?”
“I was worried some at first. Pat Hawe acted queer. I imagined he’d discovered he was trailing bandits who might turn out to be his smuggling guerrilla cronies. But talking with your servants, finding a bunch of horses upon hidden down in the mesquite behind the pond—several things have changed my mind. My idea is that a cowardly handful of riffraff outcasts from the border have hidden in your house, more by accident than design. We’ll let them go—get rid of them without even a shot. If I didn’t think so—well, I’d be considerably worried. It would make a different state of affairs.”
“I was a bit concerned at first. Pat Hawe was acting strangely. I thought he might have discovered that he was following bandits who could be his smuggling buddies. But after talking with your staff and finding a bunch of horses hidden in the mesquite behind the pond—several things have changed my mind. I think a cowardly group of outcasts from the border has ended up hiding in your house, more by accident than design. We’ll let them go—get rid of them without even firing a shot. If I didn’t believe that—well, I’d be pretty worried. It would change everything.”
“Stewart, you are wrong,” she said.
“Stewart, you’re mistaken,” she said.
He started, but his reply did not follow swiftly. The expression of his eyes altered. Presently he spoke:
He started to respond, but his answer didn't come quickly. The look in his eyes changed. After a moment, he spoke:
“How so?”
"How's that?"
“I saw one of these bandits. I distinctly recognized him.”
“I saw one of these thieves. I definitely recognized him.”
One long step brought him close to her.
One long step took him closer to her.
“Who was he?” demanded Stewart.
“Who was he?” asked Stewart.
“Don Carlos.”
“Don Carlos.”
He muttered low and deep, then said, “Are you sure?”
He muttered quietly and deeply, then said, “Are you sure?”
“Absolutely. I saw his figure twice in the hall, then his face in the light. I could never mistake his eyes.”
“Definitely. I saw him twice in the hallway, then his face in the light. I could never confuse his eyes.”
“Did he know you saw him?”
“Did he know you saw him?”
“I am not positive, but I think so. Oh, he must have known! I was standing full in the light. I had entered the door, then purposely stepped out. His face showed from around a corner, and swiftly flashed out of sight.”
“I'm not sure, but I think so. Oh, he must have known! I was standing right in the light. I had walked in through the door, then deliberately stepped back outside. His face peeked around a corner and quickly disappeared from view.”
Madeline was tremblingly conscious that Stewart underwent a transformation. She saw as well as felt the leaping passion that changed him.
Madeline was acutely aware that Stewart was going through a transformation. She could both see and feel the intense passion that was changing him.
“Call your friends—get them in here!” he ordered, tersely, and wheeled toward the door.
“Call your friends—get them in here!” he commanded sharply, then turned toward the door.
“Stewart, wait!” she said.
“Stewart, hold up!” she said.
He turned. His white face, his burning eyes, his presence now charged with definite, fearful meaning, influenced her strangely, weakened her.
He turned. His pale face, his intense eyes, his presence now filled with clear, frightening significance, affected her in a strange way, making her feel weak.
“What will you do?” she asked.
“What are you going to do?” she asked.
“That needn’t concern you. Get your party in here. Bar the windows and lock the doors. You’ll be safe.”
“That doesn’t need to worry you. Bring your group in here. Shut the windows and lock the doors. You’ll be safe.”
“Stewart! Tell me what you intend to do.”
“Stewart! Please tell me what you plan to do.”
“I won’t tell you,” he replied, and turned away again.
"I won't tell you," he said, turning away again.
“But I will know,” she said. With a hand on his arm she detained him. She saw how he halted—felt the shock in him as she touched him. “Oh, I do know. You mean to fight!”
“But I will know,” she said. With a hand on his arm, she held him back. She noticed how he stopped—felt the surprise in him as she touched him. “Oh, I do know. You plan to fight!”
“Well, Miss Hammond, isn’t it about time?” he asked. Evidently he overcame a violent passion for instant action. There was weariness, dignity, even reproof in his question. “The fact of that Mexican’s presence here in your house ought to prove to you the nature of the case. These vaqueros, these guerrillas, have found out you won’t stand for any fighting on the part of your men. Don Carlos is a sneak, a coward, yet he’s not afraid to hide in your own house. He has learned you won’t let your cowboys hurt anybody. He’s taking advantage of it. He’ll rob, burn, and make off with you. He’ll murder, too, if it falls his way. These Greasers use knives in the dark. So I ask—isn’t it about time we stop him?”
“Well, Miss Hammond, isn’t it about time?” he asked. Clearly, he had fought against a strong urge for immediate action. There was exhaustion, dignity, even a hint of criticism in his question. “The fact that this Mexican is here in your house should show you what’s going on. These cowboys and guerrillas have realized you won’t allow any fighting from your men. Don Carlos is a creep, a coward, yet he’s brave enough to hide in your own home. He’s figured out that you won’t let your cowboys hurt anyone. He’s taking advantage of that. He’ll steal, burn, and run off with you. He might even kill if it suits him. These guys use knives in the dark. So I ask—shouldn’t we stop him now?”
“Stewart, I forbid you to fight, unless in self-defense. I forbid you.”
“Stewart, I’m not allowing you to fight unless it’s in self-defense. I won’t allow it.”
“What I mean to do is self-defense. Haven’t I tried to explain to you that just now we’ve wild times along this stretch of border? Must I tell you again that Don Carlos is hand and glove with the revolution? The rebels are crazy to stir up the United States. You are a woman of prominence. Don Carlos would make off with you. If he got you, what little matter to cross the border with you! Well, where would the hue and cry go? Through the troops along the border! To New York! To Washington! Why, it would mean what the rebels are working for—United States intervention. In other words, war!”
“What I’m trying to say is that this is about self-defense. Haven’t I already explained to you that things are really chaotic along this stretch of the border? Do I need to remind you again that Don Carlos is closely tied to the revolution? The rebels are itching to provoke the United States. You’re a prominent woman. Don Carlos would kidnap you. If he took you, crossing the border with you would be no big deal! So, where would the outcry go? Through the troops along the border! To New York! To Washington! It would lead to exactly what the rebels want—U.S. intervention. In other words, war!”
“Oh, surely you exaggerate!” she cried.
“Oh, you must be exaggerating!” she said.
“Maybe so. But I’m beginning to see the Don’s game. And, Miss Hammond, I—It’s awful for me to think what you’d suffer if Don Carlos got you over the line. I know these low-caste Mexicans. I’ve been among the peons—the slaves.”
“Maybe. But I’m starting to understand the Don’s game. And, Miss Hammond, I—It’s terrible for me to think about what you’d go through if Don Carlos got you across the line. I know these low-class Mexicans. I’ve been around the peons—the slaves.”
“Stewart, don’t let Don Carlos get me,” replied Madeline, in sweet directness.
“Stewart, please don’t let Don Carlos get me,” Madeline replied, with sweet honesty.
She saw him shake, saw his throat swell as he swallowed hard, saw the hard fierceness return to his face.
She watched him tremble, noticed his throat bulge as he gulped, and saw the intense determination return to his face.
“I won’t. That’s why I’m going after him.”
“I won't. That's why I'm going after him.”
“But I forbade you to start a fight deliberately.”
“But I told you not to start a fight on purpose.”
“Then I’ll go ahead and start one without your permission,” he replied shortly, and again he wheeled.
“Then I’ll just start one without your permission,” he replied shortly, and once again, he turned around.
This time, when Madeline caught his arm she held to it, even after he stopped.
This time, when Madeline grabbed his arm, she held on to it, even after he stopped.
“No,” she said, imperiously.
“No,” she said, authoritatively.
He shook off her hand and strode forward.
He pulled his hand away from hers and walked ahead confidently.
“Please don’t go!” she called, beseechingly. But he kept on. “Stewart!”
“Please don’t go!” she called, pleadingly. But he continued on. “Stewart!”
She ran ahead of him, intercepted him, faced him with her back against the door. He swept out a long arm as if to brush her aside. But it wavered and fell. Haggard, troubled, with working face, he stood before her.
She ran ahead of him, intercepted him, and faced him with her back against the door. He reached out a long arm as if to push her aside. But it hesitated and dropped. Exhausted, worried, and with a tense expression, he stood in front of her.
“It’s for your sake,” he expostulated.
“It’s for your own good,” he protested.
“If it is for my sake, then do what pleases me.”
“If it’s for my sake, then do what makes me happy.”
“These guerrillas will knife somebody. They’ll burn the house. They’ll make off with you. They’ll do something bad unless we stop them.”
“These guerrillas will stab someone. They’ll burn the house down. They’ll take you away. They’ll do something terrible unless we stop them.”
“Let us risk all that,” she importuned.
“Let’s take that chance,” she urged.
“But it’s a terrible risk, and it oughtn’t be run,” he exclaimed, passionately. “I know best here. Stillwell upholds me. Let me out, Miss Hammond. I’m going to take the boys and go after these guerrillas.”
“But it’s a huge risk, and it shouldn’t be taken,” he said passionately. “I know best here. Stillwell supports me. Let me out, Miss Hammond. I’m going to take the guys and go after these guerrillas.”
“No!”
“Not a chance!”
“Good Heavens!” exclaimed Stewart. “Why not let me go? It’s the thing to do. I’m sorry to distress you and your guests. Why not put an end to Don Carlos’s badgering? Is it because you’re afraid a rumpus will spoil your friends’ visit?”
“Good heavens!” exclaimed Stewart. “Why not just let me go? It’s the right thing to do. I’m sorry for upsetting you and your guests. Why not stop Don Carlos’s pestering? Is it because you’re worried a scene will ruin your friends’ visit?”
“It isn’t—not this time.”
“It’s not—not this time.”
“Then it’s the idea of a little shooting at these Greasers?”
“Then it's the thought of taking a few shots at these Greasers?”
“No.”
“Nope.”
“You’re sick to think of a little Greaser blood staining the halls of your home?”
“You're sick to imagine a little Greaser blood staining the halls of your home?”
“No!”
“No way!”
“Well, then, why keep me from doing what I know is best?”
“Well, then, why stop me from doing what I know is best?”
“Stewart, I—I—” she faltered, in growing agitation. “I’m frightened—confused. All this is too—too much for me. I’m not a coward. If you have to fight you’ll see I’m not a coward. But your way seems so reckless—that hall is so dark—the guerrillas would shoot from behind doors. You’re so wild, so daring, you’d rush right into peril. Is that necessary? I think—I mean—I don’t know just why I feel so—so about you doing it. But I believe it’s because I’m afraid you—you might be hurt.”
“Stewart, I—I—” she hesitated, getting more agitated. “I’m scared—confused. This is all too—too much for me. I’m not a coward. If you have to fight, you’ll see I’m not a coward. But your approach seems so reckless—that hall is so dark—the guerrillas could shoot from behind doors. You’re so bold, so daring, you’d charge right into danger. Is that really necessary? I think—I mean—I don’t know exactly why I feel this way about you doing it. But I think it’s because I’m worried you—you might get hurt.”
“You’re afraid I—I might be hurt?” he echoed, wonderingly, the hard whiteness of his face warming, flushing, glowing.
“You’re afraid I—I might get hurt?” he repeated, surprised, the stark whiteness of his face warming, flushing, glowing.
“Yes.”
"Yep."
The single word, with all it might mean, with all it might not mean, softened him as if by magic, made him gentle, amazed, shy as a boy, stifling under a torrent of emotions.
The single word, with everything it could mean and everything it could not mean, softened him as if by magic, made him gentle, amazed, shy like a boy, overwhelmed by a flood of emotions.
Madeline thought she had persuaded him—worked her will with him. Then another of his startlingly sudden moves told her that she had reckoned too quickly. This move was to put her firmly aside so he could pass; and Madeline, seeing he would not hesitate to lift her out of the way, surrendered the door. He turned on the threshold. His face was still working, but the flame-pointed gleam of his eyes indicated the return of that cowboy ruthlessness.
Madeline thought she had convinced him—had bent his will to hers. Then one of his shockingly quick moves showed her that she had misjudged the situation. This move was to push her aside so he could get by; and Madeline, realizing he wouldn’t think twice about moving her out of the way, stepped aside for him. He paused at the door. His face was still tense, but the spark in his eyes revealed the return of that cowboy ruthlessness.
“I’m going to drive Don Carlos and his gang out of the house,” declared Stewart. “I think I may promise you to do it without a fight. But if it takes a fight, off he goes!”
“I’m going to kick Don Carlos and his crew out of the house,” Stewart declared. “I think I can promise you I’ll do it without a fight. But if it turns into a fight, he’s out of here!”
XV. The Mountain Trail
As Stewart departed from one door Florence knocked upon another; and Madeline, far shaken out of her usual serenity, admitted the cool Western girl with more than gladness. Just to have her near helped Madeline to get back her balance. She was conscious of Florence’s sharp scrutiny, then of a sweet, deliberate change of manner. Florence might have been burning with curiosity to know more about the bandits hidden in the house, the plans of the cowboys, the reason for Madeline’s suppressed emotion; but instead of asking Madeline questions she introduced the important subject of what to take on the camping trip. For an hour they discussed the need of this and that article, selected those things most needful, and then packed them in Madeline’s duffle-bags.
As Stewart left through one door, Florence knocked on another; and Madeline, clearly unsettled from her usual calm, welcomed the cool Western girl with more than just joy. Having Florence nearby helped Madeline regain her composure. She was aware of Florence’s keen observation, followed by a sweet, intentional shift in demeanor. Florence might have been bursting with curiosity about the bandits hiding in the house, the cowboys' plans, or the reason behind Madeline’s restrained emotions; but instead of grilling Madeline with questions, she brought up the important topic of what to take on the camping trip. They spent an hour discussing the essentials, picking out what was most necessary, and then packing everything into Madeline’s duffle bags.
That done, they decided to lie down, fully dressed as they were in riding-costume, and sleep, or at least rest, the little remaining time left before the call to saddle. Madeline turned out the light and, peeping through her window, saw dark forms standing sentinel-like in the gloom. When she lay down she heard soft steps on the path. This fidelity to her swelled her heart, while the need of it presaged that fearful something which, since Stewart’s passionate appeal to her, haunted her as inevitable.
That done, they decided to lie down, still dressed in their riding outfits, and sleep, or at least rest, for the little time they had left before the call to saddle. Madeline turned off the light and, peeking through her window, saw dark figures standing guard in the shadows. As she lay down, she heard soft footsteps on the path. This loyalty warmed her heart, while the need for it hinted at that frightening thing which, since Stewart’s passionate appeal to her, had haunted her as unavoidable.
Madeline did not expect to sleep, yet she did sleep, and it seemed to have been only a moment until Florence called her. She followed Florence outside. It was the dark hour before dawn. She could discern saddled horses being held by cowboys. There was an air of hurry and mystery about the departure. Helen, who came tip-toeing out with Madeline’s other guests, whispered that it was like an escape. She was delighted. The others were amused. To Madeline it was indeed an escape.
Madeline didn’t think she would sleep, but she did, and it felt like only a moment had passed when Florence called her. She followed Florence outside. It was the dark hour before dawn. She could make out cowboys holding saddled horses. There was a sense of urgency and mystery surrounding their departure. Helen, who quietly came out with Madeline’s other guests, whispered that it felt like an escape. She was thrilled. The others found it amusing. For Madeline, it truly felt like an escape.
In the darkness Madeline could not see how many escorts her party was to have. She heard low voices, the champing of bits and thumping of hoofs, and she recognized Stewart when he led up Majesty for her to mount. Then came a pattering of soft feet and the whining of dogs. Cold noses touched her hands, and she saw the long, gray, shaggy shapes of her pack of Russian wolf-hounds. That Stewart meant to let them go with her was indicative of how he studied her pleasure. She loved to be out with the hounds and her horse.
In the darkness, Madeline couldn't see how many escorts were in her party. She heard quiet voices, the clinking of bits, and the thudding of hooves, and she recognized Stewart when he brought up Majesty for her to mount. Then there was the soft patter of feet and the whining of dogs. Cold noses brushed against her hands, and she saw the long, gray, shaggy forms of her pack of Russian wolfhounds. The fact that Stewart planned to let them accompany her showed how much he cared about her happiness. She loved being out with the hounds and her horse.
Stewart led Majesty out into the darkness past a line of mounted horses.
Stewart guided Majesty out into the darkness past a row of horses.
“Guess we’re ready?” he said. “I’ll make the count.” He went back along the line, and on the return Madeline heard him say several times, “Now, everybody ride close to the horse in front, and keep quiet till daylight.” Then the snorting and pounding of the big black horse in front of her told Madeline that Stewart had mounted.
“Guess we’re ready?” he said. “I’ll do the count.” He walked back along the line, and on his way back, Madeline heard him say several times, “Now, everyone ride close to the horse in front, and stay quiet until daylight.” Then the snorting and pounding of the big black horse in front of her made Madeline realize that Stewart had gotten on.
“All right, we’re off,” he called.
“All right, we’re off,” he said.
Madeline lifted Majesty’s bridle and let the roan go. There was a crack and crunch of gravel, fire struck from stone, a low whinny, a snort, and then steady, short, clip-clop of iron hoofs on hard ground. Madeline could just discern Stewart and his black outlined in shadowy gray before her. Yet they were almost within touching distance. Once or twice one of the huge stag-hounds leaped up at her and whined joyously. A thick belt of darkness lay low, and seemed to thin out above to a gray fog, through which a few wan stars showed. It was altogether an unusual departure from the ranch; and Madeline, always susceptible even to ordinary incident that promised well, now found herself thrillingly sensitive to the soft beat of hoofs, the feel of cool, moist air, the dim sight of Stewart’s dark figure. The caution, the early start before dawn, the enforced silence—these lent the occasion all that was needful to make it stirring.
Madeline lifted Majesty's bridle and let the roan go. There was a crack and crunch of gravel, sparks flying from stone, a low whinny, a snort, and then the steady, short clip-clop of iron hooves on hard ground. Madeline could barely make out Stewart and his black horse silhouetted in shadowy gray in front of her. They were almost within reach. Once or twice, one of the huge stag-hounds jumped up at her and whined happily. A thick belt of darkness hung low, seeming to thin out above into a gray fog, through which a few faint stars appeared. This was definitely an unusual departure from the ranch; and Madeline, always susceptible even to ordinary moments that promised excitement, now felt thrillingly aware of the soft sound of hooves, the cool, damp air, and the dim outline of Stewart's dark figure. The caution, the early start before dawn, the enforced silence—these added everything needed to make the moment exciting.
Majesty plunged into a gully, where sand and rough going made Madeline stop romancing to attend to riding. In the darkness Stewart was not so easy to keep close to even on smooth trails, and now she had to be watchfully attentive to do it. Then followed a long march through dragging sand. Meantime the blackness gradually changed to gray. At length Majesty climbed out of the wash, and once more his iron shoes rang on stone. He began to climb. The figure of Stewart and his horse loomed more distinctly in Madeline’s sight. Bending over, she tried to see the trail, but could not. She wondered how Stewart could follow a trail in the dark. His eyes must be as piercing as they sometimes looked. Over her shoulder Madeline could not see the horse behind her, but she heard him.
Majesty plunged into a gully, where sand and rough terrain made Madeline stop daydreaming and focus on riding. In the darkness, it was tough to keep close to Stewart even on smooth trails, and now she had to pay careful attention to do so. Then came a long trek through dragging sand. Meanwhile, the pitch-blackness slowly shifted to gray. Finally, Majesty climbed out of the wash, and once again his iron shoes clattered on stone. He started to ascend. Stewart and his horse became clearer in Madeline’s sight. Leaning forward, she tried to see the trail but couldn’t. She wondered how Stewart could follow a trail in the dark; his eyes must be as sharp as they sometimes appeared. Over her shoulder, Madeline couldn’t see the horse behind her, but she could hear him.
As Majesty climbed steadily Madeline saw the gray darkness grow opaque, change and lighten, lose its substance, and yield the grotesque shapes of yucca and ocotillo. Dawn was about to break. Madeline imagined she was facing east, still she saw no brightening of sky. All at once, to her surprise, Stewart and his powerful horse stood clear in her sight. She saw the characteristic rock and cactus and brush that covered the foothills. The trail was old and seldom used, and it zigzagged and turned and twisted. Looking back, she saw the short, squat figure of Monty Price humped over his saddle. Monty’s face was hidden under his sombrero. Behind him rode Dorothy Coombs, and next loomed up the lofty form of Nick Steele. Madeline and the members of her party were riding between cowboy escorts.
As Majesty climbed steadily, Madeline saw the gray darkness turn thick, change, and lighten, losing its substance to reveal the twisted shapes of yucca and ocotillo. Dawn was about to break. Madeline thought she was facing east, yet she still didn’t see the sky brighten. Suddenly, to her surprise, Stewart and his strong horse came into clear view. She recognized the distinctive rock, cactus, and brush that dotted the foothills. The trail was old and rarely used, winding and twisting as it went. Looking back, she spotted the short, sturdy figure of Monty Price hunched over his saddle. His face was hidden beneath his sombrero. Behind him rode Dorothy Coombs, and looming next was the tall figure of Nick Steele. Madeline and her group were riding between cowboy escorts.
Bright daylight came, and Madeline saw the trail was leading up through foothills. It led in a round-about way through shallow gullies full of stone and brush washed down by floods. At every turn now Madeline expected to come upon water and the waiting pack-train. But time passed, and miles of climbing, and no water or horses were met. Expectation in Madeline gave place to desire; she was hungry.
Bright daylight arrived, and Madeline noticed that the path was winding up through the foothills. It meandered through shallow gullies filled with stones and brush washed down by floods. With every turn, Madeline anticipated finding water and the waiting pack-train. However, time went by, and after miles of climbing, there was still no sign of water or horses. Her hope shifted to longing; she was hungry.
Presently Stewart’s horse went splashing into a shallow pool. Beyond that damp places in the sand showed here and there, and again more water in rocky pockets. Stewart kept on. It was eight o’clock by Madeline’s watch when, upon turning into a wide hollow, she saw horses grazing on spare grass, a great pile of canvas-covered bundles, and a fire round which cowboys and two Mexican women were busy.
Right now, Stewart’s horse splashed into a shallow pool. Beyond that, there were some wet spots in the sand scattered around, and more water collected in rocky pockets. Stewart continued on. It was eight o’clock by Madeline’s watch when, upon entering a wide hollow, she spotted horses grazing on sparse grass, a large pile of canvas-covered bundles, and a fire where cowboys and two Mexican women were busy at work.
Madeline sat her horse and reviewed her followers as they rode up single file. Her guests were in merry mood, and they all talked at once.
Madeline mounted her horse and looked over her group as they rode in a single line. Her guests were in a cheerful mood, and they all talked at the same time.
“Breakfast—and rustle,” called out Stewart, without ceremony.
“Breakfast—and rustle,” shouted Stewart, without any formality.
“No need to tell me to rustle,” said Helen. “I am simply ravenous. This air makes me hungry.”
“No need to tell me to hurry up,” Helen said. “I’m just so hungry. This air makes me crave food.”
For that matter, Madeline observed Helen did not show any marked contrast to the others. The hurry order, however, did not interfere with the meal being somewhat in the nature of a picnic. While they ate and talked and laughed the cowboys were packing horses and burros and throwing the diamond-hitch, a procedure so interesting to Castleton that he got up with coffee-cup in hand and tramped from one place to another.
For that matter, Madeline noticed that Helen didn't stand out much from the others. The rush to get things done, however, didn’t stop the meal from feeling a bit like a picnic. While they ate, talked, and laughed, the cowboys were packing horses and burros and tying the diamond hitch, a process that was so intriguing to Castleton that he got up with his coffee cup in hand and walked around from one spot to another.
“Heard of that diamond-hitch-up,” he observed to a cowboy. “Bally nice little job!”
“Heard of that diamond hitch-up,” he said to a cowboy. “Really nice little job!”
As soon as the pack-train was in readiness Stewart started it off in the lead to break trail. A heavy growth of shrub interspersed with rock and cactus covered the slopes; and now all the trail appeared to be uphill. It was not a question of comfort for Madeline and her party, for comfort was impossible; it was a matter of making the travel possible for him. Florence wore corduroy breeches and high-top boots, and the advantage of this masculine garb was at once in evidence. The riding-habits of the other ladies suffered considerably from the sharp spikes. It took all Madeline’s watchfulness to save her horse’s legs, to pick the best bits of open ground, to make cut-offs from the trail, and to protect herself from outreaching thorny branches, so that the time sped by without her knowing it. The pack-train forged ahead, and the trailing couples grew farther apart. At noon they got out of the foothills to face the real ascent of the mountains. The sun beat down hot. There was little breeze, and the dust rose thick and hung in a pall. The view was restricted, and what scenery lay open to the eye was dreary and drab, a barren monotony of slow-mounting slopes ridged by rocky canyons.
As soon as the pack train was ready, Stewart set off at the front to break trail. A dense growth of shrubs mixed with rocks and cacti covered the slopes, and now the entire trail felt like it was uphill. For Madeline and her group, it wasn’t about comfort—comfort was impossible; it was about making the trip manageable for him. Florence wore corduroy pants and high-top boots, and the benefits of this men’s attire were immediately clear. The riding outfits of the other women were greatly hindered by the sharp thorns. Madeline had to stay vigilant to protect her horse’s legs, find the best bits of open ground, make shortcuts from the trail, and avoid the reaching thorny branches, making the time pass without her noticing. The pack train moved ahead, and the couples lagging behind grew farther apart. At noon, they finally emerged from the foothills to face the real climb of the mountains. The sun beat down fiercely. There was little breeze, and the dust rose thickly, hanging in a heavy cloud. The view was limited, and what scenery was visible felt dreary and dull, a barren stretch of gently rising slopes marked by rocky canyons.
Once Stewart waited for Madeline, and as she came up he said:
Once Stewart waited for Madeline, and as she approached, he said:
“We’re going to have a storm.”
“We're going to have a storm.”
“That will be a relief. It’s so hot and dusty,” replied Madeline.
"That'll be a relief. It's so hot and dusty," Madeline replied.
“Shall I call a halt and make camp?”
“Should I stop and set up camp?”
“Here? Oh no! What do you think best?”
“Here? Oh no! What do you think is best?”
“Well, if we have a good healthy thunder-storm it will be something new for your friends. I think we’d be wise to keep on the go. There’s no place to make a good camp. The wind would blow us off this slope if the rain didn’t wash us off. It’ll take all-day travel to reach a good camp-site, and I don’t promise that. We’re making slow time. If it rains, let it rain. The pack outfit is well covered. We will have to get wet.”
“Well, if we get a good healthy thunderstorm, it’ll be something new for your friends. I think we should keep moving. There’s nowhere to set up a good camp. The wind would blow us off this slope if the rain didn’t wash us away. It’ll take all day to reach a decent campsite, and I can’t guarantee that. We’re making slow progress. If it rains, let it rain. The gear is well covered. We’re going to get wet.”
“Surely,” replied Madeline; and she smiled at his inference. She knew what a storm was in that country, and her guests had yet to experience one. “If it rains, let it rain.”
“Of course,” replied Madeline; and she smiled at his suggestion. She was aware of how intense a storm could be in that region, and her guests had yet to witness one. “If it rains, let it rain.”
Stewart rode on, and Madeline followed. Up the slope toiled and nodded the pack-animals, the little burros going easily where the horses labored. Their packs, like the humps of camels, bobbed from side to side. Stones rattled down; the heat-waves wavered black; the dust puffed up and sailed. The sky was a pale blue, like heated steel, except where dark clouds peeped over the mountain crests. A heavy, sultry atmosphere made breathing difficult. Down the slope the trailing party stretched out in twos and threes, and it was easy to distinguish the weary riders.
Stewart continued to ride forward, with Madeline following behind. The pack animals struggled up the slope, the little donkeys moving effortlessly while the horses labored. Their loads swayed from side to side, resembling the humps of camels. Stones tumbled down the hill; the heat waves shimmered like dark mirages; dust rose and floated away. The sky was a light blue, similar to heated metal, except where dark clouds peeked over the mountain tops. The heavy, muggy air made it hard to breathe. Down the slope, the trailing group spread out in pairs and threes, making it easy to spot the tired riders.
Half a mile farther up Madeline could see over the foothills to the north and west and a little south, and she forgot the heat and weariness and discomfort for her guests in wide, unlimited prospects of sun-scorched earth. She marked the gray valley and the black mountains and the wide, red gateway of the desert, and the dim, shadowy peaks, blue as the sky they pierced. She was sorry when the bleak, gnarled cedar-trees shut off her view.
Half a mile further along, Madeline could see over the foothills to the north, west, and slightly south. She forgot about the heat, fatigue, and discomfort for her guests as she took in the vast, sun-baked landscape. She noted the gray valley, the dark mountains, and the wide, red entrance to the desert, along with the faint, shadowy peaks that were as blue as the sky above. She felt a sense of loss when the twisted, gnarled cedar trees blocked her view.
Then there came a respite from the steep climb, and the way led in a winding course through a matted, storm-wrenched forest of stunted trees. Even up to this elevation the desert reached with its gaunt hand. The clouds overspreading the sky, hiding the sun, made a welcome change. The pack-train rested, and Stewart and Madeline waited for the party to come up. Here he briefly explained to her that Don Carlos and his bandits had left the ranch some time in the night. Thunder rumbled in the distance, and a faint wind rustled the scant foliage of the cedars. The air grew oppressive; the horses panted.
Then there was a break from the steep climb, and the path twisted through a tangled, storm-battered forest of short trees. Even at this height, the desert stretched its bony fingers. The clouds covering the sky, blocking the sun, were a welcome change. The pack train took a break, and Stewart and Madeline waited for the group to catch up. Here he quickly explained to her that Don Carlos and his bandits had left the ranch sometime during the night. Thunder rumbled in the distance, and a light wind stirred the sparse leaves of the cedars. The air became heavy; the horses were panting.
“Sure it’ll be a hummer,” said Stewart. “The first storm almost always is bad. I can feel it in the air.”
“Yeah, it’s going to be a big one,” said Stewart. “The first storm is usually always rough. I can feel it in the air.”
The air, indeed, seemed to be charged with a heavy force that was waiting to be liberated.
The air felt heavy, like there was a strong force just waiting to be unleashed.
One by one the couples mounted to the cedar forest, and the feminine contingent declaimed eloquently for rest. But there was to be no permanent rest until night and then that depended upon reaching the crags. The pack-train wagged onward, and Stewart fell in behind. The storm-center gathered slowly around the peaks; low rumble and howl of thunder increased in frequence; slowly the light shaded as smoky clouds rolled up; the air grew sultrier, and the exasperating breeze puffed a few times and then failed.
One by one, the couples headed up to the cedar forest, and the women passionately called for a break. But there would be no lasting rest until night, which relied on reaching the cliffs. The pack train moved steadily forward, and Stewart followed behind. The storm was gradually building around the peaks; the low rumble and howl of thunder became more frequent; the light dimmed as smoky clouds rolled in; the air became more humid, and the annoying breeze puffed a few times before dying out.
An hour later the party had climbed high and was rounding the side of a great bare ridge that long had hidden the crags. The last burro of the pack-train plodded over the ridge out of Madeline’s sight. She looked backward down the slope, amused to see her guests change wearily from side to side in their saddles. Far below lay the cedar flat and the foothills. Far to the west the sky was still clear, with shafts of sunlight shooting down from behind the encroaching clouds.
An hour later, the group had climbed up high and was going around the side of a large, bare ridge that had long obscured the rocky cliffs. The last burro from the pack train trudged over the ridge, disappearing from Madeline’s view. She looked back down the slope, finding it entertaining to see her guests swaying tiredly from side to side in their saddles. Down below stretched the cedar flat and the foothills. To the west, the sky remained clear, with rays of sunlight breaking through the advancing clouds.
Stewart reached the summit of the ridge and, though only a few rods ahead, he waved to her, sweeping his hand round to what he saw beyond. It was an impressive gesture, and Madeline, never having climbed as high as this, anticipated much.
Stewart reached the top of the ridge and, just a few yards ahead, he waved to her, gesturing with his hand to what he could see beyond. It was a striking gesture, and Madeline, who had never climbed this high before, had high hopes.
Majesty surmounted the last few steps and, snorting, halted beside Stewart’s black. To Madeline the scene was as if the world had changed. The ridge was a mountain-top. It dropped before her into a black, stone-ridged, shrub-patched, many-canyoned gulf. Eastward, beyond the gulf, round, bare mountain-heads loomed up. Upward, on the right, led giant steps of cliff and bench and weathered slope to the fir-bordered and pine-fringed crags standing dark and bare against the stormy sky. Massed inky clouds were piling across the peaks, obscuring the highest ones. A fork of white lightning flashed, and, like the booming of an avalanche, thunder followed.
Majesty climbed the last few steps and, snorting, stopped next to Stewart's black horse. For Madeline, it felt like the world had transformed. The ridge was at the top of a mountain. It dropped before her into a dark, rocky, shrub-covered, canyon-filled abyss. To the east, beyond the gulf, round, bare mountain tops loomed in the distance. To the right, giant cliffs and weathered slopes led up to the fir and pine-covered crags that stood dark and exposed against the stormy sky. Thick, dark clouds were gathering over the peaks, hiding the tallest ones. A flash of white lightning struck, and thunder rolled in like the sound of an avalanche.
That bold world of broken rock under the slow mustering of storm-clouds was a grim, awe-inspiring spectacle. It had beauty, but beauty of the sublime and majestic kind. The fierce desert had reached up to meet the magnetic heights where heat and wind and frost and lightning and flood contended in everlasting strife. And before their onslaught this mighty upflung world of rugged stone was crumbling, splitting, wearing to ruin.
That striking landscape of jagged rock beneath the slowly gathering storm clouds was a stark, breathtaking sight. It had a beauty that was both grand and majestic. The harsh desert had extended to meet the towering heights where heat, wind, frost, lightning, and flood battled in an endless struggle. And under their assault, this powerful, elevated world of rough stone was breaking down, splitting, and wearing away to decay.
Madeline glanced at Stewart. He had forgotten her presence. Immovable as stone, he sat his horse, dark-faced, dark-eyed, and, like an Indian unconscious of thought, he watched and watched. To see him thus, to divine the strange affinity between the soul of this man, become primitive, and the savage environment that had developed him, were powerful helps to Madeline Hammond in her strange desire to understand his nature.
Madeline looked at Stewart. He had completely forgotten she was there. Motionless as a statue, he sat on his horse, with a dark face and dark eyes, watching intently like someone lost in thought. Seeing him like this, trying to grasp the odd connection between his primitive soul and the wild surroundings that shaped him, gave Madeline Hammond a strong urge to understand his true nature.
A cracking of iron-shod hoofs behind her broke the spell. Monty had reached the summit.
A loud sound of iron-shod hooves behind her shattered the moment. Monty had arrived at the top.
“Gene, what it won’t all be doin’ in a minnut Moses hisself couldn’t tell,” observed Monty.
“Gene, no one really knows what will be happening in a minute, not even Moses himself,” Monty commented.
Then Dorothy climbed to his side and looked.
Then Dorothy climbed up next to him and looked.
“Oh, isn’t it just perfectly lovely!” she exclaimed. “But I wish it wouldn’t storm. We’ll all get wet.”
“Oh, isn’t it just so beautiful!” she exclaimed. “But I wish it wouldn’t storm. We’re all going to get wet.”
Once more Stewart faced the ascent, keeping to the slow heave of the ridge as it rose southward toward the looming spires of rock. Soon he was off smooth ground, and Madeline, some rods behind him, looked back with concern at her friends. Here the real toil, the real climb began, and a mountain storm was about to burst in all its fury.
Once again, Stewart faced the climb, sticking to the gradual slope of the ridge as it rose south toward the towering rock formations. Soon, he was off the smooth ground, and Madeline, a bit behind him, glanced back at her friends with worry. This was where the real hard work, the real ascent began, and a mountain storm was about to unleash its full force.
The slope that Stewart entered upon was a magnificent monument to the ruined crags above. It was a southerly slope, and therefore semi-arid, covered with cercocarpus and yucca and some shrub that Madeline believed was manzanita. Every foot of the trail seemed to slide under Majesty. What hard ground there was could not be traveled upon, owing to the spiny covering or masses of shattered rocks. Gullies lined the slope.
The slope that Stewart walked onto was an impressive tribute to the ruined cliffs above. It faced south, making it semi-arid, and was covered with cercocarpus, yucca, and some bushes that Madeline thought might be manzanita. Every step on the trail felt like it was sliding under Majesty. The hard ground that existed was hard to walk on because of the spiky coverage or piles of broken rocks. Gullies carved through the slope.
Then the sky grew blacker; the slow-gathering clouds appeared to be suddenly agitated; they piled and rolled and mushroomed and obscured the crags. The air moved heavily and seemed to be laden with sulphurous smoke, and sharp lightning flashes began to play. A distant roar of wind could be heard between the peals of thunder.
Then the sky got darker; the slowly gathering clouds seemed to suddenly stir up; they piled up, rolled, and spread out, hiding the cliffs. The air felt thick, like it was filled with sulfurous smoke, and bright flashes of lightning started to light up the sky. A distant roar of wind could be heard between the cracks of thunder.
Stewart waited for Madeline under the lee of a shelving cliff, where the cowboys had halted the pack-train. Majesty was sensitive to the flashes of lightning. Madeline patted his neck and softly called to him. The weary burros nodded; the Mexican women covered their heads with their mantles. Stewart untied the slicker at the back of Madeline’s saddle and helped her on with it. Then he put on his own. The other cowboys followed suit. Presently Madeline saw Monty and Dorothy rounding the cliff, and hoped the others would come soon.
Stewart waited for Madeline under the overhang of a sloping cliff, where the cowboys had stopped the pack train. Majesty was jumpy from the flashes of lightning. Madeline patted his neck and softly called out to him. The tired burros nodded; the Mexican women wrapped their heads in their shawls. Stewart untied the raincoat from the back of Madeline’s saddle and helped her put it on. Then he put on his own. The other cowboys did the same. Soon, Madeline spotted Monty and Dorothy coming around the cliff and hoped the others would arrive soon.
A blue-white, knotted rope of lightning burned down out of the clouds, and instantly a thunder-clap crashed, seeming to shake the foundations of the earth. Then it rolled, as if banging from cloud to cloud, and boomed along the peaks, and reverberated from deep to low, at last to rumble away into silence. Madeline felt the electricity in Majesty’s mane, and it seemed to tingle through her nerves. The air had a weird, bright cast. The ponderous clouds swallowed more and more of the eastern domes. This moment of the breaking of the storm, with the strange growing roar of wind, like a moaning monster, was pregnant with a heart-disturbing emotion for Madeline Hammond. Glorious it was to be free, healthy, out in the open, under the shadow of the mountain and cloud, in the teeth of the wind and rain and storm.
A bright blue-white bolt of lightning shot down from the clouds, followed instantly by a thunderclap that seemed to shake the ground beneath her. The sound rolled like it was bouncing from cloud to cloud, booming across the peaks, and echoed from high to low, finally fading away into silence. Madeline could feel the electricity in Majesty’s mane, a tingling sensation that traveled through her nerves. The air had a strange, bright quality. The heavy clouds continued to engulf more of the eastern peaks. This moment, as the storm began to break with the eerie rising roar of the wind, like a restless monster, filled Madeline Hammond with a deep, unsettling emotion. It was glorious to be free, healthy, and out in the open, beneath the shadow of the mountain and clouds, facing the wind, rain, and storm.
Another dazzling blue blaze showed the bold mountain-side and the storm-driven clouds. In the flare of light Madeline saw Stewart’s face.
Another bright blue flash illuminated the steep mountain side and the stormy clouds. In the light, Madeline saw Stewart's face.
“Are you afraid?” she asked.
"Are you scared?" she asked.
“Yes,” he replied, simply.
“Yeah,” he replied, simply.
Then the thunderbolt racked the heavens, and as it boomed away in lessening power Madeline reflected with surprise upon Stewart’s answer. Something in his face had made her ask him what she considered a foolish question. His reply amazed her. She loved a storm. Why should he fear it—he, with whom she could not associate fear?
Then the lightning struck the sky, and as it faded into the distance, Madeline was taken aback by Stewart’s answer. Something in his expression had prompted her to ask what she thought was a silly question. His response shocked her. She loved a storm. Why should he be afraid of it—he, whom she couldn’t imagine being afraid?
“How strange! Have you not been out in many storms?”
“How weird! Haven't you been caught in a lot of storms?”
A smile that was only a gleam flitted over his dark face.
A fleeting smile appeared on his dark face.
“In hundreds of them. By day, with the cattle stampeding. At night, alone on the mountain, with the pines crashing and the rocks rolling—in flood on the desert.”
“In hundreds of them. By day, with the cattle running wild. At night, alone on the mountain, with the pines crashing and the rocks tumbling—in flood on the desert.”
“It’s not only the lightning, then?” she asked.
“It’s not just the lightning, then?” she asked.
“No. All the storm.”
“No. All the chaos.”
Madeline felt that henceforth she would have less faith in what she had imagined was her love of the elements. What little she knew! If this iron-nerved man feared a storm, then there was something about a storm to fear.
Madeline realized that from now on, she would have less faith in what she had thought was her love for nature. How little she understood! If this tough man was afraid of a storm, then there was definitely something to fear about a storm.
And suddenly, as the ground quaked under her horse’s feet, and all the sky grew black and crisscrossed by flaming streaks, and between thunderous reports there was a strange hollow roar sweeping down upon her, she realized how small was her knowledge and experience of the mighty forces of nature. Then, with that perversity of character of which she was wholly conscious, she was humble, submissive, reverent, and fearful even while she gloried in the grandeur of the dark, cloud-shadowed crags and canyons, the stupendous strife of sound, the wonderful driving lances of white fire.
And suddenly, as the ground shook beneath her horse's hooves, and the sky turned dark and was slashed by bursts of flame, and in between the booming sounds there was an odd, hollow roar rushing towards her, she realized how little she truly understood about the powerful forces of nature. Then, with that stubbornness she was fully aware of, she felt humble, submissive, reverent, and scared even while reveling in the majesty of the dark, cloud-covered peaks and canyons, the incredible clash of sounds, and the amazing spears of white fire.
With blacker gloom and deafening roar came the torrent of rain. It was a cloud-burst. It was like solid water tumbling down. For long Madeline sat her horse, head bent to the pelting rain. When its force lessened and she heard Stewart call for all to follow, she looked up to see that he was starting once more. She shot a glimpse at Dorothy and as quickly glanced away. Dorothy, who would not wear a hat suitable for inclement weather, nor one of the horrid yellow, sticky slickers, was a drenched and disheveled spectacle. Madeline did not trust herself to look at the other girls. It was enough to hear their lament. So she turned her horse into Stewart’s trail.
With an even darker sky and a deafening roar, the rain poured down like a waterfall. It was a cloudburst, like solid water crashing down. Madeline sat on her horse for a long time, her head bowed against the pounding rain. When the intensity subsided and she heard Stewart calling for everyone to follow, she looked up to see he was starting again. She stole a glance at Dorothy and quickly looked away. Dorothy, who refused to wear a hat that would protect her from the rain or one of those awful yellow, sticky raincoats, looked soaked and messy. Madeline didn’t trust herself to look at the other girls; it was enough to hear their complaints. So, she guided her horse onto Stewart’s path.
Rain fell steadily. The fury of the storm, however, had passed, and the roll of thunder diminished in volume. The air had wonderfully cleared and was growing cool. Madeline began to feel uncomfortably cold and wet. Stewart was climbing faster than formerly, and she noted that Monty kept at her heels, pressing her on. Time had been lost, and the camp-site was a long way off. The stag-hounds began to lag and get footsore. The sharp rocks of the trail were cruel to their feet. Then, as Madeline began to tire, she noticed less and less around her. The ascent grew rougher and steeper—slow toil for panting horses. The thinning rain grew colder, and sometimes a stronger whip of wind lashed stingingly in Madeline’s face. Her horse climbed and climbed, and brush and sharp corners of stone everlastingly pulled and tore at her wet garments. A gray gloom settled down around her. Night was approaching. Majesty heaved upward with a snort, the wet saddle creaked, and an even motion told Madeline she was on level ground. She looked up to see looming crags and spires, like huge pipe-organs, dark at the base and growing light upward. The rain had ceased, but the branches of fir-trees and juniper were water-soaked arms reaching out for her. Through an opening between crags Madeline caught a momentary glimpse of the west. Red sun-shafts shone through the murky, broken clouds. The sun had set.
Rain fell steadily. The intensity of the storm had passed, and the rumble of thunder faded away. The air had cleared beautifully and was getting cooler. Madeline started to feel uncomfortably cold and wet. Stewart was climbing faster than before, and she noticed that Monty stayed right behind her, pushing her forward. Time was slipping away, and the campsite was a long way off. The stag-hounds began to lag and showed signs of fatigue. The sharp rocks of the trail were harsh on their paws. As Madeline started to tire, she noticed less and less around her. The climb became rougher and steeper—hard work for the panting horses. The rain lessened but became colder, and occasionally a stronger gust of wind stung her face. Her horse kept climbing, and branches and sharp edges of stone constantly pulled and tore at her wet clothes. A gray gloom settled around her. Night was coming. Majesty snorted and heaved upward, the wet saddle creaking, and an even motion indicated to Madeline that she was on level ground. She looked up to see towering crags and spires, like enormous pipe organs, dark at the bottom and brightening at the top. The rain had stopped, but the branches of fir trees and junipers hung heavily, like water-soaked arms reaching out for her. Through a gap between the rocks, Madeline caught a brief glimpse of the west. Red shafts of sunlight broke through the murky, fragmented clouds. The sun had set.
Stewart’s horse was on a jog-trot now, and Madeline left the trail more to Majesty than to her own choosing. The shadows deepened, and the crags grew gloomy and spectral. A cool wind moaned through the dark trees. Coyotes, scenting the hounds, kept apace of them, and barked and howled off in the gloom. But the tired hounds did not appear to notice.
Stewart’s horse was now at a jog-trot, and Madeline followed the path more because of Majesty than her own decision. The shadows got darker, and the cliffs looked eerie and ghostly. A cool wind sighed through the dark trees. Coyotes, picking up the scent of the hounds, stayed close behind them, barking and howling in the darkness. But the weary hounds seemed oblivious.
As black night began to envelop her surroundings, Madeline marked that the fir-trees had given place to pine forest. Suddenly a pin-point of light pierced the ebony blackness. Like a solitary star in dark sky it twinkled and blinked. She lost sight of it—found it again. It grew larger. Black tree-trunks crossed her line of vision. The light was a fire. She heard a cowboy song and the wild chorus of a pack of coyotes. Drops of rain on the branches of trees glittered in the rays of the fire. Stewart’s tall figure, with sombrero slouched down, was now and then outlined against a growing circle of light. And by the aid of that light she saw him turn every moment or so to look back, probably to assure himself that she was close behind.
As the dark night started to surround her, Madeline noticed that the fir trees had given way to a pine forest. Suddenly, a tiny point of light broke through the pitch-black darkness. It twinkled and blinked like a solitary star in the sky. She lost sight of it briefly but then spotted it again as it grew larger. Dark tree trunks crossed her field of vision. The light was a fire. She heard a cowboy song along with the wild chorus of a pack of coyotes. Raindrops on the tree branches sparkled in the firelight. Stewart's tall figure, with his sombrero tilted down, was occasionally highlighted against the expanding circle of light. With the help of that light, she saw him turn every so often to look back, probably to make sure she was still close behind.
With a prospect of fire and warmth, and food and rest, Madeline’s enthusiasm revived. What a climb! There was promise in this wild ride and lonely trail and hidden craggy height, not only in the adventure her friends yearned for, but in some nameless joy and spirit for herself.
With the promise of fire, warmth, food, and rest, Madeline’s excitement came back to life. What a journey! There was something to look forward to in this wild ride, the lonely path, and the hidden rocky heights—not just in the adventure her friends longed for, but in an indescribable joy and energy for herself.
XVI. The Crags
Glad indeed was Madeline to be lifted off her horse beside a roaring fire—to see steaming pots upon red-hot coals. Except about her shoulders, which had been protected by the slicker, she was wringing wet. The Mexican women came quickly to help her change in a tent near by; but Madeline preferred for the moment to warm her numb feet and hands and to watch the spectacle of her arriving friends.
Glad was Madeline to be taken off her horse next to a roaring fire—to see steaming pots on red-hot coals. Except for her shoulders, which had been protected by the slicker, she was soaking wet. The Mexican women quickly came to help her change in a nearby tent; but Madeline preferred, for now, to warm her numb feet and hands and watch the spectacle of her arriving friends.
Dorothy plumped off her saddle into the arms of several waiting cowboys. She could scarcely walk. Far removed in appearance was she from her usual stylish self. Her face was hidden by a limp and lopsided hat. From under the disheveled brim came a plaintive moan: “O-h-h! what a-an a-awful ride!” Mrs. Beck was in worse condition; she had to be taken off her horse. “I’m paralyzed—I’m a wreck. Bobby, get a roller-chair.” Bobby was solicitous and willing, but there were no roller-chairs. Florence dismounted easily, and but for her mass of hair, wet and tumbling, would have been taken for a handsome cowboy. Edith Wayne had stood the physical strain of the ride better than Dorothy; however, as her mount was rather small, she had been more at the mercy of cactus and brush. Her habit hung in tatters. Helen had preserved a remnant of style, as well as of pride, and perhaps a little strength. But her face was white, her eyes were big, and she limped. “Majesty!” she exclaimed. “What did you want to do to us? Kill us outright or make us homesick?” Of all of them, however, Ambrose’s wife, Christine, the little French maid, had suffered the most in that long ride. She was unaccustomed to horses. Ambrose had to carry her into the big tent. Florence persuaded Madeline to leave the fire, and when they went in with the others Dorothy was wailing because her wet boots would not come off, Mrs. Beck was weeping and trying to direct a Mexican woman to unfasten her bedraggled dress, and there was general pandemonium.
Dorothy jumped off her saddle and landed in the arms of a few waiting cowboys. She could barely walk. She looked nothing like her usual stylish self. Her face was hidden under a floppy, crooked hat. From beneath the messy brim, she moaned, “Oh! What an awful ride!” Mrs. Beck was in worse shape; she had to be helped off her horse. “I’m paralyzed—I’m a wreck. Bobby, get me a wheelchair.” Bobby was eager to help, but there were no wheelchairs available. Florence got off her horse easily, and if it weren't for her messy, wet hair, she could have been mistaken for a handsome cowboy. Edith Wayne had handled the physical toll of the ride better than Dorothy; however, her smaller horse left her more vulnerable to cactus and brush. Her outfit was ripped to shreds. Helen managed to keep some sense of style, along with a bit of pride and perhaps a little strength. But her face was pale, her eyes were wide, and she was limping. “Majesty!” she exclaimed. “What did you want to do to us? Kill us outright or make us homesick?” However, out of everyone, Ambrose’s wife, Christine, the little French maid, had suffered the most during that long ride. She was not used to riding horses. Ambrose had to carry her into the big tent. Florence convinced Madeline to leave the fire, and when they entered with the others, Dorothy was crying because her wet boots wouldn't come off, Mrs. Beck was in tears trying to get a Mexican woman to untangle her soaked dress, and there was complete chaos.
“Warm clothes—hot drinks and grub—warm blankets,” rang out Stewart’s sharp order.
“Warm clothes—hot drinks and food—warm blankets,” Stewart's command echoed.
Then, with Florence helping the Mexican women, it was not long until Madeline and the feminine side of the party were comfortable, except for the weariness and aches that only rest and sleep could alleviate.
Then, with Florence assisting the Mexican women, it didn’t take long for Madeline and the women in the group to feel comfortable, aside from the tiredness and soreness that only rest and sleep could ease.
Neither fatigue nor pains, however, nor the strangeness of being packed sardine-like under canvas, nor the howls of coyotes, kept Madeline’s guests from stretching out with long, grateful sighs, and one by one dropping into deep slumber. Madeline whispered a little to Florence, and laughed with her once or twice, and then the light flickering on the canvas faded and her eyelids closed. Darkness and roar of camp life, low voices of men, thump of horses’ hoofs, coyote serenade, the sense of warmth and sweet rest—all drifted away.
Neither tiredness nor aches, nor the odd feeling of being crammed together under a tent, nor the howls of coyotes, stopped Madeline’s guests from stretching out with long, grateful sighs and eventually falling into a deep sleep one by one. Madeline whispered a bit to Florence, shared a laugh or two with her, and then the flickering light on the canvas dimmed and her eyelids closed. The darkness and noise of camp life, the low voices of men, the sound of horses’ hooves, the serenade of coyotes, the feeling of warmth and sweet rest—all faded away.
When she awakened shadows of swaying branches moved on the sunlit canvas above her. She heard the ringing strokes of an ax, but no other sound from outside. Slow, regular breathing attested to the deep slumbers of her tent comrades. She observed presently that Florence was missing from the number. Madeline rose and peeped out between the flaps.
When she woke up, shadows from the swaying branches danced on the sunlit canvas above her. She could hear the rhythmic sound of an ax chopping wood, but there were no other noises from outside. The slow, steady breathing of her tent mates proved they were still fast asleep. She noticed that Florence was absent from the group. Madeline got up and peeked out between the flaps.
An exquisitely beautiful scene surprised and enthralled her gaze. She saw a level space, green with long grass, bright with flowers, dotted with groves of graceful firs and pines and spruces, reaching to superb crags, rosy and golden in the sunlight. Eager to get out where she could enjoy an unrestricted view, she searched for her pack, found it in a corner, and then hurriedly and quietly dressed.
An incredibly beautiful scene caught and captivated her attention. She saw a flat area, covered in long green grass, vibrant with flowers, and scattered with clusters of elegant firs, pines, and spruces, stretching towards breathtaking cliffs that glowed rosy and golden in the sunlight. Excited to step out for an unobstructed view, she looked for her pack, found it in a corner, and quickly and quietly got dressed.
Her favorite stag-hounds, Russ and Tartar, were asleep before the door, where they had been chained. She awakened them and loosened them, thinking the while that it must have been Stewart who had chained them near her. Close at hand also was a cowboy’s bed rolled up in a tarpaulin.
Her favorite stag-hounds, Russ and Tartar, were sleeping by the door, where they had been tied up. She woke them up and set them free, thinking it must have been Stewart who had secured them near her. Nearby was a cowboy’s bed, rolled up in a tarp.
The cool air, fragrant with pine and spruce and some subtle nameless tang, sweet and tonic, made Madeline stand erect and breathe slowly and deeply. It was like drinking of a magic draught. She felt it in her blood, that it quickened its flow. Turning to look in the other direction, beyond the tent, she saw the remnants of last night’s temporary camp, and farther on a grove of beautiful pines from which came the sharp ring of the ax. Wider gaze took in a wonderful park, not only surrounded by lofty crags, but full of crags of lesser height, many lifting their heads from dark-green groves of trees. The morning sun, not yet above the eastern elevations, sent its rosy and golden shafts in between the towering rocks, to tip the pines.
The cool air, fragrant with pine and spruce and a subtle, unnamed scent, sweet and refreshing, made Madeline stand tall and breathe slowly and deeply. It felt like sipping a magical potion. She felt it in her blood, invigorating her. Turning to look the other way, beyond the tent, she saw the remnants of last night’s temporary camp, and further on, a grove of beautiful pines where the sharp sound of an ax echoed. A wider view revealed a stunning park, not only surrounded by tall cliffs but also filled with shorter ones, many rising from dark green groves of trees. The morning sun, still not above the eastern peaks, sent its rosy and golden rays between the towering rocks, illuminating the pines.
Madeline, with the hounds beside her, walked through the nearest grove. The ground was soft and springy and brown with pine-needles. Then she saw that a clump of trees had prevented her from seeing the most striking part of this natural park. The cowboys had selected a campsite where they would have the morning sun and afternoon shade. Several tents and flies were already up; there was a huge lean-to made of spruce boughs; cowboys were busy round several camp-fires; piles of packs lay covered with tarpaulins, and beds were rolled up under the trees. This space was a kind of rolling meadow, with isolated trees here and there, and other trees in aisles and circles; and it mounted up in low, grassy banks to great towers of stone five hundred feet high. Other crags rose behind these. From under a mossy cliff, huge and green and cool, bubbled a full, clear spring. Wild flowers fringed its banks. Out in the meadow the horses were knee-deep in grass that waved in the morning breeze.
Madeline, with the hounds beside her, walked through the nearest grove. The ground was soft, springy, and covered in brown pine needles. Then she noticed that a cluster of trees had blocked her view of the most stunning part of this natural park. The cowboys had chosen a campsite where they would get morning sunlight and afternoon shade. Several tents and canopies were already set up; there was a large lean-to made of spruce branches; cowboys were busy around several campfires; stacks of packs were covered with tarps, and beds were rolled up under the trees. This area was like a rolling meadow, with scattered trees here and there, and other trees forming aisles and circles; it sloped up into low, grassy hills leading to towering stone formations five hundred feet high. Other crags rose behind these. From underneath a mossy cliff, large, green, and cool, flowed a clear spring. Wildflowers bordered its banks. In the meadow, the horses stood knee-deep in grass that swayed in the morning breeze.
Florence espied Madeline under the trees and came running. She was like a young girl, with life and color and joy. She wore a flannel blouse, corduroy skirt, and moccasins. And her hair was fastened under a band like an Indian’s.
Florence spotted Madeline under the trees and hurried over. She looked like a young girl, full of life, color, and joy. She was wearing a flannel blouse, a corduroy skirt, and moccasins. Her hair was tied back with a band like an Indian's.
“Castleton’s gone with a gun, for hours, it seems,” said Florence. “Gene just went to hunt him up. The other gentlemen are still asleep. I imagine they sure will sleep up heah in this air.”
“Castleton’s been gone with a gun for hours, it feels like,” said Florence. “Gene just went to track him down. The other guys are still asleep. I bet they’ll really sleep well up here in this air.”
Then, business-like, Florence fell to questioning Madeline about details of camp arrangement which Stewart, and Florence herself, could hardly see to without suggestion.
Then, in a business-like manner, Florence started asking Madeline about the details of the camp setup that Stewart and Florence herself could hardly manage without some guidance.
Before any of Madeline’s sleepy guests awakened the camp was completed. Madeline and Florence had a tent under a pine-tree, but they did not intend to sleep in it except during stormy weather. They spread a tarpaulin, made their bed on it, and elected to sleep under the light of the stars. After that, taking the hounds with them, they explored. To Madeline’s surprise, the park was not a little half-mile nook nestling among the crags, but extended farther than they cared to walk, and was rather a series of parks. They were no more than small valleys between gray-toothed peaks. As the day advanced the charm of the place grew upon Madeline. Even at noon, with the sun beating down, there was comfortable warmth rather than heat. It was the kind of warmth that Madeline liked to feel in the spring. And the sweet, thin, rare atmosphere began to affect her strangely. She breathed deeply of it until she felt light-headed, as if her body lacked substance and might drift away like a thistledown. All at once she grew uncomfortably sleepy. A dreamy languor possessed her, and, lying under a pine with her head against Florence, she went to sleep. When she opened her eyes the shadows of the crags stretched from the west, and between them streamed a red-gold light. It was hazy, smoky sunshine losing its fire. The afternoon had far advanced. Madeline sat up. Florence was lazily reading. The two Mexican women were at work under the fly where the big stone fireplace had been erected. No one else was in sight.
Before any of Madeline’s sleepy guests woke up, the camp was all set up. Madeline and Florence had a tent under a pine tree, but they planned to only sleep in it during stormy weather. They laid out a tarpaulin, made their bed on it, and chose to sleep under the stars. After that, they took the hounds with them and went exploring. To Madeline’s surprise, the park wasn’t just a little half-mile nook tucked away among the rocks, but it extended farther than they wanted to walk and was more like a series of parks. They were really just small valleys between gray peaks. As the day went on, the charm of the place began to grow on Madeline. Even at noon, with the sun beating down, it felt warm and comfortable rather than hot. It was the kind of warmth she loved to feel in the spring. The sweet, light atmosphere started to affect her in a strange way. She breathed it in deeply until she felt a little dizzy, as if her body had become weightless and might float away like dandelion fluff. Suddenly, she felt unusually sleepy. A dreamy drowsiness came over her, and, lying under a pine tree with her head against Florence, she fell asleep. When she opened her eyes, the shadows from the crags stretched out from the west, and between them streamed a warm, red-gold light. It was hazy, smoky sunshine losing its intensity. The afternoon had gone by quickly. Madeline sat up. Florence was reading lazily. The two Mexican women were working under the fly where the big stone fireplace had been built. No one else was in sight.
Florence, upon being questioned, informed Madeline that incident about camp had been delightfully absent. Castleton had returned and was profoundly sleeping with the other men. Presently a chorus of merry calls attracted Madeline’s attention, and she turned to see Helen limping along with Dorothy, and Mrs. Beck and Edith supporting each other. They were all rested, but lame, and delighted with the place, and as hungry as bears awakened from a winter’s sleep. Madeline forthwith escorted them round the camp, and through the many aisles between the trees, and to the mossy, pine-matted nooks under the crags.
Florence, when asked, told Madeline that the camp incident had been wonderfully absent. Castleton had come back and was deeply asleep with the other men. Soon, a chorus of cheerful calls caught Madeline’s attention, and she turned to see Helen limping along with Dorothy, while Mrs. Beck and Edith supported each other. They were all rested but limping, thrilled with the place, and as hungry as bears waking from a winter's sleep. Madeline quickly led them around the camp, through the various paths between the trees, and to the mossy, pine-covered spots under the crags.
Then they had dinner, sitting on the ground after the manner of Indians; and it was a dinner that lacked merriment only because everybody was too busily appeasing appetite.
Then they had dinner, sitting on the ground like the Indians; and it was a dinner that lacked cheer only because everyone was too focused on satisfying their hunger.
Later Stewart led them across a neck of the park, up a rather steep climb between towering crags, to take them out upon a grassy promontory that faced the great open west—a vast, ridged, streaked, and reddened sweep of earth rolling down, as it seemed, to the golden sunset end of the world. Castleton said it was a jolly fine view; Dorothy voiced her usual languid enthusiasm; Helen was on fire with pleasure and wonder; Mrs. Beck appealed to Bobby to see how he liked it before she ventured, and she then reiterated his praise; and Edith Wayne, like Madeline and Florence, was silent. Boyd was politely interested; he was the kind of man who appeared to care for things as other people cared for them.
Later, Stewart led them across a section of the park, up a steep path between towering cliffs, to a grassy overlook that faced the vast open west—a huge, ridged, streaked, and reddened stretch of land that seemed to roll down to the golden sunset at the edge of the world. Castleton said it was a fantastic view; Dorothy expressed her usual relaxed enthusiasm; Helen was full of pleasure and wonder; Mrs. Beck asked Bobby what he thought of it before she made up her mind, and then she echoed his praise; and Edith Wayne, like Madeline and Florence, was quiet. Boyd was politely interested; he was the kind of guy who seemed to care about things the way others did.
Madeline watched the slow transformation of the changing west, with its haze of desert dust, through which mountain and cloud and sun slowly darkened. She watched until her eyes ached, and scarcely had a thought of what she was watching. When her eyes shifted to encounter the tall form of Stewart standing motionless on the rim, her mind became active again. As usual, he stood apart from the others, and now he seemed aloof and unconscious. He made a dark, powerful figure, and he fitted that wild promontory.
Madeline observed the gradual change in the western sky, with its haze of desert dust, as mountains, clouds, and the sun slowly faded into darkness. She watched until her eyes strained, hardly considering what she was seeing. When her gaze shifted to the tall figure of Stewart standing still on the edge, her mind started to engage again. As always, he stood apart from the others, appearing distant and unaware. He was a striking, formidable presence, perfectly suited to that wild cliffside.
She experienced a strange, annoying surprise when she discovered both Helen and Dorothy watching Stewart with peculiar interest. Edith, too, was alive to the splendid picture the cowboy made. But when Edith smiled and whispered in her ear, “It’s so good to look at a man like that,” Madeline again felt the surprise, only this time the accompaniment was a vague pleasure rather than annoyance. Helen and Dorothy were flirts, one deliberate and skilled, the other unconscious and natural. Edith Wayne, occasionally—and Madeline reflected that the occasions were infrequent—admired a man sincerely. Just here Madeline might have fallen into a somewhat revealing state of mind if it had not been for the fact that she believed Stewart was only an object of deep interest to her, not as a man, but as a part of this wild and wonderful West which was claiming her. So she did not inquire of herself why Helen’s coquetry and Dorothy’s languishing allurement annoyed her, or why Edith’s eloquent smile and words had pleased her. She got as far, however, as to think scornfully how Helen and Dorothy would welcome and meet a flirtation with this cowboy and then go back home and forget him as utterly as if he had never existed. She wondered, too, with a curious twist of feeling that was almost eagerness, how the cowboy would meet their advances. Obviously the situation was unfair to him; and if by some strange accident he escaped unscathed by Dorothy’s beautiful eyes he would never be able to withstand Helen’s subtle and fascinating and imperious personality.
She felt a strange, annoying surprise when she saw both Helen and Dorothy watching Stewart with unusual interest. Edith was also captivated by the impressive image the cowboy presented. But when Edith smiled and whispered in her ear, “It’s so nice to look at a man like that,” Madeline felt surprised again, but this time it came with a vague pleasure instead of annoyance. Helen and Dorothy were flirts, one intentional and skilled, the other unaware and natural. Edith Wayne, occasionally—and Madeline realized that these occasions were rare—genuinely admired a man. At this moment, Madeline might have slipped into a revealing state of mind if it weren’t for the fact that she thought of Stewart as more of a fascinating figure than a man; he represented this wild and wonderful West that was claiming her. So she didn't question why Helen's flirty behavior and Dorothy's alluring looks bothered her, or why Edith’s expressive smile and words had made her happy. However, she did think disdainfully about how Helen and Dorothy would eagerly engage in flirtation with this cowboy, then return home and forget him as if he had never been there. She also wondered, with a curious excitement that was almost eagerness, how the cowboy would respond to their advances. Clearly, the situation was unfair to him; and if, by some odd chance, he avoided the impact of Dorothy's beautiful eyes, he would surely be unable to resist Helen’s subtle, captivating, and commanding personality.
They returned to camp in the cool of the evening and made merry round a blazing camp-fire. But Madeline’s guests soon succumbed to the persistent and irresistible desire to sleep.
They came back to camp in the cool evening and had fun around a blazing campfire. But Madeline’s guests quickly gave in to the persistent and irresistible urge to sleep.
Then Madeline went to bed with Florence under the pine-tree. Russ lay upon one side and Tartar upon the other. The cool night breeze swept over her, fanning her face, waving her hair. It was not strong enough to make any sound through the branches, but it stirred a faint, silken rustle in the long grass. The coyotes began their weird bark and howl. Russ raised his head to growl at their impudence.
Then Madeline went to bed with Florence under the pine tree. Russ lay on one side and Tartar on the other. The cool night breeze swept over her, fanning her face and waving her hair. It wasn't strong enough to create any noise through the branches, but it stirred a faint, silken rustle in the long grass. The coyotes started their strange bark and howl. Russ lifted his head to growl at their audacity.
Madeline faced upward, and it seemed to her that under those wonderful white stars she would never be able to go to sleep. They blinked down through the black-barred, delicate crisscross of pine foliage, and they looked so big and so close. Then she gazed away to open space, where an expanse of sky glittered with stars, and the longer she gazed the larger they grew and the more she saw.
Madeline looked up, and it felt to her like she could never fall asleep under those beautiful white stars. They twinkled through the intricate black pattern of pine branches, looking so big and so close. Then she turned her gaze to the open sky, where a vast space sparkled with stars, and the longer she looked, the larger they became and the more she noticed.
It was her belief that she had come to love all the physical things from which sensations of beauty and mystery and strength poured into her responsive mind; but best of all she loved these Western stars, for they were to have something to do with her life, were somehow to influence her destiny.
It was her belief that she had come to love all the physical things that filled her mind with sensations of beauty, mystery, and strength; but above all, she loved these Western stars, because they were meant to be part of her life and somehow shape her destiny.
For a few days the prevailing features of camp life for Madeline’s guests were sleep and rest. Dorothy Coombs slept through twenty-four hours, and then was so difficult to awaken that for a while her friends were alarmed. Helen almost fell asleep while eating and talking. The men were more visibly affected by the mountain air than the women. Castleton, however, would not succumb to the strange drowsiness while he had a chance to prowl around with a gun.
For a few days, the main aspects of camp life for Madeline’s guests were sleep and relaxation. Dorothy Coombs slept for a full twenty-four hours and then was so hard to wake that her friends became worried for a bit. Helen nearly dozed off while eating and chatting. The men were noticeably more affected by the mountain air than the women. However, Castleton refused to give in to the unusual drowsiness as long as he had the chance to roam around with a gun.
This languorous spell disappeared presently, and then the days were full of life and action. Mrs. Beck and Bobby and Boyd, however, did not go in for anything very strenuous. Edith Wayne, too, preferred to walk through the groves or sit upon the grassy promontory. It was Helen and Dorothy who wanted to explore the crags and canyons, and when they could not get the others to accompany them they went alone, giving the cowboy guides many a long climb.
This slow period ended quickly, and soon the days were filled with energy and activity. Mrs. Beck, Bobby, and Boyd, however, didn’t engage in anything too intense. Edith Wayne also preferred to stroll through the trees or relax on the grassy knoll. It was Helen and Dorothy who wanted to explore the cliffs and canyons, and when they couldn’t convince the others to join them, they went by themselves, giving the cowboy guides quite a workout.
Necessarily, of course, Madeline and her guests were now thrown much in company with the cowboys. And the party grew to be like one big family. Her friends not only adapted themselves admirably to the situation, but came to revel in it. As for Madeline, she saw that outside of a certain proclivity of the cowboys to be gallant and on dress-parade and alive to possibilities of fun and excitement, they were not greatly different from what they were at all times. If there were a leveling process here it was made by her friends coming down to meet the Westerners. Besides, any class of people would tend to grow natural in such circumstances and environment.
Naturally, Madeline and her guests found themselves spending a lot of time with the cowboys. The party turned into one big family. Her friends not only adapted well to the situation but began to enjoy it. As for Madeline, she noticed that aside from the cowboys' tendency to be charming and put on a show while being open to fun and excitement, they weren’t really that different from how they always were. If there was any leveling happening, it was her friends coming down to connect with the Westerners. Plus, any group of people would start to feel more comfortable in such a setting.
Madeline found the situation one of keen and double interest for her. If before she had cared to study her cowboys, particularly Stewart, now, with the contrasts afforded by her guests, she felt by turns she was amused and mystified and perplexed and saddened, and then again subtly pleased.
Madeline found the situation to be both interesting and intriguing for her. If before she had been interested in observing her cowboys, especially Stewart, now, with the contrasts presented by her guests, she felt a mix of amusement, confusion, perplexity, sadness, and then a subtle sense of pleasure.
Monty, once he had overcome his shyness, became a source of delight to Madeline, and, for that matter, to everybody. Monty had suddenly discovered that he was a success among the ladies. Either he was exalted to heroic heights by this knowledge or he made it appear so. Dorothy had been his undoing, and in justice to her Madeline believed her innocent. Dorothy thought Monty hideous to look at, and, accordingly, if he had been a hero a hundred times and had saved a hundred poor little babies’ lives, he could not have interested her. Monty followed her around, reminding her, she told Madeline, of a little adoring dog one moment and the next of a huge, devouring gorilla.
Monty, once he got over his shyness, became a source of joy for Madeline and, honestly, for everyone else. He suddenly realized he was a hit with the ladies. Whether this knowledge inflated his ego or he just made it seem that way, it was hard to tell. Dorothy had been his downfall, and to be fair, Madeline believed she meant no harm. Dorothy found Monty unattractive and, as a result, even if he had been a hero a hundred times and saved a hundred cute babies, she still wouldn’t have been interested in him. Monty followed her around, reminding her, as she told Madeline, of a little adoring dog one minute and a massive, hungry gorilla the next.
Nels and Nick stalked at Helen’s heels like grenadiers on duty, and if she as much as dropped her glove they almost came to blows to see who should pick it up.
Nels and Nick followed Helen closely like soldiers on a mission, and if she even dropped her glove, they nearly fought over who would pick it up.
In a way Castleton was the best feature of the camping party. He was such an absurd-looking little man, and his abilities were at such tremendous odds with what might have been expected of him from his looks. He could ride, tramp, climb, shoot. He liked to help around the camp, and the cowboys could not keep him from it. He had an insatiable desire to do things that were new to him. The cowboys played innumerable tricks upon him, not one of which he ever discovered. He was serious, slow in speech and action, and absolutely imperturbable. If imperturbability could ever be good humor, then he was always good-humored. Presently the cowboys began to understand him, and then to like him. When they liked a man it meant something. Madeline had been sorry more than once to see how little the cowboys chose to speak to Boyd Harvey. With Castleton, however, they actually became friends. They did not know it, and certainly such a thing never occurred to him; all the same, it was a fact. And it grew solely out of the truth that the Englishman was manly in the only way cowboys could have interpreted manliness. When, after innumerable attempts, he succeeded in throwing the diamond-hitch on a pack-horse the cowboys began to respect him. Castleton needed only one more accomplishment to claim their hearts, and he kept trying that—to ride a bucking bronco. One of the cowboys had a bronco that they called Devil. Every day for a week Devil threw the Englishman all over the park, ruined his clothes, bruised him, and finally kicked him. Then the cowboys solicitously tried to make Castleton give up; and this was remarkable enough, for the spectacle of an English lord on a bucking bronco was one that any Westerner would have ridden a thousand miles to see. Whenever Devil threw Castleton the cowboys went into spasms. But Castleton did not know the meaning of the word fail, and there came a day when Devil could not throw him. Then it was a singular sight to see the men line up to shake hands with the cool Englishman. Even Stewart, who had watched from the background, came forward with a warm and pleasant smile on his dark face. When Castleton went to his tent there was much characteristic cowboy talk, and this time vastly different from the former persiflage.
In a way, Castleton was the highlight of the camping trip. He was such an absurd-looking little guy, and his skills were completely at odds with what you’d expect from his appearance. He could ride, hike, climb, and shoot. He loved to help around the camp, and the cowboys couldn’t stop him from doing it. He had an endless desire to try new things. The cowboys played countless tricks on him, and not a single one did he ever catch on to. He was serious, slow in speech and action, and completely unflappable. If being unflappable could ever be considered good humor, then he was always in a good mood. Eventually, the cowboys started to understand him and began to like him. When they liked a guy, it mattered. Madeline was often disappointed to see how little the cowboys spoke to Boyd Harvey. However, with Castleton, they actually became friends. They didn’t realize it, and such a thing never occurred to him; still, it was true. This bond grew solely because the Englishman embodied manliness in the way the cowboys understood it. After countless attempts, when he finally managed to throw the diamond-hitch on a pack horse, the cowboys began to respect him. Castleton needed just one more skill to win their hearts, and he kept trying to master riding a bucking bronco. One of the cowboys owned a bronco they called Devil. Day after day for a week, Devil threw the Englishman all over the park, ruined his clothes, bruised him, and finally kicked him. Then the cowboys tried gently to get Castleton to give up; it was remarkable, considering that the sight of an English lord on a bucking bronco was something any Westerner would pay a thousand miles to see. Whenever Devil tossed Castleton, the cowboys erupted in laughter. But Castleton didn’t know the meaning of failure, and one day, Devil couldn’t throw him. It was quite a spectacle to see the men line up to shake hands with the calm Englishman. Even Stewart, who had been watching from the sidelines, approached with a warm and friendly smile on his dark face. When Castleton returned to his tent, the conversation was filled with typical cowboy banter, and this time it was vastly different from their past joking.
“By Gawd!” ejaculated Monty Price, who seemed to be the most amazed and elated of them all. “Thet’s the fust Englishman I ever seen! He’s orful deceivin’ to look at, but I know now why England rules the wurrld. Jest take a peek at thet bronco. His spirit is broke. Rid by a leetle English dook no bigger ’n a grasshopper! Fellers, if it hain’t dawned on you yit, let Monty Price give you a hunch. There’s no flies on Castleton. An’ I’ll bet a million steers to a rawhide rope thet next he’ll be throwin’ a gun as good as Nels.”
“By gosh!” exclaimed Monty Price, who seemed to be the most surprised and excited of them all. “That’s the first Englishman I’ve ever seen! He looks really deceptive, but now I understand why England rules the world. Just take a look at that bronco. Its spirit is broken. Ridden by a little English duke no bigger than a grasshopper! Guys, if you haven’t figured it out yet, let Monty Price give you a hint. There are no fools in Castleton. And I’ll bet a million cattle to a rawhide rope that next he’ll be throwing a gun as well as Nels.”
It was a distinct pleasure for Madeline to realize that she liked Castleton all the better for the traits brought out so forcibly by his association with the cowboys. On the other hand, she liked the cowboys better for something in them that contact with Easterners brought out. This was especially true in Stewart’s case. She had been wholly wrong when she had imagined he would fall an easy victim to Dorothy’s eyes and Helen’s lures. He was kind, helpful, courteous, and watchful. But he had no sentiment. He did not see Dorothy’s charms or feel Helen’s fascination. And their efforts to captivate him were now so obvious that Mrs. Beck taunted them, and Edith smiled knowingly, and Bobby and Boyd made playful remarks. All of which cut Helen’s pride and hurt Dorothy’s vanity. They essayed open conquest of Stewart.
It was a real pleasure for Madeline to discover that she liked Castleton even more because of the qualities he displayed in his interactions with the cowboys. Conversely, she appreciated the cowboys more for the aspects of themselves that came out in their contact with people from the East. This was especially true regarding Stewart. She had been completely mistaken in thinking he would easily fall for Dorothy’s looks and Helen’s charms. He was kind, helpful, polite, and attentive. But he had no romantic feelings. He didn’t notice Dorothy’s beauty or feel drawn to Helen’s allure. Their attempts to win him over were now so obvious that Mrs. Beck teased them, Edith smiled knowingly, and Bobby and Boyd made playful comments. All of this stung Helen’s pride and hurt Dorothy’s ego. They pursued a direct conquest of Stewart.
So it came about that Madeline unconsciously admitted the cowboy to a place in her mind never occupied by any other. The instant it occurred to her why he was proof against the wiles of the other women she drove that amazing and strangely disturbing thought from her. Nevertheless, as she was human, she could not help thinking and being pleased and enjoying a little the discomfiture of the two coquettes.
So it happened that Madeline unknowingly allowed the cowboy into a spot in her mind that no one else had ever filled. The moment she realized why he was immune to the charms of the other women, she pushed that surprising and oddly unsettling thought away. Still, being human, she couldn’t help but think about it, feel pleased, and take a bit of enjoyment from the discomfort of the two flirts.
Moreover, from this thought of Stewart, and the watchfulness growing out of it she discovered more about him. He was not happy; he often paced up and down the grove at night; he absented himself from camp sometimes during the afternoon when Nels and Nick and Monty were there; he was always watching the trails, as if he expected to see some one come riding up. He alone of the cowboys did not indulge in the fun and talk around the camp-fire. He remained preoccupied and sad, and was always looking away into distance. Madeline had a strange sense of his guardianship over her; and, remembering Don Carlos, she imagined he worried a good deal over his charge, and, indeed, over the safety of all the party.
Moreover, from Stewart's thoughts and the attentiveness that came with it, she learned more about him. He wasn’t happy; he often walked back and forth in the grove at night; he sometimes stayed away from camp during the afternoon when Nels, Nick, and Monty were there; he was always watching the trails, as if he expected someone to ride up. Unlike the other cowboys, he didn’t join in the fun and conversations around the campfire. He seemed lost in thought and sad, often gazing into the distance. Madeline felt a strange sense of his protection over her; remembering Don Carlos, she imagined he worried a lot about his charge and, indeed, about the safety of the whole group.
But if he did worry about possible visits from wandering guerrillas, why did he absent himself from camp? Suddenly into Madeline’s inquisitive mind flashed a remembrance of the dark-eyed Mexican girl, Bonita, who had never been heard of since that night she rode Stewart’s big horse out of El Cajon. The remembrance of her brought an idea. Perhaps Stewart had a rendezvous in the mountains, and these lonely trips of his were to meet Bonita. With the idea hot blood flamed into Madeline’s cheek. Then she was amazed at her own feelings—amazed because her swiftest succeeding thought was to deny the idea—amazed that its conception had fired her cheek with shame. Then her old self, the one aloof from this red-blooded new self, gained control over her emotions.
But if he was worried about potential visits from wandering guerrillas, why did he stay away from camp? Suddenly, Madeline remembered the dark-eyed Mexican girl, Bonita, who hadn’t been seen since the night she rode Stewart’s big horse out of El Cajon. The thought of her sparked an idea. Maybe Stewart had a secret meeting in the mountains, and these lonely trips were to meet Bonita. The thought made Madeline’s cheeks flush with emotion. Then she was surprised by her own feelings—surprised because her next instinct was to dismiss the idea—surprised that thinking of it had embarrassed her. Then her old self, the one detached from this passionate new self, took control of her emotions.
But Madeline found that new-born self a creature of strange power to return and govern at any moment. She found it fighting loyally for what intelligence and wisdom told her was only her romantic conception of a cowboy. She reasoned: If Stewart were the kind of man her feminine skepticism wanted to make him, he would not have been so blind to the coquettish advances of Helen and Dorothy. He had once been—she did not want to recall what he had once been. But he had been uplifted. Madeline Hammond declared that. She was swayed by a strong, beating pride, and her instinctive woman’s faith told her that he could not stoop to such dishonor. She reproached herself for having momentarily thought of it.
But Madeline realized that her newly formed self had a strange power to come back and take control at any moment. She noticed it fighting fiercely for what her intelligence and wisdom told her was just her idealized view of a cowboy. She thought, If Stewart were the type of man her doubts wanted to make him, he wouldn't have been so oblivious to the flirtatious advances of Helen and Dorothy. He had once been—she didn’t want to remember what he had once been. But he had risen above that. Madeline Hammond stood by that belief. She was driven by a strong, pulsing pride, and her instinctive belief as a woman told her that he wouldn’t stoop to such dishonor. She felt guilty for having briefly considered it.
One afternoon a huge storm-cloud swooped out of the sky and enveloped the crags. It obscured the westering sun and laid a mantle of darkness over the park. Madeline was uneasy because several of her party, including Helen and Dorothy, had ridden off with the cowboys that afternoon and had not returned. Florence assured her that even if they did not get back before the storm broke there was no reason for apprehension. Nevertheless, Madeline sent for Stewart and asked him to go or send some one in search of them.
One afternoon, a large storm cloud suddenly descended from the sky and surrounded the cliffs. It blocked the setting sun and cast a shadow over the park. Madeline felt anxious because several members of her group, including Helen and Dorothy, had gone off with the cowboys that afternoon and hadn’t come back. Florence reassured her that even if they didn’t return before the storm hit, there was no need to worry. Still, Madeline called for Stewart and asked him to go or send someone to look for them.
Perhaps half an hour later Madeline heard the welcome pattering of hoofs on the trail. The big tent was brightly lighted by several lanterns. Edith and Florence were with her. It was so black outside that Madeline could not see a rod before her face. The wind was moaning in the trees, and big drops of rain were pelting upon the canvas.
Perhaps thirty minutes later, Madeline heard the reassuring sound of hoofbeats on the trail. The large tent was brightly lit by several lanterns. Edith and Florence were there with her. It was so dark outside that Madeline couldn’t see a thing in front of her. The wind was howling in the trees, and heavy drops of rain were hitting the canvas.
Presently, just outside the door, the horses halted, and there was a sharp bustle of sound, such as would naturally result from a hurried dismounting and confusion in the dark. Mrs. Beck came running into the tent out of breath and radiant because they had beaten the storm. Helen entered next, and a little later came Dorothy, but long enough to make her entrance more noticeable. The instant Madeline saw Dorothy’s blazing eyes she knew something unusual had happened. Whatever it was might have escaped comment had not Helen caught sight of Dorothy.
Right outside the door, the horses stopped, and a flurry of noise erupted, which came from a hurried dismount and chaos in the dark. Mrs. Beck rushed into the tent, breathless and beaming because they had outpaced the storm. Helen came in next, followed a little later by Dorothy, making her entrance more noticeable. The moment Madeline saw Dorothy’s bright eyes, she knew something unusual had occurred. Whatever it was might have gone unnoticed if Helen hadn’t spotted Dorothy.
“Heavens, Dot, but you’re handsome occasionally!” remarked Helen. “When you get some life in your face and eyes!”
“Heavens, Dot, you’re quite handsome sometimes!” Helen remarked. “When you have some life in your face and eyes!”
Dorothy turned her face away from the others, and perhaps it was only accident that she looked into a mirror hanging on the tent wall. Swiftly she put her hand up to feel a wide red welt on her cheek. Dorothy had been assiduously careful of her soft, white skin, and here was an ugly mark marring its beauty.
Dorothy turned her face away from the others, and maybe it was just by chance that she glanced at a mirror hanging on the tent wall. Quickly, she raised her hand to touch a large red mark on her cheek. Dorothy had been very careful with her soft, white skin, and now there was a nasty mark ruining its beauty.
“Look at that!” she cried, in distress. “My complexion’s ruined!”
“Look at that!” she exclaimed, upset. “My skin is ruined!”
“How did you get such a splotch?” inquired Helen, going closer.
“How did you get that stain?” Helen asked, stepping closer.
“I’ve been kissed!” exclaimed Dorothy, dramatically.
“I’ve been kissed!” Dorothy exclaimed dramatically.
“What?” queried Helen, more curiously, while the others laughed.
“Wait, what?” Helen asked, more curious, while the others laughed.
“I’ve been kissed—hugged and kissed by one of those shameless cowboys! It was so pitch-dark outside I couldn’t see a thing. And so noisy I couldn’t hear. But somebody was trying to help me off my horse. My foot caught in the stirrup, and away I went—right into somebody’s arms. Then he did it, the wretch! He hugged and kissed me in a most awful bearish manner. I couldn’t budge a finger. I’m simply boiling with rage!”
“I’ve been kissed—hugged and kissed by one of those shameless cowboys! It was so dark outside I couldn’t see a thing. And it was so noisy I couldn’t hear. But someone was trying to help me get off my horse. My foot got caught in the stirrup, and down I went—right into someone’s arms. Then he did it, the jerk! He hugged and kissed me in a really terrible way. I couldn’t move a muscle. I’m absolutely furious!”
When the outburst of mirth subsided Dorothy turned her big, dilated eyes upon Florence.
When the laughter faded, Dorothy turned her big, wide eyes toward Florence.
“Do these cowboys really take advantage of a girl when she’s helpless and in the dark?”
“Do these cowboys actually take advantage of a girl when she’s vulnerable and in the dark?”
“Of course they do,” replied Florence, with her frank smile.
“Of course they do,” Florence replied, smiling openly.
“Dot, what in the world could you expect?” asked Helen. “Haven’t you been dying to be kissed?”
“Dot, what were you expecting?” Helen asked. “Haven’t you been wanting to be kissed?”
“No.”
“No.”
“Well, you acted like it, then. I never before saw you in a rage over being kissed.”
“Well, you sure acted like it, then. I’ve never seen you so angry about being kissed.”
“I—I wouldn’t care so much if the brute hadn’t scoured the skin off my face. He had whiskers as sharp and stiff as sandpaper. And when I jerked away he rubbed my cheek with them.”
“I—I wouldn’t mind so much if the guy hadn’t scraped the skin off my face. He had whiskers that were as rough and stiff as sandpaper. And when I pulled away, he brushed my cheek with them.”
This revelation as to the cause of her outraged dignity almost prostrated her friends with glee.
This revelation about why her dignity was so outraged almost knocked her friends over with joy.
“Dot, I agree with you; it’s one thing to be kissed, and quite another to have your beauty spoiled,” replied Helen, presently. “Who was this particular savage?”
“Dot, I agree with you; it’s one thing to be kissed, and a whole different thing to have your beauty spoiled,” replied Helen, a moment later. “Who was this particular savage?”
“I don’t know!” burst out Dorothy. “If I did I’d—I’d—”
“I don’t know!” Dorothy exclaimed. “If I did, I’d—I’d—”
Her eyes expressed the direful punishment she could not speak.
Her eyes showed the terrible punishment she couldn't put into words.
“Honestly now, Dot, haven’t you the least idea who did it?” questioned Helen.
“Honestly, Dot, don’t you have any idea who did it?” Helen asked.
“I hope—I think it was Stewart,” replied Dorothy.
“I hope—I think it was Stewart,” replied Dorothy.
“Ah! Dot, your hope is father to the thought. My dear, I’m sorry to riddle your little romance. Stewart did not—could not have been the offender or hero.”
“Ah! Dot, your hope is driving your thoughts. My dear, I’m sorry to spoil your little romance. Stewart didn’t—couldn’t have been the culprit or the hero.”
“How do you know he couldn’t?” demanded Dorothy, flushing.
“How do you know he couldn't?” Dorothy asked, her face turning red.
“Because he was clean-shaven to-day at noon, before we rode out. I remember perfectly how nice and smooth and brown his face looked.”
“Because he was clean-shaven today at noon, before we rode out. I remember exactly how nice and smooth and tan his face looked.”
“Oh, do you? Well, if your memory for faces is so good, maybe you can tell me which one of these cowboys wasn’t clean-shaven.”
“Oh, really? Well, if you’re so good at remembering faces, maybe you can tell me which one of these cowboys wasn’t clean-shaven.”
“Merely a matter of elimination,” replied Helen, merrily. “It was not Nick; it was not Nels; it was not Frankie. There was only one other cowboy with us, and he had a short, stubby growth of black beard, much like that cactus we passed on the trail.”
“Just a process of elimination,” Helen replied cheerfully. “It wasn’t Nick; it wasn’t Nels; it wasn’t Frankie. There was only one other cowboy with us, and he had a short, stubbly black beard, kind of like that cactus we saw on the trail.”
“Oh, I was afraid of it,” moaned Dorothy. “I knew he was going to do it. That horrible little smiling demon, Monty Price!”
“Oh, I was scared of it,” complained Dorothy. “I knew he was going to do it. That awful little smiling demon, Monty Price!”
A favorite lounging-spot of Madeline’s was a shaded niche under the lee of crags facing the east. Here the outlook was entirely different from that on the western side. It was not red and white and glaring, nor so changeable that it taxed attention. This eastern view was one of the mountains and valleys, where, to be sure, there were arid patches; but the restful green of pine and fir was there, and the cool gray of crags. Bold and rugged indeed were these mountain features, yet they were companionably close, not immeasurably distant and unattainable like the desert. Here in the shade of afternoon Madeline and Edith would often lounge under a low-branched tree. Seldom they talked much, for it was afternoon and dreamy with the strange spell of this mountain fastness. There was smoky haze in the valleys, a fleecy cloud resting over the peaks, a sailing eagle in the blue sky, silence that was the unbroken silence of the wild heights, and a soft wind laden with incense of pine.
A favorite spot for Madeline to relax was a shaded nook at the base of the crags facing east. The view here was completely different from the one on the western side. It wasn’t bright red and white, nor was it so variable that it demanded constant attention. This eastern scene featured mountains and valleys, with some dry patches; however, the soothing green of pine and fir trees was present, along with the cool gray of the crags. The mountain landscape was bold and rugged, yet felt comfortably close, unlike the desert that was far away and unreachable. In the afternoon shade, Madeline and Edith would often hang out under a low-branched tree. They rarely talked much, as the afternoon had a dreamy quality influenced by the enchanting atmosphere of these mountains. There was a smoky haze in the valleys, a soft cloud resting over the peaks, an eagle soaring in the blue sky, an unbroken silence characteristic of the wild heights, and a gentle breeze filled with the scent of pine.
One afternoon, however, Edith appeared prone to talk seriously.
One afternoon, though, Edith seemed ready to have a serious conversation.
“Majesty, I must go home soon. I cannot stay out here forever. Are you going back with me?”
“Your Majesty, I need to go home soon. I can't stay out here forever. Are you coming back with me?”
“Well, maybe,” replied Madeline, thoughtfully. “I have considered it. I shall have to visit home some time. But this summer mother and father are going to Europe.”
“Well, maybe,” replied Madeline, thoughtfully. “I’ve thought about it. I will have to visit home sometime. But this summer, my parents are going to Europe.”
“See here, Majesty Hammond, do you intend to spend the rest of your life in this wilderness?” asked Edith, bluntly.
“Look here, King Hammond, do you plan to spend the rest of your life in this wilderness?” asked Edith, straightforwardly.
Madeline was silent.
Madeline wasn't speaking.
“Oh, it is glorious! Don’t misunderstand me, dear,” went on Edith, earnestly, as she laid her hand on Madeline’s. “This trip has been a revelation to me. I did not tell you, Majesty, that I was ill when I arrived. Now I’m well. So well! Look at Helen, too. Why, she was a ghost when we got here. Now she is brown and strong and beautiful. If it were for nothing else than this wonderful gift of health I would love the West. But I have come to love it for other things—even spiritual things. Majesty, I have been studying you. I see and feel what this life has made of you. When I came I wondered at your strength, your virility, your serenity, your happiness. And I was stunned. I wondered at the causes of your change. Now I know. You were sick of idleness, sick of uselessness, if not of society—sick of the horrible noises and smells and contacts one can no longer escape in the cities. I am sick of all that, too, and I could tell you many women of our kind who suffer in a like manner. You have done what many of us want to do, but have not the courage. You have left it. I am not blind to the splendid difference you have made in your life. I think I would have discovered, even if your brother had not told me, what good you have done to the Mexicans and cattlemen of your range. Then you have work to do. That is much the secret of your happiness, is it not? Tell me. Tell me something of what it means to you?”
“Oh, it's amazing! Don’t get me wrong, dear,” continued Edith, earnestly, as she placed her hand on Madeline’s. “This trip has opened my eyes. I didn’t mention it, Majesty, but I was unwell when I got here. Now I feel great. So great! Look at Helen, too. She was like a ghost when we arrived. Now she’s healthy, strong, and beautiful. Even if it weren't for this incredible gift of health, I would love the West. But I've come to appreciate it for even more reasons—spiritual reasons, too. Majesty, I've been observing you. I see and feel what this life has turned you into. When I first arrived, I was amazed by your strength, your vitality, your calmness, your happiness. It left me in awe. I wondered what caused your transformation. Now I understand. You were tired of idleness, tired of feeling useless, if not disillusioned with society—tired of the awful noise, smells, and interactions one can’t escape in the cities. I feel the same way, and I could name many women like us who also suffer in a similar way. You’ve done what many of us wish we could do but lack the courage to attempt. You’ve walked away from it all. I’m not blind to the incredible change you’ve made in your life. I think I would have figured it out, even if your brother hadn’t mentioned it, how much good you’ve done for the Mexicans and ranchers in your area. And you have work to do. That’s a big part of the secret to your happiness, isn’t it? Please, tell me. Share with me what it means to you?”
“Work, of course, has much to do with any one’s happiness,” replied Madeline. “No one can be happy who has no work. As regards myself—for the rest I can hardly tell you. I have never tried to put it in words. Frankly, I believe, if I had not had money that I could not have found such contentment here. That is not in any sense a judgment against the West. But if I had been poor I could not have bought and maintained my ranch. Stillwell tells me there are many larger ranches than mine, but none just like it. Then I am almost paying my expenses out of my business. Think of that! My income, instead of being wasted, is mostly saved. I think—I hope I am useful. I have been of some little good to the Mexicans—eased the hardships of a few cowboys. For the rest, I think my life is a kind of dream. Of course my ranch and range are real, my cowboys are typical. If I were to tell you how I feel about them it would simply be a story of how Madeline Hammond sees the West. They are true to the West. It is I who am strange, and what I feel for them may be strange, too. Edith, hold to your own impressions.”
“Work, of course, has a lot to do with anyone’s happiness,” replied Madeline. “No one can be happy without work. As for me—I can hardly put it into words. Honestly, I believe that if I hadn’t had money, I wouldn’t have found such contentment here. That’s not a negative comment about the West. But if I had been poor, I couldn’t have bought and kept my ranch. Stillwell tells me there are many bigger ranches than mine, but none just like it. Plus, I’m almost covering my expenses with my business. Think about that! My income, instead of going to waste, is mostly saved. I think—I hope I’m making a difference. I’ve been able to help some Mexicans—made life a bit easier for a few cowboys. Beyond that, I feel like my life is kind of a dream. Of course, my ranch and land are real, and my cowboys are typical. If I were to tell you how I feel about them, it would just be a story of how Madeline Hammond sees the West. They are true to the West. It’s me who is unusual, and what I feel for them might be strange, too. Edith, trust your own impressions.”
“But, Majesty, my impressions have changed. At first I did not like the wind, the dust, the sun, the endless open stretches. But now I do like them. Where once I saw only terrible wastes of barren ground now I see beauty and something noble. Then, at first, your cowboys struck me as dirty, rough, loud, crude, savage—all that was primitive. I did not want them near me. I imagined them callous, hard men, their only joy a carouse with their kind. But I was wrong. I have changed. The dirt was only dust, and this desert dust is clean. They are still rough, loud, crude, and savage in my eyes, but with a difference. They are natural men. They are little children. Monty Price is one of nature’s noblemen. The hard thing is to discover it. All his hideous person, all his actions and speech, are masks of his real nature. Nels is a joy, a simple, sweet, kindly, quiet man whom some woman should have loved. What would love have meant to him! He told me that no woman ever loved him except his mother, and he lost her when he was ten. Every man ought to be loved—especially such a man as Nels. Somehow his gun record does not impress me. I never could believe he killed a man. Then take your foreman, Stewart. He is a cowboy, his work and life the same as the others. But he has education and most of the graces we are in the habit of saying make a gentleman. Stewart is a strange fellow, just like this strange country. He’s a man, Majesty, and I admire him. So, you see, my impressions are developing with my stay out here.”
“But, Your Majesty, my thoughts have changed. At first, I didn’t like the wind, the dust, the sun, or the endless open spaces. But now I do. Where I once saw only desolate stretches of barren land, I now see beauty and something grand. Initially, your cowboys struck me as dirty, rough, loud, crude, and savage—everything primitive. I didn’t want them near me. I pictured them as callous, hard men whose only joy came from drinking and partying together. But I was mistaken. I’ve changed. The dirt was just dust, and this desert dust is clean. They’re still rough, loud, crude, and savage in my eyes, but it’s different now. They’re natural men. They’re like little children. Monty Price is one of nature’s noblemen. The hard part is seeing that. All his ugly appearance, all his actions and words, are masks for his true self. Nels is a joy, a simple, sweet, kind, quiet man who deserves to be loved by someone. Imagine what love would have meant to him! He told me that no woman ever loved him except for his mother, and he lost her when he was ten. Every man deserves love—especially a man like Nels. Somehow, his gun record doesn’t impress me. I just can’t believe he killed a man. Then there’s your foreman, Stewart. He’s a cowboy, doing the same work and living the same life as the others. But he’s educated and has most of the qualities we usually say make a gentleman. Stewart is a strange fellow, just like this strange land. He’s a man, Your Majesty, and I admire him. So, you see, my impressions are evolving during my time out here.”
“Edith, I am so glad you told me that,” replied Madeline, warmly.
“Edith, I’m really glad you shared that with me,” replied Madeline, warmly.
“I like the country, and I like the men,” went on Edith. “One reason I want to go home soon is because I am discontented enough at home now, without falling in love with the West. For, of course, Majesty, I would. I could not live out here. And that brings me to my point. Admitting all the beauty and charm and wholesomeness and good of this wonderful country, still it is no place for you, Madeline Hammond. You have your position, your wealth, your name, your family. You must marry. You must have children. You must not give up all that for a quixotic life in a wilderness.”
“I love the countryside, and I love the people here,” Edith continued. “One reason I want to go home soon is that I'm already feeling dissatisfied at home without falling for the West. Because, of course, Majesty, I would. I couldn’t live out here. And that brings me to my point. Even with all the beauty, charm, wholesomeness, and goodness of this amazing country, it still isn’t the right place for you, Madeline Hammond. You have your position, your wealth, your name, your family. You need to get married. You need to have kids. You shouldn’t give all that up for a romantic life in the wilderness.”
“I am convinced, Edith, that I shall live here all the rest of my life.”
“I’m sure, Edith, that I’ll live here for the rest of my life.”
“Oh, Majesty! I hate to preach this way. But I promised your mother I would talk to you. And the truth is I hate—I hate what I’m saying. I envy you your courage and wisdom. I know you have refused to marry Boyd Harvey. I could see that in his face. I believe you will refuse Castleton. Whom will you marry? What chance is there for a woman of your position to marry out here? What in the world will become of you?”
“Oh, Your Majesty! I really dislike having this conversation. But I promised your mother I would speak to you. And honestly, I hate—I hate what I’m saying. I envy your courage and wisdom. I know you’ve turned down Boyd Harvey. I could see it in his expression. I believe you will turn down Castleton as well. Who will you marry? What are the chances for a woman in your position to marry out here? What on earth will happen to you?”
“Quien sabe?” replied Madeline, with a smile that was almost sad.
“Who knows?” replied Madeline, with a smile that was almost sad.
Not so many hours after this conversation with Edith, Madeline sat with Boyd Harvey upon the grassy promontory overlooking the west, and she listened once again to his suave courtship.
Not long after her conversation with Edith, Madeline sat on the grassy cliff with Boyd Harvey, looking out at the west, and she listened once again to his smooth romantic advances.
Suddenly she turned to him and said, “Boyd, if I married you would you be willing—glad to spend the rest of your life here in the West?”
Suddenly she turned to him and said, “Boyd, if I married you, would you be willing and happy to spend the rest of your life here in the West?”
“Majesty!” he exclaimed. There was amaze in the voice usually so even and well modulated—amaze in the handsome face usually so indifferent. Her question had startled him. She saw him look down the iron-gray cliffs, over the barren slopes and cedared ridges, beyond the cactus-covered foothills to the grim and ghastly desert. Just then, with its red veils of sunlit dust-clouds, its illimitable waste of ruined and upheaved earth, it was a sinister spectacle.
“Your Majesty!” he exclaimed. There was surprise in his voice, which was usually so calm and well-controlled—surprise on his handsome face, which was typically so indifferent. Her question had caught him off guard. She watched him gaze down the iron-gray cliffs, over the barren slopes and cedar-covered ridges, past the cactus-covered foothills to the grim and haunting desert. At that moment, with its red veils of sunlit dust clouds and its endless expanse of ruined and upheaved earth, it was a chilling sight.
“No,” he replied, with a tinge of shame in his cheek. Madeline said no more, nor did he speak. She was spared the pain of refusing him, and she imagined he would never ask her again. There was both relief and regret in the conviction. Humiliated lovers seldom made good friends.
“No,” he said, a hint of shame on his face. Madeline didn't say anything else, nor did he. She was saved from the discomfort of turning him down, and she thought he would never bring it up again. There was a mix of relief and regret in that thought. Humiliated lovers rarely became good friends.
It was impossible not to like Boyd Harvey. The thought of that, and why she could not marry him, concentrated her never-satisfied mind upon the man. She looked at him, and she thought of him.
It was impossible not to like Boyd Harvey. The thought of that, and why she couldn’t marry him, focused her restless mind on the man. She looked at him, and she thought about him.
He was handsome, young, rich, well born, pleasant, cultivated—he was all that made a gentleman of his class. If he had any vices she had not heard of them. She knew he had no thirst for drink or craze for gambling. He was considered a very desirable and eligible young man. Madeline admitted all this.
He was attractive, young, wealthy, well-bred, charming, and refined—he had all the qualities that defined a gentleman of his status. If he had any bad habits, she had no idea about them. She knew he didn’t have a need for alcohol or a passion for gambling. He was viewed as a very desirable and eligible young man. Madeline acknowledged all of this.
Then she thought of things that were perhaps exclusively her own strange ideas. Boyd Harvey’s white skin did not tan even in this southwestern sun and wind. His hands were whiter than her own, and as soft. They were really beautiful, and she remembered what care he took of them. They were a proof that he never worked. His frame was tall, graceful, elegant. It did not bear evidence of ruggedness. He had never indulged in a sport more strenuous than yachting. He hated effort and activity. He rode horseback very little, disliked any but moderate motoring, spent much time in Newport and Europe, never walked when he could help it, and had no ambition unless it were to pass the days pleasantly. If he ever had any sons they would be like him, only a generation more toward the inevitable extinction of his race.
Then she thought about things that were perhaps uniquely her own strange ideas. Boyd Harvey’s pale skin didn’t tan even in this hot southwestern sun and wind. His hands were whiter than hers and just as soft. They were really beautiful, and she remembered how much care he took of them. They were proof that he never worked. His body was tall, graceful, and elegant. It didn’t show any signs of ruggedness. He had never participated in any sport more vigorous than yachting. He disliked effort and activity. He rarely rode horses, only enjoyed moderate driving, spent a lot of time in Newport and Europe, avoided walking whenever possible, and had no ambition except to enjoy his days. If he ever had sons, they would be just like him, but a generation closer to the inevitable decline of his race.
Madeline returned to camp in just the mood to make a sharp, deciding contrast. It happened—fatefully, perhaps—that the first man she saw was Stewart. He had just ridden into camp, and as she came up he explained that he had gone down to the ranch for the important mail about which she had expressed anxiety.
Madeline came back to camp in a perfect mood to create a strong contrast. Coincidentally, the first person she saw was Stewart. He had just arrived at camp, and as she approached him, he explained that he had gone down to the ranch for the important mail that she had been worried about.
“Down and back in one day!” she exclaimed.
“Down and back in one day!” she exclaimed.
“Yes,” he replied. “It wasn’t so bad.”
“Yes,” he replied. “It wasn't that bad.”
“But why did you not send one of the boys, and let him make the regular two-day trip?”
“But why didn’t you send one of the boys and let him make the usual two-day trip?”
“You were worried about your mail,” he answered, briefly, as he delivered it. Then he bent to examine the fetlocks of his weary horse.
“You were concerned about your mail,” he replied shortly as he handed it over. Then he leaned down to check the fetlocks of his tired horse.
It was midsummer now, Madeline reflected and exceedingly hot and dusty on the lower trail. Stewart had ridden down the mountain and back again in twelve hours. Probably no horse in the outfit, except his big black or Majesty, could have stood that trip. And his horse showed the effects of a grueling day. He was caked with dust and lame and weary.
It was now midsummer, Madeline thought, and incredibly hot and dusty on the lower trail. Stewart had ridden down the mountain and back in twelve hours. Probably no horse in the group, except his big black one or Majesty, could have handled that trip. And his horse was clearly feeling the impact of a tough day. He was covered in dust, limping, and exhausted.
Stewart looked as if he had spared the horse his weight on many a mile of that rough ascent. His boots were evidence of it. His heavy flannel shirt, wet through with perspiration, adhered closely to his shoulders and arms, so that every ripple of muscle plainly showed. His face was black, except round the temples and forehead, where it was bright red. Drops of sweat, running off his blackened hands dripped to the ground. He got up from examining the lame foot, and then threw off the saddle. The black horse snorted and lunged for the watering-pool. Stewart let him drink a little, then with iron arms dragged him away. In this action the man’s lithe, powerful form impressed Madeline with a wonderful sense of muscular force. His brawny wrist was bare; his big, strong hand, first clutching the horse’s mane, then patting his neck, had a bruised knuckle, and one finger was bound up. That hand expressed as much gentleness and thoughtfulness for the horse as it had strength to drag him back from too much drinking at a dangerous moment.
Stewart looked like he had saved the horse from carrying his weight over many miles of that rough climb. His boots proved it. His heavy flannel shirt, soaked with sweat, clung tightly to his shoulders and arms, making every ripple of muscle visible. His face was dark, except around his temples and forehead, where it was bright red. Drops of sweat ran off his darkened hands and dripped to the ground. He got up from checking the lame foot and then threw off the saddle. The black horse snorted and rushed towards the watering hole. Stewart let him drink a bit, then with strong arms pulled him away. In this moment, the man’s lithe, powerful form struck Madeline with a remarkable sense of muscular strength. His muscular wrist was bare; his big, strong hand, which first gripped the horse’s mane and then patted his neck, had a bruised knuckle, and one finger was wrapped up. That hand showed as much gentleness and care for the horse as it had the strength to pull him back from drinking too much at a critical moment.
Stewart was a combination of fire, strength, and action. These attributes seemed to cling about him. There was something vital and compelling in his presence. Worn and spent and drawn as he was from the long ride, he thrilled Madeline with his potential youth and unused vitality and promise of things to be, red-blooded deeds, both of flesh and spirit. In him she saw the strength of his forefathers unimpaired. The life in him was marvelously significant. The dust, the dirt, the sweat, the soiled clothes, the bruised and bandaged hand, the brawn and bone—these had not been despised by the knights of ancient days, nor by modern women whose eyes shed soft light upon coarse and bloody toilers.
Stewart had a mix of passion, strength, and energy. These qualities seemed to surround him. There was something dynamic and captivating about his presence. Even though he looked worn out and exhausted from the long ride, he excited Madeline with his youthful potential, untapped energy, and the promise of bold adventures, both physical and spiritual. In him, she recognized the undeniable strength of his ancestors. The life within him was remarkably meaningful. The dust, dirt, sweat, dirty clothes, the bruised and bandaged hand, the muscle and bone—these had never been looked down upon by the knights of old, nor by modern women whose gazes softened towards rugged and dedicated laborers.
Madeline Hammond compared the man of the East with the man of the West; and that comparison was the last parting regret for her old standards.
Madeline Hammond compared the man from the East with the man from the West; and that comparison was her final regret in leaving behind her old values.
XVII. The Lost Mine of the Padres
In the cool, starry evenings the campers sat around a blazing fire and told and listened to stories thrillingly fitted to the dark crags and the wild solitude.
In the cool, starry evenings, the campers gathered around a roaring fire, sharing and listening to stories perfectly suited for the dark cliffs and the wild solitude.
Monty Price had come to shine brilliantly as a storyteller. He was an atrocious liar, but this fact would not have been evident to his enthralled listeners if his cowboy comrades, in base jealousy, had not betrayed him. The truth about his remarkable fabrications, however, had not become known to Castleton, solely because of the Englishman’s obtuseness. And there was another thing much stranger than this and quite as amusing. Dorothy Coombs knew Monty was a liar; but she was so fascinated by the glittering, basilisk eyes he riveted upon her, so taken in by his horrible tales of blood, that despite her knowledge she could not help believing them.
Monty Price had emerged as a brilliant storyteller. He was an awful liar, but his captivated audience wouldn’t have noticed if his jealous cowboy friends hadn’t exposed him. The truth about his incredible tall tales had remained unknown to Castleton, primarily due to the Englishman’s obliviousness. However, there was something even stranger and just as amusing. Dorothy Coombs knew Monty was lying; but she was so mesmerized by the dazzling, piercing eyes he fixed on her, so absorbed by his gruesome tales, that even with this knowledge, she couldn’t help but believe him.
Manifestly Monty was very proud of his suddenly acquired gift. Formerly he had hardly been known to open his lips in the presence of strangers. Monty had developed more than one singular and hitherto unknown trait since his supremacy at golf had revealed his possibilities. He was as sober and vain and pompous about his capacity for lying as about anything else. Some of the cowboys were jealous of him because he held the attention and, apparently, the admiration of the ladies; and Nels was jealous, not because Monty made himself out to be a wonderful gun-man, but because Monty could tell a story. Nels really had been the hero of a hundred fights; he had never been known to talk about them; but Dorothy’s eyes and Helen’s smile had somehow upset his modesty. Whenever Monty would begin to talk Nels would growl and knock his pipe on a log, and make it appear he could not stay and listen, though he never really left the charmed circle of the camp-fire. Wild horses could not have dragged him away.
Clearly, Monty was really proud of his newfound talent. Before, he hardly ever spoke in front of strangers. Since becoming great at golf, Monty had developed several unusual traits that no one had seen before. He was as serious, proud, and pompous about his ability to lie as he was about anything else. Some of the cowboys were jealous of him because he had the attention and seemingly the admiration of the ladies; Nels felt jealous too, not because Monty claimed to be an amazing gunman, but because Monty could tell a good story. Nels had truly been the hero of countless fights but had never bragged about them; however, Dorothy's gaze and Helen's smile had somehow shaken his modesty. Whenever Monty started to talk, Nels would grunt, knock his pipe against a log, and pretend he had to leave, even though he never actually stepped away from the magical glow of the campfire. Not even wild horses could have pulled him away.
One evening at twilight, as Madeline was leaving her tent, she encountered Monty. Evidently, he had way-laid her. With the most mysterious of signs and whispers he led her a little aside.
One evening at dusk, as Madeline was exiting her tent, she ran into Monty. Clearly, he had been waiting for her. With the most enigmatic gestures and whispers, he guided her a bit away.
“Miss Hammond, I’m makin’ bold to ask a favor of you,” he said.
“Miss Hammond, I’m daring to ask a favor from you,” he said.
Madeline smiled her willingness.
Madeline smiled in agreement.
“To-night, when they’ve all shot off their chins an’ it’s quiet-like, I want you to ask me, jest this way, ‘Monty, seein’ as you’ve hed more adventures than all them cow-punchers put together, tell us about the most turrible time you ever hed.’ Will you ask me, Miss Hammond, jest kinda sincere like?”
“To-night, when everyone’s done talking and it’s calm, I want you to ask me like this: ‘Monty, since you’ve had more adventures than all those cowboys put together, tell us about the worst time you ever had.’ Will you ask me, Miss Hammond, kind of sincerely?”
“Certainly I will, Monty,” she replied.
“Of course I will, Monty,” she said.
His dark, seared face had no more warmth than a piece of cold, volcanic rock, which it resembled. Madeline appreciated how monstrous Dorothy found this burned and distorted visage, how deformed the little man looked to a woman of refined sensibilities. It was difficult for Madeline to look into his face. But she saw behind the blackened mask. And now she saw in Monty’s deep eyes a spirit of pure fun.
His dark, burned face was as cold as a piece of volcanic rock, which it resembled. Madeline understood how monstrous Dorothy thought this burned and distorted look was, how deformed the little man appeared to a woman of refined taste. It was hard for Madeline to look into his face. But she saw beyond the blackened mask. And now she noticed in Monty’s deep eyes a spirit of pure fun.
So, true to her word, Madeline remembered at an opportune moment, when conversation had hushed and only the long, dismal wail of coyotes broke the silence, to turn toward the little cowboy.
So, keeping her promise, Madeline recalled at the perfect moment, when the conversation had quieted down and only the long, mournful howl of coyotes disrupted the silence, to face the little cowboy.
“Monty,” she said, and paused for effect—“Monty, seeing that you have had more adventures than all the cowboys together, tell us about the most terrible time you ever had.”
“Monty,” she said, pausing for effect—“Monty, since you’ve had more adventures than all the cowboys combined, tell us about the worst time you ever had.”
Monty appeared startled at the question that fastened all eyes upon him. He waved a deprecatory hand.
Monty looked surprised by the question that drew everyone's attention to him. He waved a dismissive hand.
“Aw, Miss Hammond, thankin’ you all modest-like fer the compliment, I’ll hev to refuse,” replied Monty, laboring in distress. “It’s too harrowin’ fer tender-hearted gurls to listen to.”
“Aw, Miss Hammond, thanks for the compliment, but I’ll have to decline,” Monty replied, struggling with his distress. “It’s too heartbreaking for sensitive girls to hear.”
“Go on?” cried everybody except the cowboys. Nels began to nod his head as if he, as well as Monty, understood human nature. Dorothy hugged her knees with a kind of shudder. Monty had fastened the hypnotic eyes upon her. Castleton ceased smoking, adjusted his eyeglass, and prepared to listen in great earnestness.
“Go on?” everyone exclaimed except for the cowboys. Nels started to nod his head as if he, like Monty, understood human nature. Dorothy hugged her knees, shivering slightly. Monty had fixated his hypnotic gaze on her. Castleton stopped smoking, adjusted his eyeglass, and got ready to listen intently.
Monty changed his seat to one where the light from the blazing logs fell upon his face; and he appeared plunged into melancholy and profound thought.
Monty moved to a seat where the bright light from the roaring fire illuminated his face; he seemed lost in deep melancholy and deep thought.
“Now I tax myself, I can’t jest decide which was the orfulest time I ever hed,” he said, reflectively.
“Now I think about it, I can’t quite decide which was the worst time I ever had,” he said,reflectively.
Here Nels blew forth an immense cloud of smoke, as if he desired to hide himself from sight. Monty pondered, and then when the smoke rolled away he turned to Nels.
Here Nels took a deep breath and exhaled a huge cloud of smoke, as if he wanted to disappear from view. Monty thought for a moment, and when the smoke cleared, he looked at Nels.
“See hyar, old pard, me an’ you seen somethin’ of each other in the Panhandle, more ’n thirty years ago—”
“Look here, old friend, you and I have seen something of each other in the Panhandle more than thirty years ago—”
“Which we didn’t,” interrupted Nels, bluntly. “Shore you can’t make me out an ole man.”
“Which we didn’t,” Nels interrupted, straightforwardly. “You can’t make me out to be some old man.”
“Mebbe it wasn’t so darn long. Anyhow, Nels, you recollect them three hoss-thieves I hung all on one cottonwood-tree, an’ likewise thet boo-tiful blond gurl I rescooed from a band of cutthroats who murdered her paw, ole Bill Warren, the buffalo-hunter? Now, which of them two scraps was the turriblest, in your idee?”
“Might not have been that long after all. Anyway, Nels, do you remember those three horse thieves I hung on that cottonwood tree, and also that beautiful blonde girl I rescued from a gang of killers who murdered her dad, old Bill Warren, the buffalo hunter? Now, which of those two stories do you think was the worst, in your opinion?”
“Monty, my memory’s shore bad,” replied the unimpeachable Nels.
“Monty, my memory's really bad,” replied the reliable Nels.
“Tell us about the beautiful blonde,” cried at least three of the ladies. Dorothy, who had suffered from nightmare because of a former story of hanging men on trees, had voicelessly appealed to Monty to spare her more of that.
“Tell us about the beautiful blonde,” at least three of the ladies exclaimed. Dorothy, who had been haunted by nightmares from a previous tale of men hanging from trees, had silently urged Monty to give her a break from that.
“All right, we’ll hev the blond gurl,” said Monty, settling back, “though I ain’t thinkin’ her story is most turrible of the two, an’ it’ll rake over tender affections long slumberin’ in my breast.”
“All right, we’ll have the blonde girl,” said Monty, settling back, “though I don’t think her story is the worst of the two, and it’ll stir up tender feelings that have been lying dormant in my heart.”
As he paused there came a sharp, rapping sound. This appeared to be Nels knocking the ashes out of his pipe on a stump—a true indication of the passing of content from that jealous cowboy.
As he paused, a sharp knocking sound broke the silence. It seemed like Nels was tapping the ashes out of his pipe on a stump—a clear sign of the frustration coming from that envious cowboy.
“It was down in the Panhandle, ’way over in the west end of thet Comanche huntin’-ground, an’ all the redskins an’ outlaws in thet country were hidin’ in the river-bottoms, an’ chasin’ some of the last buffalo herds thet hed wintered in there. I was a young buck them days, an’ purty much of a desperado, I’m thinkin’. Though of all the seventeen notches on my gun—an’ each notch meant a man killed face to face—there was only one thet I was ashamed of. Thet one was fer an express messenger who I hit on the head most unprofessional like, jest because he wouldn’t hand over a leetle package. I hed the kind of a reputashun thet made all the fellers in saloons smile an’ buy drinks.
“It was down in the Panhandle, way over in the west end of that Comanche hunting ground, and all the Native Americans and outlaws in that area were hiding in the river bottoms and chasing some of the last buffalo herds that had wintered there. I was a young man back then, and I was quite a bit of a troublemaker, I think. Even though I had seventeen notches on my gun—and each notch represented a man I killed face to face—there was only one that I was ashamed of. That one was for an express messenger whom I hit on the head rather unprofessionally, just because he wouldn’t hand over a small package. I had a reputation that made all the guys in the saloons smile and buy drinks.”
“Well, I dropped into a place named Taylor’s Bend, an’ was peaceful standin’ to the bar when three cow-punchers come in, an’, me bein’ with my back turned, they didn’t recognize me an’ got playful. I didn’t stop drinkin’, an’ I didn’t turn square round; but when I stopped shootin’ under my arm the saloon-keeper hed to go over to the sawmill an’ fetch a heap of sawdust to cover up what was left of them three cow-punchers, after they was hauled out. You see, I was rough them days, an’ would shoot ears off an’ noses off an’ hands off; when in later days I’d jest kill a man quick, same as Wild Bill.
“Well, I stopped by a place called Taylor’s Bend and was calmly standing at the bar when three cowboys came in. Since I had my back to them, they didn't recognize me and started getting playful. I didn't stop drinking, and I didn't turn all the way around; but when I stopped shooting under my arm, the bartender had to go over to the sawmill and get a load of sawdust to cover up what was left of those three cowboys after they were taken out. You see, I was rough back then, and I would shoot off ears and noses and hands; whereas later on, I’d just kill a man quickly, like Wild Bill.”
“News drifts into town thet night thet a gang of cut-throats hed murdered ole Bill Warren an’ carried off his gurl. I gathers up a few good gun-men, an’ we rid out an’ down the river-bottom, to an ole log cabin, where the outlaws hed a rondevoo. We rid up boldlike, an’ made a hell of a racket. Then the gang began to throw lead from the cabin, an’ we all hunted cover. Fightin’ went on all night. In the mornin’ all my outfit was killed but two, an’ they was shot up bad. We fought all day without eatin’ or drinkin’, except some whisky I hed, an’ at night I was on the job by my lonesome.
“News spread through town that night that a gang of killers had murdered old Bill Warren and taken his girl. I gathered a few good gunmen, and we rode out down the riverbank to an old log cabin where the outlaws were meeting. We rode up boldly and made a lot of noise. Then the gang started firing from the cabin, and we all found cover. The fighting went on all night. In the morning, all my crew was dead except for two, and they were badly wounded. We fought all day without eating or drinking, except for some whiskey I had, and by night I was on the job all alone.”
“Bein’ bunged up some myself, I laid off an’ went down to the river to wash the blood off, tie up my wounds, an’ drink a leetle. While I was down there along comes one of the cutthroats with a bucket. Instead of gettin’ water he got lead, an’ as he was about to croak he tells me a whole bunch of outlaws was headin’ in there, doo to-morrer. An’ if I wanted to rescoo the gurl I hed to be hurryin’. There was five fellers left in the cabin.
“Feeling pretty beaten up myself, I took a break and went down to the river to wash off the blood, bandage my wounds, and have a little drink. While I was down there, one of the thugs showed up with a bucket. Instead of getting water, he got a bullet, and as he was about to die, he told me a whole group of outlaws was heading in that way tomorrow. If I wanted to rescue the girl, I needed to hurry. There were five guys left in the cabin.”
“I went back to the thicket where I hed left my hoss, an’ loaded up with two more guns an’ another belt, an’ busted a fresh box of shells. If I recollect proper, I got some cigarettes, too. Well, I mozied back to the cabin. It was a boo-tiful moonshiny night, an’ I wondered if ole Bill’s gun was as purty as I’d heerd. The grass growed long round the cabin, an’ I crawled up to the door without startin’ anythin’. Then I figgered. There was only one door in thet cabin, an’ it was black dark inside. I jest grabbed open the door an’ slipped in quick. It worked all right. They heerd me, but hedn’t been quick enough to ketch me in the light of the door. Of course there was some shots, but I ducked too quick, an’ changed my position.
“I went back to the thicket where I had left my horse, and I loaded up with two more guns and another belt, and I opened a fresh box of shells. If I remember correctly, I got some cigarettes too. Well, I strolled back to the cabin. It was a beautiful moonlit night, and I wondered if old Bill’s gun was as pretty as I had heard. The grass grew long around the cabin, and I crawled up to the door without starting anything. Then I figured. There was only one door in that cabin, and it was pitch dark inside. I just grabbed open the door and slipped in quickly. It worked out fine. They heard me, but they weren't quick enough to catch me in the light from the door. Of course, there were some shots, but I ducked too fast and changed my position.
“Ladies an’ gentlemen, thet there was some dool by night. An’ I wasn’t often in the place where they shot. I was most wonderful patient, an’ jest waited until one of them darned ruffians would get so nervous he’d hev to hunt me up. When mornin’ come there they was all piled up on the floor, all shot to pieces. I found the gurl. Purty! Say, she was boo-tiful. We went down to the river, where she begun to bathe my wounds. I’d collected a dozen more or so, an’ the sight of tears in her lovely eyes, an’ my blood a-stainin’ of her little hands, jest nat’rally wakened a trembly spell in my heart. I seen she was took the same way, an’ thet settled it.
“Ladies and gentlemen, there was some trouble at night. And I wasn’t usually in the place where they were shooting. I was really patient and just waited until one of those ruffians got so nervous he had to come find me. When morning came, there they were all piled up on the floor, all shot up. I found the girl. Pretty! I mean, she was beautiful. We went down to the river, where she started to tend to my wounds. I had collected about a dozen more, and the sight of tears in her lovely eyes, and my blood staining her little hands, just naturally stirred up a trembling feeling in my heart. I could tell she felt the same way, and that settled it.
“We was comin’ up from the river, an’ I hed jest straddled my hoss, with the gurl behind, when we run right into thet cutthroat gang thet was doo about then. Bein’ some handicapped, I couldn’t drop more ’n one gun-round of them, an’ then I hed to slope. The whole gang follered me, an’ some miles out chased me over a ridge right into a big herd of buffalo. Before I knowed what was what thet herd broke into a stampede, with me in the middle. Purty soon the buffalo closed in tight. I knowed I was in some peril then. But the gurl trusted me somethin’ pitiful. I seen again thet she hed fell in love with me. I could tell from the way she hugged me an’ yelled. Before long I was some put to it to keep my hoss on his feet. Far as I could see was dusty, black, bobbin’, shaggy humps. A huge cloud of dust went along over our heads. The roar of tramplin’ hoofs was turrible. My hoss weakened, went down, an’ was carried along a leetle while I slipped off with the gurl on to the backs of the buffalo.
“We were coming up from the river, and I just straddled my horse, with the girl behind me, when we ran right into that cutthroat gang that was due around then. Being a bit handicapped, I couldn’t take down more than one of them, and then I had to make a run for it. The whole gang followed me, and for several miles chased me over a ridge right into a big herd of buffalo. Before I knew what was happening, that herd broke into a stampede, with me in the middle. Pretty soon the buffalo closed in tight. I knew I was in some serious trouble then. But the girl trusted me so much. I could see again that she had fallen in love with me. I could tell from the way she hugged me and shouted. Before long, I was struggling to keep my horse on his feet. As far as I could see, there were dusty, black, bobbing, shaggy humps. A huge cloud of dust rolled over our heads. The roar of trampling hooves was terrifying. My horse weakened, went down, and was carried along for a little while as I slipped off with the girl onto the backs of the buffalo.”
“Ladies, I ain’t denyin’ that then Monty Price was some scairt. Fust time in my life! But the trustin’ face of thet boo-tiful gurl, as she lay in my arms an’ hugged me an’ yelled, made my spirit leap like a shootin’ star. I just began to jump from buffalo to buffalo. I must hev jumped a mile of them bobbin’ backs before I come to open places. An’ here’s where I performed the greatest stunts of my life. I hed on my big spurs, an’ I jest sit down an’ rid an’ spurred till thet pertickler buffalo I was on got near another, an’ then I’d flop over. Thusly I got to the edge of the herd, tumbled off’n the last one, an’ rescooed the gurl.
“Ladies, I won’t deny that Monty Price was pretty scary. It was the first time in my life! But the trusting face of that beautiful girl, as she lay in my arms and hugged me and yelled, made my spirit soar like a shooting star. I just started jumping from buffalo to buffalo. I must have jumped a mile on those bobbing backs before I reached open spaces. And that’s where I pulled off the greatest stunts of my life. I had on my big spurs, and I just sat down and rode and spurred until the buffalo I was on got near another one, and then I’d flop over. That way, I got to the edge of the herd, tumbled off the last one, and rescued the girl.”
“Well, as my memory takes me back, thet was a most affectin’ walk home to the little town where she lived. But she wasn’t troo to me, an’ married another feller. I was too much a sport to kill him. But thet low-down trick rankled in my breast. Gurls is strange. I’ve never stopped wonderin’ how any gurl who has been hugged an’ kissed by one man could marry another. But matoor experience teaches me thet sich is the case.”
“Well, as I remember it, that was a really touching walk home to the little town where she lived. But she wasn't true to me and married another guy. I was too much of a decent person to kill him. But that low-down trick stuck with me. Girls are strange. I've never stopped wondering how any girl who has been hugged and kissed by one man could marry another. But mature experience teaches me that this is often the case.”
The cowboys roared; Helen and Mrs. Beck and Edith laughed till they cried; Madeline found repression absolutely impossible; Dorothy sat hugging her knees, her horror at the story no greater than at Monty’s unmistakable reference to her and to the fickleness of women; and Castleton for the first time appeared to be moved out of his imperturbability, though not in any sense by humor. Indeed, when he came to notice it, he was dumfounded by the mirth.
The cowboys were loud; Helen, Mrs. Beck, and Edith laughed until they were in tears; Madeline found it impossible to hold back her emotions; Dorothy sat with her knees hugged, her shock at the story no greater than her discomfort at Monty’s clear mention of her and the changeability of women; and Castleton, for the first time, seemed shaken out of his usual calm, though not by any humor. In fact, when he took notice, he was taken aback by the laughter.
“By Jove! you Americans are an extraordinary people,” he said. “I don’t see anything blooming funny in Mr. Price’s story of his adventure. By Jove! that was a bally warm occasion. Mr. Price, when you speak of being frightened for the only time in your life, I appreciate what you mean. I have experienced that. I was frightened once.”
“Wow! You Americans are something else,” he said. “I don’t find anything funny about Mr. Price’s story of his adventure. Wow! that was really intense. Mr. Price, when you talk about being scared for the only time in your life, I get what you mean. I’ve been scared once.”
“Dook, I wouldn’t hev thought it of you,” replied Monty. “I’m sure tolerable curious to hear about it.”
“Dook, I wouldn’t have thought that of you,” replied Monty. “I’m really curious to hear about it.”
Madeline and her friends dared not break the spell, for fear that the Englishman might hold to his usual modest reticence. He had explored in Brazil, seen service in the Boer War, hunted in India and Africa—matters of experience of which he never spoke. Upon this occasion, however, evidently taking Monty’s recital word for word as literal truth, and excited by it into a Homeric mood, he might tell a story. The cowboys almost fell upon their knees in their importunity. There was a suppressed eagerness in their solicitations, a hint of something that meant more than desire, great as it was, to hear a story told by an English lord. Madeline divined instantly that the cowboys had suddenly fancied that Castleton was not the dense and easily fooled person they had made such game of; that he had played his part well; that he was having fun at their expense; that he meant to tell a story, a lie which would simply dwarf Monty’s. Nels’s keen, bright expectation suggested how he would welcome the joke turned upon Monty. The slow closing of Monty’s cavernous smile, the gradual sinking of his proud bearing, the doubt with which he began to regard Castleton—these were proofs of his fears.
Madeline and her friends didn't dare break the spell, worried that the Englishman might stick to his usual modest silence. He had traveled in Brazil, served in the Boer War, and hunted in India and Africa—experiences he never talked about. However, this time, clearly taking Monty’s story at face value and getting caught up in the excitement, he might actually share a tale. The cowboys were practically begging him to do so. There was a barely contained eagerness in their requests, a hint of something deeper than just wanting to hear a story from an English lord. Madeline quickly sensed that the cowboys had realized Castleton wasn’t the naive fool they had made him out to be; he had played his role convincingly, was enjoying himself at their expense, and intended to tell a story—a lie that would far outshine Monty’s. Nels’s eager anticipation showed how much he would relish the joke turned on Monty. The slow fade of Monty’s wide grin, the gradual drop in his haughty demeanor, and the doubt starting to creep in about Castleton were all signs of his anxiety.
“I have faced charging tigers and elephants in India, and charging rhinos and lions in Africa,” began Castleton, his quick and fluent speech so different from the drawl of his ordinary conversation; “but I never was frightened but once. It will not do to hunt those wild beasts if you are easily balled up. This adventure I have in mind happened in British East Africa, in Uganda. I was out with safari, and we were in a native district much infested by man-eating lions. Perhaps I may as well state that man-eaters are very different from ordinary lions. They are always matured beasts, and sometimes—indeed, mostly—are old. They become man-eaters most likely by accident or necessity. When old they find it more difficult to make a kill, being slower, probably, and with poorer teeth. Driven by hunger, they stalk and kill a native, and, once having tasted human blood, they want no other. They become absolutely fearless and terrible in their attacks.
“I’ve faced charging tigers and elephants in India and charging rhinos and lions in Africa,” Castleton began, his quick and smooth speech so different from his usual drawl. “But I’ve only been scared once. You can’t hunt these wild animals if you’re easily rattled. This adventure I’m thinking of happened in British East Africa, in Uganda. I was out with a safari, and we were in an area heavily populated by man-eating lions. I should mention that man-eaters are very different from regular lions. They’re always fully grown, and often quite old. They usually become man-eaters by accident or out of necessity. When they get old, it becomes harder for them to hunt, as they’re slower and have weaker teeth. Driven by hunger, they stalk and kill a local person, and once they’ve tasted human blood, they don’t want anything else. They become completely fearless and deadly in their attacks.
“The natives of this village near where we camped were in a terrorized state owing to depredations of two or more man-eaters. The night of our arrival a lion leaped a stockade fence, seized a native from among others sitting round a fire, and leaped out again, carrying the screaming fellow away into the darkness. I determined to kill these lions, and made a permanent camp in the village for that purpose. By day I sent beaters into the brush and rocks of the river-valley, and by night I watched. Every night the lions visited us, but I did not see one. I discovered that when they roared around the camp they were not so liable to attack as when they were silent. It was indeed remarkable how silently they could stalk a man. They could creep through a thicket so dense you would not believe a rabbit could get through, and do it without the slightest sound. Then, when ready to charge, they did so with terrible onslaught and roar. They leaped right into a circle of fires, tore down huts, even dragged natives from the low trees. There was no way to tell at which point they would make an attack.
The locals in this village near our campsite were terrified because of attacks by one or more man-eating lions. On the night we arrived, a lion jumped over a stockade fence, grabbed a person from a group sitting around a fire, and jumped away, taking the screaming man into the darkness. I decided to hunt these lions and set up a permanent camp in the village to do so. During the day, I sent out beaters into the brush and rocks of the river valley, and at night, I kept watch. Every night, the lions came close, but I never saw one. I found out that when they roared around the camp, they were less likely to attack than when they were quiet. It was incredible how silently they could stalk a person. They could move through thickets so dense that you wouldn’t think a rabbit could squeeze through, and they did it without making a sound. Then, when they were ready to charge, they would do so with a terrifying leap and roar. They would jump right into a circle of fires, tear down huts, and even pull villagers from low trees. There was no way to predict where they would strike next.
“After ten days or more of this I was worn out by loss of sleep. And one night, when tired out with watching, I fell asleep. My gun-bearer was alone in the tent with me. A terrible roar awakened me, then an unearthly scream pierced right into my ears. I always slept with my rifle in my hands, and, grasping it, I tried to rise. But I could not for the reason that a lion was standing over me. Then I lay still. The screams of my gun-bearer told me that the lion had him. I was fond of this fellow and wanted to save him. I thought it best, however, not to move while the lion stood over me. Suddenly he stepped, and I felt poor Luki’s feet dragging across me. He screamed, ‘Save me, master!’ And instinctively I grasped at him and caught his foot. The lion walked out of the tent dragging me as I held to Luki’s foot. The night was bright moonlight. I could see the lion distinctly. He was a huge, black-maned brute, and he held Luki by the shoulder. The poor lad kept screaming frightfully. The man-eater must have dragged me forty yards before he became aware of a double incumbrance to his progress. Then he halted and turned. By Jove! he made a devilish fierce object with his shaggy, massive head, his green-fire eyes, and his huge jaws holding Luki. I let go of Luki’s foot and bethought myself of the gun. But as I lay there on my side, before attempting to rise, I made a horrible discovery. I did not have my rifle at all. I had Luki’s iron spear, which he always had near him. My rifle had slipped out of the hollow of my arm, and when the lion awakened me, in my confusion I picked up Luki’s spear instead. The bloody brute dropped Luki and uttered a roar that shook the ground. It was then I felt frightened. For an instant I was almost paralyzed. The lion meant to charge, and in one spring he could reach me. Under circumstances like those a man can think many things in little time. I knew to try to run would be fatal. I remembered how strangely lions had been known to act upon occasion. One had been frightened by an umbrella; one had been frightened by a blast from a cow-horn; another had been frightened by a native who in running from one lion ran right at the other which he had not seen. Accordingly, I wondered if I could frighten the lion that meant to leap at me. Acting upon wild impulse, I prodded him in the hind quarters with the spear. Ladies and gentlemen, I am a blooming idiot if that lion did not cower like a whipped dog, put his tail down, and begin to slink away. Quick to see my chance, I jumped up yelling, and made after him, prodding him again. He let out a bellow such as you could imagine would come from an outraged king of beasts. I prodded again, and then he loped off. I found Luki not badly hurt. In fact, he got well. But I’ve never forgotten that scare.”
“After ten days or more of this, I was exhausted from lack of sleep. One night, completely worn out from watching, I fell asleep. My gun-bearer was alone in the tent with me. A terrible roar woke me, followed by an unearthly scream that pierced my ears. I always slept holding my rifle, and as I gripped it, I tried to get up. But I couldn’t because a lion was standing over me. So, I lay still. The screams of my gun-bearer told me the lion had him. I cared about this guy and wanted to save him, but I thought it was best not to move while the lion was above me. Suddenly, the lion stepped away, and I felt poor Luki’s feet dragging across me. He screamed, ‘Save me, master!’ Instinctively, I reached for him and grabbed his foot. The lion walked out of the tent dragging me with him as I held on to Luki’s foot. It was a bright moonlit night, and I could see the lion clearly. He was a massive black-maned beast, holding Luki by the shoulder. The poor kid kept screaming terribly. The man-eater must have dragged me about forty yards before he noticed the extra weight slowing him down. Then he stopped and turned. Good grief! He looked like a fierce beast with his shaggy, massive head, glowing green eyes, and massive jaws clutching Luki. I let go of Luki’s foot and thought about my gun. But as I lay there on my side, before trying to get up, I made a horrifying discovery: I didn’t have my rifle at all. I had Luki’s iron spear, which he always kept nearby. My rifle had slipped out of my arm, and in my confusion when the lion woke me, I grabbed Luki’s spear instead. The bloody brute dropped Luki and let out a roar that shook the ground. That was when I really got scared. For a moment, I was almost frozen in place. The lion looked ready to charge, and in one leap, he could reach me. In situations like that, a person can think a lot in a tiny amount of time. I knew that running would be fatal. I remembered how oddly lions had reacted before; one had been scared off by an umbrella, another by a blast from a cow-horn, and another was startled when a native, while running from one lion, ran straight at another he hadn’t seen. So I wondered if I could scare off the lion that was about to jump at me. Acting on pure instinct, I poked him in the rear with the spear. Ladies and gentlemen, I must be a complete fool if that lion didn’t cower like a beaten dog, tuck his tail, and start to slink away. Seizing my chance, I jumped up yelling and chased after him, poking him again. He let out a roar that sounded like it came from an enraged king of the beasts. I poked him again, and then he took off. I found Luki not seriously hurt. In fact, he recovered. But I’ve never forgotten that scare.”
When Castleton finished his narrative there was a trenchant silence. All eyes were upon Monty. He looked beaten, disgraced, a disgusted man. Yet there shone from his face a wonderful admiration for Castleton.
When Castleton ended his story, there was a sharp silence. Everyone was focused on Monty. He appeared defeated, ashamed, and disgusted. Yet there was a remarkable admiration for Castleton shining from his face.
“Dook, you win!” he said; and, dropping his head, he left the camp-fire circle with the manner of a deposed emperor.
“Dook, you win!” he said, and, hanging his head, he walked away from the campfire circle like a deposed emperor.
Then the cowboys exploded. The quiet, serene, low-voiced Nels yelled like a madman and he stood upon his head. All the other cowboys went through marvelous contortions. Mere noise was insufficient to relieve their joy at what they considered the fall and humiliation of the tyrant Monty.
Then the cowboys went crazy. The calm, gentle, soft-spoken Nels yelled like a lunatic and stood on his head. All the other cowboys twisted and turned in amazing ways. Just making noise wasn't enough to express their happiness at what they saw as the downfall and embarrassment of the tyrant Monty.
The Englishman stood there and watched them in amused consternation. They baffled his understanding. Plain it was to Madeline and her friends that Castleton had told the simple truth. But never on the earth, or anywhere else, could Nels and his comrades have been persuaded that Castleton had not lied deliberately to humble their great exponent of Ananias.
The Englishman stood there and watched them in puzzled amusement. They confused him. It was clear to Madeline and her friends that Castleton had spoken the truth. But no way could Nels and his buddies be convinced that Castleton hadn’t intentionally lied to put down their great master of deceit.
Everybody seemed reluctant to break the camp-fire spell. The logs had burned out to a great heap of opal and gold and red coals, in the heart of which quivered a glow alluring to the spirit of dreams. As the blaze subsided the shadows of the pines encroached darker and darker upon the circle of fading light. A cool wind fanned the embers, whipped up flakes of white ashes, and moaned through the trees. The wild yelps of coyotes were dying in the distance, and the sky was a wonderful dark-blue dome spangled with white stars.
Everyone seemed hesitant to break the campfire magic. The logs had burned down to a great pile of glowing coals in shades of opal, gold, and red, in the center of which flickered a light that was so enticing to the spirit of dreams. As the flames died down, the shadows of the pines crept darker and darker into the circle of fading light. A cool breeze stirred the embers, sent up white ash flakes, and sighed through the trees. The wild yelps of coyotes faded in the distance, and the sky was a beautiful dark blue dome dotted with white stars.
“What a perfect night!” said Madeline. “This is a night to understand the dream, the mystery, the wonder of the Southwest. Florence, for long you have promised to tell us the story of the lost mine of the padres. It will give us all pleasure, make us understand something of the thrall in which this land held the Spaniards who discovered it so many years ago. It will be especially interesting now, because this mountain hides somewhere under its crags the treasures of the lost mine of the padres.”
“What a perfect night!” said Madeline. “This is a night to grasp the dream, the mystery, the wonder of the Southwest. Florence, you've promised for so long to share the story of the lost mine of the padres. It will bring us all joy and help us understand the hold this land had on the Spaniards who discovered it so many years ago. It'll be especially fascinating now, because this mountain hides somewhere among its cliffs the treasures of the lost mine of the padres.”
“In the sixteenth century,” Florence began, in her soft, slow voice so suited to the nature of the legend, “a poor young padre of New Spain was shepherding his goats upon a hill when the Virgin appeared before him. He prostrated himself at her feet, and when he looked up she was gone. But upon the maguey plant near where she had stood there were golden ashes of a strange and wonderful substance. He took the incident as a good omen and went again to the hilltop. Under the maguey had sprung up slender stalks of white, bearing delicate gold flowers, and as these flowers waved in the wind a fine golden dust, as fine as powdered ashes, blew away toward the north. Padre Juan was mystified, but believed that great fortune attended upon him and his poor people. So he went again and again to the hilltop in hope that the Virgin would appear to him.
“In the sixteenth century,” Florence began, in her soft, slow voice that matched the nature of the legend, “a poor young priest from New Spain was herding his goats on a hill when the Virgin appeared before him. He fell to his knees at her feet, and when he looked up, she was gone. But on the maguey plant near where she had stood, there were golden ashes of a strange and wonderful substance. He took this as a good sign and went back to the hilltop. Under the maguey, slender white stalks had sprouted, carrying delicate gold flowers, and as these flowers swayed in the wind, a fine golden dust, as fine as powdered ashes, blew northward. Father Juan was puzzled but believed that great fortune awaited him and his poor people. So he returned to the hilltop again and again, hoping the Virgin would appear to him.”
“One morning, as the sun rose gloriously, he looked across the windy hill toward the waving grass and golden flowers under the maguey, and he saw the Virgin beckoning to him. Again he fell upon his knees; but she lifted him and gave him of the golden flowers, and bade him leave his home and people to follow where these blowing golden ashes led. There he would find gold—pure gold—wonderful fortune to bring back to his poor people to build a church for them, and a city.
“One morning, as the sun rose beautifully, he looked across the windy hill toward the swaying grass and golden flowers under the maguey, and he saw the Virgin calling to him. He fell to his knees again, but she lifted him up and gave him the golden flowers, telling him to leave his home and people to follow where these blowing golden ashes led. There he would find gold—pure gold—amazing fortune to bring back to his poor people to build a church for them, and a city.”
“Padre Juan took the flowers and left his home, promising to return, and he traveled northward over the hot and dusty desert, through the mountain passes, to a new country where fierce and warlike Indians menaced his life. He was gentle and good, and of a persuasive speech. Moreover, he was young and handsome of person. The Indians were Apaches, and among them he became a missionary, while always he was searching for the flowers of gold. He heard of gold lying in pebbles upon the mountain slopes, but he never found any. A few of the Apaches he converted; the most of them, however, were prone to be hostile to him and his religion. But Padre Juan prayed and worked on.
“Padre Juan took the flowers and left his home, promising to return. He travelled north through the hot, dusty desert and over the mountain passes to a new land where fierce, warlike Indians threatened his life. He was gentle, kind, and had a persuasive way of speaking. Plus, he was young and handsome. The Indians were Apaches, and he became a missionary among them, always searching for the flowers of gold. He heard that gold lay in pebbles on the mountain slopes, but he never found any. A few of the Apaches converted to his faith; however, most were hostile towards him and his religion. But Padre Juan continued to pray and work on.”
“There came a time when the old Apache chief, imagining the padre had designs upon his influence with the tribe, sought to put him to death by fire. The chief’s daughter, a beautiful, dark-eyed maiden, secretly loved Juan and believed in his mission, and she interceded for his life and saved him. Juan fell in love with her. One day she came to him wearing golden flowers in her dark hair, and as the wind blew the flowers a golden dust blew upon it. Juan asked her where to find such flowers, and she told him that upon a certain day she would take him to the mountain to look for them. And upon the day she led up to the mountain-top from which they could see beautiful valleys and great trees and cool waters. There at the top of a wonderful slope that looked down upon the world, she showed Juan the flowers. And Juan found gold in such abundance that he thought he would go out of his mind. Dust of gold! Grains of gold! Pebbles of gold! Rocks of gold! He was rich beyond all dreams. He remembered the Virgin and her words. He must return to his people and build their church, and the great city that would bear his name.
“There came a time when the old Apache chief, suspecting the padre wanted to undermine his influence with the tribe, planned to have him killed by fire. The chief’s daughter, a beautiful, dark-eyed girl, secretly loved Juan and believed in his mission, so she pleaded for his life and saved him. Juan fell in love with her. One day she approached him with golden flowers in her dark hair, and as the wind blew, the flowers shed a glittering dust. Juan asked her where to find such flowers, and she told him that on a certain day she would take him to the mountain to search for them. On that day, she led him to the mountaintop, where they could see stunning valleys, majestic trees, and cool waters. At the top of a breathtaking slope overlooking the world, she showed Juan the flowers. Juan found gold in such abundance that it nearly drove him insane. Gold dust! Gold grains! Gold pebbles! Gold rocks! He was richer than he had ever imagined. He remembered the Virgin and her words. He needed to return to his people and build their church, and the great city that would carry his name.
“But Juan tarried. Always he was going manana. He loved the dark-eyed Apache girl so well that he could not leave her. He hated himself for his infidelity to his Virgin, to his people. He was weak and false, a sinner. But he could not go, and he gave himself up to love of the Indian maiden.
“But Juan lingered. He always said he would leave tomorrow. He loved the dark-eyed Apache girl so much that he couldn't bring himself to leave her. He despised himself for being unfaithful to his Virgin, to his people. He felt weak and dishonest, a sinner. But he couldn't go, and he surrendered himself to his love for the Indian maiden.”
“The old Apache chief discovered the secret love of his daughter and the padre. And, fierce in his anger, he took her up into the mountains and burned her alive and cast her ashes upon the wind. He did not kill Padre Juan. He was too wise, and perhaps too cruel, for he saw the strength of Juan’s love. Besides, many of his tribe had learned much from the Spaniard.
“The old Apache chief found out about the secret love between his daughter and the padre. In his rage, he took her into the mountains, burned her alive, and scattered her ashes in the wind. He didn’t kill Padre Juan. He was too clever, and maybe too cruel, because he recognized the power of Juan’s love. Also, many of his tribe had learned a lot from the Spaniard.”
“Padre Juan fell into despair. He had no desire to live. He faded and wasted away. But before he died he went to the old Indians who had burned the maiden, and he begged them, when he was dead, to burn his body and to cast his ashes to the wind from that wonderful slope, where they would blow away to mingle forever with those of his Indian sweetheart.
“Padre Juan fell into despair. He had no desire to live. He faded and wasted away. But before he died, he went to the old Indians who had burned the maiden, and he begged them, when he was dead, to burn his body and scatter his ashes to the wind from that beautiful slope, where they would blow away to mix forever with those of his Indian sweetheart.
“The Indians promised, and when Padre Juan died they burned his body and took his ashes to the mountain heights and cast them to the wind, where they drifted and fell to mix with the ashes of the Indian girl he had loved.
“The Native Americans promised, and when Padre Juan died, they burned his body and took his ashes to the mountain heights and scattered them to the wind, where they drifted down to mix with the ashes of the Indian girl he had loved.
“Years passed. More padres traveled across the desert to the home of the Apaches, and they heard the story of Juan. Among their number was a padre who in his youth had been one of Juan’s people. He set forth to find Juan’s grave, where he believed he would also find the gold. And he came back with pebbles of gold and flowers that shed a golden dust, and he told a wonderful story. He had climbed and climbed into the mountains, and he had come to a wonderful slope under the crags. That slope was yellow with golden flowers. When he touched them golden ashes drifted from them and blew down among the rocks. There the padre found dust of gold, grains of gold, pebbles of gold, rocks of gold.
“Years went by. More padres journeyed across the desert to the Apaches' home, and they heard the story of Juan. Among them was a padre who, in his youth, had been one of Juan's people. He set out to find Juan's grave, believing he would also discover the gold. He returned with gold pebbles and flowers that released a golden dust, sharing an incredible story. He had climbed and climbed into the mountains and arrived at a stunning slope beneath the rocky crags. That slope was covered in golden flowers. When he touched them, golden ashes floated away and scattered among the rocks. There, the padre found gold dust, gold grains, gold pebbles, and gold rocks.”
“Then all the padres went into the mountains. But the discoverer of the mine lost his way. They searched and searched until they were old and gray, but never found the wonderful slope and flowers that marked the grave and the mine of Padre Juan.
“Then all the priests went into the mountains. But the guy who found the mine got lost. They searched and searched until they were old and gray, but they never found the beautiful slope and flowers that marked the grave and the mine of Padre Juan."
“In the succeeding years the story was handed down from father to son. But of the many who hunted for the lost mine of the padres there was never a Mexican or an Apache. For the Apache the mountain slopes were haunted by the spirit of an Indian maiden who had been false to her tribe and forever accursed. For the Mexican the mountain slopes were haunted by the spirit of the false padre who rolled stones upon the heads of those adventurers who sought to find his grave and his accursed gold.”
“In the following years, the story was passed down from father to son. However, among all those who searched for the lost mine of the padres, there was never a Mexican or an Apache. For the Apache, the mountain slopes were haunted by the spirit of an Indian maiden who had betrayed her tribe and was forever cursed. For the Mexican, the mountain slopes were haunted by the spirit of the false padre who dropped stones on the heads of those adventurers who tried to find his grave and his cursed gold.”
XVIII. Bonita
Florence’s story of the lost mine fired Madeline’s guests with the fever for gold-hunting. But after they had tried it a few times and the glamour of the thing wore off they gave up and remained in camp. Having exhausted all the resources of the mountain, such that had interest for them, they settled quietly down for a rest, which Madeline knew would soon end in a desire for civilized comforts. They were almost tired of roughing it. Helen’s discontent manifested itself in her remark, “I guess nothing is going to happen, after all.”
Florence’s tale about the lost mine sparked Madeline’s guests with excitement for gold hunting. But after a few attempts and the thrill faded, they gave up and stayed at camp. Having explored all the appealing resources of the mountain, they settled down for a break, which Madeline knew wouldn’t last long before they craved modern comforts again. They were nearly fed up with living rough. Helen’s dissatisfaction showed in her comment, “I guess nothing’s going to happen, after all.”
Madeline awaited their pleasure in regard to the breaking of camp; and meanwhile, as none of them cared for more exertion, she took her walks without them, sometimes accompanied by one of the cowboys, always by the stag-hounds. These walks furnished her exceeding pleasure. And, now that the cowboys would talk to her without reserve, she grew fonder of listening to their simple stories. The more she knew of them the more she doubted the wisdom of shut-in lives. Companionship with Nels and most of the cowboys was in its effect like that of the rugged pines and crags and the untainted wind. Humor, their predominant trait when a person grew to know them, saved Madeline from finding their hardness trying. They were dreamers, as all men who lived lonely lives in the wilds were dreamers.
Madeline waited for their decision about breaking camp, and since none of them wanted to do much more, she went for walks on her own, sometimes with one of the cowboys, but always with the stag-hounds. These walks gave her a lot of joy. Now that the cowboys would talk to her more openly, she enjoyed listening to their simple stories even more. The more she learned about them, the more she questioned the wisdom of isolated lives. Being with Nels and most of the cowboys felt refreshing, like the rugged pines, cliffs, and clean wind. Their humor, which stood out once you got to know them, saved Madeline from being bothered by their roughness. They were dreamers, just like all men who lived alone in the wild.
The cowboys all had secrets. Madeline learned some of them. She marveled most at the strange way in which they hid emotions, except of violence of mirth and temper so easily aroused. It was all the more remarkable in view of the fact that they felt intensely over little things to which men of the world were blind and dead. Madeline had to believe that a hard and perilous life in a barren and wild country developed great principles in men. Living close to earth, under the cold, bleak peaks, on the dust-veiled desert, men grew like the nature that developed them—hard, fierce, terrible, perhaps, but big—big with elemental force.
The cowboys all had secrets. Madeline discovered some of them. She was most amazed by the odd way they concealed their emotions, except for the easily triggered violence, laughter, and anger. This was especially striking considering they felt deeply about small things that city folks often overlooked. Madeline had to believe that a tough and dangerous life in a harsh and wild land shaped strong principles in men. Living close to the earth, beneath the cold, bleak peaks, on the dust-covered desert, men became like the environment that formed them—tough, fierce, frightening, perhaps, but also big—big with raw power.
But one day, while out walking alone, before she realized it she had gone a long way down a dim trail winding among the rocks. It was the middle of a summer afternoon, and all about her were shadows of the crags crossing the sunlit patches. The quiet was undisturbed. She went on and on, not blind to the fact that she was perhaps going too far from camp, but risking it because she was sure of her way back, and enjoying the wild, craggy recesses that were new to her. Finally she came out upon a bank that broke abruptly into a beautiful little glade. Here she sat down to rest before undertaking the return trip.
But one day, while walking alone, she realized that she had walked a long way down a dim trail winding among the rocks. It was the middle of a summer afternoon, and all around her were shadows of the cliffs crossing the sunlit spots. The silence was unbroken. She kept going, aware that she was probably straying too far from camp, but she took the risk because she was confident she could find her way back and was enjoying the wild, rocky areas that were new to her. Finally, she emerged onto a bank that dropped suddenly into a beautiful little glade. Here, she sat down to rest before starting the trip back.
Suddenly Russ, the keener of the stag-hounds, raised his head and growled. Madeline feared he might have scented a mountain-lion or wildcat. She quieted him and carefully looked around. To each side was an irregular line of massive blocks of stone that had weathered from the crags. The little glade was open and grassy, with here a pine-tree, there a boulder. The outlet seemed to go down into a wilderness of canyons and ridges. Looking in this direction, Madeline saw the slight, dark figure of a woman coming stealthily along under the pines. Madeline was amazed, then a little frightened, for that stealthy walk from tree to tree was suggestive of secrecy, if nothing worse.
Suddenly, Russ, the keeper of the stag-hounds, raised his head and growled. Madeline worried he might have caught the scent of a mountain lion or wildcat. She hushed him and scanned her surroundings. On either side, there was an uneven line of massive stone blocks that had eroded from the cliffs. The small glade was open and grassy, with a pine tree here and a boulder there. The path seemed to lead down into a wilderness of canyons and ridges. Looking in that direction, Madeline spotted a slight, dark figure of a woman moving quietly under the pines. Madeline was astonished and a little scared, as that cautious movement from tree to tree hinted at secrecy, if not something worse.
Presently the woman was joined by a tall man who carried a package, which he gave to her. They came on up the glade and appeared to be talking earnestly. In another moment Madeline recognized Stewart. She had no greater feeling of surprise than had at first been hers. But for the next moment she scarcely thought at all—merely watched the couple approaching. In a flash came back her former curiosity as to Stewart’s strange absences from camp, and then with the return of her doubt of him the recognition of the woman. The small, dark head, the brown face, the big eyes—Madeline now saw distinctly—belonged to the Mexican girl Bonita. Stewart had met her there. This was the secret of his lonely trips, taken ever since he had come to work for Madeline. This secluded glade was a rendezvous. He had her hidden there.
Right then, a tall man joined the woman, carrying a package, which he handed to her. They walked up the path and seemed to be talking seriously. In a moment, Madeline recognized Stewart. She wasn’t any more surprised than she had been initially. But for the next moment, she barely thought at all—just watched the couple as they approached. Suddenly, her earlier curiosity about Stewart's strange absences from camp returned, and with that doubt came the realization of who the woman was. The small, dark head, the brown face, the big eyes—Madeline could now clearly see—belonged to the Mexican girl Bonita. Stewart had met her there. This was the reason for his lonely trips since he had started working for Madeline. This secluded glade was a meeting spot. He had been hiding her there.
Quietly Madeline arose, with a gesture to the dogs, and went back along the trail toward camp. Succeeding her surprise was a feeling of sorrow that Stewart’s regeneration had not been complete. Sorrow gave place to insufferable distrust that while she had been romancing about this cowboy, dreaming of her good influence over him, he had been merely base. Somehow it stung her. Stewart had been nothing to her, she thought, yet she had been proud of him. She tried to revolve the thing, to be fair to him, when every instinctive tendency was to expel him, and all pertaining to him, from her thoughts. And her effort at sympathy, at extenuation, failed utterly before her pride. Exerting her will-power, she dismissed Stewart from her mind.
Quietly, Madeline got up, gesturing to the dogs, and walked back along the trail to camp. After her shock came a wave of sadness that Stewart’s transformation hadn’t been complete. Sadness gave way to unbearable distrust that while she had been imagining a future with this cowboy and dreaming of how she could improve him, he had been nothing but selfish. It somehow hurt her. Stewart had meant nothing to her, she thought, yet she had been proud of him. She tried to reconsider things, to be fair to him, even when every instinct was telling her to push him and everything related to him out of her mind. Her attempts at sympathy and understanding completely failed against her pride. Summoning her willpower, she pushed Stewart out of her thoughts.
Madeline did not think of him again till late that afternoon, when, as she was leaving her tent to join several of her guests, Stewart appeared suddenly in her path.
Madeline didn’t think about him again until late that afternoon when, as she was exiting her tent to join some of her guests, Stewart unexpectedly appeared in her way.
“Miss Hammond, I saw your tracks down the trail,” he began, eagerly, but his tone was easy and natural. “I’m thinking—well, maybe you sure got the idea—”
“Miss Hammond, I noticed your tracks on the trail,” he started, excitedly, but his tone was relaxed and casual. “I’m thinking—well, maybe you definitely got the idea—”
“I do not wish for an explanation,” interrupted Madeline.
“I don’t need an explanation,” Madeline interrupted.
Stewart gave a slight start. His manner had a semblance of the old, cool audacity. As he looked down at her it subtly changed.
Stewart jumped slightly. He had a hint of his old, cool confidence. But as he looked down at her, it gradually shifted.
What effrontery, Madeline thought, to face her before her guests with an explanation of his conduct! Suddenly she felt an inward flash of fire that was pain, so strange, so incomprehensible, that her mind whirled. Then anger possessed her, not at Stewart, but at herself, that anything could rouse in her a raw emotion. She stood there, outwardly cold, serene, with level, haughty eyes upon Stewart; but inwardly she was burning with rage and shame.
What nerve, Madeline thought, to confront her in front of her guests with an explanation of his behavior! Suddenly, she felt an intense flash of pain inside her, so strange and incomprehensible that her mind spiraled. Then anger took over, not directed at Stewart, but at herself, that anything could provoke such raw emotion within her. She stood there, looking outwardly cold and calm, with haughty, steady eyes on Stewart; but inside, she was consumed with rage and shame.
“I’m sure not going to have you think—” He began passionately, but he broke off, and a slow, dull crimson blotted over the healthy red-brown of his neck and cheeks.
“I’m definitely not going to let you think—” He started passionately, but he stopped, and a slow, dull crimson spread over the healthy red-brown of his neck and cheeks.
“What you do or think, Stewart, is no concern of mine.”
“What you do or think, Stewart, doesn’t concern me.”
“Miss—Miss Hammond! You don’t believe—” faltered Stewart.
“Miss—Miss Hammond! You don’t believe—” Stewart stammered.
The crimson receded from his face, leaving it pale. His eyes were appealing. They had a kind of timid look that struck Madeline even in her anger. There was something boyish about him then. He took a step forward and reached out with his hand open-palmed in a gesture that was humble, yet held a certain dignity.
The red faded from his face, leaving it pale. His eyes were inviting. They had a sort of shy look that caught Madeline’s attention even in her anger. There was something youthful about him then. He stepped forward and extended his hand, open and humble, yet still carrying a sense of dignity.
“But listen. Never mind now what you—you think about me. There’s a good reason—”
“But listen. Forget what you—you think about me. There’s a good reason—”
“I have no wish to hear your reason.”
“I don’t want to hear your explanation.”
“But you ought to,” he persisted.
“But you should,” he said.
“Sir!”
"Hey!"
Stewart underwent another swift change. He started violently. A dark tide shaded his face and a glitter leaped to his eyes. He took two long strides—loomed over her.
Stewart quickly changed again. He started abruptly. A dark wave crossed his face and a spark flickered in his eyes. He took two long steps—towered over her.
“I’m not thinking about myself,” he thundered. “Will you listen?”
“I’m not thinking about myself,” he yelled. “Will you listen?”
“No,” she replied; and there was freezing hauteur in her voice. With a slight gesture of dismissal, unmistakable in its finality, she turned her back upon him. Then she joined her guests.
“No,” she replied, her tone icy and dismissive. With a slight gesture that clearly signaled the end of the conversation, she turned her back on him. Then she rejoined her guests.
Stewart stood perfectly motionless. Then slowly he began to lift his right hand in which he held his sombrero. He swept it up and up high over his head. His tall form towered. With fierce suddenness he flung his sombrero down. He leaped at his black horse and dragged him to where his saddle lay. With one pitch he tossed the saddle upon the horse’s back. His strong hands flashed at girths and straps. Every action was swift, decisive, fierce. Bounding for his bridle, which hung over a bush, he ran against a cowboy who awkwardly tried to avoid the onslaught.
Stewart stood completely still. Then slowly, he started to lift his right hand, where he held his sombrero. He raised it high above his head. His tall figure loomed. Suddenly, with fierce energy, he tossed his sombrero down. He jumped at his black horse and pulled it over to where his saddle was lying. In one swift motion, he threw the saddle onto the horse’s back. His strong hands moved quickly with the girths and straps. Every action was fast, decisive, and intense. Rushing for his bridle that was hanging over a bush, he collided with a cowboy who awkwardly tried to dodge him.
“Get out of my way!” he yelled.
“Get out of my way!” he shouted.
Then with the same savage haste he adjusted the bridle on his horse.
Then, with the same fierce urgency, he adjusted the bridle on his horse.
“Mebbe you better hold on a minnit, Gene, ole feller,” said Monty Price.
“Maybe you should hold on a minute, Gene, old buddy,” said Monty Price.
“Monty, do you want me to brain you?” said Stewart, with the short, hard ring in his voice.
“Monty, do you want me to knock you out?” said Stewart, his voice sharp and intense.
“Now, considerin’ the high class of my brains, I oughter be real careful to keep ’em,” replied Monty. “You can betcher life, Gene, I ain’t goin’ to git in front of you. But I jest says—Listen!”
“Now, considering the high quality of my intelligence, I should be really careful to protect it,” replied Monty. “You can bet your life, Gene, I’m not going to get in your way. But I just want to say—Listen!”
Stewart raised his dark face. Everybody listened. And everybody heard the rapid beat of a horse’s hoofs. The sun had set, but the park was light. Nels appeared down the trail, and his horse was running. In another moment he was in the circle, pulling his bay back to a sliding halt. He leaped off abreast of Stewart.
Stewart lifted his dark face. Everyone listened. And everyone heard the quick sound of a horse’s hooves. The sun had gone down, but the park was still bright. Nels came into view down the trail, and his horse was moving fast. In no time, he was in the circle, bringing his bay to a sliding stop. He jumped off next to Stewart.
Madeline saw and felt a difference in Nels’s presence.
Madeline noticed a change in how Nels was acting.
“What’s up, Gene?” he queried, sharply.
“What’s up, Gene?” he asked sharply.
“I’m leaving camp,” replied Stewart, thickly. His black horse began to stamp as Stewart grasped bridle and mane and kicked the stirrup round.
“I’m leaving camp,” Stewart replied, thickly. His black horse started to stamp as he grabbed the bridle and mane and kicked the stirrup around.
Nels’s long arm shot out, and his hand fell upon Stewart, holding him down.
Nels reached out with his long arm and grabbed Stewart, pinning him down.
“Shore I’m sorry,” said Nels, slowly. “Then you was goin’ to hit the trail?”
“Sure, I’m sorry,” said Nels, slowly. “So you were going to hit the road?”
“I am going to. Let go, Nels.”
“I’m going to. Let go, Nels.”
“Shore you ain’t goin’, Gene?”
"Are you sure you're not going, Gene?"
“Let go, damn you!” cried Stewart, as he wrestled free.
“Let go, damn it!” shouted Stewart, as he broke free.
“What’s wrong?” asked Nels, lifting his hand again.
“What’s wrong?” Nels asked, raising his hand again.
“Man! Don’t touch me!”
"Hey! Don’t touch me!"
Nels stepped back instantly. He seemed to become aware of Stewart’s white, wild passion. Again Stewart moved to mount.
Nels stepped back immediately. He appeared to realize Stewart’s intense, wild passion. Once more, Stewart moved to mount.
“Nels, don’t make me forget we’ve been friends,” he said.
“Nels, don’t let me forget that we’re friends,” he said.
“Shore I ain’t fergettin’,” replied Nels. “An’ I resign my job right here an’ now!”
“Sure I’m not forgetting,” replied Nels. “And I quit my job right here and now!”
His strange speech checked the mounting cowboy. Stewart stepped down from the stirrup. Then their hard faces were still and cold while their eyes locked glances.
His unusual words stopped the advancing cowboy. Stewart got down from the stirrup. Then their tough faces were quiet and cold as their eyes held each other's gaze.
Madeline was as much startled by Nels’s speech as Stewart. Quick to note a change in these men, she now sensed one that was unfathomable.
Madeline was just as surprised by Nels’s speech as Stewart was. Quick to notice a change in these guys, she now felt one that was impossible to understand.
“Resign?” questioned Stewart.
"Resign?" Stewart asked.
“Shore. What ’d you think I’d do under circumstances sich as has come up?”
“Sure. What did you think I’d do in circumstances like this?”
“But see here, Nels, I won’t stand for it.”
“But listen, Nels, I won't put up with it.”
“You’re not my boss no more, an’ I ain’t beholdin’ to Miss Hammond, neither. I’m my own boss, an’ I’ll do as I please. Sabe, senor?”
“You’re not my boss anymore, and I’m not obligated to Miss Hammond either. I’m my own boss, and I’ll do what I want. Got it, sir?”
Nels’s words were at variance with the meaning in his face.
Nels's words didn't match the expression on his face.
“Gene, you sent me on a little scout down in the mountains, didn’t you?” he continued.
“Gene, you sent me on a little scouting trip in the mountains, didn’t you?” he continued.
“Yes, I did,” replied Stewart, with a new sharpness in his voice.
“Yeah, I did,” Stewart replied, with a new edge in his voice.
“Wal, shore you was so good an’ right in your figgerin’, as opposed to mine, that I’m sick with admirin’ of you. If you hedn’t sent me—wal, I’m reckonin’ somethin’ might hev happened. As it is we’re shore up against a hell of a proposition!”
“Wow, you were so good and right in your figuring compared to mine that I’m really impressed by you. If you hadn’t sent me—well, I’m thinking something might have happened. As it is, we’re definitely up against a tough situation!”
How significant was the effect of his words upon all the cowboys! Stewart made a fierce and violent motion, terrible where his other motions had been but passionate. Monty leaped straight up into the air in a singular action as suggestive of surprise as it was of wild acceptance of menace. Like a stalking giant Nick Steele strode over to Nels and Stewart. The other cowboys rose silently, without a word.
How impactful were his words on all the cowboys! Stewart made a fierce and violent motion, intense where his other motions had just been passionate. Monty jumped straight up into the air in a way that expressed both surprise and a wild acceptance of threat. Like a towering giant, Nick Steele walked over to Nels and Stewart. The other cowboys stood up silently, without a word.
Madeline and her guests, in a little group, watched and listened, unable to divine what all this strange talk and action meant.
Madeline and her guests, in a small group, watched and listened, unable to figure out what all this strange talk and activity meant.
“Hold on, Nels, they don’t need to hear it,” said Stewart, hoarsely, as he waved a hand toward Madeline’s silent group.
“Hang on, Nels, they don’t need to hear this,” Stewart said hoarsely, waving a hand toward Madeline’s quiet group.
“Wal, I’m sorry, but I reckon they’d as well know fust as last. Mebbe thet yearnin’ wish of Miss Helen’s fer somethin’ to happen will come true. Shore I—”
“Well, I’m sorry, but I think they’d prefer to know first rather than last. Maybe that longing wish of Miss Helen’s for something to happen will come true. Sure I—”
“Cut out the joshin’,” rang out Monty’s strident voice.
“Cut out the joking,” Monty’s loud voice echoed.
It had as decided an effect as any preceding words or action. Perhaps it was the last thing needed to transform these men, doing unaccustomed duty as escorts of beautiful women, to their natural state as men of the wild.
It had as clear an effect as anything said or done before. Maybe it was the final push needed to change these men, who were used to the unexpected role of escorting beautiful women, back to their true selves as wild men.
“Tell us what’s what,” said Stewart, cool and grim.
“Tell us what’s going on,” said Stewart, calm and serious.
“Don Carlos an’ his guerrillas are campin’ on the trails thet lead up here. They’ve got them trails blocked. By to-morrer they’d hed us corralled. Mebbe they meant to surprise us. He’s got a lot of Greasers an’ outlaws. They’re well armed. Now what do they mean? You-all can figger it out to suit yourselves. Mebbe the Don wants to pay a sociable call on our ladies. Mebbe his gang is some hungry, as usual. Mebbe they want to steal a few hosses, or anythin’ they can lay hands on. Mebbe they mean wuss, too. Now my idee is this, an’ mebbe it’s wrong. I long since separated from love with Greasers. Thet black-faced Don Carlos has got a deep game. Thet two-bit of a revolution is hevin’ hard times. The rebels want American intervention. They’d stretch any point to make trouble. We’re only ten miles from the border. Suppose them guerrillas got our crowd across thet border? The U. S. cavalry would foller. You-all know what thet’d mean. Mebbe Don Carlos’s mind works thet way. Mebbe it don’t. I reckon we’ll know soon. An’ now, Stewart, whatever the Don’s game is, shore you’re the man to outfigger him. Mebbe it’s just as well you’re good an’ mad about somethin’. An’ I resign my job because I want to feel unbeholdin’ to anybody. Shore it struck me long since thet the old days hed come back fer a little spell, an’ there I was trailin’ a promise not to hurt any Greaser.”
“Don Carlos and his guerrillas are camping on the trails that lead up here. They’ve got those trails blocked. By tomorrow they’d have us trapped. Maybe they plan to surprise us. He’s got a lot of Mexicans and outlaws. They’re well armed. Now what do they mean? You can figure it out however you want. Maybe the Don wants to pay a friendly visit to our ladies. Maybe his gang is just as hungry as always. Maybe they want to steal a few horses or anything they can get their hands on. Maybe they mean worse too. Now my thought is this, and maybe it’s wrong. I’ve long since been done with the Mexicans. That scheming Don Carlos has a hidden agenda. That bit of a revolution is having hard times. The rebels want American intervention. They’d stretch any point to cause trouble. We’re only ten miles from the border. Suppose those guerrillas got our group across that border? The U.S. cavalry would follow. You all know what that would mean. Maybe Don Carlos thinks that way. Maybe he doesn’t. I guess we’ll find out soon. And now, Stewart, whatever the Don’s plan is, you’re definitely the one to outsmart him. Maybe it’s just as well that you’re good and mad about something. And I’m resigning my job because I want to feel beholden to nobody. It struck me long ago that the old days had come back for a little while, and there I was trailing a promise not to hurt any Mexicans.”
XIX. Don Carlos
Stewart took Nels, Monty, and Nick Steele aside out of earshot, and they evidently entered upon an earnest colloquy. Presently the other cowboys were called. They all talked more or less, but the deep voice of Stewart predominated over the others. Then the consultation broke up, and the cowboys scattered.
Stewart pulled Nels, Monty, and Nick Steele aside where they couldn't be overheard, and they clearly started a serious conversation. Soon, the other cowboys were brought in. They all chatted to some extent, but Stewart's deep voice was the most noticeable. After that, the group wrapped up their discussion, and the cowboys went their separate ways.
“Rustle, you Indians!” ordered Stewart.
"Rustle, you guys!" ordered Stewart.
The ensuing scene of action was not reassuring to Madeline and her friends. They were quiet, awaiting some one to tell them what to do. At the offset the cowboys appeared to have forgotten Madeline. Some of them ran off into the woods, others into the open, grassy places, where they rounded up the horses and burros. Several cowboys spread tarpaulins upon the ground and began to select and roll small packs, evidently for hurried travel. Nels mounted his horse to ride down the trail. Monty and Nick Steele went off into the grove, leading their horses. Stewart climbed up a steep jumble of stone between two sections of low, cracked cliff back of the camp.
The chaotic scene was not reassuring to Madeline and her friends. They stayed quiet, waiting for someone to tell them what to do. At first, the cowboys seemed to have forgotten about Madeline. Some ran off into the woods, while others moved into the open, grassy areas to round up the horses and donkeys. Several cowboys laid out tarps on the ground and began selecting and packing small bundles, clearly for a quick departure. Nels got on his horse to head down the trail. Monty and Nick Steele walked into the grove, guiding their horses. Stewart climbed up a steep pile of rocks between two sections of low, cracked cliffs behind the camp.
Castleton offered to help the packers, and was curtly told he would be in the way. Madeline’s friends all importuned her: Was there real danger? Were the guerrillas coming? Would a start be made at once for the ranch? Why had the cowboys suddenly become so different? Madeline answered as best she could; but her replies were only conjecture, and modified to allay the fears of her guests. Helen was in a white glow of excitement.
Castleton offered to help the packers, but was rudely told he would just be in the way. Madeline’s friends kept pressing her: Was there real danger? Were the guerrillas coming? Would they leave for the ranch right away? Why had the cowboys suddenly changed? Madeline answered as best she could, but her responses were mostly guesses, adjusted to calm her guests' fears. Helen was buzzing with excitement.
Soon cowboys appeared riding barebacked horses, driving in others and the burros. Some of these horses were taken away and evidently hidden in deep recesses between the crags. The string of burros were packed and sent off down the trail in charge of a cowboy. Nick Steele and Monty returned. Then Stewart appeared, clambering down the break between the cliffs.
Soon, cowboys showed up riding horses without saddles, herding in more horses and the burros. Some of these horses were taken away and clearly stashed away in hidden spots between the cliffs. The group of burros was loaded up and sent down the trail with a cowboy in charge. Nick Steele and Monty came back. Then, Stewart showed up, climbing down the slope between the cliffs.
His next move was to order all the baggage belonging to Madeline and her guests taken up the cliff. This was strenuous toil, requiring the need of lassoes to haul up the effects.
His next step was to have all the luggage belonging to Madeline and her guests brought up the cliff. This was hard work, needing lassos to haul up the belongings.
“Get ready to climb,” said Stewart, turning to Madelines party.
“Get ready to climb,” Stewart said, turning to Madeline’s group.
“Where?” asked Helen.
“Where?” Helen asked.
He waved his hand at the ascent to be made. Exclamations of dismay followed his gesture.
He waved his hand towards the climb ahead. Gasps of shock followed his motion.
“Mr. Stewart, is there danger?” asked Dorothy; and her voice trembled.
“Mr. Stewart, is there a danger?” asked Dorothy, her voice shaking.
This was the question Madeline had upon her lips to ask Stewart, but she could not speak it.
This was the question Madeline wanted to ask Stewart, but she couldn't say it.
“No, there’s no danger,” replied Stewart, “but we’re taking precautions we all agreed on as best.”
“No, there’s no danger,” replied Stewart, “but we’re taking the precautions we all agreed are the best.”
Dorothy whispered that she believed Stewart lied. Castleton asked another question, and then Harvey followed suit. Mrs. Beck made a timid query.
Dorothy whispered that she thought Stewart was lying. Castleton asked another question, and then Harvey did the same. Mrs. Beck made a hesitant inquiry.
“Please keep quiet and do as you’re told,” said Stewart, bluntly.
“Please be quiet and follow instructions,” Stewart said, straightforwardly.
At this juncture, when the last of the baggage was being hauled up the cliff, Monty approached Madeline and removed his sombrero. His black face seemed the same, yet this was a vastly changed Monty.
At this point, as the last of the luggage was being pulled up the cliff, Monty walked over to Madeline and took off his sombrero. His dark face looked the same, but this was a very different Monty.
“Miss Hammond, I’m givin’ notice I resign my job,” he said.
“Miss Hammond, I’m giving my notice that I resign from my job,” he said.
“Monty! What do you mean? What does Nels mean now, when danger threatens?”
“Monty! What do you mean? What’s Nels talking about now, when there’s danger?”
“We jest quit. Thet’s all,” replied Monty, tersely. He was stern and somber; he could not stand still; his eyes roved everywhere.
“We just quit. That’s all,” replied Monty, sharply. He was serious and gloomy; he couldn't stay still; his eyes darted everywhere.
Castleton jumped up from the log where he had been sitting, and his face was very red.
Castleton sprang up from the log where he had been sitting, and his face was bright red.
“Mr. Price, does all this blooming fuss mean we are to be robbed or attacked or abducted by a lot of ragamuffin guerrillas?”
“Mr. Price, does all this fuss mean we’re going to be robbed, attacked, or kidnapped by a bunch of scrappy guerrillas?”
“You’ve called the bet.”
“You've called the bet.”
Dorothy turned a very pale face toward Monty.
Dorothy turned a very pale face towards Monty.
“Mr. Price, you wouldn’t—you couldn’t desert us now? You and Mr. Nels—”
“Mr. Price, you wouldn’t—you couldn’t leave us now? You and Mr. Nels—”
“Desert you?” asked Monty, blankly.
"Leave you?" asked Monty, blankly.
“Yes, desert us. Leave us when we may need you so much, with something dreadful coming.”
“Yes, abandon us. Leave us when we might need you the most, with something awful approaching.”
Monty uttered a short, hard laugh as he bent a strange look upon the girl.
Monty let out a short, sharp laugh as he gave the girl a strange look.
“Me an’ Nels is purty much scared, an’ we’re goin’ to slope. Miss Dorothy, bein’ as we’ve rustled round so much; it sorta hurts us to see nice young girls dragged off by the hair.”
“Me and Nels are pretty much scared, and we’re going to sneak away. Miss Dorothy, since we’ve been around so much, it kind of hurts us to see nice young girls get pulled away by their hair.”
Dorothy uttered a little cry and then became hysterical. Castleton for once was fully aroused.
Dorothy let out a small scream and then became hysterical. Castleton was completely alert for once.
“By Gad! You and your partner are a couple of blooming cowards. Where now is that courage you boasted of?”
“Wow! You and your partner are a couple of total cowards. Where’s that courage you bragged about?”
Monty’s dark face expressed extreme sarcasm.
Monty’s dark face showed a lot of sarcasm.
“Dook, in my time I’ve seen some bright fellers, but you take the cake. It’s most marvelous how bright you are. Figger’n’ me an’ Nels so correct. Say, Dook, if you don’t git rustled off to Mexico an’ roped to a cactus-bush you’ll hev a swell story fer your English chums. Bah Jove! You’ll tell ’em how you seen two old-time gun-men run like scared jack-rabbits from a lot of Greasers. Like hell you will! Unless you lie like the time you told about proddin’ the lion. That there story allus—”
“Dook, in my life I’ve encountered some smart guys, but you take the prize. It’s truly amazing how clever you are. Figured me and Nels out so accurately. Hey, Dook, if you don’t get shipped off to Mexico and tied to a cactus, you’ll have a great story for your English buddies. Good grief! You’ll tell them how you saw two old-school gunmen run like frightened jackrabbits from a bunch of Greasers. Yeah, right! Unless you’re lying like the time you talked about poking the lion. That story always—”
“Monty, shut up!” yelled Stewart, as he came hurriedly up. Then Monty slouched away, cursing to himself.
“Monty, shut up!” Stewart shouted as he rushed over. Then Monty turned away, muttering to himself.
Madeline and Helen, assisted by Castleton, worked over Dorothy, and with some difficulty quieted her. Stewart passed several times without noticing them, and Monty, who had been so ridiculously eager to pay every little attention to Dorothy, did not see her at all. Rude it seemed; in Monty’s ease more than that. Madeline hardly knew what to make of it.
Madeline and Helen, with Castleton's help, worked with Dorothy and managed to calm her down after some effort. Stewart walked by several times without noticing them, and Monty, who had been so overly eager to focus on Dorothy, completely overlooked her. It felt rude; in Monty’s case, it was more than that. Madeline was unsure how to interpret it.
Stewart directed cowboys to go to the head of the open place in the cliff and let down lassoes. Then, with little waste of words, he urged the women toward this rough ladder of stones.
Stewart instructed the cowboys to head to the top of the open area in the cliff and lower their lassos. Then, with minimal words, he encouraged the women toward this uneven stone ladder.
“We want to hide you,” he said, when they demurred. “If the guerrillas come we’ll tell them you’ve all gone down to the ranch. If we have to fight you’ll be safe up there.”
“We want to keep you safe,” he said, when they hesitated. “If the guerrillas come, we’ll say you’ve all gone down to the ranch. If we have to fight, you’ll be safe up there.”
Helen stepped boldly forward and let Stewart put the loop of a lasso round her and tighten it. He waved his hand to the cowboys above.
Helen stepped confidently forward and let Stewart put the loop of a lasso around her and tighten it. He waved his hand to the cowboys above.
“Just walk up, now,” he directed Helen.
“Just walk up now,” he told Helen.
It proved to the watchers to be an easy, safe, and rapid means of scaling the steep passage. The men climbed up without assistance. Mrs. Beck, as usual, had hysteria; she half walked and was half dragged up. Stewart supported Dorothy with one arm, while with the other he held to the lasso. Ambrose had to carry Christine. The Mexican women required no assistance. Edith Wayne and Madeline climbed last; and, once up, Madeline saw a narrow bench, thick with shrubs, and overshadowed by huge, leaning crags. There were holes in the rock, and dark fissures leading back. It was a rough, wild place. Tarpaulins and bedding were then hauled up, and food and water. The cowboys spread comfortable beds in several of the caves, and told Madeline and her friends to be as quiet as possible, not to make a light, and to sleep dressed, ready for travel at a moment’s notice.
It turned out to be an easy, safe, and quick way for the watchers to get up the steep passage. The men climbed without help. Mrs. Beck was hysterical, half walking and half being dragged up. Stewart supported Dorothy with one arm while he held onto the lasso with the other. Ambrose had to carry Christine. The Mexican women didn’t need any help. Edith Wayne and Madeline climbed up last; once they were up, Madeline spotted a narrow bench covered in shrubs and shaded by huge, leaning rocks. There were holes in the rock and dark cracks leading back. It was a rough, wild area. Tarps and bedding were hauled up, along with food and water. The cowboys set up comfortable beds in several of the caves and told Madeline and her friends to be as quiet as possible, not to make any light, and to sleep in their clothes, ready to leave at a moment's notice.
After the cowboys had gone down it was not a cheerful group left there in the darkening twilight. Castleton prevailed upon them to eat.
After the cowboys left, the group remaining in the darkening twilight was not cheerful. Castleton encouraged them to eat.
“This is simply great,” whispered Helen.
"This is just amazing," whispered Helen.
“Oh, it’s awful!” moaned Dorothy. “It’s your fault, Helen. You prayed for something to happen.”
“Oh, it’s terrible!” complained Dorothy. “It’s your fault, Helen. You prayed for something to happen.”
“I believe it’s a horrid trick those cowboys are playing,” said Mrs. Beck.
“I think it’s a terrible trick those cowboys are playing,” said Mrs. Beck.
Madeline assured her friends that no trick was being played upon them, and that she deplored the discomfort and distress, but felt no real alarm. She was more inclined to evasive kindness here than to sincerity, for she had a decided uneasiness. The swift change in the manner and looks of her cowboys had been a shock to her. The last glance she had of Stewart’s face, then stern, almost sad, and haggard with worry, remained to augment her foreboding.
Madeline reassured her friends that no tricks were being played on them, and although she regretted the discomfort and distress, she didn’t truly feel alarmed. She was more focused on being evasively kind than honest, as she felt a distinct uneasiness. The sudden change in the behavior and appearance of her cowboys had shocked her. The last image she had of Stewart’s face—stern, almost sad, and worn out with worry—lingered in her mind, heightening her sense of foreboding.
Darkness appeared to drop swiftly down; the coyotes began their haunting, mournful howls; the stars showed and grew brighter; the wind moaned through the tips of the pines. Castleton was restless. He walked to and fro before the overhanging shelf of rock, where his companions sat lamenting, and presently he went out to the ledge of the bench. The cowboys below had built a fire, and the light from it rose in a huge, fan-shaped glow. Castleton’s little figure stood out black against this light. Curious and anxious also, Madeline joined him and peered down from the cliff. The distance was short, and occasionally she could distinguish a word spoken by the cowboys. They were unconcernedly cooking and eating. She marked the absence of Stewart, and mentioned it to Castleton. Silently Castleton pointed almost straight down, and there in the gloom stood Stewart, with the two stag-hounds at his feet.
Darkness seemed to drop quickly; the coyotes started their eerie, sorrowful howls; the stars appeared and grew brighter; the wind sighed through the tips of the pines. Castleton was restless. He paced back and forth in front of the overhanging rock ledge, where his companions sat mourning, and eventually he went out to the edge of the bench. The cowboys below had built a fire, and its light rose in a wide, fan-shaped glow. Castleton’s small figure stood out in black against this light. Curious and anxious as well, Madeline joined him and looked down from the cliff. The distance was short, and occasionally she could catch a word from the cowboys. They were casually cooking and eating. She noticed Stewart was missing and pointed it out to Castleton. Quietly, Castleton pointed almost straight down, and there in the shadows stood Stewart, with the two stag-hounds at his feet.
Presently Nick Steele silenced the camp-fire circle by raising a warning hand. The cowboys bent their heads, listening. Madeline listened with all her might. She heard one of the hounds whine, then the faint beat of horse’s hoofs. Nick spoke again and turned to his supper, and the other men seemed to slacken in attention. The beat of hoofs grew louder, entered the grove, then the circle of light. The rider was Nels. He dismounted, and the sound of his low voice just reached Madeline.
Presently, Nick Steele hushed the campfire circle with a raised hand. The cowboys lowered their heads, listening closely. Madeline strained to hear. She caught the sound of one of the hounds whimper and then the soft thud of a horse's hooves. Nick spoke again and returned to his dinner, while the other men appeared to relax their focus. The sound of the hooves grew louder, coming into the grove and then into the circle of light. The rider was Nels. He got off his horse, and the sound of his quiet voice barely reached Madeline.
“Gene, it’s Nels. Somethin’ doin’,” Madeline heard one of the cowboys call, softly.
“Gene, it’s Nels. Something’s going on,” Madeline heard one of the cowboys call softly.
“Send him over,” replied Stewart.
"Send him over," Stewart said.
Nels stalked away from the fire.
Nels walked away from the fire.
“See here, Nels, the boys are all right, but I don’t want them to know everything about this mix-up,” said Stewart, as Nels came up. “Did you find the girl?”
“Listen, Nels, the boys are fine, but I don’t want them to know all the details about this mess,” said Stewart as Nels approached. “Did you locate the girl?”
Madeline guessed that Stewart referred to the Mexican girl Bonita.
Madeline figured that Stewart was talking about the Mexican girl Bonita.
“No. But I met”—Madeline did not catch the name—“an’ he was wild. He was with a forest-ranger. An’ they said Pat Hawe had trailed her an’ was takin’ her down under arrest.”
“No. But I met”—Madeline didn’t catch the name—“and he was wild. He was with a forest ranger. And they said Pat Hawe had tracked her down and was taking her in for arrest.”
Stewart muttered deep under his breath, evidently cursing.
Stewart muttered under his breath, clearly cursing.
“Wonder why he didn’t come on up here?” he queried, presently. “He can see a trail.”
“Wonder why he didn’t come up here?” he asked after a moment. “He can see a trail.”
“Wal, Gene, Pat knowed you was here all right, fer thet ranger said Pat hed wind of the guerrillas, an’ Pat said if Don Carlos didn’t kill you—which he hoped he’d do—then it ’d be time enough to put you in jail when you come down.”
“Well, Gene, Pat knew you were here for sure because that ranger said Pat had heard about the guerrillas, and Pat said if Don Carlos didn’t kill you—which he hoped he would—then it’d be time to put you in jail when you came down.”
“He’s dead set to arrest me, Nels.”
“He’s determined to arrest me, Nels.”
“An’ he’ll do it, like the old lady who kept tavern out West. Gene, the reason thet red-faced coyote didn’t trail you up here is because he’s scared. He allus was scared of you. But I reckon he’s shore scared to death of me an’ Monty.”
“Yeah, he’ll do it, just like that old lady who ran the tavern out West. Gene, the reason that red-faced coyote didn’t follow you up here is that he’s scared. He’s always been scared of you. But I guess he’s really terrified of me and Monty.”
“Well, we’ll take Pat in his turn. The thing now is, when will that Greaser stalk us, and what’ll we do when he comes?”
“Well, we’ll take Pat when his time comes. The question now is, when will that Greaser come after us, and what will we do when he does?”
“My boy, there’s only one way to handle a Greaser. I shore told you thet. He means rough toward us. He’ll come smilin’ up, all soci’ble like, insinuatin’ an’ sweeter ’n a woman. But he’s treacherous; he’s wuss than an Indian. An’, Gene, we know for a positive fact how his gang hev been operatin’ between these hills an’ Agua Prieta. They’re no nervy gang of outlaws like we used to hev. But they’re plumb bad. They’ve raided and murdered through the San Luis Pass an’ Guadalupe Canyon. They’ve murdered women, an’ wuss than thet, both north an’ south of Agua Prieta. Mebbe the U. S. cavalry don’t know it, an’ the good old States; but we, you an’ me an’ Monty an’ Nick, we know it. We know jest about what thet rebel war down there amounts to. It’s guerrilla war, an’ shore some harvest-time fer a lot of cheap thieves an’ outcasts.”
“My boy, there’s only one way to deal with a Greaser. I really told you that. He acts friendly towards us. He’ll come up smiling, all sociable, insinuating and sweeter than a woman. But he’s sneaky; he’s worse than an Indian. And, Gene, we know for sure how his gang has been operating between these hills and Agua Prieta. They’re not a bold gang of outlaws like we used to have. But they’re completely bad. They’ve raided and killed all through the San Luis Pass and Guadalupe Canyon. They’ve killed women, and worse than that, both north and south of Agua Prieta. Maybe the U.S. cavalry doesn’t know it, and the good old States; but we, you and me and Monty and Nick, we know it. We know exactly what that rebel war down there is about. It’s guerrilla warfare, and definitely a harvest season for a lot of cheap thieves and outcasts.”
“Oh, you’re right, Nels. I’m not disputing that,” replied Stewart. “If it wasn’t for Miss Hammond and the other women, I’d rather enjoy seeing you and Monty open up on that bunch. I’m thinking I’d be glad to meet Don Carlos. But Miss Hammond! Why, Nels, such a woman as she is would never recover from the sight of real gun-play, let alone any stunts with a rope. These Eastern women are different. I’m not belittling our Western women. It’s in the blood. Miss Hammond is—is—”
“Oh, you’re right, Nels. I’m not arguing with you,” Stewart replied. “If it weren’t for Miss Hammond and the other women, I’d actually enjoy watching you and Monty go after that group. I think I’d be happy to meet Don Carlos. But Miss Hammond! Honestly, Nels, a woman like her would never recover from seeing actual gunfire, let alone any rope tricks. These Eastern women are different. I’m not putting down our Western women. It’s in their nature. Miss Hammond is—she’s—”
“Shore she is,” interrupted Nels; “but she’s got a damn sight more spunk than you think she has, Gene Stewart. I’m no thick-skulled cow. I’d hate somethin’ powerful to hev Miss Hammond see any rough work, let alone me an’ Monty startin’ somethin’. An’ me an’ Monty’ll stick to you, Gene, as long as seems reasonable. Mind, ole feller, beggin’ your pardon, you’re shore stuck on Miss Hammond, an’ over-tender not to hurt her feelin’s or make her sick by lettin’ some blood. We’re in bad here, an’ mebbe we’ll hev to fight. Sabe, senor? Wal, we do you can jest gamble thet Miss Hammond’ll be game. An’ I’ll bet you a million pesos thet if you got goin’ onct, an’ she seen you as I’ve seen you—wal, I know what she’d think of you. This old world ain’t changed much. Some women may be white-skinned an’ soft-eyed an’ sweet-voiced an’ high-souled, but they all like to see a man! Gene, here’s your game. Let Don Carlos come along. Be civil. If he an’ his gang are hungry, feed ’em. Take even a little overbearin’ Greaser talk. Be blind if he wants his gang to steal somethin’. Let him think the women hev mosied down to the ranch. But if he says you’re lyin’—if he as much as looks round to see the women—jest jump him same as you jumped Pat Hawe. Me an’ Monty’ll hang back fer thet, an’ if your strong bluff don’t go through, if the Don’s gang even thinks of flashin’ guns, then we’ll open up. An’ all I got to say is if them Greasers stand fer real gun-play they’ll be the fust I ever seen.”
“Sure she is,” interrupted Nels; “but she’s got a lot more guts than you think, Gene Stewart. I’m not naive. I’d really hate for Miss Hammond to see any rough stuff, especially with me and Monty starting something. And Monty and I will stick with you, Gene, as long as it makes sense. Now, old friend, no offense, but you’re really hung up on Miss Hammond, and you’re way too careful not to hurt her feelings or make her sick from seeing blood. We’re in a tough spot here, and we might have to fight. You get what I mean? Well, if we do, you can bet that Miss Hammond will be up for it. And I’ll wager you a million pesos that if you get going and she sees you like I’ve seen you—well, I know what she’d think of you. This old world hasn’t changed much. Some women may be fair-skinned and have soft eyes and sweet voices, but they all appreciate a strong man! Gene, here's the plan. Let Don Carlos come along. Be polite. If he and his crew are hungry, feed them. Tolerate some of his overbearing talk. Pretend that the women have gone down to the ranch. But if he says you’re lying—if he even glances around looking for the women—just jump him like you jumped Pat Hawe. Monty and I will hang back for that, and if your strong bluff doesn’t work, if the Don’s gang even thinks about pulling guns, then we’ll step in. And all I have to say is if those guys are up for real gunplay, they'll be the first ones I’ve ever seen do it.”
“Nels, there are white men in that gang,” said Stewart.
“Nels, there are white guys in that gang,” said Stewart.
“Shore. But me an’ Monty’ll be thinkin’ of thet. If they start anythin’ it’ll hev to be shore quick.”
“Sure. But Monty and I will be thinking about that. If they start anything, it’ll have to be sure and fast.”
“All right, Nels, old friend, and thanks,” replied Stewart. Nels returned to the camp-fire, and Stewart resumed his silent guard.
“All right, Nels, my old friend, and thanks,” replied Stewart. Nels went back to the campfire, and Stewart continued his silent watch.
Madeline led Castleton away from the brink of the wall.
Madeline guided Castleton away from the edge of the wall.
“By Jove! Cowboys are blooming strange folk!” he exclaimed. “They are not what they pretend to be.”
“Wow! Cowboys are really strange people!” he exclaimed. “They’re not what they act like.”
“Indeed, you are right,” replied Madeline. “I cannot understand them. Come, let us tell the others that Nels and Monty were only talking and do not intend to leave us. Dorothy, at least, will be less frightened if she knows.”
“Yeah, you’re right,” Madeline said. “I really can't understand them. Come on, let’s tell the others that Nels and Monty were just chatting and don’t plan to leave us. At least Dorothy will be less scared if she knows.”
Dorothy was somewhat comforted. The others, however, complained of the cowboys’ singular behavior. More than once the idea was advanced that an elaborate trick had been concocted. Upon general discussion this idea gained ground. Madeline did not combat it, because she saw it tended to a less perturbed condition of mind among her guests. Castleton for once proved that he was not absolutely obtuse, and helped along the idea.
Dorothy felt a bit reassured. The others, on the other hand, voiced their concerns about the cowboys' strange behavior. More than once, someone suggested that a complicated prank had been planned. As they talked it over, this idea started to take hold. Madeline didn’t argue against it because she noticed it led to a calmer mindset among her guests. For once, Castleton showed that he wasn’t completely clueless and supported the idea.
They sat talking in low voices until a late hour. The incident now began to take on the nature of Helen’s long-yearned-for adventure. Some of the party even grew merry in a subdued way. Then, gradually, one by one they tired and went to bed. Helen vowed she could not sleep in a place where there were bats and crawling things. Madeline fancied, however, that they all went to sleep while she lay wide-eyed, staring up at the black bulge of overhanging rock and beyond the starry sky.
They sat chatting quietly until late at night. The situation started to feel like the adventure Helen had always dreamed of. Some of the group even got a little cheerful in a restrained way. Then, slowly, one by one, they got tired and went to bed. Helen insisted she couldn’t sleep in a place with bats and creepy crawlies. However, Madeline believed that everyone else fell asleep while she lay awake, staring up at the dark, looming rock and the starry sky beyond.
To keep from thinking of Stewart and the burning anger he had caused her to feel for herself, Madeline tried to keep her mind on other things. But thought of him recurred, and each time there was a hot commotion in her breast hard to stifle. Intelligent reasoning seemed out of her power. In the daylight it had been possible for her to be oblivious to Stewart’s deceit after the moment of its realization. At night, however, in the strange silence and hovering shadows of gloom, with the speaking stars seeming to call to her, with the moan of the wind in the pines, and the melancholy mourn of coyotes in the distance, she was not able to govern her thought and emotion. The day was practical, cold; the night was strange and tense. In the darkness she had fancies wholly unknown to her in the bright light of the sun. She battled with a haunting thought. She had inadvertently heard Nels’s conversation with Stewart; she had listened, hoping to hear some good news or to hear the worst; she had learned both, and, moreover, enlightenment on one point of Stewart’s complex motives. He wished to spare her any sight that might offend, frighten, or disgust her. Yet this Stewart, who showed a fineness of feeling that might have been wanting even in Boyd Harvey, maintained a secret rendezvous with that pretty, abandoned Bonita. Here always the hot shame, like a live, stinging, internal fire, abruptly ended Madeline’s thought. It was intolerable, and it was the more so because she could neither control nor understand it. The hours wore on, and at length, as the stars began to pale and there was no sound whatever, she fell asleep.
To avoid thinking about Stewart and the anger he made her feel toward herself, Madeline tried to focus on other things. Yet, thoughts of him kept coming back, and each time there was a fiery turmoil in her chest that was hard to suppress. She felt like she couldn't reason clearly. During the day, it had been easy for her to ignore Stewart's lies after she realized what he had done. But at night, in the eerie silence and lingering shadows, with the stars seeming to call out to her, the wind moaning through the pines, and the distant, sorrowful howls of coyotes, she couldn’t control her thoughts and emotions. The day felt practical and cold; the night was strange and tense. In the darkness, she had thoughts she didn’t even have in the bright sunlight. She struggled with a haunting thought. She had unintentionally overheard Nels’s conversation with Stewart; she had listened, hoping to hear good news or the worst news; she got both, plus some insight into Stewart's complicated motives. He wanted to protect her from anything that might offend, scare, or disgust her. Yet, this same Stewart, who showed a sensitivity that might have been lacking even in Boyd Harvey, secretly met with that pretty, troubled Bonita. Every time this thought hit her, the burning shame, like a sharp internal fire, abruptly cut off her thinking. It was unbearable, especially because she couldn’t control or understand it. The hours passed, and eventually, as the stars began to fade and there was no sound at all, she fell asleep.
She was called out of her slumber. Day had broken bright and cool. The sun was still below the eastern crags. Ambrose, with several other cowboys, had brought up buckets of spring-water, and hot coffee and cakes. Madeline’s party appeared to be none the worse for the night’s experience. Indeed, the meager breakfast might have been as merrily partaken of as it was hungrily had not Ambrose enjoined silence.
She was stirred from her sleep. The day had started off bright and cool. The sun was still hidden behind the eastern hills. Ambrose, along with several other cowboys, had brought buckets of spring water, along with hot coffee and cakes. Madeline’s group seemed to be just fine after last night’s adventure. In fact, the simple breakfast could have been enjoyed just as much as it was devoured, if Ambrose hadn’t insisted on keeping quiet.
“They’re expectin’ company down below,” he said.
“They're expecting company down below,” he said.
This information and the summary manner in which the cowboys soon led the party higher up among the ruined shelves of rock caused a recurrence of anxiety. Madeline insisted on not going beyond a projection of cliff from which she could see directly down into the camp. As the vantage-point was one affording concealment, Ambrose consented, but he placed the frightened Christine near Madeline and remained there himself.
This information and the way the cowboys quickly guided the group upward among the crumbling rock led to a surge of anxiety. Madeline insisted on stopping at a ledge where she could see directly down into the camp. Since this spot provided cover, Ambrose agreed, but he positioned the scared Christine close to Madeline and stayed there himself.
“Ambrose, do you really think the guerrillas will come?” asked Madeline.
“Ambrose, do you actually think the guerrillas will show up?” asked Madeline.
“Sure. We know. Nels just rode in and said they were on their way up. Miss Hammond, can I trust you? You won’t let out a squeal if there’s a fight down there? Stewart told me to hide you out of sight or keep you from lookin’.”
“Sure. We know. Nels just rode in and said they were on their way up. Miss Hammond, can I trust you? You won’t freak out if there’s a fight down there, right? Stewart told me to keep you out of sight or prevent you from watching.”
“I promise not to make any noise,” replied Madeline. Madeline arranged her coat so that she could lie upon it, and settled down to wait developments. There came a slight rattling of stones in the rear. She turned to see Helen sliding down a bank with a perplexed and troubled cowboy. Helen came stooping low to where Madeline lay and said: “I am going to see what happens, if I die in the attempt! I can stand it if you can.” She was pale and big-eyed. Ambrose promptly swore at the cowboy who had let her get away from him. “Take a half-hitch on her yourself an’ see where you end up,” replied the fellow, and disappeared in the jumble of rocks. Ambrose, finding words useless, sternly and heroically prepared to carry Helen back to the others. He laid hold of her. In a fury, with eyes blazing, Helen whispered:
“I promise not to make any noise,” Madeline replied. She arranged her coat so she could lie on it and settled down to wait for what would happen next. There was a faint rattling of stones behind her. She turned to see Helen sliding down a bank with a confused and worried cowboy. Helen bent low to where Madeline was lying and said, “I’m going to see what happens, even if it kills me! I can handle it if you can.” She looked pale and wide-eyed. Ambrose immediately cursed the cowboy who had let her slip away. “Why don’t you take control of her and see where that gets you?” the guy replied, then vanished into the pile of rocks. Ambrose, finding words useless, resolutely prepared to take Helen back to the others. He reached for her. In a fit of anger, with blazing eyes, Helen whispered:
“Let go of me! Majesty, what does this fool mean?”
“Let go of me! Your Majesty, what does this idiot mean?”
Madeline laughed. She knew Helen, and had marked the whisper, when ordinarily Helen would have spoken imperiously, and not low. Madeline explained to her the exigency of the situation. “I might run, but I’ll never scream,” said Helen. With that Ambrose had to be content to let her stay. However, he found her a place somewhat farther back from Madeline’s position, where he said there was less danger of her being seen. Then he sternly bound her to silence, tarried a moment to comfort Christine, and returned to where Madeline lay concealed. He had been there scarcely a moment when he whispered:
Madeline laughed. She knew Helen and noticed the whisper when usually Helen would have spoken with authority, not quietly. Madeline explained the urgency of the situation to her. “I might run, but I’ll never scream,” said Helen. With that, Ambrose had to be okay with her staying. However, he found her a spot a bit further back from Madeline’s position, where he said there was less chance of her being seen. Then he firmly instructed her to remain silent, took a moment to comfort Christine, and returned to where Madeline was hidden. He had barely been there a moment when he whispered:
“I hear hosses. The guerrillas are comin’.”
“I hear horses. The guerrillas are coming.”
Madeline’s hiding-place was well protected from possible discovery from below. She could peep over a kind of parapet, through an opening in the tips of the pines that reached up to the cliff, and obtain a commanding view of the camp circle and its immediate surroundings. She could not, however, see far either to right or left of the camp, owing to the obstructing foliage. Presently the sound of horses’ hoofs quickened the beat of her pulse and caused her to turn keener gaze upon the cowboys below.
Madeline's hiding spot was well hidden from anyone below. She could peek over a low wall through a gap in the pine trees that reached up to the cliff, giving her a clear view of the campsite and its immediate area. However, she couldn't see far to the right or left of the camp because of the dense foliage. Soon, the sound of horses' hooves quickened her heartbeat and made her focus intently on the cowboys below.
Although she had some inkling of the course Stewart and his men were to pursue, she was not by any means prepared for the indifference she saw. Frank was asleep, or pretended to be. Three cowboys were lazily and unconcernedly attending to camp-fire duties, such as baking biscuits, watching the ovens, and washing tins and pots. The elaborate set of aluminum plates, cups, etc., together with the other camp fixtures that had done service for Madeline’s party, had disappeared. Nick Steele sat with his back to a log, smoking his pipe. Another cowboy had just brought the horses closer into camp, where they stood waiting to be saddled. Nels appeared to be fussing over a pack. Stewart was rolling a cigarette. Monty had apparently nothing to do for the present except whistle, which he was doing much more loudly than melodiously. The whole ensemble gave an impression of careless indifference.
Although she had some idea of the direction Stewart and his men were going to take, she definitely wasn't ready for the indifference she witnessed. Frank was either asleep or pretending to be. Three cowboys were lazily handling campfire tasks like baking biscuits, watching the ovens, and cleaning pots and pans. The fancy aluminum plates, cups, and other gear that had been used by Madeline's group had vanished. Nick Steele was sitting with his back against a log, smoking his pipe. Another cowboy had just brought the horses closer to camp, where they stood waiting to be saddled. Nels seemed to be fussing over a pack. Stewart was rolling a cigarette. Monty had seemingly nothing to do for the moment except whistle, which he was doing much more loudly than melodically. The whole scene conveyed a sense of careless indifference.
The sound of horses’ hoofs grew louder and slowed its beat. One of the cowboys pointed down the trail, toward which several of his comrades turned their heads for a moment, then went on with their occupations.
The sound of horses' hooves got louder and slowed down. One of the cowboys pointed down the trail, and a few of his buddies glanced over for a moment before going back to what they were doing.
Presently a shaggy, dusty horse bearing a lean, ragged, dark rider rode into camp and halted. Another followed, and another. Horses with Mexican riders came in single file and stopped behind the leader.
Currently, a scruffy, dusty horse with a skinny, tattered, dark rider entered the camp and stopped. Another one followed, and then another. Horses with Mexican riders came in one by one and lined up behind the leader.
The cowboys looked up, and the guerrillas looked down. “Buenos dias, senor,” ceremoniously said the foremost guerrilla.
The cowboys looked up, and the guerrillas looked down. “Good morning, sir,” said the leading guerrilla with a formal tone.
By straining her ears Madeline heard that voice, and she recognized it as belonging to Don Carlos. His graceful bow to Stewart was also familiar. Otherwise she would never have recognized the former elegant vaquero in this uncouth, roughly dressed Mexican.
By straining her ears, Madeline heard that voice and recognized it as belonging to Don Carlos. His graceful bow to Stewart was also familiar. Otherwise, she would never have recognized the former elegant cowboy in this rough, casually dressed Mexican.
Stewart answered the greeting in Spanish, and, waving his hand toward the camp-fire, added in English, “Get down and eat.”
Stewart responded to the greeting in Spanish and, waving his hand towards the campfire, added in English, “Sit down and eat.”
The guerrillas were anything but slow in complying. They crowded to the fire, then spread in a little circle and squatted upon the ground, laying their weapons beside them. In appearance they tallied with the band of guerrillas that had carried Madeline up into the foothills, only this band was larger and better armed. The men, moreover, were just as hungry and as wild and beggarly. The cowboys were not cordial in their reception of this visit, but they were hospitable. The law of the desert had always been to give food and drink to wayfaring men, whether lost or hunted or hunting.
The guerrillas didn’t hesitate to comply. They rushed to the fire, forming a small circle and sitting on the ground, placing their weapons beside them. They looked similar to the group of guerrillas that had taken Madeline into the foothills, but this group was larger and better armed. The men were still just as hungry, wild, and rough around the edges. The cowboys weren’t exactly welcoming, but they were friendly enough. The rule of the desert had always been to provide food and drink to travelers, whether they were lost, being chased, or on the hunt.
“There’s twenty-three in that outfit,” whispered Ambrose, “includin’ four white men. Pretty rummy outfit.”
“There's twenty-three in that group,” Ambrose whispered, “including four white men. It's a pretty strange crew.”
“They appear to be friendly enough,” whispered Madeline.
“They seem friendly enough,” whispered Madeline.
“Things down there ain’t what they seem,” replied Ambrose.
“Things down there aren’t what they seem,” replied Ambrose.
“Ambrose, tell me—explain to me. This is my opportunity. As long as you will let me watch them, please let me know the—the real thing.”
“Ambrose, tell me—explain it to me. This is my chance. As long as you’ll let me watch them, please let me know the— the real deal.”
“Sure. But recollect, Miss Hammond, that Gene’ll give it to me good if he ever knows I let you look and told you what’s what. Well, decent-like Gene is seen’ them poor devils get a square meal. They’re only a lot of calf-thieves in this country. Across the border they’re bandits, some of them, the others just riffraff outlaws. That rebel bluff doesn’t go down with us. I’d have to see first before I’d believe them Greasers would fight. They’re a lot of hard-ridin’ thieves, and they’d steal a fellow’s blanket or tobacco. Gene thinks they’re after you ladies—to carry you off. But Gene—Oh, Gene’s some highfalutin in his ideas lately. Most of us boys think the guerrillas are out to rob—that’s all.”
“Sure. But remember, Miss Hammond, that Gene will definitely give me a hard time if he ever finds out I let you look and told you what’s what. Well, to his credit, Gene is making sure those poor guys get a proper meal. They’re just a bunch of cattle thieves in this country. Across the border, some of them are bandits, while the others are just lowlife outlaws. That rebel act doesn’t impress us. I’d need to see it to believe that those guys would actually fight. They’re just a bunch of tough thieves who’d swipe a guy’s blanket or tobacco. Gene thinks they’re after you ladies—to kidnap you. But Gene—oh, Gene’s been acting pretty high and mighty with his ideas lately. Most of us guys think the guerrillas are just out to rob—that’s it.”
Whatever might have been the secret motive of Don Carlos and his men, they did not allow it to interfere with a hearty appreciation of a generous amount of food. Plainly, each individual ate all that he was able to eat at the time. They jabbered like a flock of parrots; some were even merry, in a kind of wild way. Then, as each and every one began to roll and smoke the inevitable cigarette of the Mexican, there was a subtle change in manner. They smoked and looked about the camp, off into the woods, up at the crags, and back at the leisurely cowboys. They had the air of men waiting for something.
Whatever the hidden agenda of Don Carlos and his crew may have been, they didn’t let it affect their enjoyment of a hearty meal. Clearly, each person ate as much as they could. They chatted like a bunch of parrots; some even seemed happy, in a wild sort of way. Then, as everyone started to roll and smoke the usual Mexican cigarette, there was a noticeable shift in their mood. They smoked and glanced around the camp, into the woods, up at the cliffs, and back at the relaxed cowboys. They had the vibe of people waiting for something.
“Senor,” began Don Carlos, addressing Stewart. As he spoke he swept his sombrero to indicate the camp circle.
“Senor,” started Don Carlos, speaking to Stewart. As he spoke, he tipped his sombrero to point out the camp circle.
Madeline could not distinguish his words, but his gesture plainly indicated a question in regard to the rest of the camping party. Stewart’s reply and the wave of his hand down the trail meant that his party had gone home. Stewart turned to some task, and the guerrilla leader quietly smoked. He looked cunning and thoughtful. His men gradually began to manifest a restlessness, noticeable in the absence of former languor and slow puffing of cigarette smoke. Presently a big-boned man with a bullet head and a blistered red face of evil coarseness got up and threw away his cigarette. He was an American.
Madeline couldn't hear his words, but his gesture clearly asked about the rest of the camping group. Stewart's response and the wave of his hand down the trail indicated that his group had gone home. Stewart turned to handle another task, while the guerrilla leader calmly smoked. He appeared sly and contemplative. His men gradually started to show signs of restlessness, a change from their earlier laziness and slow cigarette puffs. Soon, a big guy with a bullet-shaped head and a blistered, coarse red face stood up and tossed aside his cigarette. He was American.
“Hey, cull,” he called in loud voice, “ain’t ye goin’ to cough up a drink?”
“Hey, buddy,” he called in a loud voice, “aren’t you going to share a drink?”
“My boys don’t carry liquor on the trail,” replied Stewart. He turned now to face the guerrillas.
“My guys don’t carry booze on the trail,” replied Stewart. He turned now to face the guerrillas.
“Haw, haw! I heerd over in Rodeo thet ye was gittin’ to be shore some fer temperance,” said this fellow. “I hate to drink water, but I guess I’ve gotter do it.”
“Haw, haw! I heard over in Rodeo that you were definitely getting serious about temperance,” said this guy. “I hate drinking water, but I guess I have to do it.”
He went to the spring, sprawled down to drink, and all of a sudden he thrust his arm down in the water to bring forth a basket. The cowboys in the hurry of packing had neglected to remove this basket; and it contained bottles of wine and liquors for Madeline’s guests. They had been submerged in the spring to keep them cold. The guerrilla fumbled with the lid, opened it, and then got up, uttering a loud roar of delight.
He walked over to the spring, lay down to drink, and suddenly plunged his arm into the water to pull up a basket. The cowboys, in their rush to pack, had forgotten to take it out; it held bottles of wine and liquor for Madeline’s guests. They had been left in the spring to keep cool. The guerrilla struggled with the lid, managed to open it, and then got up, letting out a loud cheer of joy.
Stewart made an almost imperceptible motion, as if to leap forward; but he checked the impulse, and after a quick glance at Nels he said to the guerrilla:
Stewart made a barely noticeable movement, as if to jump forward; but he held back the impulse, and after a quick look at Nels, he said to the guerrilla:
“Guess my party forgot that. You’re welcome to it.” Like bees the guerrillas swarmed around the lucky finder of the bottles. There was a babel of voices. The drink did not last long, and it served only to liberate the spirit of recklessness. The several white outlaws began to prowl around the camp; some of the Mexicans did likewise; others waited, showing by their ill-concealed expectancy the nature of their thoughts.
“Looks like my party forgot about that. You can have it.” The guerrillas buzzed around the lucky person who found the bottles like bees. There was a mix of voices. The drink didn’t last long, but it only encouraged a wild spirit. The group of white outlaws started to roam around the camp; some of the Mexicans did the same; others hung back, their barely hidden anticipation revealing what they were thinking.
It was the demeanor of Stewart and his comrades that puzzled Madeline. Apparently they felt no anxiety or even particular interest. Don Carlos, who had been covertly watching them, now made his scrutiny open, even aggressive. He looked from Stewart to Nels and Monty, and then to the other cowboys. While some of his men prowled around the others watched him, and the waiting attitude had taken on something sinister. The guerrilla leader seemed undecided, but not in any sense puzzled. When he turned his cunning face upon Nels and Monty he had the manner of a man in whom decision was lacking.
It was the attitude of Stewart and his friends that confused Madeline. They seemed completely relaxed, showing no worry or even much interest. Don Carlos, who had been secretly observing them, now made his examination obvious and even confrontational. He glanced from Stewart to Nels and Monty, and then to the other cowboys. While some of his men moved around, others kept an eye on him, and the waiting mood had started to feel menacing. The guerrilla leader appeared unsure, but not perplexed. When he directing his clever gaze at Nels and Monty, he carried the air of someone who was lacking in decisive action.
In her growing excitement Madeline had not clearly heard Ambrose’s low whispers and she made an effort to distract some of her attention from those below to the cowboy crouching beside her.
In her increasing excitement, Madeline hadn’t fully caught Ambrose’s quiet whispers, and she tried to shift some of her focus from the people below to the cowboy sitting beside her.
The quality, the note of Ambrose’s whisper had changed. It had a slight sibilant sound.
The quality of Ambrose’s whisper had changed. It had a slight hissing sound.
“Don’t be mad if sudden-like I clap my hands over your eyes, Miss Hammond,” he was saying. “Somethin’s brewin’ below. I never seen Gene so cool. That’s a dangerous sign in him. And look, see how the boys are workin’ together! Oh, it’s slow and accident-like, but I know it’s sure not accident. That foxy Greaser knows, too. But maybe his men don’t. If they are wise they haven’t sense enough to care. The Don, though—he’s worried. He’s not payin’ so much attention to Gene, either. It’s Nels and Monty he’s watchin’. And well he need do it! There, Nick and Frank have settled down on that log with Booly. They don’t seem to be packin’ guns. But look how heavy their vests hang. A gun in each side! Those boys can pull a gun and flop over that log quicker than you can think. Do you notice how Nels and Monty and Gene are square between them guerrillas and the trail up here? It doesn’t seem on purpose, but it is. Look at Nels and Monty. How quiet they are confabbin’ together, payin’ no attention to the guerrillas. I see Monty look at Gene, then I see Nels look at Gene. Well, it’s up to Gene. And they’re goin’ to back him. I reckon, Miss Hammond, there’d be dead Greasers round that camp long ago if Nels and Monty were foot-loose. They’re beholdin’ to Gene. That’s plain. And, Lord! how it tickles me to watch them! Both packin’ two forty-fives, butts swingin’ clear. There’s twenty-four shots in them four guns. And there’s twenty-three guerrillas. If Nels and Monty ever throw guns at that close range, why, before you’d know what was up there’d be a pile of Greasers. There! Stewart said something to the Don. I wonder what. I’ll gamble it was something to get the Don’s outfit all close together. Sure! Greasers have no sense. But them white guerrillas, they’re lookin’ some dubious. Whatever’s comin’ off will come soon, you can bet. I wish I was down there. But maybe it won’t come to a scrap. Stewart’s set on avoidin’ that. He’s a wonderful chap to get his way. Lord, though, I’d like to see him go after that overbearin’ Greaser! See! the Don can’t stand prosperity. All this strange behavior of cowboys is beyond his pulque-soaked brains. Then he’s a Greaser. If Gene doesn’t knock him on the head presently he’ll begin to get over his scare, even of Nels and Monty. But Gene’ll pick out the right time. And I’m gettin’ nervous. I want somethin’ to start. Never saw Nels in but one fight, then he just shot a Greaser’s arm off for tryin’ to draw on him. But I’ve heard all about him. And Monty! Monty’s the real old-fashioned gun-man. Why, none of them stories, them lies he told to entertain the Englishman, was a marker to what Monty has done. What I don’t understand is how Monty keeps so quiet and easy and peaceful-like. That’s not his way, with such an outfit lookin’ for trouble. O-ha! Now for the grand bluff. Looks like no fight at all!”
“Don’t be mad if I suddenly clap my hands over your eyes, Miss Hammond,” he said. “Something’s brewing down below. I’ve never seen Gene so calm. That’s a dangerous sign for him. And look, see how the guys are working together! Oh, it’s slow and clumsy, but I know it’s definitely not an accident. That clever Greaser knows it too. But maybe his guys don’t. If they’re smart, they probably don’t care enough to notice. The Don, though—he’s worried. He’s not paying so much attention to Gene, either. It’s Nels and Monty he’s focused on. And he should be! There, Nick and Frank have settled down on that log with Booly. They don’t seem to be carrying guns. But look how heavy their vests hang. A gun on each side! Those guys can draw a gun and flop over that log faster than you can blink. Do you notice how Nels, Monty, and Gene are positioned right between those guerrillas and the trail up here? It doesn’t seem intentional, but it really is. Look at Nels and Monty. How quietly they’re chatting together, ignoring the guerrillas. I see Monty looking at Gene, then I see Nels looking at Gene. Well, it’s up to Gene. And they’re going to support him. I figure, Miss Hammond, there’d be dead Greasers around that camp long ago if Nels and Monty were free to do what they wanted. They’re beholden to Gene. That’s clear. And, man! how it excites me to watch them! Both carrying two .45s, grips swinging free. There are twenty-four shots in those four guns. And there are twenty-three guerrillas. If Nels and Monty ever pull guns at that close range, before you know what’s going on, there’d be a pile of Greasers. There! Stewart said something to the Don. I wonder what it was. I bet it was something to get the Don’s crew all huddled together. For sure! Greasers have no sense. But those white guerrillas, they look a bit uncertain. Whatever’s going to happen will happen soon, you can bet on that. I wish I was down there. But maybe it won’t come to a fight. Stewart’s determined to avoid that. He’s great at getting his way. But, man, I’d love to see him take on that overconfident Greaser! Look! the Don can’t handle success. All this strange behavior from the cowboys is beyond his pulque-soaked brain. Then again, he’s a Greaser. If Gene doesn’t knock him out soon, he’ll start to shake off his fear, even of Nels and Monty. But Gene knows the right moment. And I’m getting anxious. I want something to happen. I’ve only seen Nels in one fight, when he shot a Greaser’s arm off for trying to draw on him. But I’ve heard all about him. And Monty! Monty’s the real old-school gunman. None of those stories, those lies he told to entertain the Englishman, hold a candle to what Monty has done. What I don’t get is how Monty stays so calm and relaxed and peaceful-like. That’s not his style, with such a dangerous crew looking for trouble. Oh-ha! Now for the big bluff. Looks like no fight at all!”
The guerrilla leader had ceased his restless steps and glances, and turned to Stewart with something of bold resolution in his aspect.
The guerrilla leader had stopped his restless pacing and glancing around, and turned to Stewart with a look of bold determination.
“Gracias, senor,” he said. “Adios.” He swept his sombrero in the direction of the trail leading down the mountain to the ranch; and as he completed the gesture a smile, crafty and jeering, crossed his swarthy face.
“Thanks, sir,” he said. “Goodbye.” He tipped his hat toward the path leading down the mountain to the ranch, and as he finished the gesture, a sly, mocking smile spread across his dark face.
Ambrose whispered so low that Madeline scarcely heard him. “If the Greaser goes that way he’ll find our horses and get wise to the trick. Oh, he’s wise now! But I’ll gamble he never even starts on that trail.”
Ambrose whispered so softly that Madeline could barely hear him. “If the Greaser goes that way, he'll find our horses and catch on to the trick. Oh, he knows what's up now! But I bet he won't even start on that trail.”
Neither hurriedly nor guardedly Stewart rose out of his leaning posture and took a couple of long strides toward Don Carlos.
Neither too quickly nor too cautiously, Stewart stood up from his leaning position and took a few long steps toward Don Carlos.
“Go back the way you came,” he fairly yelled; and his voice had the ring of a bugle.
“Go back the way you came,” he shouted, and his voice had the clarity of a bugle.
Ambrose nudged Madeline; his whisper was tense and rapid: “Don’t miss nothin’. Gene’s called him. Whatever’s comin’ off will be here quick as lightnin’. See! I guess maybe that Greaser don’t savvy good U. S. lingo. Look at that dirty yaller face turn green. Put one eye on Nels and Monty! That’s great—just to see ’em. Just as quiet and easy. But oh, the difference! Bent and stiff—that means every muscle is like a rawhide riata. They’re watchin’ with eyes that can see the workin’s of them Greasers’ minds. Now there ain’t a hoss-hair between them Greasers and hell!”
Ambrose nudged Madeline; his whisper was tense and quick: “Don’t miss anything. Gene's called him. Whatever’s about to happen will be here faster than lightning. Look! I guess that Greaser doesn’t understand good U.S. slang. Check out that dirty yellow face turning green. Keep one eye on Nels and Monty! That’s awesome—just seeing them. So calm and relaxed. But oh, the difference! Bent and stiff—that means every muscle is like a rawhide rope. They’re watching with eyes that can see what those Greasers are thinking. Now there’s not a hair between those Greasers and hell!”
Don Carlos gave Stewart one long malignant stare; then he threw back his head, swept up the sombrero, and his evil smile showed gleaming teeth.
Don Carlos gave Stewart a long, hateful glare; then he tilted his head back, picked up the sombrero, and his wicked smile revealed shining teeth.
“Senor—” he began.
“Sir—” he began.
With magnificent bound Stewart was upon him. The guerrilla’s cry was throttled in his throat. A fierce wrestling ensued, too swift to see clearly; then heavy, sodden blows, and Don Carlos was beaten to the ground. Stewart leaped back. Then, crouching with his hands on the butts of guns at his hips, he yelled, he thundered at the guerrillas. He had been quicker than a panther, and now his voice was so terrible that it curdled Madeline’s blood, and the menace of deadly violence in his crouching position made her shut her eyes. But she had to open them. In that single instant Nels and Monty had leaped to Stewart’s side. Both were bent down, with hands on the butts of guns at their hips. Nels’s piercing yell seemed to divide Monty’s roar of rage. Then they ceased, and echoes clapped from the crags. The silence of those three men crouching like tigers about to leap was more menacing than the nerve-racking yells.
With a powerful leap, Stewart was on him. The guerrilla’s cry was choked in his throat. A fierce struggle broke out, too fast to see clearly; then heavy, brutal blows, and Don Carlos was brought down to the ground. Stewart jumped back. Then, crouching with his hands on the butts of the guns at his hips, he shouted, screaming at the guerrillas. He had moved faster than a panther, and now his voice was so terrifying that it chilled Madeline’s blood, and the threat of deadly violence in his crouched position made her shut her eyes. But she had to open them. In that split second, Nels and Monty had rushed to Stewart’s side. Both were bent down, with hands on the butts of their guns at their hips. Nels’s sharp yell seemed to cut through Monty’s roar of anger. Then they stopped, and echoes reverberated off the cliffs. The silence of those three men crouching like tigers about to pounce was more intimidating than their nerve-racking yells.
Then the guerrillas wavered and broke and ran for their horses. Don Carlos rolled over, rose, and staggered away, to be helped upon his mount. He looked back, his pale and bloody face that of a thwarted demon. The whole band got into action and were gone in a moment.
Then the guerrillas hesitated, panicked, and ran for their horses. Don Carlos rolled over, got up, and stumbled away, needing assistance to get on his horse. He looked back, his pale, bloody face resembling a defeated demon. The entire group sprang into action and vanished in an instant.
“I knew it,” declared Ambrose. “Never seen a Greaser who could face gun-play. That was some warm. And Monty Price never flashed a gun! He’ll never get over that. I reckon, Miss Harnmond, we’re some lucky to avoid trouble. Gene had his way, as you seen. We’ll be makin’ tracks for the ranch in about two shakes.”
“I knew it,” Ambrose said. “I’ve never seen a Greaser who could handle gunfire. That was intense. And Monty Price never brandished a gun! He won’t ever live that down. I guess, Miss Harnmond, we’re pretty lucky to have avoided trouble. Gene got his way, as you saw. We’ll be heading to the ranch in no time.”
“Why?” whispered Madeline, breathlessly. She became conscious that she was weak and shaken.
“Why?” whispered Madeline, out of breath. She realized that she felt weak and shaken.
“Because the guerrillas sure will get their nerve back, and come sneakin’ on our trail or try to head us off by ambushin’,” replied Ambrose. “That’s their way. Otherwise three cowboys couldn’t bluff a whole gang like that. Gene knows the nature of Greasers. They’re white-livered. But I reckon we’re in more danger now than before, unless we get a good start down the mountain. There! Gene’s callin’. Come! Hurry!”
“Because the guerrillas are definitely going to regain their courage and try to sneak up on us or intercept us with an ambush,” Ambrose replied. “That’s how they operate. Otherwise, three cowboys wouldn't be able to intimidate a whole gang like that. Gene understands how Greasers are. They’re cowardly. But I think we’re in more danger now than we were before, unless we can make a quick escape down the mountain. There! Gene’s calling. Let’s go! Hurry!”
Helen had slipped down from her vantage-point, and therefore had not seen the last act in that little camp-fire drama. It seemed, however, that her desire for excitement was satisfied, for her face was pale and she trembled when she asked if the guerrillas were gone.
Helen had moved down from her viewpoint and hadn’t seen the final scene of that little campfire drama. It appeared, though, that her craving for excitement was met, as her face was pale and she trembled when she asked if the guerrillas were gone.
“I didn’t see the finish, but those horrible yells were enough for me.”
“I didn’t see the end, but those terrible screams were enough for me.”
Ambrose hurried the three women over the rough rocks, down the cliff. The cowboys below were saddling horses in haste. Evidently all the horses had been brought out of hiding. Swiftly, with regard only for life and limb, Madeline, Helen, and Christine were lowered by lassoes and half carried down to the level. By the time they were safely down the other members of the party appeared on the cliff above. They were in excellent spirits, appearing to treat the matter as a huge joke.
Ambrose rushed the three women over the rough rocks and down the cliff. The cowboys below were quickly saddling horses. Clearly, all the horses had been brought out of hiding. Quickly, with only their safety in mind, Madeline, Helen, and Christine were lowered by lassos and half carried down to the ground. By the time they got safely down, the other members of the group showed up on the cliff above. They were in great spirits, treating the situation like a big joke.
Ambrose put Christine on a horse and rode away through the pines; Frankie Slade did likewise with Helen. Stewart led Madeline’s horse up to her, helped her to mount, and spoke one stern word, “Wait!” Then as fast as one of the women reached the level she was put upon a horse and taken away by a cowboy escort. Few words were spoken. Haste seemed to be the great essential. The horses were urged, and, once in the trail, spurred and led into a swift trot. One cowboy drove up four pack-horses, and these were hurriedly loaded with the party’s baggage. Castleton and his companions mounted, and galloped off to catch the others in the lead. This left Madeline behind with Stewart and Nels and Monty.
Ambrose put Christine on a horse and rode off through the pines; Frankie Slade did the same with Helen. Stewart brought Madeline’s horse to her, helped her get on, and said one stern word, “Wait!” Then, as soon as one of the women was ready, she was put on a horse and taken away by a cowboy escort. Few words were exchanged. It felt like time was of the essence. The horses were urged forward, and, once on the trail, they were spurred into a fast trot. One cowboy brought up four pack-horses, and they quickly loaded the group's baggage. Castleton and his friends mounted their horses and raced off to catch up with the others in front. This left Madeline behind with Stewart, Nels, and Monty.
“They’re goin’ to switch off at the holler thet heads near the trail a few miles down,” Nels was saying, as he tightened his saddle-girth. “Thet holler heads into a big canyon. Once in thet, it’ll be every man fer hisself. I reckon there won’t be anythin’ wuss than a rough ride.”
“They’re going to turn off at the hollow that leads near the trail a few miles down,” Nels was saying, as he tightened his saddle-girth. “That hollow goes into a big canyon. Once we’re in there, it’ll be every man for himself. I guess there won’t be anything worse than a rough ride.”
Nels smiled reassuringly at Madeline, but he did not speak to her. Monty took her canteen and filled it at the spring and hung it over the pommel of her saddle. He put a couple of biscuits in the saddle-bag.
Nels smiled reassuringly at Madeline, but he didn’t say anything to her. Monty took her canteen, filled it at the spring, and hung it over the pommel of her saddle. He put a couple of biscuits in the saddlebag.
“Don’t fergit to take a drink an’ a bite as you’re ridin’ along,” he said. “An’ don’t worry, Miss Majesty. Stewart’ll be with you, an’ me an’ Nels hangin’ on the back-trail.”
“Don’t forget to grab a drink and a snack while you’re riding,” he said. “And don’t worry, Miss Majesty. Stewart will be with you, and Nels and I will be following behind.”
His somber and sullen face did not change in its strange intensity, but the look in his eyes Madeline felt she would never forget. Left alone with these three men, now stripped of all pretense, she realized how fortune had favored her and what peril still hung in the balance. Stewart swung astride his big black, spurred him, and whistled. At the whistle Majesty jumped, and with swift canter followed Stewart. Madeline looked back to see Nels already up and Monty handing him a rifle. Then the pines hid her view.
His grim and gloomy face didn’t lose its strange intensity, but the look in his eyes was something Madeline knew she would never forget. Left alone with these three men, now stripped of all pretense, she realized how lucky she had been and what danger still loomed. Stewart climbed onto his big black horse, spurred it, and whistled. At the whistle, Majesty jumped and swiftly cantered after Stewart. Madeline looked back to see Nels already mounted and Monty handing him a rifle. Then the pines blocked her view.
Once in the trail, Stewart’s horse broke into a gallop. Majesty changed his gait and kept at the black’s heels. Stewart called back a warning. The low, wide-spreading branches of trees might brush Madeline out of the saddle. Fast riding through the forest along a crooked, obstructed trail called forth all her alertness. Likewise the stirring of her blood, always susceptible to the spirit and motion of a ride, let alone one of peril, now began to throb and burn away the worry, the dread, the coldness that had weighted her down.
Once on the trail, Stewart’s horse took off into a gallop. Majesty matched his pace and stayed right behind the black horse. Stewart shouted a warning back to her. The low, wide branches of the trees could knock Madeline out of the saddle. Riding quickly through the forest on a twisted, blocked path required all her focus. The excitement coursing through her blood, always responsive to the thrill and movement of a ride, especially one with danger, began to pulse and dispel the worry, fear, and chill that had been dragging her down.
Before long Stewart wheeled at right angles off the trail and entered a hollow between two low bluffs. Madeline saw tracks in the open patches of ground. Here Stewart’s horse took to a brisk walk. The hollow deepened, narrowed, became rocky, full of logs and brush. Madeline exerted all her keenness, and needed it, to keep close to Stewart. She did not think of him, nor her own safety, but of keeping Majesty close in the tracks of the black, of eluding the sharp spikes in the dead brush, of avoiding the treacherous loose stones.
Before long, Stewart turned sharply off the trail and entered a small valley between two low hills. Madeline noticed tracks in the clear patches of ground. Here, Stewart's horse picked up a brisk pace. The valley deepened, narrowed, and became rocky, filled with logs and brush. Madeline focused all her attention, and needed it, to stay close to Stewart. She didn’t think about him or her own safety, but about keeping Majesty close to the tracks of the black horse, avoiding the sharp spikes in the dead brush, and dodging the treacherous loose stones.
At last Madeline was brought to a dead halt by Stewart and his horse blocking the trail. Looking up, she saw they were at the head of a canyon that yawned beneath and widened its gray-walled, green-patched slopes down to a black forest of fir. The drab monotony of the foothills made contrast below the forest, and away in the distance, rosy and smoky, lay the desert. Retracting her gaze, Madeline saw pack-horses cross an open space a mile below, and she thought she saw the stag-hounds. Stewart’s dark eyes searched the slopes high up along the craggy escarpments. Then he put the black to the descent.
At last, Madeline came to a complete stop as Stewart and his horse blocked the trail. Looking up, she realized they were at the top of a canyon that dropped down and widened with its gray-walled, green-patched slopes leading to a dark forest of fir trees. The dull uniformity of the foothills contrasted with the forest below, and in the distance, the desert stretched out, rosy and smoky. Pulling her gaze back, Madeline noticed pack-horses moving through an open area a mile below, and she thought she saw the stag-hounds. Stewart’s dark eyes scanned the slopes high along the jagged cliffs. Then he urged the black horse down the incline.
If there had been a trail left by the leading cowboys, Stewart did not follow it. He led off to the right, zigzagging an intricate course through the roughest ground Madeline had ever ridden over. He crashed through cedars, threaded a tortuous way among boulders, made his horse slide down slanting banks of soft earth, picked a slow and cautious progress across weathered slopes of loose rock. Madeline followed, finding in this ride a tax on strength and judgment. On an ordinary horse she never could have kept in Stewart’s trail. It was dust and heat, a parching throat, that caused Madeline to think of time; and she was amazed to see the sun sloping to the west. Stewart never stopped; he never looked back; he never spoke. He must have heard the horse close behind him. Madeline remembered Monty’s advice about drinking and eating as she rode along. The worst of that rough travel came at the bottom of the canyon. Dead cedars and brush and logs were easy to pass compared with the miles, it seemed, of loose boulders. The horses slipped and stumbled. Stewart proceeded here with exceeding care. At last, when the canyon opened into a level forest of firs, the sun was setting red in the west.
If there had been a trail left by the leading cowboys, Stewart didn’t follow it. He veered off to the right, weaving through the roughest terrain Madeline had ever ridden on. He crashed through cedars, twisted his way around boulders, made his horse slide down sloping banks of soft earth, and picked a slow and careful path across weathered slopes of loose rock. Madeline followed, finding this ride a test of strength and judgment. On an ordinary horse, she never would have been able to keep up with Stewart. It was the dust and heat, and a dry throat, that made Madeline think about time; she was surprised to see the sun dipping to the west. Stewart never stopped; he never looked back; he never spoke. He must have heard the horse close behind him. Madeline remembered Monty’s advice about drinking and eating as she rode on. The worst part of that rough travel came at the bottom of the canyon. Dead cedars, brush, and logs were easy to get past compared to the miles, it felt like, of loose boulders. The horses slipped and stumbled. Stewart moved carefully through here. Finally, when the canyon opened into a flat forest of firs, the sun was setting red in the west.
Stewart quickened the gait of his horse. After a mile or so of easy travel the ground again began to fall decidedly, sloping in numerous ridges, with draws between. Soon night shadowed the deeper gullies. Madeline was refreshed by the cooling of the air.
Stewart increased his horse's pace. After riding for about a mile on easy terrain, the ground began to slope down again, creating several ridges with dips in between. Before long, night fell over the deeper valleys. Madeline felt rejuvenated by the cooler air.
Stewart traveled slowly now. The barks of coyotes seemed to startle him. Often he stopped to listen. And during one of those intervals the silence was broken by sharp rifle-shots. Madeline could not tell whether they were near or far, to right or left, behind or before. Evidently Stewart was both alarmed and baffled. He dismounted. He went cautiously forward to listen. Madeline fancied she heard a cry, low and far away. It was only that of a coyote, she convinced herself, yet it was so wailing, so human, that she shuddered. Stewart came back. He slipped the bridles of both horses, and he led them. Every few paces he stopped to listen. He changed his direction several times, and the last time he got among rough, rocky ridges. The iron shoes of the horses cracked on the rocks. That sound must have penetrated far into the forest. It perturbed Stewart, for he searched for softer ground. Meanwhile the shadows merged into darkness. The stars shone. The wind rose. Madeline believed hours passed.
Stewart moved slowly now. The howls of coyotes seemed to startle him. He often paused to listen. During one of those breaks, the silence was shattered by sharp gunshots. Madeline couldn’t tell if they were close or far, to the right or left, behind or ahead. Clearly, Stewart was both alarmed and confused. He got off his horse and cautiously moved forward to listen. Madeline thought she heard a cry, faint and distant. She convinced herself it was just a coyote, yet it sounded so mournful and almost human that it made her shudder. Stewart returned. He removed the bridles from both horses and led them. Every few steps, he stopped to listen. He changed direction several times, and the last time, he ended up among rough, rocky ridges. The iron shoes of the horses clattered on the rocks. That noise must have carried far into the forest. It unsettled Stewart, as he looked for softer ground. Meanwhile, the shadows faded into darkness. The stars twinkled. The wind picked up. Madeline felt like hours had passed.
Stewart halted again. In the gloom Madeline discerned a log cabin, and beyond it pear-pointed dark trees piercing the sky-line. She could just make out Stewart’s tall form as he leaned against his horse. Either he was listening or debating what to do—perhaps both. Presently he went inside the cabin. Madeline heard the scratching of a match; then she saw a faint light. The cabin appeared to be deserted. Probably it was one of the many habitations belonging to prospectors and foresters who lived in the mountains. Stewart came out again. He walked around the horses, out into the gloom, then back to Madeline. For a long moment he stood as still as a statue and listened. Then she heard him mutter, “If we have to start quick I can ride bareback.” With that he took the saddle and blanket off his horse and carried them into the cabin.
Stewart stopped again. In the dim light, Madeline spotted a log cabin, and beyond it, dark trees with pear-shaped tops stood out against the skyline. She could just make out Stewart's tall figure as he leaned against his horse. He seemed to be either listening or figuring out what to do—maybe both. Soon, he went inside the cabin. Madeline heard the scratch of a match, and then she saw a faint light. The cabin looked empty. It was probably one of the many places owned by prospectors and foresters living in the mountains. Stewart came back outside. He walked around the horses, into the darkness, then returned to Madeline. For a long moment, he stood perfectly still and listened. Then she heard him mumble, “If we need to leave fast, I can ride without a saddle.” With that, he took the saddle and blanket off his horse and carried them into the cabin.
“Get off,” he said, in a low voice, as he stepped out of the door.
“Get off,” he said quietly as he stepped out of the door.
He helped her down and led her inside, where again he struck a match. Madeline caught a glimpse of a rude fireplace and rough-hewn logs. Stewart’s blanket and saddle lay on the hard-packed earthen floor.
He helped her down and guided her inside, where he struck a match again. Madeline caught a glimpse of a crude fireplace and rough logs. Stewart’s blanket and saddle were on the hard-packed earthen floor.
“Rest a little,” he said. “I’m going into the woods a piece to listen. Gone only a minute or so.”
“Take a break for a bit,” he said. “I’m heading into the woods for a moment to listen. I’ll be gone just a minute or so.”
Madeline had to feel round in the dark to locate the saddle and blanket. When she lay down it was with a grateful sense of ease and relief. As her body rested, however, her mind became the old thronging maze for sensation and thought. All day she had attended to the alert business of helping her horse. Now, what had already happened, the night, the silence, the proximity of Stewart and his strange, stern caution, the possible happenings to her friends—all claimed their due share of her feeling. She went over them all with lightning swiftness of thought. She believed, and she was sure Stewart believed, that her friends, owing to their quicker start down the mountain, had not been headed off in their travel by any of the things which had delayed Stewart. This conviction lifted the suddenly returning dread from her breast; and as for herself, somehow she had no fear. But she could not sleep; she did not try to.
Madeline had to feel around in the dark to find the saddle and blanket. When she lay down, it was with a grateful sense of ease and relief. As her body rested, though, her mind became the familiar crowded maze of feelings and thoughts. All day she had focused on taking care of her horse. Now, everything that had happened—the night, the silence, the closeness of Stewart and his strange, serious caution, the potential dangers to her friends—demanded her attention. She quickly went over each of them in her mind. She believed, and was sure Stewart believed, that her friends, thanks to their faster start down the mountain, hadn't been stopped in their journey by any of the things that had delayed Stewart. This belief eased the sudden dread from her chest; and as for herself, somehow she felt no fear. But she couldn’t sleep; she didn’t even try.
Stewart’s soft steps sounded outside. His dark form loomed in the door. As he sat down Madeline heard the thump of a gun that he laid beside him on the sill; then the thump of another as he put that down, too. The sounds thrilled her. Stewart’s wide shoulders filled the door; his finely shaped head and strong, stern profile showed clearly in outline against the sky; the wind waved his hair. He turned his ear to that wind and listened. Motionless he sat for what to her seemed hours.
Stewart's quiet footsteps were heard outside. His dark figure appeared in the doorway. As he took a seat, Madeline heard the thud of a gun as he placed it next to him on the sill; then the thud of another as he set that one down, too. The sounds excited her. Stewart's broad shoulders filled the doorway; his well-defined head and strong, serious profile stood out sharply against the sky; the wind tousled his hair. He turned his ear to the wind and listened. He sat still for what felt like hours to her.
Then the stirring memory of the day’s adventure, the feeling of the beauty of the night, and a strange, deep-seated, sweetly vague consciousness of happiness portending, were all burned out in hot, pressing pain at the remembrance of Stewart’s disgrace in her eyes. Something had changed within her so that what had been anger at herself was sorrow for him. He was such a splendid man. She could not feel the same; she knew her debt to him, yet she could not thank him, could not speak to him. She fought an unintelligible bitterness.
Then the powerful memory of the day's adventure, the beauty of the night, and a strange, deep-down feeling of vague happiness to come all got overshadowed by the intense, overwhelming pain of remembering Stewart's disgrace in her eyes. Something had shifted in her so that what had once been anger at herself turned into sorrow for him. He was such an amazing man. She couldn't feel the same; she knew she owed him so much, yet she couldn’t thank him or speak to him. She battled through an indescribable bitterness.
Then she rested with closed eyes, and time seemed neither short nor long. When Stewart called her she opened her eyes to see the gray of dawn. She rose and stepped outside. The horses whinnied. In a moment she was in the saddle, aware of cramped muscles and a weariness of limbs. Stewart led off at a sharp trot into the fir forest. They came to a trail into which he turned. The horses traveled steadily; the descent grew less steep; the firs thinned out; the gray gloom brightened.
Then she rested with her eyes closed, and time felt neither fast nor slow. When Stewart called her, she opened her eyes to see the gray of dawn. She got up and stepped outside. The horses whinnied. In a moment, she was in the saddle, feeling her cramped muscles and tired limbs. Stewart took off at a brisk trot into the fir forest. They reached a trail that he turned onto. The horses moved steadily; the slope became less steep; the firs thinned out; the gray gloom brightened.
When Madeline rode out of the firs the sun had arisen and the foothills rolled beneath her; and at their edge, where the gray of valley began, she saw a dark patch that she knew was the ranch-house.
When Madeline rode out from the fir trees, the sun had come up and the foothills stretched out below her; at the edge where the gray of the valley started, she spotted a dark area that she recognized as the ranch house.
XX. The Sheriff of El Cajon
About the middle of the forenoon of that day Madeline reached the ranch. Her guests had all arrived there late the night before, and wanted only her presence and the assurance of her well-being to consider the last of the camping trip a rare adventure. Likewise, they voted it the cowboys’ masterpiece of a trick. Madeline’s delay, they averred, had been only a clever coup to give a final effect. She did not correct their impression, nor think it needful to state that she had been escorted home by only one cowboy.
About mid-morning that day, Madeline arrived at the ranch. Her guests had all gotten there late the night before and only needed her presence and reassurance that she was okay to see the last part of the camping trip as a great adventure. They also agreed it was the cowboys’ best trick. They claimed her delay was just a clever move to create a dramatic finish. She didn’t correct their assumption, nor did she feel it was necessary to mention she had been brought home by just one cowboy.
Her guests reported an arduous ride down the mountain, with only one incident to lend excitement. On the descent they had fallen in with Sheriff Hawe and several of his deputies, who were considerably under the influence of drink and very greatly enraged by the escape of the Mexican girl Bonita. Hawe had used insulting language to the ladies and, according to Ambrose, would have inconvenienced the party on some pretext or other if he had not been sharply silenced by the cowboys.
Her guests shared that the ride down the mountain was tough, with just one event to make it interesting. On the way down, they ran into Sheriff Hawe and a few of his deputies, who were quite drunk and really angry about the Mexican girl Bonita getting away. Hawe had spoken rudely to the ladies, and according to Ambrose, he would have caused trouble for the group on some excuse or another if the cowboys hadn’t quickly put him in his place.
Madeline’s guests were two days in recovering from the hard ride. On the third day they leisurely began to prepare for departure. This period was doubly trying for Madeline. She had her own physical need of rest, and, moreover, had to face a mental conflict that could scarcely be postponed further. Her sister and friends were kindly and earnestly persistent in their entreaties that she go back East with them. She desired to go. It was not going that mattered; it was how and when and under what circumstances she was to return that roused in her disturbing emotion. Before she went East she wanted to have fixed in mind her future relation to the ranch and the West. When the crucial hour arrived she found that the West had not claimed her yet. These old friends had warmed cold ties.
Madeline’s guests took two days to recover from the long ride. On the third day, they started to prepare for their departure at a relaxed pace. This time was especially tough for Madeline. Not only did she need to rest physically, but she also had to confront a mental struggle that couldn’t be delayed any longer. Her sister and friends were kindly but insistently urging her to return East with them. She wanted to go. It wasn’t the act of leaving that concerned her; it was the how, when, and under what circumstances she would return that stirred up unsettling feelings in her. Before heading East, she wanted to clarify her future connection to the ranch and the West. When the crucial moment came, she realized that the West hadn’t fully let her go yet. These old friends had rekindled once-cool connections.
It turned out, however, that there need be no hurry about making the decision. Madeline would have welcomed any excuse to procrastinate; but, as it happened, a letter from Alfred made her departure out of the question for the present. He wrote that his trip to California had been very profitable, that he had a proposition for Madeline from a large cattle company, and, particularly, that he wanted to marry Florence soon after his arrival home and would bring a minister from Douglas for that purpose.
It turned out, however, that there was no rush to make a decision. Madeline would have welcomed any reason to put it off; but, as it happened, a letter from Alfred made her leaving impossible for the moment. He wrote that his trip to California had been very successful, that he had a proposal for Madeline from a big cattle company, and, especially, that he wanted to marry Florence soon after he got back home and would bring a minister from Douglas to do it.
Madeline went so far, however, as to promise Helen and her friends that she would go East soon, at the very latest by Thanksgiving. With that promise they were reluctantly content to say good-by to the ranch and to her. At the last moment there seemed a great likelihood of a hitch in plans for the first stage of that homeward journey. All of Madeline’s guests held up their hands, Western fashion, when Link Stevens appeared with the big white car. Link protested innocently, solemnly, that he would drive slowly and safely; but it was necessary for Madeline to guarantee Link’s word and to accompany them before they would enter the car. At the station good-bys were spoken and repeated, and Madeline’s promise was exacted for the hundredth time.
Madeline even went so far as to promise Helen and her friends that she would head East soon, definitely by Thanksgiving at the latest. With that promise, they reluctantly agreed to say goodbye to the ranch and to her. At the last moment, it seemed highly likely that there would be a snag in the plans for the first leg of the journey home. All of Madeline’s guests raised their hands, in true Western style, when Link Stevens showed up with the big white car. Link innocently and seriously insisted that he would drive slowly and safely; however, Madeline needed to reassure everyone about Link’s promise and accompany them before they would get into the car. At the station, goodbyes were said and repeated, and Madeline’s promise was demanded once again for the hundredth time.
Dorothy Coombs’s last words were: “Give my love to Monty Price. Tell him I’m—I’m glad he kissed me!”
Dorothy Coombs’s last words were: “Send my love to Monty Price. Tell him I’m—I’m happy he kissed me!”
Helen’s eyes had a sweet, grave, yet mocking light as she said:
Helen’s eyes had a gentle, serious, but playful glimmer as she said:
“Majesty, bring Stewart with you when you come. He’ll be the rage.”
“Your Majesty, please bring Stewart with you when you come. He’ll be the talk of the town.”
Madeline treated the remark with the same merry lightness with which it was received by the others; but after the train had pulled out and she was on her way home she remembered Helen’s words and looks with something almost amounting to a shock. Any mention of Stewart, any thought of him, displeased her.
Madeline took the comment with the same cheerful lightness as everyone else did; however, after the train left and she was on her way home, she started to recall Helen’s words and expressions with a feeling that was almost shocking. Any mention of Stewart, any thought of him, bothered her.
“What did Helen mean?” mused Madeline. And she pondered. That mocking light in Helen’s eyes had been simply an ironical glint, a cynical gleam from that worldly experience so suspicious and tolerant in its wisdom. The sweet gravity of Helen’s look had been a deeper and more subtle thing. Madeline wanted to understand it, to divine in it a new relation between Helen and herself, something fine and sisterly that might lead to love. The thought, however, revolving around a strange suggestion of Stewart, was poisoned at its inception, and she dismissed it.
“What did Helen mean?” Madeline thought. She contemplated. That teasing light in Helen’s eyes was just an ironic spark, a cynical glimmer from her worldly experience that was both skeptical and accepting in its wisdom. The gentle seriousness of Helen’s gaze was something deeper and more nuanced. Madeline wanted to grasp it, to sense a new bond between Helen and herself, something beautiful and sisterly that could evolve into love. However, the idea, influenced by a strange suggestion from Stewart, felt tainted from the start, so she pushed it away.
Upon the drive in to the ranch, as she was passing the lower lake, she saw Stewart walking listlessly along the shore. When he became aware of the approach of the car he suddenly awakened from his aimless sauntering and disappeared quickly in the shade of the shrubbery. This was not by any means the first time Madeline had seen him avoid a possible meeting with her. Somehow the act had pained her, though affording her a relief. She did not want to meet him face to face.
Upon driving into the ranch, as she passed the lower lake, she saw Stewart walking aimlessly along the shore. When he noticed the car coming, he suddenly snapped out of his daze and quickly disappeared into the shade of the bushes. This wasn’t the first time Madeline had seen him dodge a potential meeting with her. Somehow, that hurt her, even though it also gave her a sense of relief. She didn't want to face him directly.
It was annoying for her to guess that Stillwell had something to say in Stewart’s defense. The old cattleman was evidently distressed. Several times he had tried to open a conversation with Madeline relating to Stewart; she had evaded him until the last time, when his persistence had brought a cold and final refusal to hear another word about the foreman. Stillwell had been crushed.
It was frustrating for her to think that Stillwell had something to say in Stewart’s defense. The old cattleman clearly looked upset. Several times, he had tried to start a conversation with Madeline about Stewart; she had dodged him until the last time, when his insistence had led to a cold and firm refusal to discuss the foreman any further. Stillwell had been devastated.
As days passed Stewart remained at the ranch without his old faithfulness to his work. Madeline was not moved to a kinder frame of mind to see him wandering dejectedly around. It hurt her, and because it hurt her she grew all the harder. Then she could not help hearing snatches of conversation which strengthened her suspicions that Stewart was losing his grip on himself, that he would soon take the downward course again. Verification of her own suspicion made it a belief, and belief brought about a sharp conflict between her generosity and some feeling that she could not name. It was not a question of justice or mercy or sympathy. If a single word could have saved Stewart from sinking his splendid manhood into the brute she had recoiled from at Chiricahua, she would not have spoken it. She could not restore him to his former place in her regard; she really did not want him at the ranch at all. Once, considering in wonder her knowledge of men, she interrogated herself to see just why she could not overlook Stewart’s transgression. She never wanted to speak to him again, or see him, or think of him. In some way, through her interest in Stewart, she had come to feel for herself an inexplicable thing close to scorn.
As days went by, Stewart stayed at the ranch but without his usual dedication to his work. Madeline wasn’t feeling any kinder seeing him wander around looking miserable. It upset her, and because it upset her, she became even tougher. She couldn’t help but overhear bits of conversations that reinforced her suspicions that Stewart was losing control, that he would soon spiral downwards again. Confirming her own suspicion turned it into a belief, and that belief created a sharp conflict between her generosity and a feeling she couldn’t quite identify. It wasn’t about justice, mercy, or sympathy. If a single word could have saved Stewart from surrendering his amazing character to the brutish behavior she had turned away from at Chiricahua, she wouldn’t have said it. She couldn’t bring him back to his previous standing in her eyes; she honestly didn’t want him at the ranch at all. Once, while pondering her understanding of men, she questioned herself to figure out why she couldn’t overlook Stewart’s mistake. She never wanted to talk to him again, or see him, or think about him. In some way, through her concern for Stewart, she had developed a strange feeling that was almost scorn.
A telegram from Douglas, heralding the coming of Alfred and a minister, put an end to Madeline’s brooding, and she shared something of Florence Kingsley’s excitement. The cowboys were as eager and gossipy as girls. It was arranged to have the wedding ceremony performed in Madeline’s great hall-chamber, and the dinner in the cool, flower-scented patio.
A telegram from Douglas, announcing the arrival of Alfred and a minister, pulled Madeline out of her gloomy thoughts, and she felt a bit of the excitement that Florence Kingsley had. The cowboys were just as eager and chatty as girls. They decided to hold the wedding ceremony in Madeline’s grand hall and the dinner in the cool, flower-scented patio.
Alfred and his minister arrived at the ranch in the big white car. They appeared considerably wind-blown. In fact, the minister was breathless, almost sightless, and certainly hatless. Alfred, used as he was to wind and speed, remarked that he did not wonder at Nels’s aversion to riding a fleeting cannon-ball. The imperturbable Link took off his cap and goggles and, consulting his watch, made his usual apologetic report to Madeline, deploring the fact that a teamster and a few stray cattle on the road had held him down to the manana time of only a mile a minute.
Alfred and his minister pulled up to the ranch in the big white car. They looked quite wind-blown. In fact, the minister was out of breath, nearly blind, and definitely without his hat. Alfred, being used to fast speeds and wind, said he understood Nels’s dislike for riding a speeding cannonball. The unflappable Link took off his cap and goggles and, checking his watch, made his usual apologetic report to Madeline, lamenting that a teamster and a few stray cattle on the road had slowed him down to a leisurely pace of just a mile a minute.
Arrangements for the wedding brought Alfred’s delighted approval. When he had learned all Florence and Madeline would tell him he expressed a desire to have the cowboys attend; and then he went on to talk about California, where he was going take Florence on a short trip. He was curiously interested to find out all about Madeline’s guests and what had happened to them. His keen glance at Madeline grew softer as she talked.
Arrangements for the wedding brought Alfred’s happy approval. After hearing everything Florence and Madeline had to share, he expressed a wish to have the cowboys come; then he started discussing California, where he planned to take Florence on a short trip. He was oddly interested in finding out all about Madeline’s guests and what had happened to them. His sharp gaze at Madeline softened as she spoke.
“I breathe again,” he said, and laughed. “I was afraid. Well, I must have missed some sport. I can just fancy what Monty and Nels did to that Englishman. So you went up to the crags. That’s a wild place. I’m not surprised at guerrillas falling in with you up there. The crags were a famous rendezvous for Apaches—it’s near the border—almost inaccessible—good water and grass. I wonder what the U. S. cavalry would think if they knew these guerrillas crossed the border right under their noses. Well, it’s practically impossible to patrol some of that border-line. It’s desert, mountain, and canyon, exceedingly wild and broken. I’m sorry to say that there seems to be more trouble in sight with these guerrillas than at any time heretofore. Orozco, the rebel leader, has failed to withstand Madero’s army. The Federals are occupying Chihuahua now, and are driving the rebels north. Orozco has broken up his army into guerrilla bands. They are moving north and west, intending to carry on guerrilla warfare in Sonora. I can’t say just how this will affect us here. But we’re too close to the border for comfort. These guerrillas are night-riding hawks; they can cross the border, raid us here, and get back the same night. Fighting, I imagine, will not be restricted to northern Mexico. With the revolution a failure the guerrillas will be more numerous, bolder, and hungrier. Unfortunately, we happen to be favorably situated for them down here in this wilderness corner of the state.”
“I can breathe again,” he said, laughing. “I was worried. Well, I must have missed some action. I can just imagine what Monty and Nels did to that Englishman. So you went up to the cliffs. That's a rough place. I’m not surprised guerrillas showed up there with you. The cliffs were a famous meeting spot for Apaches—it’s near the border—almost impossible to access—good water and grass. I wonder what the U.S. cavalry would think if they knew these guerrillas crossed the border right under their noses. Well, it’s nearly impossible to patrol parts of that border. It’s desert, mountains, and canyons, really wild and rugged. I’m sorry to say that it looks like there’s more trouble ahead with these guerrillas than ever before. Orozco, the rebel leader, couldn’t withstand Madero’s army. The Federals are now occupying Chihuahua and pushing the rebels north. Orozco has broken his army into guerrilla groups. They are moving north and west, planning to continue guerrilla warfare in Sonora. I can’t say exactly how this will affect us here. But we’re way too close to the border for comfort. These guerrillas are like night-riding hawks; they can cross the border, raid us here, and be back the same night. I imagine fighting won’t just be limited to northern Mexico. With the revolution failing, the guerrillas will be more numerous, bolder, and hungrier. Unfortunately, we’re in a prime spot for them down here in this remote corner of the state.”
On the following day Alfred and Florence were married. Florence’s sister and several friends from El Cajon were present, besides Madeline, Stillwell, and his men. It was Alfred’s express wish that Stewart attend the ceremony. Madeline was amused when she noticed the painfully suppressed excitement of the cowboys. For them a wedding must have been an unusual and impressive event. She began to have a better understanding of the nature of it when they cast off restraint and pressed forward to kiss the bride. In all her life Madeline had never seen a bride kissed so much and so heartily, nor one so flushed and disheveled and happy. This indeed was a joyful occasion. There was nothing of the “effete East” about Alfred Hammond; he might have been a Westerner all his days. When Madeline managed to get through the press of cowboys to offer her congratulations Alfred gave her a bear hug and a kiss. This appeared to fascinate the cowboys. With shining eyes and faces aglow, with smiling, boyish boldness, they made a rush at Madeline. For one instant her heart leaped to her throat. They looked as if they could most shamelessly kiss and maul her. That little, ugly-faced, soft-eyed, rude, tender-hearted ruffian, Monty Price, was in the lead. He resembled a dragon actuated by sentiment. All at once Madeline’s instinctive antagonism to being touched by strange hands or lips battled with a real, warm, and fun-loving desire to let the cowboys work their will with her. But she saw Stewart hanging at the back of the crowd, and something—some fierce, dark expression of pain—amazed her, while it froze her desire to be kind. Then she did not know what change must have come to her face and bearing; but she saw Monty fall back sheepishly and the other cowboys draw aside to let her lead the way into the patio.
The next day, Alfred and Florence got married. Florence’s sister and a few friends from El Cajon were there, along with Madeline, Stillwell, and his crew. Alfred specifically wanted Stewart to be at the ceremony. Madeline found it amusing to see the cowboys trying hard to hold back their excitement. For them, a wedding must have been a pretty unusual and impressive event. She started to understand it better when they let loose and rushed to kiss the bride. In her life, Madeline had never seen a bride get kissed so much and with such enthusiasm, nor one so flushed, messy, and happy. This was truly a joyful occasion. There was nothing “effete East” about Alfred Hammond; he could have easily been a Westerner all his life. When Madeline finally pushed her way through the crowd of cowboys to congratulate him, Alfred gave her a bear hug and a kiss. This seemed to intrigue the cowboys. With bright eyes and glowing faces, filled with boyish bravado, they surged toward Madeline. For a moment, her heart raced. They looked like they could shamelessly kiss and grab her. The little, rough-looking, soft-eyed, tender-hearted troublemaker, Monty Price, was at the front. He looked like a dragon that had a sentimental side. Suddenly, Madeline felt a clash between her instinctive dislike for being touched by unfamiliar hands or lips and a genuine, playful desire to let the cowboys have their fun with her. But then she noticed Stewart lingering at the back of the group, and something—some intense, dark look of pain—shocked her, causing her to pull back from wanting to be kind. She wasn’t sure how her expression and demeanor might have changed, but she saw Monty step back shyly and the other cowboys move aside to let her lead the way into the patio.
The dinner began quietly enough with the cowboys divided between embarrassment and voracious appetites that they evidently feared to indulge. Wine, however, loosened their tongues, and when Stillwell got up to make the speech everybody seemed to expect of him they greeted him with a roar.
The dinner started off quietly, with the cowboys feeling a mix of embarrassment and hungry but clearly hesitating to dig in. However, the wine helped them relax, and when Stillwell stood up to give the speech everyone was anticipating, they welcomed him with a loud cheer.
Stillwell was now one huge, mountainous smile. He was so happy that he appeared on the verge of tears. He rambled on ecstatically till he came to raise his glass.
Stillwell was now one big, joyful smile. He was so happy that he looked like he was about to cry. He babbled on excitedly until he lifted his glass.
“An’ now, girls an’ boys, let’s all drink to the bride an’ groom; to their sincere an’ lastin’ love; to their happiness an’ prosperity; to their good health an’ long life. Let’s drink to the unitin’ of the East with the West. No man full of red blood an’ the real breath of life could resist a Western girl an’ a good hoss an’ God’s free hand—that open country out there. So we claim Al Hammond, an’ may we be true to him. An’, friends, I think it fittin’ that we drink to his sister an’ to our hopes. Heah’s to the lady we hope to make our Majesty! Heah’s to the man who’ll come ridin’ out of the West, a fine, big-hearted man with a fast hoss an’ a strong rope, an’ may he win an’ hold her! Come, friends, drink.”
“Now, everyone, let’s raise a glass to the bride and groom; to their genuine and lasting love; to their happiness and prosperity; to their good health and long life. Let’s toast to the union of the East and the West. No man full of life and spirit could resist a Western girl, a good horse, and the open freedom of that land out there. So we celebrate Al Hammond, and may we stay true to him. And, friends, I think it’s fitting that we also toast to his sister and our hopes. Here’s to the lady we hope to make our queen! Here’s to the man who’ll ride in from the West, a wonderful, big-hearted guy with a fast horse and a strong rope, and may he win and keep her! Come on, friends, let’s drink.”
A heavy pound of horses’ hoofs and a yell outside arrested Stillwell’s voice and halted his hand in midair.
A loud pound of horses' hooves and a shout outside interrupted Stillwell's voice and stopped his hand in midair.
The patio became as silent as an unoccupied room.
The patio was as quiet as an empty room.
Through the open doors and windows of Madeline’s chamber burst the sounds of horses stamping to a halt, then harsh speech of men, and a low cry of a woman in pain.
Through the open doors and windows of Madeline’s room came the sounds of horses coming to a stop, followed by the rough voices of men, and a soft cry of a woman in distress.
Rapid steps crossed the porch, entered Madeline’s room. Nels appeared in the doorway. Madeline was surprised to see that he had not been at the dinner-table. She was disturbed at sight of his face.
Rapid footsteps crossed the porch and entered Madeline's room. Nels appeared in the doorway. Madeline was surprised to see that he hadn't been at the dinner table. She felt uneasy at the sight of his face.
“Stewart, you’re wanted outdoors,” called Nels, bluntly. “Monty, you slope out here with me. You, Nick, an’ Stillwell—I reckon the rest of you hed better shut the doors an’ stay inside.”
“Stewart, you need to come outside,” called Nels, straightforwardly. “Monty, you come out here with me. You, Nick, and Stillwell—I think the rest of you should close the doors and stay inside.”
Nels disappeared. Quick as a cat Monty glided out. Madeline heard his soft, swift steps pass from her room into her office. He had left his guns there. Madeline trembled. She saw Stewart get up quietly and without any change of expression on his dark, sad face leave the patio. Nick Steele followed him. Stillwell dropped his wine-glass. As it broke, shivering the silence, his huge smile vanished. His face set into the old cragginess and the red slowly thickened into black. Stillwell went out and closed the door behind him.
Nels vanished. Quick as a cat, Monty slipped out. Madeline heard his soft, quick footsteps move from her room into her office. He had left his guns there. Madeline felt a tremor. She watched Stewart get up quietly, his dark, sorrowful face remaining expressionless as he left the patio. Nick Steele followed him. Stillwell dropped his wine glass. As it shattered, breaking the silence, his big smile disappeared. His face hardened into its familiar ruggedness, and the red liquid slowly turned to black. Stillwell left and closed the door behind him.
Then there was a blank silence. The enjoyment of the moment had been rudely disrupted. Madeline glanced down the lines of brown faces to see the pleasure fade into the old familiar hardness.
Then there was a complete silence. The enjoyment of the moment had been abruptly interrupted. Madeline looked along the row of brown faces to see the pleasure vanish into the old familiar hardness.
“What’s wrong?” asked Alfred, rather stupidly. The change of mood had been too rapid for him. Suddenly he awakened, thoroughly aroused at the interruption. “I’m going to see who’s butted in here to spoil our dinner,” he said, and strode out.
“What’s going on?” Alfred asked, sounding a bit clueless. The shift in mood had caught him off guard. Suddenly, he snapped to attention, fully alert at the interruption. “I’m going to find out who interrupted us and messed up our dinner,” he said, and walked out confidently.
He returned before any one at the table had spoken or moved, and now the dull red of anger mottled his forehead.
He came back before anyone at the table had said anything or moved, and now the dull red of anger colored his forehead.
“It’s the sheriff of El Cajon!” he exclaimed, contemptuously. “Pat Hawe with some of his tough deputies come to arrest Gene Stewart. They’ve got that poor little Mexican girl out there tied on a horse. Confound that sheriff!”
“It’s the sheriff of El Cajon!” he shouted, filled with disdain. “Pat Hawe and some of his rough deputies are here to arrest Gene Stewart. They have that poor little Mexican girl out there tied to a horse. Damn that sheriff!”
Madeline calmly rose from the table, eluding Florence’s entreating hand, and started for the door. The cowboys jumped up. Alfred barred her progress.
Madeline quietly got up from the table, avoiding Florence's pleading hand, and headed for the door. The cowboys stood up. Alfred blocked her way.
“Alfred, I am going out,” she said.
“Alfred, I’m heading out,” she said.
“No, I guess not,” he replied. “That’s no place for you.”
“No, I don’t think so,” he said. “That’s not a place for you.”
“I am going.” She looked straight at him.
“I’m going.” She looked directly at him.
“Madeline! Why, what is it? You look—Dear, there’s pretty sure to be trouble outside. Maybe there’ll be a fight. You can do nothing. You must not go.”
“Madeline! What’s going on? You look—Honey, there’s definitely going to be trouble outside. Maybe there’s going to be a fight. You can’t do anything. You must not go.”
“Perhaps I can prevent trouble,” she replied.
“Maybe I can avoid any issues,” she replied.
As she left the patio she was aware that Alfred, with Florence at his side and the cowboys behind, were starting to follow her. When she got out of her room upon the porch she heard several men in loud, angry discussion. Then, at sight of Bonita helplessly and cruelly bound upon a horse, pale and disheveled and suffering, Madeline experienced the thrill that sight or mention of this girl always gave her. It yielded to a hot pang in her breast—that live pain which so shamed her. But almost instantly, as a second glance showed an agony in Bonita’s face, her bruised arms where the rope bit deep into the flesh, her little brown hands stained with blood, Madeline was overcome by pity for the unfortunate girl and a woman’s righteous passion at such barbarous treatment of one of her own sex.
As she left the patio, she noticed that Alfred, with Florence next to him and the cowboys trailing behind, were starting to follow her. When she stepped out of her room onto the porch, she overheard several men in a heated, angry discussion. Then, when she saw Bonita helplessly and cruelly tied to a horse, pale and disheveled and in pain, Madeline felt the familiar thrill that the sight or mention of this girl always gave her. It quickly shifted to a sharp, painful embarrassment in her chest—an intense pain that made her feel ashamed. But almost immediately, as she took a second look and saw the agony on Bonita’s face, her bruised arms where the rope cut deep into her flesh, and her small brown hands stained with blood, Madeline was overwhelmed by pity for the unfortunate girl and a woman’s righteous anger at such brutal treatment of one of her own.
The man holding the bridle of the horse on which Bonita had been bound was at once recognized by Madeline as the big-bodied, bullet-headed guerrilla who had found the basket of wine in the spring at camp. Redder of face, blacker of beard, coarser of aspect, evidently under the influence of liquor, he was as fierce-looking as a gorilla and as repulsive. Besides him there were three other men present, all mounted on weary horses. The one in the foreground, gaunt, sharp-featured, red-eyed, with a pointed beard, she recognized as the sheriff of El Cajon.
The man holding the bridle of the horse that Bonita was tied to was immediately recognized by Madeline as the big, stocky guerrilla who had discovered the basket of wine at the spring in camp. With a redder face, darker beard, and rougher appearance, clearly under the influence of alcohol, he looked as fierce and repulsive as a gorilla. Alongside him were three other men, all riding tired horses. The one in the front, thin, with sharp features and red eyes, and a pointed beard, she recognized as the sheriff of El Cajon.
Madeline hesitated, then stopped in the middle of the porch. Alfred, Florence, and several others followed her out; the rest of the cowboys and guests crowded the windows and doors. Stillwell saw Madeline, and, throwing up his hands, roared to be heard. This quieted the gesticulating, quarreling men.
Madeline paused, then stood in the center of the porch. Alfred, Florence, and a few others joined her outside; the remaining cowboys and guests packed the windows and doors. Stillwell caught sight of Madeline and, raising his hands, shouted to get everyone's attention. This silenced the gesturing, arguing men.
“Wal now, Pat Hawe, what’s drivin’ you like a locoed steer on the rampage?” demanded Stillwell.
“Now, Pat Hawe, what’s got you acting like a crazy bull on a rampage?” demanded Stillwell.
“Keep in the traces, Bill,” replied Hawe. “You savvy what I come fer. I’ve been bidin’ my time. But I’m ready now. I’m hyar to arrest a criminal.”
“Stay in line, Bill,” Hawe replied. “You know why I’m here. I’ve been waiting for the right moment. But I’m ready now. I’m here to arrest a criminal.”
The huge frame of the old cattleman jerked as if he had been stabbed. His face turned purple.
The large frame of the old cattleman jolted as if he had been stabbed. His face turned purple.
“What criminal?” he shouted, hoarsely.
“What criminal?” he shouted hoarsely.
The sheriff flicked his quirt against his dirty boot, and he twisted his thin lips into a leer. The situation was agreeable to him.
The sheriff snapped his whip against his dirty boot and curled his thin lips into a smirk. He found the situation pleasing.
“Why, Bill, I knowed you hed a no-good outfit ridin’ this range; but I wasn’t wise thet you hed more ’n one criminal.”
“Why, Bill, I knew you had a bad crew roaming this range; but I wasn’t aware that you had more than one criminal.”
“Cut that talk! Which cowboy are you wantin’ to arrest?”
“Stop that talk! Which cowboy do you want to arrest?”
Hawe’s manner altered.
Hawe's behavior changed.
“Gene Stewart,” he replied, curtly.
"Gene Stewart," he replied, shortly.
“On what charge?”
"What's the charge?"
“Fer killin’ a Greaser one night last fall.”
“Because I killed a Greaser one night last fall.”
“So you’re still harpin’ on that? Pat, you’re on the wrong trail. You can’t lay that killin’ onto Stewart. The thing’s ancient by now. But if you insist on bringin’ him to court, let the arrest go to-day—we’re hevin’ some fiesta hyar—an’ I’ll fetch Gene in to El Cajon.”
“So you’re still stuck on that? Pat, you’re headed down the wrong path. You can’t blame Stewart for that death. It's a thing of the past now. But if you’re determined to take him to court, let the arrest happen today—we’re having a fiesta here—and I’ll bring Gene into El Cajon.”
“Nope. I reckon I’ll take him when I got the chance, before he slopes.”
“Nope. I think I’ll grab him when I get the chance, before he slips away.”
“I’m givin’ you my word,” thundered Stillwell.
“I’m giving you my word,” thundered Stillwell.
“I reckon I don’t hev to take your word, Bill, or anybody else’s.”
“I don’t think I have to take your word, Bill, or anyone else’s.”
Stillwell’s great bulk quivered with his rage, yet he made a successful effort to control it.
Stillwell’s massive form shook with anger, but he managed to keep it under control.
“See hyar, Pat Hawe, I know what’s reasonable. Law is law. But in this country there always has been an’ is now a safe an’ sane way to proceed with the law. Mebbe you’ve forgot that. The law as invested in one man in a wild country is liable, owin’ to that man’s weaknesses an’ onlimited authority, to be disputed even by a decent ole cattleman like myself. I’m a-goin’ to give you a hunch. Pat, you’re not overliked in these parts. You’ve rid too much with a high hand. Some of your deals hev been shady, an’ don’t you overlook what I’m sayin’. But you’re the sheriff, an’ I’m respectin’ your office. I’m respectin’ it this much. If the milk of human decency is so soured in your breast that you can’t hev a kind feelin’, then try to avoid the onpleasantness that’ll result from any contrary move on your part to-day. Do you get that hunch?”
“Listen here, Pat Hawe, I know what’s fair. Law is law. But in this country, there’s always been—and still is—a logical and sensible way to handle the law. Maybe you’ve forgotten that. When the law is in the hands of one person in a chaotic place, it’s vulnerable to that person’s flaws and unchecked power, even from a decent old cattleman like me. I’m going to give you some advice. Pat, you’re not very popular around here. You’ve acted too arrogantly. Some of your deals have been questionable, and don’t forget what I’m telling you. But you’re the sheriff, and I respect your position. I respect it this much. If your sense of decency is so corrupted that you can't feel compassion, then try to steer clear of the trouble that will come from any negative action on your part today. Do you understand that message?”
“Stillwell, you’re threatenin’ an officer,” replied Hawe, angrily.
“Stillwell, you’re threatening an officer,” Hawe replied angrily.
“Will you hit the trail quick out of hyar?” queried Stillwell, in strained voice. “I guarantee Stewart’s appearance in El Cajon any day you say.”
“Will you head out quickly from here?” Stillwell asked, his voice tense. “I promise Stewart will show up in El Cajon any day you choose.”
“No. I come to arrest him, an’ I’m goin’ to.”
“No. I’m here to arrest him, and I’m going to.”
“So that’s your game!” shouted Stillwell. “We-all are glad to get you straight, Pat. Now listen, you cheap, red-eyed coyote of a sheriff! You don’t care how many enemies you make. You know you’ll never get office again in this county. What do you care now? It’s amazin’ strange how earnest you are to hunt down the man who killed that particular Greaser. I reckon there’s been some dozen or more killin’s of Greasers in the last year. Why don’t you take to trailin’ some of them killin’s? I’ll tell you why. You’re afraid to go near the border. An’ your hate of Gene Stewart makes you want to hound him an’ put him where he’s never been yet—in jail. You want to spite his friends. Wal, listen, you lean-jawed, skunk-bitten coyote! Go ahead an’ try to arrest him!”
“So that’s your game!” shouted Stillwell. “We’re all glad to set you straight, Pat. Now listen, you cheap, red-eyed animal of a sheriff! You don't care how many enemies you make. You know you'll never get elected again in this county. What do you care now? It’s really strange how determined you are to hunt down the guy who killed that particular Greaser. I bet there have been at least a dozen or more Greasers killed in the last year. Why don’t you start looking into some of those murders? I’ll tell you why. You’re scared to go near the border. And your hatred for Gene Stewart makes you want to hound him and put him where he’s never been before—in jail. You want to get back at his friends. Well, listen, you lean-jawed, skunk-bitten creature! Go ahead and try to arrest him!”
Stillwell took one mighty stride off the porch. His last words had been cold. His rage appeared to have been transferred to Hawe. The sheriff had begun to stutter and shake a lanky red hand at the cattleman when Stewart stepped out.
Stillwell took a powerful step off the porch. His last words had been icy. His anger seemed to have passed on to Hawe. The sheriff started to stutter and wave a thin red hand at the rancher when Stewart stepped outside.
“Here, you fellows, give me a chance to say a word.”
“Hey, everyone, let me have a moment to speak.”
As Stewart appeared the Mexican girl suddenly seemed vitalized out of her stupor. She strained at her bonds, as if to lift her hands beseechingly. A flush animated her haggard face, and her big dark eyes lighted.
As Stewart showed up, the Mexican girl suddenly looked like she was coming to life from her stupor. She strained against her restraints, as if trying to raise her hands in a pleading manner. A flush brought color to her worn face, and her large dark eyes sparkled.
“Senor Gene!” she moaned. “Help me! I so seek. They beat me, rope me, ‘mos’ keel me. Oh, help me, Senor Gene!”
“Senor Gene!” she cried. “Please help me! I’m in so much trouble. They beat me, tied me up, almost killed me. Oh, please help me, Senor Gene!”
“Shut up, er I’ll gag you,” said the man who held Bonita’s horse.
“Shut up, or I’ll gag you,” said the man holding Bonita’s horse.
“Muzzle her, Sneed, if she blabs again,” called Hawe. Madeline felt something tense and strained working in the short silence. Was it only a phase of her thrilling excitement? Her swift glance showed the faces of Nels and Monty and Nick to be brooding, cold, watchful. She wondered why Stewart did not look toward Bonita. He, too, was now dark-faced, cool, quiet, with something ominous about him.
“Muzzle her, Sneed, if she talks again,” called Hawe. Madeline felt something tense and strained in the brief silence. Was it just a part of her thrilling excitement? A quick glance revealed the faces of Nels, Monty, and Nick to be brooding, cold, and watchful. She wondered why Stewart wasn’t looking at Bonita. He, too, now had a dark expression, cool, quiet, with something ominous about him.
“Hawe, I’ll submit to arrest without any fuss,” he said, slowly, “if you’ll take the ropes off that girl.”
“Hawe, I’ll willingly get arrested without making a scene,” he said slowly, “if you’ll untie that girl.”
“Nope,” replied the sheriff. “She got away from me onct. She’s hawg-tied now, an’ she’ll stay hawg-tied.”
“Nope,” the sheriff responded. “She got away from me once. She's tied up now, and she’ll stay tied up.”
Madeline thought she saw Stewart give a slight start. But an unaccountable dimness came over her eyes, at brief intervals obscuring her keen sight. Vaguely she was conscious of a clogged and beating tumult in her breast.
Madeline thought she saw Stewart flinch slightly. But an inexplicable fog seemed to cover her eyes, briefly blurring her sharp vision. She was vaguely aware of a heavy and pounding sensation in her chest.
“All right, let’s hurry out of here,” said Stewart. “You’ve made annoyance enough. Ride down to the corral with me. I’ll get my horse and go with you.”
“All right, let’s get out of here,” said Stewart. “You’ve caused enough trouble. Ride down to the corral with me. I’ll grab my horse and go with you.”
“Hold on!” yelled Hawe, as Stewart turned away. “Not so fast. Who’s doin’ this? You don’t come no El Capitan stunts on me. You’ll ride one of my pack-horses, an’ you’ll go in irons.”
“Hold on!” yelled Hawe, as Stewart turned away. “Not so fast. Who’s doing this? You won’t pull any El Capitan tricks on me. You’ll ride one of my pack horses, and you’ll be in handcuffs.”
“You want to handcuff me?” queried Stewart, with sudden swift start of passion.
"You want to handcuff me?" Stewart asked, suddenly filled with passion.
“Want to? Haw, haw! Nope, Stewart, thet’s jest my way with hoss-thieves, raiders, Greasers, murderers, an’ sich. See hyar, you Sneed, git off an’ put the irons on this man.”
“Want to? Ha, ha! Nope, Stewart, that’s just my way with horse thieves, raiders, troublemakers, murderers, and such. Listen here, you Sneed, get off and put the handcuffs on this guy.”
The guerrilla called Sneed slid off his horse and began to fumble in his saddle-bags.
The guerrilla named Sneed got off his horse and started searching through his saddle bags.
“You see, Bill,” went on Hawe, “I swore in a new depooty fer this particular job. Sneed is some handy. He rounded up thet little Mexican cat fer me.”
“You see, Bill,” Hawe continued, “I brought in a new deputy for this specific job. Sneed is pretty resourceful. He rounded up that little Mexican guy for me.”
Stillwell did not hear the sheriff; he was gazing at Stewart in a kind of imploring amaze.
Stillwell didn't hear the sheriff; he was staring at Stewart in a sort of pleading disbelief.
“Gene, you ain’t goin’ to stand fer them handcuffs?” he pleaded.
“Gene, aren’t you going to put up with those handcuffs?” he pleaded.
“Yes,” replied the cowboy. “Bill, old friend, I’m an outsider here. There’s no call for Miss Hammond and—and her brother and Florence to be worried further about me. Their happy day has already been spoiled on my account. I want to get out quick.”
“Yeah,” the cowboy replied. “Bill, my old friend, I don’t belong here. There’s no reason for Miss Hammond, her brother, and Florence to be concerned about me anymore. Their special day has already been ruined because of me. I want to leave quickly.”
“Wal, you might be too damn considerate of Miss Hammond’s sensitive feelin’s.” There was now no trace of the courteous, kindly old rancher. He looked harder than stone. “How about my feelin’s? I want to know if you’re goin’ to let this sneakin’ coyote, this last gasp of the old rum-guzzlin’ frontier sheriffs, put you in irons an’ hawg-tie you an’ drive you off to jail?”
“Well, you might be too damn concerned about Miss Hammond’s sensitive feelings.” There was no sign of the polite, kind old rancher anymore. He looked as tough as stone. “What about my feelings? I want to know if you’re really going to let this sneaky coyote, this last gasp of the old liquor-drinking frontier sheriffs, put you in handcuffs and tie you up and haul you off to jail?”
“Yes,” replied Stewart, steadily.
“Yes,” Stewart replied steadily.
“Wal, by Gawd! You, Gene Stewart! What’s come over you? Why, man, go in the house, an’ I’ll ’tend to this feller. Then to-morrow you can ride in an’ give yourself up like a gentleman.”
“Wow, by God! You, Gene Stewart! What’s gotten into you? Come on, man, go inside, and I’ll handle this guy. Then tomorrow, you can ride in and turn yourself in like a gentleman.”
“No. I’ll go. Thanks, Bill, for the way you and the boys would stick to me. Hurry, Hawe, before my mind changes.”
“No. I’ll go. Thanks, Bill, for how you and the guys always had my back. Hurry up, Hawe, before I change my mind.”
His voice broke at the last, betraying the wonderful control he had kept over his passions. As he ceased speaking he seemed suddenly to become spiritless. He dropped his head.
His voice cracked at the end, revealing the incredible control he had maintained over his emotions. When he stopped talking, he seemed to lose all his energy. He lowered his head.
Madeline saw in him then a semblance to the hopeless, shamed Stewart of earlier days. The vague riot in her breast leaped into conscious fury—a woman’s passionate repudiation of Stewart’s broken spirit. It was not that she would have him be a lawbreaker; it was that she could not bear to see him deny his manhood. Once she had entreated him to become her kind of a cowboy—a man in whom reason tempered passion. She had let him see how painful and shocking any violence was to her. And the idea had obsessed him, softened him, had grown like a stultifying lichen upon his will, had shorn him of a wild, bold spirit she now strangely longed to see him feel. When the man Sneed came forward, jingling the iron fetters, Madeline’s blood turned to fire. She would have forgiven Stewart then for lapsing into the kind of cowboy it had been her blind and sickly sentiment to abhor. This was a man’s West—a man’s game. What right had a woman reared in a softer mold to use her beauty and her influence to change a man who was bold and free and strong? At that moment, with her blood hot and racing, she would have gloried in the violence which she had so deplored: she would have welcomed the action that had characterized Stewart’s treatment of Don Carlos; she had in her the sudden dawning temper of a woman who had been assimilating the life and nature around her and who would not have turned her eyes away from a harsh and bloody deed.
Madeline saw in him then a resemblance to the hopeless, ashamed Stewart of earlier days. The vague turmoil in her chest ignited into conscious anger—a woman’s passionate rejection of Stewart’s broken spirit. It wasn’t that she wanted him to be a criminal; it was that she couldn’t stand to see him deny his manhood. Once she had begged him to become her idea of a cowboy—a man who balanced reason with passion. She had shown him how painful and shocking any violence was to her. This idea had consumed him, softened him, and festered like a stifling lichen on his will, robbing him of a wild, bold spirit that she now oddly longed to see him regain. When Sneed stepped forward, rattling the iron shackles, Madeline’s blood turned to fire. She would have forgiven Stewart for succumbing to the kind of cowboy she had foolishly and sickly looked down upon. This was a man’s West—a man’s game. What right did a woman raised in gentler surroundings have to use her beauty and influence to change a man who was bold, free, and strong? In that moment, with her blood racing, she would have reveled in the violence she had previously condemned: she would have welcomed the action that had defined Stewart’s treatment of Don Carlos; she felt in herself the sudden fierce spirit of a woman who had been absorbing the life and nature around her and who wouldn’t have turned her eyes away from a harsh and bloody deed.
But Stewart held forth his hands to be manacled. Then Madeline heard her own voice burst out in a ringing, imperious “Wait!”
But Stewart stretched out his hands to be handcuffed. Then Madeline heard her own voice suddenly rise in a powerful, commanding “Wait!”
In the time it took her to make the few steps to the edge of the porch, facing the men, she not only felt her anger and justice and pride summoning forces to her command, but there was something else calling—a deep, passionate, mysterious thing not born of the moment.
In the time it took her to take a few steps to the edge of the porch, facing the men, she not only felt her anger, sense of justice, and pride gathering strength but also something else calling to her—a deep, passionate, mysterious feeling that wasn't just from the moment.
Sneed dropped the manacles. Stewart’s face took on a chalky whiteness. Hawe, in a slow, stupid embarrassment beyond his control, removed his sombrero in a respect that seemed wrenched from him.
Sneed dropped the handcuffs. Stewart’s face turned pale. Hawe, feeling a slow and awkward embarrassment he couldn’t help, took off his sombrero in a gesture of respect that seemed forced.
“Mr. Hawe, I can prove to you that Stewart was not concerned in any way whatever with the crime for which you want to arrest him.”
“Mr. Hawe, I can show you that Stewart had no involvement whatsoever in the crime you want to arrest him for.”
The sheriff’s stare underwent a blinking change. He coughed, stammered, and tried to speak. Manifestly, he had been thrown completely off his balance. Astonishment slowly merged into discomfiture.
The sheriff's gaze changed as he blinked. He coughed, hesitated, and attempted to talk. Clearly, he had lost his composure completely. Shock gradually turned into embarrassment.
“It was absolutely impossible for Stewart to have been connected with that assault,” went on Madeline, swiftly, “for he was with me in the waiting-room of the station at the moment the assault was made outside. I assure you I have a distinct and vivid recollection. The door was open. I heard the voices of quarreling men. They grew louder. The language was Spanish. Evidently these men had left the dance-hall opposite and were approaching the station. I heard a woman’s voice mingling with the others. It, too, was Spanish, and I could not understand. But the tone was beseeching. Then I heard footsteps on the gravel. I knew Stewart heard them. I could see from his face that something dreadful was about to happen. Just outside the door then there were hoarse, furious voices, a scuffle, a muffled shot, a woman’s cry, the thud of a falling body, and rapid footsteps of a man running away. Next, the girl Bonita staggered into the door. She was white, trembling, terror-stricken. She recognized Stewart, appealed to him. Stewart supported her and endeavored to calm her. He was excited. He asked her if Danny Mains had been shot, or if he had done the shooting. The girl said no. She told Stewart that she had danced a little, flirted a little with vaqueros, and they had quarreled over her. Then Stewart took her outside and put her upon his horse. I saw the girl ride that horse down the street to disappear in the darkness.”
“It was absolutely impossible for Stewart to have been involved in that assault,” Madeline said quickly. “He was with me in the station waiting room when it happened outside. I promise you, I have a clear and vivid memory of it. The door was open. I heard the voices of men arguing. They got louder. The language was Spanish. Clearly, these men had left the dance hall across the street and were coming toward the station. I heard a woman’s voice along with theirs. It was also in Spanish, and I couldn’t understand it. But the tone was pleading. Then I heard footsteps on the gravel. I could tell Stewart heard them too; his expression showed that something terrible was about to happen. Just outside the door, there were hoarse, angry voices, a struggle, a muffled gunshot, a woman’s scream, the sound of a body hitting the ground, and then the hurried footsteps of a man running away. Then, the girl Bonita stumbled through the door. She was pale, shaking, and filled with terror. She recognized Stewart and reached out to him. Stewart supported her and tried to reassure her. He was frantic. He asked her if Danny Mains had been shot, or if he did the shooting. The girl said no. She told Stewart that she had danced a bit, flirted a little with some cowboys, and they had argued over her. Then Stewart took her outside and helped her onto his horse. I saw her ride that horse down the street until she disappeared into the darkness.”
While Madeline spoke another change appeared to be working in the man Hawe. He was not long disconcerted, but his discomfiture wore to a sullen fury, and his sharp features fixed in an expression of craft.
While Madeline spoke, another transformation seemed to take place in the man Hawe. He was only briefly unsettled, but his unease quickly turned into a brooding anger, and his sharp features settled into a look of cunning.
“Thet’s mighty interestin’, Miss Hammond, ‘most as interestin’ as a story-book,” he said. “Now, since you’re so obligin’ a witness, I’d sure like to put a question or two. What time did you arrive at El Cajon thet night?”
“That's really interesting, Miss Hammond, almost as interesting as a storybook,” he said. “Now, since you're such a helpful witness, I’d really like to ask you a question or two. What time did you get to El Cajon that night?”
“It was after eleven o’clock,” replied Madeline.
“It was after eleven o’clock,” Madeline replied.
“Nobody there to meet you?”
"Is there no one there to meet you?"
“No.”
“Nope.”
“The station agent an’ operator both gone?”
“The station agent and operator are both gone?”
“Yes.”
"Yep."
“Wal, how soon did this feller Stewart show up?” Hawe continued, with a wry smile.
“Well, how soon did this guy Stewart show up?” Hawe continued, with a wry smile.
“Very soon after my arrival. I think—perhaps fifteen minutes, possibly a little more.”
“Not long after I got there, I think—maybe fifteen minutes, possibly a bit longer.”
“Some dark an’ lonesome around thet station, wasn’t it?”
“Some dark and lonely around that station, wasn’t it?”
“Indeed yes.”
“Absolutely.”
“An’ what time was the Greaser shot?” queried Hawe, with his little eyes gleaming like coals.
“Hey, what time was the Greaser shot?” Hawe asked, his small eyes shining like embers.
“Probably close to half past one. It was two o’clock when I looked at my watch at Florence Kingsley’s house. Directly after Stewart sent Bonita away he took me to Miss Kingsley’s. So, allowing for the walk and a few minutes’ conversation with her, I can pretty definitely say the shooting took place at about half past one.”
“Probably around 1:30. It was 2:00 when I checked my watch at Florence Kingsley’s house. Right after Stewart sent Bonita away, he took me to Miss Kingsley’s. So, taking into account the walk and a few minutes of conversation with her, I can say pretty confidently that the shooting happened around 1:30.”
Stillwell heaved his big frame a step closer to the sheriff. “What ‘re you drivin’ at?” he roared, his face black again.
Stillwell moved his large frame a step closer to the sheriff. “What are you getting at?” he shouted, his face darkening again.
“Evidence,” snapped Hawe.
“Proof,” snapped Hawe.
Madeline marveled at this interruption; and as Stewart irresistibly drew her glance she saw him gray-faced as ashes, shaking, utterly unnerved.
Madeline was amazed by this interruption; and as Stewart uncontrollably caught her eye, she saw him pale as ash, trembling, completely shaken.
“I thank you, Miss Hammond,” he said, huskily. “But you needn’t answer any more of Hawe’s questions. He’s—he’s—It’s not necessary. I’ll go with him now, under arrest. Bonita will corroborate your testimony in court, and that will save me from this—this man’s spite.”
“I appreciate it, Miss Hammond,” he said, his voice rough. “But you don’t have to answer any more of Hawe’s questions. He’s—he’s—It’s not needed. I’ll go with him now, under arrest. Bonita will back up your statement in court, and that will protect me from this—this man’s grudge.”
Madeline, looking at Stewart, seeing a humility she at first took for cowardice, suddenly divined that it was not fear for himself which made him dread further disclosures of that night, but fear for her—fear of shame she might suffer through him.
Madeline, looking at Stewart and seeing a humility she initially misinterpreted as cowardice, suddenly realized that it wasn't fear for himself that made him apprehensive about more revelations from that night, but rather fear for her—fear of the shame she might endure because of him.
Pat Hawe cocked his head to one side, like a vulture about to strike with his beak, and cunningly eyed Madeline.
Pat Hawe tilted his head to one side, like a vulture ready to swoop down with its beak, and watched Madeline with a sly look.
“Considered as testimony, what you’ve said is sure important an’ conclusive. But I’m calculatin’ thet the court will want to hev explained why you stayed from eleven-thirty till one-thirty in thet waitin’-room alone with Stewart.”
“Considered as testimony, what you’ve said is definitely important and conclusive. But I’m thinking that the court will want to know why you stayed in that waiting room alone with Stewart from eleven-thirty to one-thirty.”
His deliberate speech met with what Madeline imagined a remarkable reception from Stewart, who gave a tigerish start; from Stillwell, whose big hands tore at the neck of his shirt, as if he was choking; from Alfred, who now strode hotly forward, to be stopped by the cold and silent Nels; from Monty Price, who uttered a violent “Aw!” which was both a hiss and a roar.
His careful speech received what Madeline imagined was an impressive reaction from Stewart, who jumped like a tiger; from Stillwell, whose large hands tugged at his shirt collar as if he were choking; from Alfred, who angrily stepped forward, only to be halted by the cold, silent Nels; and from Monty Price, who let out a sharp “Aw!” that was both a hiss and a roar.
In the rush of her thought Madeline could not interpret the meaning of these things which seemed so strange at that moment. But they were portentous. Even as she was forming a reply to Hawe’s speech she felt a chill creep over her.
In the rush of her thoughts, Madeline couldn’t make sense of the things that felt so strange at that moment. But they were significant. Even as she was trying to respond to Hawe’s speech, she felt a chill run over her.
“Stewart detained me in the waiting-room,” she said, clear-voiced as a bell. “But we were not alone—all the time.”
“Stewart held me back in the waiting room,” she said, her voice ringing clear. “But we weren’t alone the entire time.”
For a moment the only sound following her words was a gasp from Stewart. Hawe’s face became transformed with a hideous amaze and joy.
For a moment, the only sound after her words was Stewart gasping. Hawe's face changed to one of ugly shock and delight.
“Detained?” he whispered, craning his lean and corded neck. “How’s thet?”
“Detained?” he whispered, stretching his lean and toned neck. “How’s that?”
“Stewart was drunk. He—”
“Stewart was wasted. He—”
With sudden passionate gesture of despair Stewart appealed to her:
With a sudden, passionate gesture of despair, Stewart reached out to her:
“Oh, Miss Hammond, don’t! don’t! DON’T!...”
“Oh, Miss Hammond, please! Don’t! DON’T!...”
Then he seemed to sink down, head lowered upon his breast, in utter shame. Stillwell’s great hand swept to the bowed shoulder, and he turned to Madeline.
Then he seemed to slump down, his head lowered to his chest, completely ashamed. Stillwell’s large hand reached out to the hunched shoulder, and he turned to Madeline.
“Miss Majesty, I reckon you’d be wise to tell all,” said the old cattleman, gravely. “There ain’t one of us who could misunderstand any motive or act of yours. Mebbe a stroke of lightnin’ might clear this murky air. Whatever Gene Stewart did that onlucky night—you tell it.”
“Miss Majesty, I think it would be smart for you to share everything,” said the old cattleman seriously. “None of us would get the wrong idea about any of your motives or actions. Maybe a flash of lightning could clear this foggy situation. Whatever Gene Stewart did that fateful night—you should say it.”
Madeline’s dignity and self-possession had been disturbed by Stewart’s importunity. She broke into swift, disconnected speech:
Madeline’s dignity and self-control had been upset by Stewart’s insistence. She burst into quick, fragmented speech:
“He came into the station—a few minutes after I got there. I asked-to be shown to a hotel. He said there wasn’t any that would accommodate married women. He grasped my hand—looked for a wedding-ring. Then I saw he was—he was intoxicated. He told me he would go for a hotel porter. But he came back with a padre—Padre Marcos. The poor priest was—terribly frightened. So was I. Stewart had turned into a devil. He fired his gun at the padre’s feet. He pushed me into a bench. Again he shot—right before my face. I—I nearly fainted. But I heard him cursing the padre—heard the padre praying or chanting—I didn’t know what. Stewart tried to make me say things in Spanish. All at once he asked my name. I told him. He jerked at my veil. I took it off. Then he threw his gun down—pushed the padre out of the door. That was just before the vaqueros approached with Bonita. Padre Marcos must have seen them—must have heard them. After that Stewart grew quickly sober. He was mortified—distressed—stricken with shame. He told me he had been drinking at a wedding—I remember, it was Ed Linton’s wedding. Then he explained—the boys were always gambling—he wagered he would marry the first girl who arrived at El Cajon. I happened to be the first one. He tried to force me to marry him. The rest—relating to the assault on the vaquero—I have already told you.”
“He walked into the station just a few minutes after I arrived. I asked to be directed to a hotel. He said there wasn’t any that would take in married women. He held my hand and checked for a wedding ring. That’s when I noticed he was intoxicated. He said he would get a hotel porter, but he returned with a priest—Padre Marcos. The poor priest looked terrified, and so was I. Stewart had turned into a monster. He fired his gun at the priest’s feet and shoved me onto a bench. He shot again, right in front of my face. I nearly fainted. But I could hear him cursing the priest and the priest praying or chanting—I wasn't sure. Stewart tried to make me speak in Spanish. Suddenly, he asked for my name. I told him, and he tugged at my veil. I took it off, and then he threw his gun down and pushed the priest out of the door. That was just before the cowboys arrived with Bonita. Padre Marcos must have seen them, must have heard them. After that, Stewart quickly sobered up. He was mortified, distressed, and filled with shame. He told me he had been drinking at a wedding—I remember it was Ed Linton’s wedding. Then he explained that the guys were always gambling, and he bet he would marry the first girl who showed up at El Cajon. I just happened to be the first one. He tried to force me to marry him. The rest, about the attack on the cowboy, I’ve already told you.”
Madeline ended, out of breath and panting, with her hands pressed upon her heaving bosom. Revelation of that secret liberated emotion; those hurried outspoken words had made her throb and tremble and burn. Strangely then she thought of Alfred and his wrath. But he stood motionless, as if dazed. Stillwell was trying to holster up the crushed Stewart.
Madeline finished, breathless and panting, with her hands on her heaving chest. The revelation of that secret released her emotions; those rushed, spoken words made her pulse race, her body shake, and her skin feel hot. Oddly, she thought of Alfred and his anger. But he remained still, as if in shock. Stillwell was trying to help the injured Stewart.
Hawe rolled his red eyes and threw back his head.
Hawe rolled his eyes and tilted his head back.
“Ho, ho, ho! Ho, ho, ho! Say, Sneed, you didn’t miss any of it, did ye? Haw, haw! Best I ever heerd in all my born days. Ho, ho!”
“Ha, ha, ha! Ha, ha, ha! Hey, Sneed, you didn’t miss any of it, did you? Ha, ha! Best I’ve ever heard in all my life. Ha, ha!”
Then he ceased laughing, and with glinting gaze upon Madeline, insolent and vicious and savage, he began to drawl:
Then he stopped laughing, and with a glint in his eyes fixed on Madeline, arrogant, cruel, and feral, he started to speak slowly:
“Wal now, my lady, I reckon your story, if it tallies with Bonita’s an’ Padre Marcos’s, will clear Gene Stewart in the eyes of the court.” Here he grew slower, more biting, sharper and harder of face. “But you needn’t expect Pat Hawe or the court to swaller thet part of your story—about bein’ detained unwillin’!”
“Well now, my lady, I think your story, if it matches Bonita’s and Padre Marcos’s, will clear Gene Stewart in the eyes of the court.” Here he became slower, more cutting, sharper and more serious in expression. “But don’t expect Pat Hawe or the court to swallow that part of your story—about being held against your will!”
Madeline had not time to grasp the sense of his last words. Stewart had convulsively sprung upward, white as chalk. As he leaped at Hawe Stillwell interposed his huge bulk and wrapped his arms around Stewart. There was a brief, whirling, wrestling struggle. Stewart appeared to be besting the old cattleman.
Madeline didn't have time to process what he had just said. Stewart had jumped up suddenly, pale as a ghost. As he lunged at Hawe, Stillwell stepped in with his large frame and wrapped his arms around Stewart. There was a quick, chaotic struggle. Stewart seemed to be getting the upper hand on the old cattleman.
“Help, boys, help!” yelled Stillwell. “I can’t hold him. Hurry, or there’s goin’ to be blood spilled!”
“Help, guys, help!” shouted Stillwell. “I can’t keep him back. Hurry, or there’s going to be bloodshed!”
Nick Steele and several cowboys leaped to Stillwell’s assistance. Stewart, getting free, tossed one aside and then another. They closed in on him. For an instant a furious straining wrestle of powerful bodies made rasp and shock and blow. Once Stewart heaved them from him. But they plunged back upon him—conquered him.
Nick Steele and a few cowboys jumped in to help Stillwell. Stewart, breaking free, tossed one guy aside and then another. They moved in on him. For a moment, a fierce struggle of strong bodies created noise and chaos. Stewart managed to throw them off once, but they quickly jumped back on him—overpowered him.
“Gene! Why, Gene!” panted the old cattleman. “Sure you’re locoed—to act this way. Cool down! Cool down! Why, boy, it’s all right. Jest stand still—give us a chance to talk to you. It’s only ole Bill, you know—your ole pal who’s tried to be a daddy to you. He’s only wantin’ you to hev sense—to be cool—to wait.”
“Gene! Hey, Gene!” gasped the old cattleman. “You must be crazy to act like this. Calm down! Calm down! It’s okay, boy. Just stand still—give us a moment to talk to you. It’s just old Bill, you know—your old buddy who’s tried to look out for you. He just wants you to use your head—to relax—to be patient.”
“Let me go! Let me go!” cried Stewart; and the poignancy of that cry pierced Madeline’s heart. “Let me go, Bill, if you’re my friend. I saved your life once—over in the desert. You swore you’d never forget. Boys, make him let me go! Oh, I don’t care what Hawe’s said or done to me! It was that about her! Are you all a lot of Greasers? How can you stand it? Damn you for a lot of cowards! There’s a limit, I tell you.” Then his voice broke, fell to a whisper. “Bill, dear old Bill, let me go. I’ll kill him! You know I’ll kill him!”
“Let me go! Let me go!” shouted Stewart, and the intensity of that cry pierced Madeline’s heart. “Let me go, Bill, if you’re my friend. I saved your life once—back in the desert. You promised you’d never forget. Guys, make him let me go! Oh, I don’t care what Hawe said or did to me! It’s about her! Are you all a bunch of cowards? How can you just stand by? Damn you for being such cowards! There’s a limit, I’m telling you.” Then his voice broke and dropped to a whisper. “Bill, dear old Bill, let me go. I’ll kill him! You know I’ll kill him!”
“Gene, I know you’d kill him if you hed an even break,” replied Stillwell, soothingly. “But, Gene, why, you ain’t even packin’ a gun! An’ there’s Pat lookin’ nasty, with his hand nervous-like. He seen you hed no gun. He’d jump at the chance to plug you now, an’ then holler about opposition to the law. Cool down, son; it’ll all come right.”
“Gene, I know you’d take him out if you had a fair shot,” Stillwell replied calmly. “But, Gene, why aren’t you even carrying a gun? And there’s Pat looking dangerous, with his hand twitching. He saw that you have no gun. He’d leap at the chance to take you out now, and then scream about standing up to the law. Just chill out, son; everything will work out.”
Suddenly Madeline was transfixed by a terrible sound.
Suddenly, Madeline was frozen by a horrible noise.
Her startled glance shifted from the anxious group round Stewart to see that Monty Price had leaped off the porch. He crouched down with his bands below his hips, where the big guns swung. From his distorted lips issued that which was combined roar and bellow and Indian war-whoop, and, more than all, a horrible warning cry. He resembled a hunchback about to make the leap of a demon. He was quivering, vibrating. His eyes, black and hot, were fastened with most piercing intentness upon Hawe and Sneed.
Her startled gaze shifted from the worried group around Stewart to see that Monty Price had jumped off the porch. He crouched down with his hands low at his hips, where the big guns swung. From his twisted lips came a sound that was a mix of a roar, a bellow, and an Indian war-whoop, and, more than anything, a terrifying warning cry. He looked like a hunchback about to make a leap like a demon. He was quivering, vibrating. His black, intense eyes were locked on Hawe and Sneed with piercing focus.
“Git back, Bill, git back!” he roared. “Git ’em back!” With one lunge Stillwell shoved Stewart and Nick and the other cowboys up on the porch. Then he crowded Madeline and Alfred and Florence to the wall, tried to force them farther. His motions were rapid and stern. But failing to get them through door and windows, he planted his wide person between the women and danger. Madeline grasped his arm, held on, and peered fearfully from behind his broad shoulder.
“Get back, Bill, get back!” he yelled. “Get them back!” With one quick movement, Stillwell pushed Stewart, Nick, and the other cowboys up onto the porch. Then he pressed Madeline, Alfred, and Florence against the wall, trying to force them back further. His movements were quick and firm. But unable to get them through the door and windows, he stood his large body between the women and the danger. Madeline grabbed his arm, held on tight, and looked anxiously out from behind his broad shoulder.
“You, Hawe! You, Sneed!” called Monty, in that same wild voice. “Don’t you move a finger or an eyelash!”
“You, Hawe! You, Sneed!” shouted Monty, in that same wild voice. “Don’t you dare move a finger or an eyelash!”
Madeline’s faculties nerved to keen, thrilling divination. She grasped the relation between Monty’s terrible cry and the strange hunched posture he had assumed. Stillwell’s haste and silence, too, were pregnant of catastrophe.
Madeline's senses sharpened to a thrilling clarity. She understood the connection between Monty's awful scream and the eerie hunched position he had taken. Stillwell's quickness and silence were also filled with impending disaster.
“Nels, git in this!” yelled Monty; and all the time he never shifted his intent gaze as much as a hair’s-breadth from Hawe and his deputy. “Nels, chase away them two fellers hangin’ back there. Chase ’em, quick!”
“Nels, get in here!” yelled Monty; and all the while he never shifted his focused gaze even a hair’s-breadth from Hawe and his deputy. “Nels, chase away those two guys hanging back there. Hurry!”
These men, the two deputies who had remained in the background with the pack-horses, did not wait for Nels. They spurred their mounts, wheeled, and galloped away.
These guys, the two deputies who had stayed back with the pack-horses, didn’t wait for Nels. They kicked their horses into gear, turned around, and took off at a gallop.
“Now, Nels, cut the gurl loose,” ordered Monty.
“Now, Nels, let the girl go,” ordered Monty.
Nels ran forward, jerked the halter out of Sneed’s hand, and pulled Bonita’s horse in close to the porch. As he slit the rope which bound her she fell into his arms.
Nels ran up, yanked the halter out of Sneed’s hand, and pulled Bonita’s horse in close to the porch. When he cut the rope that was tied to her, she fell into his arms.
“Hawe, git down!” went on Monty. “Face front an’ stiff!”
“Hawe, get down!” Monty said. “Face forward and stay still!”
The sheriff swung his leg, and, never moving his hands, with his face now a deathly, sickening white, he slid to the ground.
The sheriff swung his leg, and, without moving his hands, with his face now a pale, sickly white, he fell to the ground.
“Line up there beside your guerrilla pard. There! You two make a damn fine pictoor, a damn fine team of pizened coyote an’ a cross between a wild mule an’ a Greaser. Now listen!”
“Stand over there next to your guerrilla buddy. There! You two look like a great picture, a perfect team of a poisonous coyote and a mix between a wild mule and a Greaser. Now pay attention!”
Monty made a long pause, in which his breathing was plainly audible.
Monty paused for a long time, and you could clearly hear him breathing.
Madeline’s eyes were riveted upon Monty. Her mind, swift as lightning, had gathered the subtleties in action and word succeeding his domination of the men. Violence, terrible violence, the thing she had felt, the thing she had feared, the thing she had sought to eliminate from among her cowboys, was, after many months, about to be enacted before her eyes. It had come at last. She had softened Stillwell, she had influenced Nels, she had changed Stewart; but this little black-faced, terrible Monty Price now rose, as it were, out of his past wild years, and no power on earth or in heaven could stay his hand. It was the hard life of wild men in a wild country that was about to strike this blow at her. She did not shudder; she did not wish to blot out from sight this little man, terrible in his mood of wild justice. She suffered a flash of horror that Monty, blind and dead to her authority, cold as steel toward her presence, understood the deeps of a woman’s soul. For in this moment of strife, of insult to her, of torture to the man she had uplifted and then broken, the passion of her reached deep toward primitive hate. With eyes slowly hazing red, she watched Monty Price; she listened with thrumming ears; she waited, slowly sagging against Stillwell.
Madeline’s eyes were fixed on Monty. Her mind, as quick as lightning, had pieced together the nuances in his actions and words as he took control of the men. Violence, terrible violence—the very thing she had sensed, the thing she had dreaded, the thing she had tried to eliminate from her cowboys—was finally about to unfold before her. It had arrived at last. She had softened Stillwell, influenced Nels, changed Stewart; but this little black-faced, fierce Monty Price was now rising up from his wild past, and no force on earth or in heaven could stop him. It was the harsh life of wild men in a rough country that was about to strike this blow at her. She did not flinch; she did not want to erase this little man, fearsome in his sense of wild justice, from her view. A flash of horror shot through her as she realized that Monty, oblivious to her authority and cold as steel to her presence, understood the depths of a woman’s soul. In this moment of conflict, of insult to her, of torture to the man she had lifted up and then broken, her passion reached deep into primitive hate. With her eyes slowly turning red, she watched Monty Price; she listened with a pounding heart; she waited, gradually leaning against Stillwell.
“Hawe, if you an’ your dirty pard hev loved the sound of human voice, then listen an’ listen hard,” said Monty. “Fer I’ve been goin’ contrary to my ole style jest to hev a talk with you. You all but got away on your nerve, didn’t you? ‘Cause why? You roll in here like a mad steer an’ flash yer badge an’ talk mean, then almost bluff away with it. You heerd all about Miss Hammond’s cowboy outfit stoppin’ drinkin’ an’ cussin’ an’ packin’ guns. They’ve took on religion an’ decent livin’, an’ sure they’ll be easy to hobble an’ drive to jail. Hawe, listen. There was a good an’ noble an be-ootiful woman come out of the East somewheres, an’ she brought a lot of sunshine an’ happiness an’ new idees into the tough lives of cowboys. I reckon it’s beyond you to know what she come to mean to them. Wal, I’ll tell you. They-all went clean out of their heads. They-all got soft an’ easy an’ sweet-tempered. They got so they couldn’t kill a coyote, a crippled calf in a mud-hole. They took to books, an’ writin’ home to mother an’ sister, an’ to savin’ money, an’ to gittin’ married. Onct they was only a lot of poor cowboys, an’ then sudden-like they was human bein’s, livin’ in a big world thet hed somethin’ sweet even fer them. Even fer me—an ole, worn-out, hobble-legged, burned-up cowman like me! Do you git thet? An’ you, Mister Hawe, you come along, not satisfied with ropin’ an’ beatin’, an’ Gaw knows what else, of thet friendless little Bonita; you come along an’ face the lady we fellers honor an’ love an’ reverence, an’ you—you—Hell’s fire!”
“Hawe, if you and your dirty partner have ever appreciated the sound of a human voice, then listen up and listen closely,” Monty said. “I’ve been going against my usual style just to have a conversation with you. You almost escaped on your nerve, didn’t you? Why? You storm in here like a crazy bull, flash your badge, and talk tough, then nearly bluff your way through it. You heard all about Miss Hammond’s cowboy crew stopping drinking, cursing, and carrying guns. They’ve adopted religion and decent living, and they’ll be easy to rope and haul off to jail. Hawe, listen. There was a good, noble, beautiful woman who came out from somewhere in the East, and she brought a lot of sunshine, happiness, and new ideas into the rough lives of cowboys. I reckon it’s beyond you to understand what she came to mean to them. Well, I’ll tell you. They all went completely out of their minds. They all became soft, gentle, and sweet-tempered. They got to the point where they couldn’t kill a coyote or a crippled calf stuck in a mud hole. They started reading books, writing home to their mothers and sisters, saving money, and getting married. Once they were just a bunch of poor cowboys, and suddenly they were human beings, living in a big world that had something sweet for them too. Even for me—a tired, worn-out, hobbled, burned-out cowboy like me! Do you get that? And you, Mister Hawe, you come along, not satisfied with roping and beating that friendless little Bonita; you come along and confront the lady we admire and love and respect, and you—you—hellfire!”
With whistling breath, foaming at the mouth, Monty Price crouched lower, hands at his hips, and he edged inch by inch farther out from the porch, closer to Hawe and Sneed. Madeline saw them only in the blurred fringe of her sight. They resembled specters. She heard the shrill whistle of a horse and recognized Majesty calling her from the corral.
With a whistling breath, foam at his mouth, Monty Price crouched lower, hands on his hips, and inched further out from the porch, getting closer to Hawe and Sneed. Madeline could just make them out in the blurry edge of her vision. They looked like ghosts. She heard the sharp whistle of a horse and recognized Majesty calling her from the corral.
“Thet’s all!” roared Monty, in a voice now strangling. Lower and lower he bent, a terrible figure of ferocity. “Now, both you armed ocifers of the law, come on! Flash your guns! Throw ’em, an’ be quick! Monty Price is done! There’ll be daylight through you both before you fan a hammer! But I’m givin’ you a chanst to sting me. You holler law, an’ my way is the ole law.”
“Thet’s all!” Monty shouted, his voice now choked with rage. He leaned lower, a terrifying figure of fury. “Now, you two armed officers of the law, come on! Show your guns! Drop them, and be quick! Monty Price is finished! There’ll be daylight through both of you before you even pull the trigger! But I’m giving you a chance to sting me. You shout law, and my way is the old law.”
His breath came quicker, his voice grew hoarser, and he crouched lower. All his body except his rigid arms quivered with a wonderful muscular convulsion.
His breathing got faster, his voice became rougher, and he bent down more. All of his body, except for his stiff arms, shook with an amazing muscular spasm.
“Dogs! Skunks! Buzzards! Flash them guns, er I’ll flash mine! Aha!”
“Dogs! Skunks! Buzzards! Show your guns, or I’ll show mine! Aha!”
To Madeline it seemed the three stiff, crouching men leaped into instant and united action. She saw streaks of fire—streaks of smoke. Then a crashing volley deafened her. It ceased as quickly. Smoke veiled the scene. Slowly it drifted away to disclose three fallen men, one of whom, Monty, leaned on his left hand, a smoking gun in his right. He watched for a movement from the other two. It did not come. Then, with a terrible smile, he slid back and stretched out.
To Madeline, it seemed like the three stiff, crouching men sprang into immediate action together. She saw flashes of fire—clouds of smoke. Then a deafening volley surrounded her. It stopped just as quickly. Smoke covered the scene. Gradually, it cleared to reveal three fallen men, one of whom, Monty, was propped up on his left hand, a smoking gun in his right. He looked for any sign of movement from the other two. Nothing happened. Then, with a chilling smile, he leaned back and lay down.
XXI. Unbridled
In waking and sleeping hours Madeline Hammond could not release herself from the thralling memory of that tragedy. She was haunted by Monty Price’s terrible smile. Only in action of some kind could she escape; and to that end she worked, she walked and rode. She even overcame a strong feeling, which she feared was unreasonable disgust, for the Mexican girl Bonita, who lay ill at the ranch, bruised and feverish, in need of skilful nursing.
In both her waking and sleeping moments, Madeline Hammond couldn’t shake off the gripping memory of that tragedy. She was tormented by Monty Price’s awful smile. The only way she could find relief was through some kind of activity, so she kept herself busy with work, walking, and riding. She even pushed past a strong feeling, which she worried might be an irrational disgust, for the Mexican girl Bonita, who was sick at the ranch, battered and feverish, and in need of skilled care.
Madeline felt there was something inscrutable changing her soul. That strife—the struggle to decide her destiny for East or West—held still further aloof. She was never spiritually alone. There was a step on her trail. Indoors she was oppressed. She required the open—the light and wind, the sight of endless slope, the sounds of corral and pond and field, physical things, natural things.
Madeline felt like something mysterious was shifting within her soul. That conflict—the fight to choose her path between East or West—kept her even more distant. She was never spiritually alone. She sensed a presence following her. Inside, she felt weighed down. She craved the outdoors—the light and breeze, the view of endless landscapes, and the sounds of the corral, pond, and fields—real, natural things.
One afternoon she rode down to the alfalfa-fields, round them, and back up to the spillway of the lower lake, where a group of mesquite-trees, owing to the water that seeped through the sand to their roots, had taken on bloom and beauty of renewed life. Under these trees there was shade enough to make a pleasant place to linger. Madeline dismounted, desiring to rest a little. She liked this quiet, lonely spot. It was really the only secluded nook near the house. If she rode down into the valley or out to the mesa or up on the foothills she could not go alone. Probably now Stillwell or Nels knew her whereabouts. But as she was comparatively hidden here, she imagined a solitude that was not actually hers.
One afternoon, she rode down to the alfalfa fields, went around them, and then back up to the spillway of the lower lake, where a group of mesquite trees, thanks to the water seeping through the sand to their roots, had bloomed and come to life again. Under these trees, there was enough shade to create a nice spot to linger. Madeline dismounted, wanting to rest for a bit. She enjoyed this quiet, lonely place. It was really the only secluded corner near the house. If she rode down into the valley or out to the mesa or up on the foothills, she couldn’t go alone. Most likely, Stillwell or Nels knew where she was now. But since she was relatively hidden here, she imagined a solitude that wasn’t actually hers.
Her horse, Majesty, tossed his head and flung his mane and switched his tail at the flies. He would rather have been cutting the wind down the valley slope. Madeline sat with her back against a tree, and took off her sombrero. The soft breeze, fanning her hot face, blowing strands of her hair, was refreshingly cool. She heard the slow tramp of cattle going in to drink. That sound ceased, and the grove of mesquites appeared to be lifeless, except for her and her horse. It was, however, only after moments of attention that she found the place was far from being dead. Keen eyes and ears brought reward. Desert quail, as gray as the bare earth, were dusting themselves in a shady spot. A bee, swift as light, hummed by. She saw a horned toad, the color of stone, squatting low, hiding fearfully in the sand within reach of her whip. She extended the point of the whip, and the toad quivered and swelled and hissed. It was instinct with fight. The wind faintly stirred the thin foliage of the mesquites, making a mournful sigh. From far up in the foothills, barely distinguishable, came the scream of an eagle. The bray of a burro brought a brief, discordant break. Then a brown bird darted down from an unseen perch and made a swift, irregular flight after a fluttering winged insect. Madeline heard the sharp snapping of a merciless beak. Indeed, there was more than life in the shade of the mesquites.
Her horse, Majesty, tossed his head and flipped his mane, swatting at the flies with his tail. He would have preferred to be racing down the valley slope. Madeline leaned against a tree and took off her sombrero. The soft breeze, fanning her hot face and blowing strands of her hair, felt refreshingly cool. She heard the slow footsteps of cattle heading to drink. That sound faded, and the grove of mesquites seemed lifeless, except for her and her horse. However, after a few moments of focused attention, she realized the place was far from dead. Sharp eyes and ears paid off. Desert quail, as gray as the bare earth, were dusting themselves in a shady spot. A bee zipped by, quick as a flash. She noticed a horned toad, the color of stone, squatting low, hiding nervously in the sand just within reach of her whip. She extended the whip's point, and the toad quivered, puffed up, and hissed. It was instinctively ready to fight. The wind slightly stirred the thin leaves of the mesquites, creating a mournful sigh. From far up in the foothills, barely distinguishable, came the scream of an eagle. The braying of a burro provided a brief, jarring interruption. Then a brown bird swooped down from an unseen perch and made a quick, erratic chase after a fluttering insect. Madeline heard the sharp snap of a merciless beak. Indeed, there was more than just life in the shade of the mesquites.
Suddenly Majesty picked up his long ears and snorted. Then Madeline heard a slow pad of hoofs. A horse was approaching from the direction of the lake. Madeline had learned to be wary, and, mounting Majesty, she turned him toward the open. A moment later she felt glad of her caution, for, looking back between the trees, she saw Stewart leading a horse into the grove. She would as lief have met a guerrilla as this cowboy.
Suddenly, Majesty perked up his long ears and snorted. Then Madeline heard the slow sound of hooves. A horse was coming from the direction of the lake. Madeline had learned to be careful, so she mounted Majesty and turned him toward the open area. A moment later, she was glad she had been cautious because, looking back through the trees, she saw Stewart leading a horse into the grove. She would have preferred to encounter a guerrilla rather than this cowboy.
Majesty had broken into a trot when a shrill whistle rent the air. The horse leaped and, wheeling so swiftly that he nearly unseated Madeline, he charged back straight for the mesquites. Madeline spoke to him, cried angrily at him, pulled with all her strength upon the bridle, but was helplessly unable to stop him. He whistled a piercing blast. Madeline realized then that Stewart, his old master, had called him and that nothing could turn him. She gave up trying, and attended to the urgent need of intercepting mesquite boughs that Majesty thrashed into motion. The horse thumped into an aisle between the trees and, stopping before Stewart, whinnied eagerly.
Majesty had broken into a trot when a loud whistle pierced the air. The horse jumped, turning so quickly that he almost threw Madeline off balance, and charged straight back toward the mesquites. Madeline spoke to him, yelled in frustration, and pulled with all her strength on the bridle, but she was completely unable to stop him. He let out a sharp whistle. Madeline realized then that Stewart, his former owner, had called him and that nothing could divert him. She stopped trying and focused on the urgent need to avoid the mesquite branches that Majesty thrashed into motion. The horse trotted into an aisle between the trees and, stopping in front of Stewart, whinnied eagerly.
Madeline, not knowing what to expect, had not time for any feeling but amaze. A quick glance showed her Stewart in rough garb, dressed for the trail, and leading a wiry horse, saddled and packed. When Stewart, without looking at her, put his arm around Majesty’s neck and laid his face against the flowing mane Madeline’s heart suddenly began to beat with unwonted quickness. Stewart seemed oblivious to her presence. His eyes were closed. His dark face softened, lost its hardness and fierceness and sadness, and for an instant became beautiful.
Madeline, unsure of what to expect, had no time for anything but amazement. A quick look revealed Stewart in rugged clothes, ready for the trail, and leading a lean horse, saddled and loaded with gear. When Stewart, without glancing at her, draped his arm around Majesty’s neck and rested his face against the flowing mane, Madeline’s heart suddenly started racing. Stewart seemed unaware of her presence. His eyes were shut. His dark face softened, losing its hardness, fierceness, and sadness, and for a moment, it became beautiful.
Madeline instantly divined what his action meant. He was leaving the ranch; this was his good-by to his horse. How strange, sad, fine was this love between man and beast! A dimness confused Madeline’s eyes; she hurriedly brushed it away, and it came back wet and blurring. She averted her face, ashamed of the tears Stewart might see. She was sorry for him. He was going away, and this time, judging from the nature of his farewell to his horse, it was to be forever. Like a stab from a cold blade a pain shot through Madeline’s heart. The wonder of it, the incomprehensibility of it, the utter newness and strangeness of this sharp pain that now left behind a dull pang, made her forget Stewart, her surroundings, everything except to search her heart. Maybe here was the secret that had eluded her. She trembled on the brink of something unknown. In some strange way the emotion brought back her girlhood. Her mind revolved swift queries and replies; she was living, feeling, learning; happiness mocked at her from behind a barred door, and the bar of that door seemed to be an inexplicable pain. Then like lightning strokes shot the questions: Why should pain hide her happiness? What was her happiness? What relation had it to this man? Why should she feel strangely about his departure? And the voices within her were silenced, stunned, unanswered.
Madeline quickly understood what his action meant. He was leaving the ranch; this was his goodbye to his horse. How strange, sad, and beautiful was this bond between man and animal! A haze blurred Madeline’s vision; she quickly wiped it away, but it returned, wet and fuzzy. She turned her face, embarrassed by the tears Stewart might notice. She felt pity for him. He was leaving, and this time, judging by how he said goodbye to his horse, it seemed to be forever. A sharp pain shot through Madeline's heart like a stab from a cold knife. The wonder of it, the incomprehensibility of it, the totally new and strange feeling of this sharp pain that now left behind a dull ache made her forget Stewart, her surroundings, everything except for searching her heart. Maybe this was the secret she had been missing. She trembled on the edge of something unknown. In a strange way, the emotion brought back her youth. Her mind raced with questions and answers; she was living, feeling, learning; happiness teased her from behind a locked door, and the lock on that door seemed to be an inexplicable pain. Then, like lightning, the questions shot through her: Why should pain keep her from happiness? What was her happiness? What connection did it have to this man? Why did she feel strangely about his leaving? And the voices inside her were silenced, stunned, unanswered.
“I want to talk to you,” said Stewart.
“I want to talk to you,” Stewart said.
Madeline started, turned to him, and now she saw the earlier Stewart, the man who reminded her of their first meeting at El Cajon, of that memorable meeting at Chiricahua.
Madeline started, turned to him, and now she saw the earlier Stewart, the guy who reminded her of their first meeting at El Cajon, that unforgettable meeting at Chiricahua.
“I want to ask you something,” he went on. “I’ve been wanting to know something. That’s why I’ve hung on here. You never spoke to me, never noticed me, never gave me a chance to ask you. But now I’m going over—over the border. And I want to know. Why did you refuse to listen to me?”
“I want to ask you something,” he continued. “I’ve been wanting to know something. That’s why I’ve stuck around. You never talked to me, never noticed me, never gave me a chance to ask you. But now I’m about to cross—cross the border. And I want to know. Why did you refuse to listen to me?”
At his last words that hot shame, tenfold more stifling than when it had before humiliated Madeline, rushed over her, sending the scarlet in a wave to her temples. It seemed that his words made her realize she was actually face to face with him, that somehow a shame she would rather have died than revealed was being liberated. Biting her lips to hold back speech, she jerked on Majesty’s bridle, struck him with her whip, spurred him. Stewart’s iron arm held the horse. Then Madeline, in a flash of passion, struck at Stewart’s face, missed it, struck again, and hit. With one pull, almost drawing her from the saddle, he tore the whip from her hands. It was not that action on his part, or the sudden strong masterfulness of his look, so much as the livid mark on his face where the whip had lashed that quieted, if it did not check, her fury.
At his last words, a hot shame, ten times more suffocating than when Madeline had been humiliated before, rushed over her, flooding her cheeks with red. It felt like his words made her realize she was actually face to face with him, and somehow a shame she would have preferred to die rather than reveal was being set free. Biting her lips to stifle her response, she yanked on Majesty’s bridle, hit him with her whip, and spurred him on. Stewart’s strong arm held the horse in place. Then, in a moment of passion, Madeline swung at Stewart’s face, missed, swung again, and connected. With one swift pull, almost knocking her from the saddle, he yanked the whip from her hands. It wasn’t just his action or the sudden commanding intensity of his gaze that calmed, if not stopped, her anger, but the angry mark on his face where the whip had struck.
“That’s nothing,” he said, with something of his old audacity. “That’s nothing to how you’ve hurt me.”
"That's nothing," he said, with a hint of his old boldness. "That's nothing compared to how you've hurt me."
Madeline battled with herself for control. This man would not be denied. Never before had the hardness of his face, the flinty hardness of these desert-bred men, so struck her with its revelation of the unbridled spirit. He looked stern, haggard, bitter. The dark shade was changing to gray—the gray to ash-color of passion. About him now there was only the ghost of that finer, gentler man she had helped to bring into being. The piercing dark eyes he bent upon her burned her, went through her as if he were looking into her soul. Then Madeline’s quick sight caught a fleeting doubt, a wistfulness, a surprised and saddened certainty in his eyes, saw it shade and pass away. Her woman’s intuition, as keen as her sight, told her Stewart in that moment had sustained a shock of bitter, final truth.
Madeline struggled with herself for control. This man wouldn’t be denied. Never before had the hardness of his face, the tough edge of these desert-bred men, struck her as a revelation of his unrestrained spirit. He looked stern, worn-out, and bitter. The dark shade was turning to gray—the gray to a passionless ash. Around him now was only the ghost of that finer, gentler man she had helped bring to life. The piercing dark eyes he fixed on her burned, penetrating her as if he were looking into her soul. Then Madeline’s sharp eyesight caught a momentary doubt, a longing, a surprised and saddened certainty in his eyes, which she saw fade away. Her woman’s intuition, as sharp as her sight, told her that Stewart had just experienced a shock of bitter, final truth.
For the third time he repeated his question to her. Madeline did not answer; she could not speak.
For the third time, he asked her the question. Madeline didn't respond; she couldn't speak.
“You don’t know I love you, do you?” he continued, passionately. “That ever since you stood before me in that hole at Chiricahua I’ve loved you? You can’t see I’ve been another man, loving you, working for you, living for you? You won’t believe I’ve turned my back on the old wild life, that I’ve been decent and honorable and happy and useful—your kind of a cowboy? You couldn’t tell, though I loved you, that I never wanted you to know it, that I never dared to think of you except as my angel, my holy Virgin? What do you know of a man’s heart and soul? How could you tell of the love, the salvation of a man who’s lived his life in the silence and loneliness? Who could teach you the actual truth—that a wild cowboy, faithless to mother and sister, except in memory, riding a hard, drunken trail straight to hell; had looked into the face, the eyes of a beautiful woman infinitely beyond him, above him, and had so loved her that he was saved—that he became faithful again—that he saw her face in every flower and her eyes in the blue heaven? Who could tell you, when at night I stood alone under these Western stars, how deep in my soul I was glad just to be alive, to be able to do something for you, to be near you, to stand between you and worry, trouble, danger, to feel somehow that I was a part, just a little part of the West you had come to love?”
“You don’t realize I love you, do you?” he continued passionately. “Ever since you stood in that spot at Chiricahua, I’ve loved you. You can’t see that I’ve been a different man, loving you, working for you, living for you? You refuse to believe I’ve turned my back on that wild life, that I’ve been decent and honorable and happy and useful—your kind of cowboy? You couldn’t tell that even though I loved you, I never wanted you to know it, that I never dared to think of you as anything but my angel, my holy Virgin? What do you know about a man’s heart and soul? How could you understand the love, the redemption of a man who lived in silence and loneliness? Who could teach you the real truth—that a wild cowboy, disloyal to his mother and sister, except in memory, riding a hard, drunken trail straight to hell; had looked into the face, the eyes of a beautiful woman infinitely beyond him and above him, and had loved her so much that he was saved—that he became faithful again—that he saw her face in every flower and her eyes in the blue sky? Who could tell you, when at night I stood alone under these Western stars, how deeply in my soul I felt grateful just to be alive, to do something for you, to be close to you, to stand between you and worry, trouble, danger, feeling somehow that I was a part, just a little part of the West you had come to love?”
Madeline was mute. She heard her heart thundering in her ears.
Madeline couldn't speak. She could hear her heart racing in her ears.
Stewart leaped at her. His powerful hand closed on her arm. She trembled. His action presaged the old instinctive violence.
Stewart jumped at her. His strong hand gripped her arm. She shook. His move hinted at the old, instinctive aggression.
“No; but you think I kept Bonita up in the mountains, that I went secretly to meet her, that all the while I served you I was—Oh, I know what you think! I know now. I never knew till I made you look at me. Now, say it! Speak!”
“No; but you think I kept Bonita up in the mountains, that I went secretly to meet her, that all the while I was serving you I was—Oh, I know what you think! I know now. I never realized it until I made you look at me. Now, say it! Speak!”
White-hot, blinded, utterly in the fiery grasp of passion, powerless to stem the rush of a word both shameful and revealing and fatal, Madeline cried:
White-hot, blinded, completely consumed by passion, unable to stop the surge of a word that was both shameful and revealing and deadly, Madeline cried:
“YES!”
"Absolutely!"
He had wrenched that word from her, but he was not subtle enough, not versed in the mystery of woman’s motive enough, to divine the deep significance of her reply.
He had forced that word out of her, but he wasn't subtle enough, not experienced enough in the complexities of a woman's motives, to understand the deeper meaning of her response.
For him the word had only literal meaning confirming the dishonor in which she held him. Dropping her arm, he shrank back, a strange action for the savage and crude man she judged him to be.
For him, the word only had a literal meaning that confirmed the disgrace she felt for him. Letting go of her arm, he pulled away, a strange move for the rough and uncouth man she thought he was.
“But that day at Chiricahua you spoke of faith,” he burst out. “You said the greatest thing in the world was faith in human nature. You said the finest men had been those who had fallen low and had risen. You said you had faith in me! You made me have faith in myself!”
“But that day at Chiricahua, you talked about faith,” he exclaimed. “You said the most important thing in the world was believing in human nature. You said the best people were those who had hit rock bottom and then bounced back. You said you had faith in me! You made me believe in myself!”
His reproach, without bitterness or scorn, was a lash to her old egoistic belief in her fairness. She had preached a beautiful principle that she had failed to live up to. She understood his rebuke, she wondered and wavered, but the affront to her pride had been too great, the tumult within her breast had been too startlingly fierce; she could not speak, the moment passed, and with it his brief, rugged splendor of simplicity.
His criticism, devoid of bitterness or contempt, struck a blow to her long-held belief in her own fairness. She had advocated a noble principle that she hadn’t actually upheld. She recognized his criticism, felt conflicted and uncertain, but the hit to her pride was too significant, the turmoil inside her was too intensely overwhelming; she couldn’t find the words, the moment slipped away, taking with it his brief, raw brilliance of simplicity.
“You think I am vile,” he said. “You think that about Bonita! And all the time I’ve been... I could make you ashamed—I could tell you—”
“You think I’m disgusting,” he said. “You think that about Bonita! And all this time I’ve been... I could make you feel ashamed—I could tell you—”
His passionate utterance ceased with a snap of his teeth. His lips set in a thin, bitter line. The agitation of his face preceded a convulsive wrestling of his shoulders. All this swift action denoted an inner combat, and it nearly overwhelmed him.
His intense words stopped abruptly with a snap of his teeth. His lips pressed into a thin, bitter line. The tension on his face came before a violent twitching of his shoulders. All this rapid movement indicated a fierce struggle within him, and it almost consumed him.
“No, no!” he panted. Was it his answer to some mighty temptation? Then, like a bent sapling released, he sprang erect. “But I’ll be the man—the dog—you think me!”
“No, no!” he panted. Was it his response to some overwhelming temptation? Then, like a bent sapling set free, he stood up straight. “But I’ll be the man—the dog—you think I am!”
He laid hold of her arm with rude, powerful clutch. One pull drew her sliding half out of the saddle into his arms. She fell with her breast against his, not wholly free of stirrups or horse, and there she hung, utterly powerless. Maddened, writhing, she tore to release herself. All she could accomplish was to twist herself, raise herself high enough to see his face. That almost paralyzed her. Did he mean to kill her? Then he wrapped his arms around her and crushed her tighter, closer to him. She felt the pound of his heart; her own seemed to have frozen. Then he pressed his burning lips to hers. It was a long, terrible kiss. She felt him shake.
He grabbed her arm with a rough, strong grip. One tug pulled her halfway out of the saddle and into his arms. She fell against him, not completely free from the stirrups or the horse, and there she dangled, completely helpless. Frantic and twisting, she tried to get away. All she managed to do was turn herself, raising her head just enough to see his face. That nearly stunned her. Did he intend to kill her? Then he wrapped his arms around her, squeezing her tighter, pulling her closer. She felt the beat of his heart; her own felt like it had stopped. Then he pressed his hot lips against hers. It was a long, terrible kiss. She felt him tremble.
“Oh, Stewart! I—implore—you—let—me—go!” she whispered.
“Oh, Stewart! Please let me go!” she whispered.
His white face loomed over hers. She closed her eyes. He rained kisses upon her face, but no more upon her mouth. On her closed eyes, her hair, her cheeks, her neck he pressed swift lips—lips that lost their fire and grew cold. Then he released her, and, lifting and righting her in the saddle, he still held her arm to keep her from falling.
His pale face hovered over hers. She shut her eyes. He showered kisses on her face, but not on her lips. On her closed eyes, her hair, her cheeks, and her neck, he pressed quick kisses—kisses that lost their warmth and turned cold. Then he let her go, and, lifting and straightening her in the saddle, he still held her arm to keep her from falling.
For a moment Madeline sat on her horse with shut eyes. She dreaded the light.
For a moment, Madeline sat on her horse with her eyes closed. She was afraid of the light.
“Now you can’t say you’ve never been kissed,” Stewart said. His voice seemed a long way off. “But that was coming to you, so be game. Here!”
“Now you can’t say you’ve never been kissed,” Stewart said. His voice seemed distant. “But that was coming to you, so be bold. Here!”
She felt something hard and cold and metallic thrust into her hand. He made her fingers close over it, hold it. The feel of the thing revived her. She opened her eyes. Stewart had given her his gun. He stood with his broad breast against her knee, and she looked up to see that old mocking smile on his face.
She felt something hard, cold, and metal pressed into her hand. He made her fingers wrap around it, holding it tight. The sensation of the object brought her back to life. She opened her eyes. Stewart had handed her his gun. He stood with his broad chest against her knee, and she looked up to see that familiar mocking smile on his face.
“Go ahead! Throw my gun on me! Be a thoroughbred!”
“Go ahead! Toss my gun at me! Be a true champion!”
Madeline did not yet grasp his meaning.
Madeline still didn't understand what he meant.
“You can put me down in that quiet place on the hill—beside Monty Price.”
“You can drop me off in that peaceful spot on the hill—next to Monty Price.”
Madeline dropped the gun with a shuddering cry of horror. The sense of his words, the memory of Monty, the certainty that she would kill Stewart if she held the gun an instant longer, tortured the self-accusing cry from her.
Madeline dropped the gun with a shuddering cry of horror. The meaning of his words, the memory of Monty, the sure knowledge that she would kill Stewart if she held the gun for even a second longer, tortured the self-reproaching scream from her.
Stewart stooped to pick up the weapon.
Stewart bent down to grab the weapon.
“You might have saved me a hell of a lot of trouble,” he said, with another flash of the mocking smile. “You’re beautiful and sweet and proud, but you’re no thoroughbred! Majesty Hammond, adios!”
“You could have saved me a ton of trouble,” he said, with another glimpse of that mocking smile. “You’re beautiful, sweet, and proud, but you’re no thoroughbred! Majesty Hammond, goodbye!”
Stewart leaped for the saddle of his horse, and with the flying mount crashed through the mesquites to disappear.
Stewart jumped into the saddle of his horse and, with a swift takeoff, tore through the mesquites and vanished.
XXII. The Secret Told
In the shaded seclusion of her room, buried face down deep among the soft cushions on her couch, Madeline Hammond lay prostrate and quivering under the outrage she had suffered.
In the quiet privacy of her room, face down deep in the soft cushions of her couch, Madeline Hammond lay flat and shaking from the humiliation she had experienced.
The afternoon wore away; twilight fell; night came; and then Madeline rose to sit by the window to let the cool wind blow upon her hot face. She passed through hours of unintelligible shame and impotent rage and futile striving to reason away her defilement.
The afternoon passed; twilight came; night fell; and then Madeline got up to sit by the window to let the cool wind refresh her warm face. She went through hours of confusing shame, powerless anger, and pointless attempts to rationalize her shame.
The train of brightening stars seemed to mock her with their unattainable passionless serenity. She had loved them, and now she imagined she hated them and everything connected with this wild, fateful, and abrupt West.
The train of brightening stars seemed to taunt her with their unreachable, emotionless calm. She had loved them, and now she imagined she hated them and everything tied to this wild, fateful, and sudden West.
She would go home.
She would head home.
Edith Wayne had been right; the West was no place for Madeline Hammond. The decision to go home came easily, naturally, she thought, as the result of events. It caused her no mental strife. Indeed, she fancied she felt relief. The great stars, blinking white and cold over the dark crags, looked down upon her, and, as always, after she had watched them for a while they enthralled her. “Under Western stars,” she mused, thinking a little scornfully of the romantic destiny they had blazed for her idle sentiment. But they were beautiful; they were speaking; they were mocking; they drew her. “Ah!” she sighed. “It will not be so very easy to leave them, after all.”
Edith Wayne was right; the West wasn’t the right place for Madeline Hammond. Deciding to go home felt easy and natural; it seemed like a natural outcome of everything that happened. It didn’t bother her at all. In fact, she felt a sense of relief. The bright, cold stars twinkling over the dark rocks looked down at her, and, as always, after watching them for a while, she found them captivating. “Under Western stars,” she thought, a bit scornfully, considering the romantic fate they had paved for her sentimental thoughts. But they were beautiful; they had their own voice; they seemed to mock her; they drew her in. “Ah!” she sighed. “Leaving them won’t be as easy as I thought.”
Madeline closed and darkened the window. She struck a light. It was necessary to tell the anxious servants who knocked that she was well and required nothing. A soft step on the walk outside arrested her. Who was there—Nels or Nick Steele or Stillwell? Who shared the guardianship over her, now that Monty Price was dead and that other—that savage—? It was monstrous and unfathomable that she regretted him.
Madeline closed and darkened the window. She lit a match. It was necessary to let the worried servants who were knocking know that she was okay and needed nothing. A soft footstep on the path outside caught her attention. Who was it—Nels, Nick Steele, or Stillwell? Who was looking after her now that Monty Price was dead, along with that other one—that savage? It was crazy and incomprehensible that she felt regret for him.
The light annoyed her. Complete darkness fitted her strange mood. She retired and tried to compose herself to sleep. Sleep for her was not a matter of will. Her cheeks burned so hotly that she rose to bathe them. Cold water would not alleviate this burn, and then, despairing of forgetfulness, she lay down again with a shameful gratitude for the cloak of night. Stewart’s kisses were there, scorching her lips, her closed eyes, her swelling neck. They penetrated deeper and deeper into her blood, into her heart, into her soul—the terrible farewell kisses of a passionate, hardened man. Despite his baseness, he had loved her.
The light irritated her. Complete darkness matched her odd mood. She went to bed and tried to settle down to sleep. For her, sleep wasn’t just a matter of wanting to fall asleep. Her cheeks felt so hot that she got up to cool them down. Cold water didn’t help with the heat, and then, feeling hopeless about forgetting, she lay down again, feeling a shameful gratitude for the cover of night. Stewart’s kisses were there, burning on her lips, her closed eyes, her throbbing neck. They buried themselves deeper and deeper into her blood, her heart, her soul—the painful goodbye kisses from a passionate, tough man. Despite his flaws, he had loved her.
Late in the night Madeline fell asleep. In the morning she was pale and languid, but in a mental condition that promised composure.
Late at night, Madeline fell asleep. In the morning, she looked pale and weak, but her mind seemed to be in a state that suggested calmness.
It was considerably after her regular hour that Madeline repaired to her office. The door was open, and just outside, tipped back in a chair, sat Stillwell.
It was well past her usual time when Madeline arrived at her office. The door was open, and just outside, leaning back in a chair, sat Stillwell.
“Mawnin’, Miss Majesty,” he said, as he rose to greet her with his usual courtesy. There were signs of trouble in his lined face. Madeline shrank inwardly, fearing his old lamentations about Stewart. Then she saw a dusty, ragged pony in the yard and a little burro drooping under a heavy pack. Both animals bore evidence of long, arduous travel.
“Mornin’, Miss Majesty,” he said, getting up to greet her with his usual politeness. His lined face showed signs of trouble. Madeline felt a wave of anxiety, worried he would start his usual complaints about Stewart. Then she noticed a dusty, ragged pony in the yard and a little burro slumping under a heavy load. Both animals looked like they had been on a long, tough journey.
“To whom do they belong?” asked Madeline.
“To whom do they belong?” asked Madeline.
“Them critters? Why, Danny Mains,” replied Stillwell, with a cough that betrayed embarrassment.
“Them critters? Why, Danny Mains,” replied Stillwell, coughing in a way that showed he was embarrassed.
“Danny Mains?” echoed Madeline, wonderingly.
“Danny Mains?” echoed Madeline, curiously.
“Wal, I said so.”
"Well, I said so."
Stillwell was indeed not himself.
Stillwell was definitely not himself.
“Is Danny Mains here?” she asked, in sudden curiosity.
“Is Danny Mains here?” she asked, suddenly curious.
The old cattleman nodded gloomily.
The old cattle rancher nodded gloomily.
“Yep, he’s hyar, all right. Sloped in from the hills, an’ he hollered to see Bonita. He’s locoed, too, about that little black-eyed hussy. Why, he hardly said, ‘Howdy, Bill,’ before he begun to ask wild an’ eager questions. I took him in to see Bonita. He’s been there more ’n a half-hour now.”
“Yep, he’s here, for sure. He came down from the hills and called out to see Bonita. He’s crazy about that little black-eyed girl. Honestly, he barely said, ‘Hey, Bill,’ before he started asking all kinds of wild and eager questions. I brought him in to see Bonita. He’s been there for over half an hour now.”
Evidently Stillwell’s sensitive feelings had been ruffled. Madeline’s curiosity changed to blank astonishment, which left her with a thrilling premonition. She caught her breath. A thousand thoughts seemed thronging for clear conception in her mind.
Evidently, Stillwell’s sensitive feelings had been hurt. Madeline’s curiosity turned into total astonishment, leaving her with an exciting premonition. She caught her breath. A thousand thoughts seemed to be racing for clarity in her mind.
Rapid footsteps with an accompaniment of clinking spurs sounded in the hallway. Then a young man ran out upon the porch. He resembled a cowboy in his lithe build, his garb and action, in the way he wore his gun, but his face, instead of being red, was clear brown tan. His eyes were blue; his hair was light and curly. He was a handsome, frank-faced boy. At sight of Madeline he slammed down his sombrero and, leaping at her, he possessed himself of her hands. His swift violence not only alarmed her, but painfully reminded her of something she wished to forget.
Rapid footsteps with the sound of clinking spurs echoed in the hallway. Then a young man burst onto the porch. He looked like a cowboy with his lean build, clothing, and movements, especially in how he carried his gun, but his face, rather than being red, had a clear brown tan. His eyes were blue, and his light, curly hair added to his appeal. He was a handsome, open-faced guy. When he saw Madeline, he threw down his sombrero and jumped towards her, grabbing her hands. His sudden force not only startled her but also painfully reminded her of something she wanted to forget.
This cowboy bent his head and kissed her hands and wrung them, and when he straightened up he was crying.
This cowboy lowered his head, kissed her hands, and held them tightly, and when he stood up straight, tears were streaming down his face.
“Miss Hammond, she’s safe an’ almost well, an’ what I feared most ain’t so, thank God,” he cried. “Sure I’ll never be able to pay you for all you’ve done for her. She’s told me how she was dragged down here, how Gene tried to save her, how you spoke up for Gene an’ her, too, how Monty at the last throwed his guns. Poor Monty! We were good friends, Monty an’ I. But it wasn’t friendship for me that made Monty stand in there. He would have saved her, anyway. Monty Price was the whitest man I ever knew. There’s Nels an’ Nick an’ Gene, he’s been some friend to me; but Monty Price was—he was grand. He never knew, any more than you or Bill, here, or the boys, what Bonita was to me.”
“Miss Hammond is safe and almost okay, and what I feared the most isn’t true, thank God,” he said. “I’ll never be able to repay you for everything you’ve done for her. She told me how she was brought down here, how Gene tried to save her, how you defended Gene and her as well, and how Monty ultimately threw down his guns. Poor Monty! We were good friends, Monty and I. But it wasn’t friendship that made Monty stand up for her. He would have saved her regardless. Monty Price was the best man I ever knew. Nels, Nick, and Gene have been good friends to me too, but Monty Price was—he was something special. He never knew, just like you, Bill, and the guys, what Bonita meant to me.”
Stillwell’s kind and heavy hand fell upon the cowboy’s shoulder.
Stillwell’s gentle but firm hand rested on the cowboy’s shoulder.
“Danny, what’s all this queer gab?” he asked. “An’ you’re takin’ some liberty with Miss Hammond, who never seen you before. Sure I’m makin’ allowance fer amazin’ strange talk. I see you’re not drinkin’. Mebbe you’re plumb locoed. Come, ease up now an’ talk sense.”
“Danny, what’s all this strange talk?” he asked. “And you’re getting a bit too familiar with Miss Hammond, who has never seen you before. I’ll excuse the weird conversation for now. I see you’re not drinking. Maybe you’re just a bit crazy. Come on, relax and talk sensibly.”
The cowboy’s fine, frank face broke into a smile. He dashed the tears from his eyes. Then he laughed. His laugh had a pleasant, boyish ring—a happy ring.
The cowboy's handsome, open face lit up with a smile. He wiped the tears from his eyes. Then he laughed. His laugh had a cheerful, youthful tone—a joyful sound.
“Bill, old pal, stand bridle down a minute, will you?” Then he bowed to Madeline. “I beg your pardon, Miss Hammond, for seemin’ rudeness. I’m Danny Mains. An’ Bonita is my wife. I’m so crazy glad she’s safe an’ unharmed—so grateful to you that—why, sure it’s a wonder I didn’t kiss you outright.”
“Bill, old friend, hold on a second, will you?” Then he bowed to Madeline. “I'm sorry, Miss Hammond, if I came off as rude. I’m Danny Mains. And Bonita is my wife. I'm so incredibly glad she’s safe and unharmed—so grateful to you that—well, it's a miracle I didn't just kiss you right here.”
“Bonita’s your wife!” ejaculated Stillwell.
“Bonita’s your wife!” shouted Stillwell.
“Sure. We’ve been married for months,” replied Danny, happily. “Gene Stewart did it. Good old Gene, he’s hell on marryin’. I guess maybe I haven’t come to pay him up for all he’s done for me! You see, I’ve been in love with Bonita for two years. An’ Gene—you know, Bill, what a way Gene has with girls—he was—well, he was tryin’ to get Bonita to have me.”
“Sure. We’ve been married for months,” Danny replied happily. “Gene Stewart made it happen. Good old Gene, he really knows how to set people up! I guess I haven’t come to pay him back for everything he’s done for me! You see, I’ve been in love with Bonita for two years. And Gene—you know how he is with girls—he was trying to get Bonita to go out with me.”
Madeline’s quick, varying emotions were swallowed up in a boundless gladness. Something dark, deep, heavy, and somber was flooded from her heart. She had a sudden rich sense of gratitude toward this smiling, clean-faced cowboy whose blue eyes flashed through tears.
Madeline’s sudden, shifting emotions were overwhelmed by a vast happiness. Something dark, deep, heavy, and gloomy was released from her heart. She experienced a sudden, intense feeling of gratitude toward this smiling, fresh-faced cowboy whose blue eyes sparkled through tears.
“Danny Mains!” she said, tremulously and smilingly. “If you are as glad as your news has made me—if you really think I merit such a reward—you may kiss me outright.”
“Danny Mains!” she said, nervously but with a smile. “If you’re as happy as your news has made me—if you truly believe I deserve such a reward—you can kiss me right now.”
With a bashful wonder, but with right hearty will, Danny Mains availed himself of this gracious privilege. Stillwell snorted. The signs of his phenomenal smile were manifest, otherwise Madeline would have thought that snort an indication of furious disapproval.
With a shy sense of wonder, but with genuine enthusiasm, Danny Mains took advantage of this generous opportunity. Stillwell snorted. The signs of his extraordinary smile were clear; otherwise, Madeline would have interpreted that snort as a sign of strong disapproval.
“Bill, straddle a chair,” said Danny. “You’ve gone back a heap these last few months, frettin’ over your bad boys, Danny an’ Gene. You’ll need support under you while I’m throwin’ my yarn. Story of my life, Bill.” He placed a chair for Madeline. “Miss Hammond, beggin’ your pardon again, I want you to listen, also. You’ve the face an’ eyes of a woman who loves to hear of other people’s happiness. Besides, somehow, it’s easy for me to talk lookin’ at you.”
“Bill, straddle a chair,” said Danny. “You’ve gone back a lot these last few months, worrying about your troublemakers, Danny and Gene. You’ll need some support while I’m sharing my story. It’s the story of my life, Bill.” He set up a chair for Madeline. “Miss Hammond, I apologize again, but I want you to listen too. You have the face and eyes of someone who enjoys hearing about other people’s happiness. Plus, somehow, it’s easy for me to talk when I’m looking at you.”
His manner subtly changed then. Possibly it took on a little swagger; certainly he lost the dignity that he had shown under stress of feeling; he was now more like a cowboy about to boast or affect some stunning maneuver. Walking off the porch, he stood before the weary horse and burro.
His attitude shifted subtly then. Maybe it had a bit of swagger; definitely, he lost the dignity he had displayed during stressful moments; he now seemed more like a cowboy ready to brag or pull off some impressive stunt. Stepping off the porch, he faced the tired horse and burro.
“Played out!” he exclaimed.
"That's so played out!" he exclaimed.
Then with the swift violence so characteristic of men of his class he slipped the pack from the burro and threw saddle and bridle from the horse.
Then, with the quick intensity typical of men from his background, he removed the pack from the donkey and tossed the saddle and bridle off the horse.
“There! See ’em! Take a look at the last dog-gone weight you ever packed! You’ve been some faithful to Danny Mains. An’ Danny Mains pays! Never a saddle again or a strap or a halter or a hobble so long as you live! So long as you live nothin’ but grass an’ clover, an’ cool water in shady places, an’ dusty swales to roll in an’ rest an’ sleep!”
“There! Look at them! Take a look at the last weight you’ll ever carry! You’ve been loyal to Danny Mains. And Danny Mains pays! You’ll never have to deal with a saddle or a strap or a halter or a hobble for the rest of your life! For the rest of your life, all you’ll have is grass and clover, and cool water in shady spots, and dusty areas to roll around in and rest and sleep!”
Then he untied the pack and, taking a small, heavy sack from it, he came back upon the porch. Deliberately he dumped the contents of the sack at Stillwell’s feet. Piece after piece of rock thumped upon the floor. The pieces were sharp, ragged, evidently broken from a ledge; the body of them was white in color, with yellow veins and bars and streaks. Stillwell grasped up one rock after another, stared and stuttered, put the rocks to his lips, dug into them with his shaking fingers; then he lay back in his chair, head against the wall, and as he gaped at Danny the old smile began to transform his face.
Then he untied the pack and, taking a small, heavy sack from it, he came back onto the porch. Slowly, he dumped the contents of the sack at Stillwell’s feet. Piece after piece of rock thudded onto the floor. The pieces were sharp and jagged, clearly broken from a ledge; they were white with yellow veins and stripes. Stillwell picked up one rock after another, stared and stammered, pressed the rocks to his lips, and dug into them with his shaking fingers; then he leaned back in his chair, head against the wall, and as he looked at Danny, the old smile started to reshape his face.
“Lord, Danny if you hevn’t been an’ gone an’ struck it rich!”
“Lord, Danny, if you haven't been and gone and struck it rich!”
Danny regarded Stillwell with lofty condescension.
Danny looked at Stillwell with high-handed disdain.
“Some rich,” he said. “Now, Bill, what’ve we got here, say, offhand?”
“Some rich,” he said. “Now, Bill, what do we have here, just off the top of your head?”
“Oh, Lord, Danny! I’m afraid to say. Look, Miss Majesty, jest look at the gold. I’ve lived among prospectors an’ gold-mines fer thirty years, an’ I never seen the beat of this.”
“Oh, Lord, Danny! I’m scared to say. Look, Miss Majesty, just look at the gold. I’ve been around prospectors and gold mines for thirty years, and I’ve never seen anything like this.”
“The Lost Mine of the Padres!” cried Danny, in stentorian voice. “An’ it belongs to me!”
“The Lost Mine of the Padres!” shouted Danny, in a booming voice. “And it’s mine!”
Stillwell made some incoherent sound as he sat up fascinated, quite beside himself.
Stillwell made some jumbled sound as he sat up, captivated and completely beside himself.
“Bill, it was some long time ago since you saw me,” said Danny. “Fact is, I know how you felt, because Gene kept me posted. I happened to run across Bonita, an’ I wasn’t goin’ to let her ride away alone, when she told me she was in trouble. We hit the trail for the Peloncillos. Bonita had Gene’s horse, an’ she was to meet him up on the trail. We got to the mountains all right, an’ nearly starved for a few days till Gene found us. He had got in trouble himself an’ couldn’t fetch much with him.
“Bill, it’s been a while since you last saw me,” Danny said. “Honestly, I know how you felt because Gene kept me in the loop. I happened to run into Bonita, and I wasn’t about to let her ride off alone when she told me she was in trouble. We hit the trail for the Peloncillos. Bonita had Gene’s horse, and she was supposed to meet him up on the trail. We made it to the mountains okay, but we almost starved for a few days until Gene found us. He had gotten into trouble himself and couldn’t bring much with him.”
“We made for the crags an’ built a cabin. I come down that day Gene sent his horse Majesty to you. Never saw Gene so broken-hearted. Well, after he sloped for the border Bonita an’ I were hard put to it to keep alive. But we got along, an’ I think it was then she began to care a little for me. Because I was decent. I killed cougars an’ went down to Rodeo to get bounties for the skins, an’ bought grub an’ supplies I needed. Once I went to El Cajon an’ run plumb into Gene. He was back from the revolution an’ cuttin’ up some. But I got away from him after doin’ all I could to drag him out of town. A long time after that Gene trailed up to the crags an’ found us. Gene had stopped drinkin’, he’d changed wonderful, was fine an’ dandy. It was then he began to pester the life out of me to make me marry Bonita. I was happy, so was she, an’ I was some scared of spoilin’ it. Bonita had been a little flirt, an’ I was afraid she’d get shy of a halter, so I bucked against Gene. But I was all locoed, as it turned out. Gene would come up occasionally, packin’ supplies for us, an’ always he’d get after me to do the right thing by Bonita. Gene’s so dog-gone hard to buck against! I had to give in, an’ I asked Bonita to marry me. Well, she wouldn’t at first—said she wasn’t good enough for me. But I saw the marriage idea was workin’ deep, an’ I just kept on bein’ as decent as I knew how. So it was my wantin’ to marry Bonita—my bein’ glad to marry her—that made her grow soft an’ sweet an’ pretty as—as a mountain quail. Gene fetched up Padre Marcos, an’ he married us.”
“We headed up to the crags and built a cabin. I came down the day Gene sent his horse Majesty to you. I’ve never seen Gene so destroyed. After he took off for the border, Bonita and I really struggled to get by. But we managed, and I think that was when she started to care a bit about me. Because I was decent. I hunted cougars and went down to Rodeo to collect bounties for the skins, and bought the food and supplies I needed. Once, I went to El Cajon and ran right into Gene. He was back from the revolution and causing some trouble. But I escaped after doing everything I could to get him out of town. A long time later, Gene showed up at the crags and found us. Gene had stopped drinking; he had changed a lot and was doing great. That’s when he started pestering me to marry Bonita. I was happy, and so was she, but I was a bit scared of ruining it. Bonita had been a bit of a flirt, and I worried she’d get cold feet, so I resisted Gene. But I was pretty confused, it turned out. Gene would come by sometimes, bringing supplies for us, and he always pushed me to do right by Bonita. It’s hard to resist Gene! I had to give in and I asked Bonita to marry me. At first, she wouldn’t—said she wasn’t good enough for me. But I could tell the idea of marriage was sinking in, and I just kept trying to be as decent as I could. So, my wanting to marry Bonita—my happiness about it—made her grow soft and sweet and beautiful like a mountain quail. Gene brought in Padre Marcos, and he married us.”
Danny paused in his narrative, breathing hard, as if the memory of the incident described had stirred strong and thrilling feeling in him. Stillwell’s smile was rapturous. Madeline leaned toward Danny with her eyes shining.
Danny paused in his story, breathing heavily, as if the memory of what he was describing had stirred up strong and exciting emotions in him. Stillwell's smile was ecstatic. Madeline leaned toward Danny, her eyes sparkling.
“Miss Hammond, an’ you, Bill Stillwell, now listen, for this is strange I’ve got to tell you. The afternoon Bonita an’ I were married, when Gene an’ the padre had gone, I was happy one minute an’ low-hearted the next. I was miserable because I had a bad name. I couldn’t buy even a decent dress for my pretty wife. Bonita heard me, an’ she was some mysterious. She told me the story of the lost mine of the padres, an’ she kissed me an made joyful over me in the strangest way. I knew marriage went to women’s heads, an’ I thought even Bonita had a spell.
“Miss Hammond, and you, Bill Stillwell, listen up because this is pretty strange. The afternoon Bonita and I got married, after Gene and the padre had left, I felt happy one moment and down the next. I was miserable because I had a bad reputation. I couldn't even buy a decent dress for my beautiful wife. Bonita heard me, and she was a bit mysterious. She told me the story of the lost mine of the padres, and she kissed me and celebrated in the oddest way. I knew that marriage could mess with women’s heads, and I thought even Bonita was under some kind of spell.”
“Well, she left me for a little, an’ when she came back she wore some pretty yellow flowers in her hair. Her eyes were big an’ black an’ beautiful. She said some queer things about spirits rollin’ rocks down the canyon. Then she said she wanted to show me where she always sat an’ waited an’ watched for me when I was away.
“Well, she left me for a bit, and when she came back, she had some pretty yellow flowers in her hair. Her eyes were big, black, and beautiful. She said some strange things about spirits rolling rocks down the canyon. Then she mentioned that she wanted to show me where she always sat and waited and watched for me when I was gone.
“She led me around under the crags to a long slope. It was some pretty there—clear an’ open, with a long sweep, an’ the desert yawnin’ deep an’ red. There were yellow flowers on that slope, the same kind she had in her hair—the same kind that Apache girl wore hundreds of years ago when she led the padre to the gold-mine.
“She guided me under the rocky cliffs to a long incline. It was quite beautiful there—clear and open, with a long stretch, and the desert sprawling deep and red. There were yellow flowers on that slope, the same kind she had in her hair—the same kind that Apache girl wore hundreds of years ago when she led the priest to the gold mine.”
“When I thought of that, an’ saw Bonita’s eyes, an’ then heard the strange crack of rollin’ rocks—heard them rattle down an’ roll an’ grow faint—I was some out of my head. But not for long. Them rocks were rollin’ all right, only it was the weatherin’ of the cliffs.
“When I thought about that, and saw Bonita’s eyes, and then heard the strange crack of rolling rocks—heard them rattle down and roll and fade away—I was a bit out of my mind. But not for long. Those rocks were rolling for sure, but it was just the weathering of the cliffs.”
“An’ there under the crags was a gold pocket.
“Then there under the cliffs was a gold pocket.
“Then I was worse than locoed. I went gold-crazy. I worked like seventeen burros. Bill, I dug a lot of goldbearin’ quartz. Bonita watched the trails for me, brought me water. That was how she come to get caught by Pat Hawe an’ his guerrillas. Sure! Pat Hawe was so set on doin’ Gene dirt that he mixed up with Don Carlos. Bonita will tell you some staggerin’ news about that outfit. Just now my story is all gold.”
“Then I completely lost my mind. I went crazy for gold. I worked like crazy, putting in the effort of seventeen donkeys. Bill, I dug a ton of gold-bearing quartz. Bonita kept an eye on the trails for me and brought me water. That’s how she ended up getting caught by Pat Hawe and his rebels. For sure! Pat Hawe was so determined to get back at Gene that he teamed up with Don Carlos. Bonita has some shocking news about that group. Right now, though, my story is all about gold.”
Danny Mains got up and kicked back his chair. Blue lightning gleamed from his eyes as he thrust a hand toward Stillwell.
Danny Mains stood up and pushed back his chair. Electric blue sparks shone in his eyes as he extended his hand toward Stillwell.
“Bill, old pal, put her there—give me your hand,” he said. “You were always my friend. You had faith in me. Well, Danny Mains owes you, an’ he owes Gene Stewart a good deal, an’ Danny Mains pays. I want two pardners to help me work my gold-mine. You an’ Gene. If there’s any ranch hereabouts that takes your fancy I’ll buy it. If Miss Hammond ever gets tired of her range an stock an’ home I’ll buy them for Gene. If there’s any railroad or town round here that she likes I’ll buy it. If I see anythin’ myself that I like I’ll buy it. Go out; find Gene for me. I’m achin’ to see him, to tell him. Go fetch him; an’ right here in this house, with my wife an’ Miss Hammond as witnesses, we’ll draw up a pardnership. Go find him, Bill. I want to show him this gold, show him how Danny Mains pays! An’ the only bitter drop in my cup to-day is that I can’t ever pay Monty Price.”
“Bill, my old friend, give me your hand,” he said. “You were always there for me. You believed in me. Well, Danny Mains owes you, and he owes Gene Stewart a lot too, and Danny Mains pays. I need two partners to help me work my gold mine. You and Gene. If there's any ranch around here that you like, I’ll buy it. If Miss Hammond ever gets tired of her land, cattle, and home, I’ll get those for Gene. If there’s any railroad or town she likes, I’ll buy that too. If I find something I like, I'll buy it. Go out and find Gene for me. I’m eager to see him and tell him. Go get him; and right here in this house, with my wife and Miss Hammond as witnesses, we’ll set up a partnership. Go find him, Bill. I want to show him this gold, show him how Danny Mains pays! And the only bitter part of my day is that I can never pay Monty Price.”
Madeline’s lips tremblingly formed to tell Danny Mains and Stillwell that the cowboy they wanted so much had left the ranch; but the flame of fine loyalty that burned in Danny’s eyes, the happiness that made the old cattleman’s face at once amazing and beautiful, stiffened her lips. She watched the huge Stillwell and the little cowboy, both talking wildly, as they walked off arm in arm to find Stewart. She imagined something of what Danny’s disappointment would be, of the elder man’s consternation and grief, when he learned Stewart had left for the border. At this juncture she looked up to see a strange, yet familiar figure approaching. Padre Marcos! Certain it was that Madeline felt herself trembling. What did his presence mean on this day? He had always avoided meeting her whenever possible. He had been exceedingly grateful for all she had done for his people, his church, and himself; but he had never thanked her in person. Perhaps he had come for that purpose now. But Madeline did not believe so.
Madeline’s lips trembled as she tried to tell Danny Mains and Stillwell that the cowboy they wanted so badly had left the ranch; but the loyalty shining in Danny’s eyes and the joy that lit up the old cattleman’s face made her hold back her words. She watched the huge Stillwell and the small cowboy, both talking excitedly as they walked off arm in arm to find Stewart. She imagined how disappointed Danny would be and how upset and sad the older man would feel when he found out Stewart had left for the border. At that moment, she looked up to see a strange, yet familiar figure coming toward her. Padre Marcos! Madeline felt herself shaking. What did his presence mean today? He had always tried to avoid seeing her whenever he could. He had been very grateful for everything she had done for his people, his church, and himself, but he had never thanked her in person. Maybe he had come for that reason now. But Madeline didn’t think so.
Mention of Padre Marcos, sight of him, had always occasioned Madeline a little indefinable shock; and now, as he stepped to the porch, a shrunken, stooped, and sad-faced man, she was startled.
Mention of Padre Marcos, seeing him, had always given Madeline a little indescribable shock; and now, as he stepped onto the porch, a withered, hunched, and sorrowful man, she was taken aback.
The padre bowed low to her.
The priest bowed low to her.
“Senora, will you grant me audience?” he asked, in perfect English, and his voice was low-toned and grave.
“Ma'am, will you allow me to speak with you?” he asked, in perfect English, and his voice was deep and serious.
“Certainly, Padre Marcos,” replied Madeline; and she led him into her office.
“Of course, Padre Marcos,” replied Madeline, and she took him into her office.
“May I beg to close the doors?” he asked. “It is a matter of great moment, which you might not care to have any one hear.”
“Can I please close the doors?” he asked. “It’s something really important that you might not want anyone else to hear.”
Wonderingly Madeline inclined her head. The padre gently closed one door and then the others.
Wondering, Madeline tilted her head. The priest softly closed one door and then the others.
“Senora, I have come to disclose a secret—my own sinfulness in keeping it—and to implore your pardon. Do you remember that night Senor Stewart dragged me before you in the waiting-room at El Cajon?”
“Ma'am, I’ve come to share a secret—my own wrongdoing in hiding it—and to ask for your forgiveness. Do you remember that night when Mr. Stewart brought me before you in the waiting room at El Cajon?”
“Yes,” replied Madeline.
“Yes,” Madeline replied.
“Senora, since that night you have been Senor Stewart’s wife!”
“Ma'am, ever since that night, you have been Mr. Stewart’s wife!”
Madeline became as motionless as stone. She seemed to feel nothing, only to hear.
Madeline became as still as a statue. She seemed to feel nothing, only to listen.
“You are Senor Stewart’s wife. I have kept the secret under fear of death. But I could keep it no longer. Senor Stewart may kill me now. Ah, Senora, it is very strange to you. You were so frightened that night, you knew not what happened. Senor Stewart threatened me. He forced you. He made me speak the service. He made you speak the Spanish yes. And I, Senora, knowing the deeds of these sinful cowboys, fearing worse than disgrace to one so beautiful and so good as you, I could not do less than marry you truly. At least you should be his wife. So I married you, truly, in the service of my church.”
“You’re Señor Stewart’s wife. I’ve kept this secret out of fear for my life. But I can’t keep it any longer. Señor Stewart might kill me now. Ah, Señora, it’s very strange for you. You were so scared that night, you didn’t know what was happening. Señor Stewart threatened me. He forced you. He made me perform the ceremony. He made you say yes in Spanish. And I, Señora, knowing the actions of these sinful cowboys and fearing something worse than disgrace for someone as beautiful and good as you, I couldn’t do anything less than marry you properly. At least you should be his wife. So I married you, truly, in the service of my church.”
“My God!” cried Madeline, rising.
“Oh my God!” cried Madeline, rising.
“Hear me! I implore you, Senora, hear me out! Do not leave me! Do not look so—so—Ah, Senora, let me speak a word for Senor Stewart. He was drunk that night. He did not know what he was about. In the morning he came to me, made me swear by my cross that I would not reveal the disgrace he had put upon you. If I did he would kill me. Life is nothing to the American vaquero, Senora. I promised to respect his command. But I did not tell him you were his wife. He did not dream I had truly married you. He went to fight for the freedom of my country—Senora, he is one splendid soldier—and I brooded over the sin of my secret. If he were killed I need never tell you. But if he lived I knew that I must some day.
“Hear me! I beg you, Senora, listen to me! Don’t leave me! Don’t look so—so—Ah, Senora, let me speak a word for Senor Stewart. He was drunk that night. He didn’t know what he was doing. The next morning, he came to me and made me swear on my cross that I wouldn’t reveal the disgrace he had brought upon you. If I did, he would kill me. Life means nothing to the American vaquero, Senora. I promised to follow his command. But I didn’t tell him you were his wife. He never imagined I had really married you. He went to fight for the freedom of my country—Senora, he is an incredible soldier—and I wrestled with the sin of my secret. If he were killed, I’d never have to tell you. But if he lived, I knew I would have to someday.
“Strange indeed that Senor Stewart and Padre Marcos should both come to this ranch together. The great change your goodness wrought in my beloved people was no greater than the change in Senor Stewart. Senora, I feared you would go away one day, go back to your Eastern home, ignorant of the truth. The time came when I confessed to Stewart—said I must tell you. Senor, the man went mad with joy. I have never seen so supreme a joy. He threatened no more to kill me. That strong, cruel vaquero begged me not to tell the secret—never to reveal it. He confessed his love for you—a love something like the desert storm. He swore by all that was once sacred to him, and by my cross and my church, that he would be a good man, that he would be worthy to have you secretly his wife for the little time life left him to worship at your shrine. You needed never to know. So I held my tongue, half pitying him, half fearing him, and praying for some God-sent light.
“It's really strange that Señor Stewart and Padre Marcos both arrived at this ranch together. The incredible change your kindness made in my beloved people was no greater than the change in Señor Stewart. Señora, I was worried you might leave one day, go back to your home in the East, unaware of the truth. When the moment came, I confessed to Stewart—said I had to tell you. Señor, the man was overjoyed. I've never seen such pure happiness. He no longer threatened to kill me. That strong, cruel cowboy begged me not to tell the secret—never to reveal it. He admitted his love for you—a love like a desert storm. He swore by everything that was once sacred to him, and by my cross and my church, that he would be a good man, that he would be worthy to have you secretly as his wife for the little time life allowed him to worship at your shrine. You never needed to know. So I stayed silent, half pitying him, half fearing him, and praying for some God-given insight.”
“Senora, it was a fool’s paradise that Stewart lived in. I saw him, often. When he took me up into the mountains to have me marry that wayward Bonita and her lover I came to have respect for a man whose ideas about nature and life and God were at a variance with mine. But the man is a worshiper of God in all material things. He is a part of the wind and sun and desert and mountain that have made him. I have never heard more beautiful words than those in which he persuaded Bonita to accept Senor Mains, to forget her old lovers, and henceforth to be happy. He is their friend. I wish I could tell you what that means. It sounds so simple. It is really simple. All great things are so. For Senor Stewart it was natural to be loyal to his friend, to have a fine sense of the honor due to a woman who had loved and given, to bring about their marriage, to succor them in their need and loneliness. It was natural for him never to speak of them. It would have been natural for him to give his life in their defense if peril menaced them. Senora, I want you to understand that to me the man has the same stability, the same strength, the same elements which I am in the habit of attributing to the physical life around me in this wild and rugged desert.”
“Ma'am, Stewart lived in a delusional paradise. I saw him often. When he took me up into the mountains to have me marry that rebellious Bonita and her lover, I came to respect a man whose views on nature, life, and God differed from mine. But he truly worships God in all material things. He is part of the wind, sun, desert, and mountains that shaped him. I've never heard more beautiful words than those he used to persuade Bonita to accept Señor Mains, to forget her old lovers, and to be happy from now on. He is their friend. I wish I could explain what that means. It sounds simple. It is simple. All great things are. For Señor Stewart, being loyal to his friend, having a strong sense of honor for a woman who loved and gave, helping them get married, and supporting them in their need and loneliness came naturally. It felt natural for him to never speak of them. It would have been natural for him to risk his life to protect them if they were in danger. Ma'am, I want you to know that to me, this man has the same stability, the same strength, and the same qualities that I associate with the physical life around me in this wild and rugged desert.”
Madeline listened as one under a spell. It was not only that this soft-voiced, eloquent priest knew how to move the heart, stir the soul; but his defense, his praise of Stewart, if they had been couched in the crude speech of cowboys, would have been a glory to her.
Madeline listened as if she were enchanted. It wasn't just that this gentle, articulate priest could touch the heart and inspire the soul; even if his defense and praise of Stewart had been expressed in the rough language of cowboys, it would have still been a source of pride for her.
“Senora, I pray you, do not misunderstand my mission. Beyond my confession to you I have only a duty to tell you of the man whose wife you are. But I am a priest and I can read the soul. The ways of God are inscrutable. I am only a humble instrument. You are a noble woman, and Senor Stewart is a man of desert iron forged anew in the crucible of love. Quien sabe? Senor Stewart swore he would kill me if I betrayed him. But he will not lift his hand against me. For the man bears you a very great and pure love, and it has changed him. I no longer fear his threat, but I do fear his anger, should he ever know I spoke of his love, of his fool’s paradise. I have watched his dark face turned to the sun setting over the desert. I have watched him lift it to the light of the stars. Think, my gracious and noble lady, think what is his paradise? To love you above the spirit of the flesh; to know you are his wife, his, never to be another’s except by his sacrifice; to watch you with a secret glory of joy and pride; to stand, while he might, between you and evil; to find his happiness in service; to wait, with never a dream of telling you, for the hour to come when to leave you free he must go out and get himself shot! Senora, that is beautiful, it is sublime, it is terrible. It has brought me to you with my confession. I repeat, Senora, the ways of God are inscrutable. What is the meaning of your influence upon Senor Stewart? Once he was merely an animal, brutal, unquickened; now he is a man—I have not seen his like! So I beseech you in my humble office as priest, as a lover of mankind, before you send Stewart to his death, to be sure there is here no mysterious dispensation of God. Love, that mighty and blessed and unknown thing, might be at work. Senora, I have heard that somewhere in the rich Eastern cities you are a very great lady. I know you are good and noble. That is all I want to know. To me you are only a woman, the same as Senor Stewart is only a man. So I pray you, Senora, before you let Stewart give you freedom at such cost be sure you do not want his love, lest you cast away something sweet and ennobling which you yourself have created.”
“Ma'am, please don’t misunderstand my purpose. Aside from confessing to you, my duty is to tell you about the man whose wife you are. But I’m a priest, and I can see into the soul. The ways of God are mysterious. I’m just a humble instrument. You are a noble woman, and Mr. Stewart is a man of strong character, reshaped by love. Who knows? Mr. Stewart vowed to kill me if I betrayed him. But he won’t lay a hand on me, because he has a very deep and pure love for you, and it has transformed him. I no longer fear his threat, but I'm afraid of his anger if he ever finds out that I spoke about his love, about his illusion of happiness. I've seen his dark face turned towards the sunset in the desert. I've watched him lift it towards the stars. Think, my gracious and noble lady, what is his paradise? To love you above all else; to know you are his wife, his alone, never to be anyone else’s, except through his sacrifice; to watch you with a hidden joy and pride; to protect you from harm; to find happiness in serving you; to wait, never dreaming of telling you, for the moment when he must sacrifice himself for your freedom! Ma'am, that is beautiful, sublime, and terrible. It has brought me to you with my confession. I repeat, ma'am, the ways of God are mysterious. What does your influence mean to Mr. Stewart? Once he was just a beast, brutal and unrefined; now he’s a man—I’ve never seen anyone like him! So I plead with you, in my humble role as priest, as a lover of humanity, before you send Stewart to his death, make sure this isn’t some mysterious plan of God. Love, that powerful, blessed, and unknown force, might be at work. Ma'am, I’ve heard that in the wealthy Eastern cities, you are a very important lady. I know you are good and noble. That’s all I need to know. To me, you are just a woman, as Mr. Stewart is just a man. So I ask you, ma'am, before you let Stewart set you free at such a huge cost, be sure you don’t want his love, or you might throw away something precious and uplifting that you’ve created together.”
XXIII. The Light of Western Stars
Blinded, like a wild creature, Madeline Hammond ran to her room. She felt as if a stroke of lightning had shattered the shadowy substance of the dream she had made of real life. The wonder of Danny Mains’s story, the strange regret with which she had realized her injustice to Stewart, the astounding secret as revealed by Padre Marcos—these were forgotten in the sudden consciousness of her own love.
Blinded like a wild animal, Madeline Hammond raced to her room. It felt like a bolt of lightning had broken apart the shadowy fabric of the dream she'd created out of her real life. The amazement of Danny Mains's story, the unusual regret she felt for the wrongs she'd done to Stewart, the incredible secret revealed by Padre Marcos—these were all forgotten in the sudden awareness of her own love.
Madeline fled as if pursued. With trembling hands she locked the doors, drew the blinds of the windows that opened on the porch, pushed chairs aside so that she could pace the length of her room. She was now alone, and she walked with soft, hurried, uneven steps. She could be herself here; she needed no mask; the long habit of serenely hiding the truth from the world and from herself could be broken. The seclusion of her darkened chamber made possible that betrayal of herself to which she was impelled.
Madeline ran away as if she was being chased. With shaking hands, she locked the doors, closed the blinds on the windows facing the porch, and pushed chairs aside so she could walk back and forth in her room. She was now alone, moving with quick, uncertain steps. Here, she could be herself; she didn’t need a facade. The long-standing habit of calmly hiding the truth from the world and from herself could finally be shattered. The privacy of her darkened room allowed for the self-betrayal she felt compelled to act on.
She paused in her swift pacing to and fro. She liberated the thought that knocked at the gates of her mind. With quivering lips she whispered it. Then she spoke aloud:
She stopped her quick back-and-forth pacing. She let out the thought that was tapping at her mind. With trembling lips, she whispered it. Then she said it out loud:
“I will say it—hear it. I—I love him!”
“I'll say it—listen up. I—I love him!”
“I love him!” she repeated the astounding truth, but she doubted her identity.
“I love him!” she repeated the shocking truth, but she questioned her own identity.
“Am I still Madeline Hammond? What has happened? Who am I?” She stood where the light from one unclosed window fell upon her image in the mirror. “Who is this woman?”
“Am I still Madeline Hammond? What’s happened? Who am I?” She stood where the light from one open window fell on her reflection in the mirror. “Who is this woman?”
She expected to see a familiar, dignified person, a quiet, unruffled figure, a tranquil face with dark, proud eyes and calm, proud lips. No, she did not see Madeline Hammond. She did not see any one she knew. Were her eyes, like her heart, playing her false? The figure before her was instinct with pulsating life. The hands she saw, clasped together, pressed deep into a swelling bosom that heaved with each panting breath. The face she saw—white, rapt, strangely glowing, with parted, quivering lips, with great, staring, tragic eyes—this could not be Madeline Hammond’s face.
She expected to see a familiar, dignified person—a calm, composed figure with a serene face, dark, proud eyes, and steady lips. No, she did not see Madeline Hammond. She didn’t recognize anyone. Were her eyes, like her heart, deceiving her? The figure in front of her was alive with energy. The hands she saw, clasped together, pressed deep into a full chest that rose and fell with each heavy breath. The face she saw—pale, entranced, strangely radiant, with parted, trembling lips and wide, haunted eyes—could not belong to Madeline Hammond.
Yet as she looked she knew no fancy could really deceive her, that she was only Madeline Hammond come at last to the end of brooding dreams. She swiftly realized the change in her, divined its cause and meaning, accepted it as inevitable, and straightway fell back again into the mood of bewildering amaze.
Yet as she looked, she knew no fantasy could truly fool her, that she was just Madeline Hammond finally at the end of her daydreams. She quickly understood the change within her, figured out its cause and significance, accepted it as unavoidable, and immediately slipped back into a state of confusing wonder.
Calmness was unattainable. The surprise absorbed her. She could not go back to count the innumerable, imperceptible steps of her undoing. Her old power of reflecting, analyzing, even thinking at all, seemed to have vanished in a pulse-stirring sense of one new emotion. She only felt all her instinctive outward action that was a physical relief, all her involuntary inner strife that was maddening, yet unutterably sweet; and they seemed to be just one bewildering effect of surprise.
Calmness felt impossible. The shock took over her. She couldn't go back to tally the countless, unnoticed steps leading to her downfall. Her ability to reflect, analyze, and even think seemed to have disappeared in a wave of a new emotion. All she felt was her instinctive outward actions, which provided a physical relief, and her involuntary inner turmoil, which was frustrating yet profoundly sweet; they felt like just one confusing result of surprise.
In a nature like hers, where strength of feeling had long been inhibited as a matter of training, such a transforming surprise as sudden consciousness of passionate love required time for its awakening, time for its sway.
In a nature like hers, where strong emotions had long been suppressed as a result of conditioning, such a life-changing surprise as the sudden awareness of passionate love needed time to develop, time for its influence to take hold.
By and by that last enlightening moment came, and Madeline Hammond faced not only the love in her heart, but the thought of the man she loved.
By and by, that final enlightening moment arrived, and Madeline Hammond faced not just the love in her heart, but also the thought of the man she loved.
Suddenly, as she raged, something in her—this dauntless new personality—took arms against indictment of Gene Stewart. Her mind whirled about him and his life. She saw him drunk, brutal; she saw him abandoned, lost. Then out of the picture she had of him thus slowly grew one of a different man—weak, sick, changed by shock, growing strong, strangely, spiritually altered, silent, lonely like an eagle, secretive, tireless, faithful, soft as a woman, hard as iron to endure, and at the last noble.
Suddenly, as she fumed, something inside her—this fearless new version of herself—reacted against blaming Gene Stewart. Her thoughts spun around him and his life. She pictured him drunk and violent; she saw him abandoned and lost. Then, from the image she had of him, a different man slowly emerged—weak, sick, shaken by trauma, becoming stronger, oddly, spiritually transformed, quiet, isolated like an eagle, secretive, relentless, loyal, gentle as a woman, tough as iron to withstand, and ultimately noble.
She softened. In a flash her complex mood changed to one wherein she thought of the truth, the beauty, the wonder of Stewart’s uplifting. Humbly she trusted that she had helped him to climb. That influence had been the best she had ever exerted. It had wrought magic in her own character. By it she had reached some higher, nobler plane of trust in man. She had received infinitely more than she had given.
She relaxed. In an instant, her complicated feelings shifted to thoughts of the truth, the beauty, and the wonder of Stewart’s uplifting. She quietly hoped that she had helped him rise. That influence was the best she had ever had. It had transformed her own character. Because of it, she had attained a higher, nobler level of trust in people. She had received so much more than she had given.
Her swiftly flying memory seemed to assort a vast mine of treasures of the past. Of that letter Stewart had written to her brother she saw vivid words. But ah! she had known, and if it had not made any difference then, now it made all in the world. She recalled how her loosened hair had blown across his lips that night he had ridden down from the mountains carrying her in his arms. She recalled the strange joy of pride in Stewart’s eyes when he had suddenly come upon her dressed to receive her Eastern guests in the white gown with the red roses at her breast.
Her quickly moving memory seemed to bring up a treasure trove of the past. She saw clear words from that letter Stewart had written to her brother. But, oh! she had known, and if it hadn’t mattered back then, it mattered more than anything now. She remembered how her loose hair had brushed against his lips that night he rode down from the mountains carrying her in his arms. She remembered the strange pride and joy in Stewart’s eyes when he unexpectedly saw her dressed to welcome her Eastern guests in the white gown with the red roses on her chest.
Swiftly as they had come these dreamful memories departed. There was to be no rest for her mind. All she had thought and felt seemed only to presage a tumult.
Swiftly as they had come, these dreamy memories faded away. There would be no peace for her mind. Everything she had thought and felt seemed only to signal an upcoming storm.
Heedless, desperate, she cast off the last remnant of self-control, turned from the old proud, pale, cold, self-contained ghost of herself to face this strange, strong, passionate woman. Then, with hands pressed to her beating heart, with eyes shut, she listened to the ringing trip-hammer voice of circumstance, of truth, of fatality. The whole story was revealed, simple enough in the sum of its complicated details, strange and beautiful in part, remorseless in its proof of great love on Stewart’s side, in dreaming blindness on her own, and, from the first fatal moment to the last, prophetic of tragedy.
Heedless and desperate, she let go of her last bit of self-control, turning away from the old, proud, pale, cold version of herself to confront this strange, strong, passionate woman. Then, with her hands pressed to her racing heart and her eyes closed, she listened to the ringing, relentless voice of circumstance, of truth, of fate. The entire story unfolded, simple enough in the sum of its complicated details—strange and beautiful in parts, yet unforgiving in its evidence of great love on Stewart’s side and of her own blind dreaming, foretelling tragedy from the very first moment to the last.
Madeline, like a prisoner in a cell, began again to pace to and fro.
Madeline, like someone trapped in a cell, started pacing back and forth again.
“Oh, it is all terrible!” she cried. “I am his wife. His wife! That meeting with him—the marriage—then his fall, his love, his rise, his silence, his pride! And I can never be anything to him. Could I be anything to him? I, Madeline Hammond? But I am his wife, and I love him! His wife! I am the wife of a cowboy! That might be undone. Can my love be undone? Ah, do I want anything undone? He is gone. Gone! Could he have meant—I will not, dare not think of that. He will come back. No, he never will come back. Oh, what shall I do?”
“Oh, it’s all terrible!” she exclaimed. “I am his wife. His wife! That meeting with him—the wedding—then his downfall, his love, his success, his silence, his pride! And I can never mean anything to him. Could I ever mean anything to him? I, Madeline Hammond? But I am his wife, and I love him! His wife! I’m the wife of a cowboy! That could change. Can my love change? Ah, do I want anything to change? He is gone. Gone! Could he have meant—I won’t, I can’t think about that. He will come back. No, he will never come back. Oh, what will I do?”
For Madeline Hammond the days following that storm of feeling were leaden-footed, endless, hopeless—a long succession of weary hours, sleepless hours, passionate hours, all haunted by a fear slowly growing into torture, a fear that Stewart had crossed the border to invite the bullet which would give her freedom. The day came when she knew this to be true. The spiritual tidings reached her, not subtly as so many divinations had come, but in a clear, vital flash of certainty. Then she suffered. She burned inwardly, and the nature of that deep fire showed through her eyes. She kept to herself, waiting, waiting for her fears to be confirmed.
For Madeline Hammond, the days after that emotional storm felt heavy, endless, and hopeless—a long series of exhausting hours, sleepless hours, passionate hours, all haunted by a fear that was slowly turning into torture, a fear that Stewart had crossed the line to provoke the bullet that would give her freedom. The day came when she realized this was true. The spiritual news hit her, not quietly like so many other insights, but in a clear, powerful flash of certainty. Then she suffered. She burned inside, and the nature of that deep fire was visible in her eyes. She kept to herself, waiting, waiting for her fears to be confirmed.
At times she broke out in wrath at the circumstances she had failed to control, at herself, at Stewart.
At times she would explode in anger at the situations she couldn't control, at herself, at Stewart.
“He might have learned from Ambrose!” she exclaimed, sick with a bitterness she knew was not consistent with her pride. She recalled Christine’s trenchant exposition of Ambrose’s wooing: “He tell me he love me; he kees me; he hug me; he put me on his horse; he ride away with me; he marry me.”
“He could have learned from Ambrose!” she exclaimed, feeling a bitterness she knew didn’t align with her pride. She remembered Christine’s sharp description of Ambrose’s courtship: “He tells me he loves me; he kisses me; he hugs me; he puts me on his horse; he rides away with me; he marries me.”
Then in the next breath Madeline denied this insistent clamoring of a love that was gradually breaking her spirit. Like a somber shadow remorse followed her, shading blacker. She had been blind to a man’s honesty, manliness, uprightness, faith, and striving. She had been dead to love, to nobility that she had herself created. Padre Marcos’s grave, wise words returned to haunt her. She fought her bitterness, scorned her intelligence, hated her pride, and, weakening, gave up more and more to a yearning, hopeless hope.
Then in the next moment, Madeline rejected this persistent sound of a love that was slowly breaking her spirit. Like a dark shadow, regret followed her, growing darker. She had been blind to a man's honesty, strength, integrity, faith, and effort. She had been numb to love and to the nobility she had created herself. Padre Marcos's serious, insightful words came back to haunt her. She battled her bitterness, dismissed her intelligence, hated her pride, and, feeling weaker, surrendered more and more to a longing, a hopeless hope.
She had shunned the light of the stars as she had violently dismissed every hinting suggestive memory of Stewart’s kisses. But one night she went deliberately to her window. There they shone. Her stars! Beautiful, passionless as always, but strangely closer, warmer, speaking a kinder language, helpful as they had never been, teaching her now that regret was futile, revealing to her in their one grand, blazing task the supreme duty of life—to be true.
She had turned away from the light of the stars just as she had forcefully rejected any suggestive memories of Stewart’s kisses. But one night, she purposely went to her window. There they shone. Her stars! Beautiful, emotionless as always, but oddly closer, warmer, speaking a gentler language, more supportive than they had ever been, teaching her now that regret was pointless, showing her in their one grand, brilliant task the ultimate purpose of life—to be true.
Those shining stars made her yield. She whispered to them that they had claimed her—the West claimed her—Stewart claimed her forever, whether he lived or died. She gave up to her love. And it was as if he was there in person, dark-faced, fire-eyed, violent in his action, crushing her to his breast in that farewell moment, kissing her with one burning kiss of passion, then with cold, terrible lips of renunciation.
Those shining stars made her surrender. She whispered to them that they had captured her—the West had captured her—Stewart had captured her forever, whether he lived or died. She gave in to her love. And it felt like he was right there with her, dark-faced, fire-eyed, intense in his movements, pulling her close in that goodbye moment, kissing her with one fiery kiss of passion, then with cold, devastating lips of farewell.
“I am your wife!” she whispered to him. In that moment, throbbing, exalted, quivering in her first sweet, tumultuous surrender to love, she would have given her all, her life, to be in his arms again, to meet his lips, to put forever out of his power any thought of wild sacrifice.
“I am your wife!” she whispered to him. In that moment, overwhelmed, thrilled, and trembling in her first sweet, intense surrender to love, she would have given everything, her life, to be in his arms again, to kiss him, to forever remove any thought of reckless sacrifice from his mind.
And on the morning of the next day, when Madeline went out upon the porch, Stillwell, haggard and stern, with a husky, incoherent word, handed her a message from El Cajon. She read:
And on the morning of the next day, when Madeline stepped out onto the porch, Stillwell, looking worn and serious, handed her a message from El Cajon with a rough, unclear word. She read:
El Capitan Stewart captured by rebel soldiers in fight at Agua Prieta yesterday. He was a sharpshooter in the Federal ranks. Sentenced to death Thursday at sunset.
El Captain Stewart was captured by rebel soldiers in a battle at Agua Prieta yesterday. He was a sharpshooter in the Federal Army. He was sentenced to death on Thursday at sunset.
XXIV. The Ride
“Stillwell!”
Madeline’s cry was more than the utterance of a breaking heart. It was full of agony. But also it uttered the shattering of a structure built of false pride, of old beliefs, of bloodless standards, of ignorance of self. It betrayed the final conquest of her doubts, and out of their darkness blazed the unquenchable spirit of a woman who had found herself, her love, her salvation, her duty to a man, and who would not be cheated.
Madeline's cry was more than just the sound of a broken heart. It was filled with pain. But it also represented the collapse of a facade made of false pride, outdated beliefs, emotionally hollow standards, and ignorance of self. It revealed the ultimate defeat of her doubts, and from that darkness shone the unstoppable spirit of a woman who had discovered herself, her love, her salvation, her commitment to a man, and who would not be deceived.
The old cattleman stood mute before her, staring at her white face, at her eyes of flame.
The old cattleman stood silently in front of her, looking at her pale face and her fiery eyes.
“Stillwell! I am Stewart’s wife!”
“Stillwell! I’m Stewart’s wife!”
“My Gawd, Miss Majesty!” he burst out. “I knowed somethin’ turrible was wrong. Aw, sure it’s a pity—”
“My gosh, Miss Majesty!” he exclaimed. “I knew something terrible was wrong. Oh, sure it's a shame—”
“Do you think I’ll let him be shot when I know him now, when I’m no longer blind, when I love him?” she asked, with passionate swiftness. “I will save him. This is Wednesday morning. I have thirty-six hours to save his life. Stillwell, send for Link and the car!”
“Do you think I’m going to let him get shot now that I know him, now that I’m not blind to things, now that I love him?” she asked, her voice filled with urgency. “I will save him. This is Wednesday morning. I have thirty-six hours to save his life. Stillwell, get Link and the car!”
She went into her office. Her mind worked with extraordinary rapidity and clearness. Her plan, born in one lightning-like flash of thought, necessitated the careful wording of telegrams to Washington, to New York, to San Antonio. These were to Senators, Representatives, men high in public and private life, men who would remember her and who would serve her to their utmost. Never before had her position meant anything to her comparable with what it meant now. Never in all her life had money seemed the power that it was then. If she had been poor! A shuddering chill froze the thought at its inception. She dispelled heartbreaking thoughts. She had power. She had wealth. She would set into operation all the unlimited means these gave her—the wires and pulleys and strings underneath the surface of political and international life, the open, free, purchasing value of money or the deep, underground, mysterious, incalculably powerful influence moved by gold. She could save Stewart. She must await results—deadlocked in feeling, strained perhaps almost beyond endurance, because the suspense would be great; but she would allow no possibility of failure to enter her mind.
She walked into her office. Her mind was working with incredible speed and clarity. Her plan, which came to her in a flash of insight, required her to carefully word telegrams to Washington, New York, and San Antonio. These were for Senators, Representatives, and influential people in both public and private sectors, men who would remember her and support her to the best of their ability. Never before had her position meant so much to her as it did now. Never in her life had money felt as powerful as it did then. If she had been poor! A chilling fear froze that thought at its start. She pushed away those heartbreaking thoughts. She had power. She had wealth. She would set in motion all the limitless resources these provided her—the connections and influence in the realm of politics and international affairs, the obvious value of money, or the deep, hidden, mysterious influence that money could command. She could save Stewart. She would have to wait for results—caught in a mix of emotions, perhaps almost at her limit, because the suspense would be intense; but she wouldn't let any possibility of failure enter her mind.
When she went outside the car was there with Link, helmet in hand, a cool, bright gleam in his eyes, and with Stillwell, losing his haggard misery, beginning to respond to Madeline’s spirit.
When she stepped outside, the car was there with Link, helmet in hand, a cool, bright sparkle in his eyes, and with Stillwell, shaking off his worn-out misery and starting to connect with Madeline’s energy.
“Link, drive Stillwell to El Cajon in time for him to catch the El Paso train,” she said. “Wait there for his return, and if any message comes from him, telephone it at once to me.”
“Link, take Stillwell to El Cajon so he can catch the El Paso train,” she said. “Wait there for him to come back, and if you get any message from him, call me immediately.”
Then she gave Stillwell the telegrams to send from El Cajon and drafts to cash in El Paso. She instructed him to go before the rebel junta, then stationed at Juarez, to explain the situation, to bid them expect communications from Washington officials requesting and advising Stewart’s exchange as a prisoner of war, to offer to buy his release from the rebel authorities.
Then she gave Stillwell the telegrams to send from El Cajon and drafts to cash in El Paso. She told him to go before the rebel junta, which was stationed in Juarez, to explain the situation, let them know to expect communications from Washington officials about requesting and advising Stewart’s exchange as a prisoner of war, and to offer to buy his release from the rebel authorities.
When Stillwell had heard her through his huge, bowed form straightened, a ghost of his old smile just moved his lips. He was no longer young, and hope could not at once drive away stern and grim realities. As he bent over her hand his manner appeared courtly and reverent. But either he was speechless or felt the moment not one for him to break silence.
When Stillwell heard her, his large, hunched form straightened up, and a hint of his old smile crossed his lips. He wasn’t young anymore, and hope couldn't immediately push aside the harsh and serious realities. As he leaned over her hand, he seemed respectful and formal. But either he was at a loss for words or felt it wasn’t the right moment for him to speak.
He climbed to a seat beside Link, who pocketed the watch he had been studying and leaned over the wheel. There was a crack, a muffled sound bursting into a roar, and the big car jerked forward to bound over the edge of the slope, to leap down the long incline, to shoot out upon the level valley floor and disappear in moving dust.
He climbed into a seat next to Link, who put away the watch he had been looking at and leaned over the wheel. There was a crack, a muffled noise that erupted into a roar, and the large car lurched forward to go over the edge of the slope, to leap down the long incline, to shoot out onto the flat valley floor, and vanished into swirling dust.
For the first time in days Madeline visited the gardens, the corrals, the lakes, the quarters of the cowboys. Though imagining she was calm, she feared she looked strange to Nels, to Nick, to Frankie Slade, to those boys best known to her. The situation for them must have been one of tormenting pain and bewilderment. They acted as if they wanted to say something to her, but found themselves spellbound. She wondered—did they know she was Stewart’s wife? Stillwell had not had time to tell them; besides, he would not have mentioned the fact. These cowboys only knew that Stewart was sentenced to be shot; they knew if Madeline had not been angry with him he would not have gone in desperate fighting mood across the border. She spoke of the weather, of the horses and cattle, asked Nels when he was to go on duty, and turned away from the wide, sunlit, adobe-arched porch where the cowboys stood silent and bareheaded. Then one of her subtle impulses checked her.
For the first time in days, Madeline ventured out to the gardens, the corrals, the lakes, and the cowboys' quarters. Though she tried to appear calm, she worried that she seemed strange to Nels, Nick, Frankie Slade, and the other boys she knew best. They must have been suffering and confused about the situation. They looked like they wanted to say something to her, but were at a loss for words. She wondered if they knew she was Stewart’s wife. Stillwell hadn’t had a chance to tell them; besides, he probably wouldn’t have mentioned it. These cowboys only knew that Stewart was sentenced to be shot; they understood that if Madeline hadn’t been angry with him, he wouldn’t have crossed the border in such a desperate state. She talked about the weather, the horses, and the cattle, asked Nels when he was going on duty, and then turned away from the wide, sunlit, adobe-arched porch where the cowboys stood silently, bareheaded. But then one of her subtle instincts held her back.
“Nels, you and Nick need not go on duty to-day,” she said. “I may want you. I—I—”
“Nels, you and Nick don’t need to go on duty today,” she said. “I might need you. I—I—”
She hesitated, paused, and stood lingering there. Her glance had fallen upon Stewart’s big black horse prancing in a near-by corral.
She hesitated, paused, and stood there for a moment. Her gaze landed on Stewart’s large black horse prancing in a nearby corral.
“I have sent Stillwell to El Paso,” she went on, in a low voice she failed to hold steady. “He will save Stewart. I have to tell you—I am Stewart’s wife!”
“I’ve sent Stillwell to El Paso,” she continued, her voice low but wavering. “He will save Stewart. I have to tell you—I am Stewart’s wife!”
She felt the stricken amaze that made these men silent and immovable. With level gaze averted she left them. Returning to the house and her room, she prepared for something—for what? To wait!
She felt the stunned shock that left these men speechless and frozen. With a steady gaze averted, she walked away from them. Back in the house and her room, she got ready for something—for what? To wait!
Then a great invisible shadow seemed to hover behind her. She essayed many tasks, to fail of attention, to find that her mind held only Stewart and his fortunes. Why had he become a Federal? She reflected that he had won his title, El Capitan, fighting for Madero, the rebel. But Madero was now a Federal, and Stewart was true to him. In crossing the border had Stewart any other motive than the one he had implied to Madeline in his mocking smile and scornful words, “You might have saved me a hell of a lot of trouble!” What trouble? She felt again the cold shock of contact with the gun she had dropped in horror. He meant the trouble of getting himself shot in the only way a man could seek death without cowardice. But had he any other motive? She recalled Don Carlos and his guerrillas. Then the thought leaped up in her mind with gripping power that Stewart meant to hunt Don Carlos, to meet him, to kill him. It would be the deed of a silent, vengeful, implacable man driven by wild justice such as had been the deadly leaven in Monty Price. It was a deed to expect of Nels or Nick Steel—and, aye, of Gene Stewart. Madeline felt regret that Stewart, as he had climbed so high, had not risen above deliberate seeking to kill his enemy, however evil that enemy.
Then a great invisible shadow seemed to loom behind her. She tried to focus on many tasks, only to realize that her mind was consumed with thoughts of Stewart and his situation. Why had he become a Federal? She remembered he had earned his title, El Capitan, by fighting for Madero, the rebel. But now Madero was a Federal, and Stewart was loyal to him. When crossing the border, did Stewart have any motive beyond what he had hinted to Madeline with his mocking smile and scornful words, “You could have saved me a hell of a lot of trouble!” What trouble? She felt again the cold shock of the gun she had dropped in horror. He was referring to the trouble of getting himself shot in the only way a man could seek death without being a coward. But did he have any other motive? She thought of Don Carlos and his guerrillas. Then the thought surged in her mind with powerful clarity that Stewart intended to hunt down Don Carlos, confront him, and kill him. It would be the act of a silent, vengeful, relentless man driven by a wild sense of justice, like the deadly influence Monty Price had felt. This was the kind of thing expected of Nels or Nick Steel—and yes, of Gene Stewart. Madeline regretted that Stewart, having risen so high, had not managed to rise above the deliberate choice to kill his enemy, no matter how evil that enemy was.
The local newspapers, which came regularly a day late from El Paso and Douglas, had never won any particular interest from Madeline; now, however, she took up any copies she could find and read all the information pertaining to the revolution. Every word seemed vital to her, of moving significant force.
The local newspapers, which arrived a day late from El Paso and Douglas, had never really grabbed Madeline's attention before; now, however, she picked up any copies she could find and read all the news about the revolution. Every word felt important to her, holding a powerful significance.
AMERICANS ROBBED BY MEXICAN REBELS
AMERICANS ROBBED BY MEXICAN REBELS
MADERA, STATE OF CHIHUAHUA, MEXICO, July 17.—Having looted the Madera Lumber Company’s storehouses of $25,000 worth of goods and robbed scores of foreigners of horses and saddles, the rebel command of Gen. Antonio Rojas, comprising a thousand men, started westward to-day through the state of Sonora for Agnaymas and Pacific coast points.
MADERA, STATE OF CHIHUAHUA, MEXICO, July 17.—After stealing $25,000 worth of goods from the Madera Lumber Company’s warehouses and robbing numerous foreigners of their horses and saddles, the rebel force led by Gen. Antonio Rojas, consisting of a thousand men, set out westward today through the state of Sonora towards Agnaymas and the Pacific coast.
The troops are headed for Dolores, where a mountain pass leads into the state of Sonora. Their entrance will be opposed by 1,000 Maderista volunteers, who are reported to be waiting the rebel invasion.
The troops are on their way to Dolores, where a mountain pass connects to the state of Sonora. They will face resistance from 1,000 Maderista volunteers, who are said to be waiting for the rebel invasion.
The railroad south of Madera is being destroyed and many Americans who were traveling to Chihuahua from Juarez are marooned here.
The railroad south of Madera is being destroyed, and many Americans who were traveling to Chihuahua from Juarez are stranded here.
General Rojas executed five men while here for alleged offenses of a trivial character. Gen. Rosalio y Hernandez, Lieut. Cipriano Amador, and three soldiers were the unfortunates.
General Rojas executed five men while here for supposed minor offenses. Gen. Rosalio y Hernandez, Lieut. Cipriano Amador, and three soldiers were the unfortunate victims.
WASHINGTON, July 17.—Somewhere in Mexico Patrick Dunne, an American citizen, is in prison under sentence of death. This much and no more the State Department learned through Representative Kinkaid of Nebraska. Consular officers in various sections of Mexico have been directed to make every effort to locate Dunne and save his life.
WASHINGTON, July 17.—Somewhere in Mexico, Patrick Dunne, an American citizen, is on death row. This is all the State Department discovered through Representative Kinkaid of Nebraska. Consular officers across different parts of Mexico have been instructed to do everything possible to find Dunne and save his life.
JUAREZ, MEXICO, July 31.—General Orozco, chief of the rebels, declared to-day:
JUAREZ, MEXICO, July 31.—General Orozco, leader of the rebels, announced today:
“If the United States will throw down the barriers and let us have all the ammunition we can buy, I promise in sixty days to have peace restored in Mexico and a stable government in charge.”
“If the United States removes the barriers and allows us to purchase all the ammunition we need, I promise to restore peace in Mexico and establish a stable government within sixty days.”
CASAS GRANDES, CHIHUAHUA, July 31.—Rebel soldiers looted many homes of Mormons near here yesterday. All the Mormon families have fled to El Paso. Although General Salazar had two of his soldiers executed yesterday for robbing Mormons, he has not made any attempt to stop his men looting the unprotected homes of Americans.
CASAS GRANDES, CHIHUAHUA, July 31.—Rebel soldiers broke into many homes of Mormons near here yesterday. All the Mormon families have escaped to El Paso. Even though General Salazar had two of his soldiers executed yesterday for robbing Mormons, he hasn’t made any effort to stop his men from looting the unprotected homes of Americans.
Last night’s and to-day’s trains carried many Americans from Pearson, Madera, and other localities outside the Mormon settlements. Refugees from Mexico continued to pour into El Paso. About one hundred came last night, the majority of whom were men. Heretofore few men came.
Last night’s and today’s trains brought many Americans from Pearson, Madera, and other areas outside the Mormon settlements. Refugees from Mexico kept arriving in El Paso. About one hundred arrived last night, most of whom were men. Until now, few men had come.
Madeline read on in feverish absorption. It was not a real war, but a starving, robbing, burning, hopeless revolution. Five men executed for alleged offenses of a trivial nature! What chance had, then, a Federal prisoner, an enemy to be feared, an American cowboy in the clutches of those crazed rebels?
Madeline continued to read with intense focus. It wasn't a real war, but rather a desperate, thieving, destructive, and futile uprising. Five men were executed for supposedly minor offenses! What chance did a Federal prisoner have, an enemy to be feared, an American cowboy trapped by those insane rebels?
Madeline endured patiently, endured for long interminable hours while holding to her hope with indomitable will.
Madeline waited patiently, enduring for long, endless hours while clinging to her hope with unwavering determination.
No message came. At sunset she went outdoors, suffering a torment of accumulating suspense. She faced the desert, hoping, praying for strength. The desert did not influence her as did the passionless, unchangeable stars that had soothed her spirit. It was red, mutable, shrouded in shadows, terrible like her mood. A dust-veiled sunset colored the vast, brooding, naked waste of rock and sand. The grim Chiricahua frowned black and sinister. The dim blue domes of the Guadalupes seemed to whisper, to beckon to her. Beyond them somewhere was Stewart, awaiting the end of a few brief hours—hours that to her were boundless, endless, insupportable.
No message came. At sunset, she stepped outside, overwhelmed by a growing suspense. She looked out at the desert, hoping and praying for strength. The desert didn’t affect her like the passionless, unchanging stars that usually calmed her spirit. It was red, ever-changing, cloaked in shadows, as terrible as her mood. A dusty sunset painted the vast, brooding, bare expanse of rock and sand. The grim Chiricahua loomed dark and menacing. The faint blue shapes of the Guadalupes seemed to whisper to her, calling her in. Somewhere beyond them was Stewart, waiting through a few short hours—hours that felt to her endless, boundless, and unbearable.
Night fell. But now the white, pitiless stars failed her. Then she sought the seclusion and darkness of her room, there to lie with wide eyes, waiting, waiting. She had always been susceptible to the somber, mystic unrealities of the night, and now her mind slowly revolved round a vague and monstrous gloom. Nevertheless, she was acutely sensitive to outside impressions. She heard the measured tread of a guard, the rustle of wind stirring the window-curtain, the remote, mournful wail of a coyote. By and by the dead silence of the night insulated her with leaden oppression. There was silent darkness for so long that when the window casements showed gray she believed it was only fancy and that dawn would never come. She prayed for the sun not to rise, not to begin its short twelve-hour journey toward what might be a fatal setting for Stewart. But the dawn did lighten, swiftly she thought, remorselessly. Daylight had broken, and this was Thursday!
Night fell. But now the harsh, unfeeling stars let her down. So, she sought the solitude and darkness of her room, lying there with wide eyes, waiting, waiting. She had always been sensitive to the somber, mystical unrealities of the night, and now her mind slowly turned around a vague and monstrous gloom. Still, she was acutely aware of outside sounds. She heard the steady footsteps of a guard, the rustle of wind moving the curtain, the distant, mournful cry of a coyote. Eventually, the dead silence of the night weighed on her like lead. It was dark for so long that when the window frames showed gray, she thought it was just her imagination and that dawn would never come. She prayed for the sun not to rise, not to start its short twelve-hour journey toward what could be a fatal setting for Stewart. But dawn did break, and she thought swiftly, mercilessly. Daylight had arrived, and this was Thursday!
Sharp ringing of the telephone bell startled her, roused her into action. She ran to answer the call.
The sharp ring of the phone startled her and got her moving. She hurried to answer the call.
“Hello—hello—Miss Majesty!” came the hurried reply. “This is Link talkin’. Messages for you. Favorable, the operator said. I’m to ride out with them. I’ll come a-hummin’.”
“Hey—hey—Miss Majesty!” came the quick reply. “This is Link talking. I’ve got messages for you. The operator said they’re good news. I’m heading out with them. I’ll be there shortly.”
That was all. Madeline heard the bang of the receiver as Stevens threw it down. She passionately wanted to know more, but was immeasurably grateful for so much! Favorable! Then Stillwell had been successful. Her heart leaped. Suddenly she became weak and her hands failed of their accustomed morning deftness. It took her what seemed a thousand years to dress. Breakfast meant nothing to her except that it helped her to pass dragging minutes.
That was it. Madeline heard the phone slam down as Stevens hung up. She desperately wanted to know more, but was incredibly grateful for so much! It was good news! So Stillwell had succeeded. Her heart soared. Suddenly, she felt weak and her hands lost their usual morning skill. It took her what felt like forever to get ready. Breakfast meant nothing to her except that it helped her get through the slow minutes.
Finally a low hum, mounting swiftly to a roar and ending with a sharp report, announced the arrival of the car. If her feet had kept pace with her heart she would have raced out to meet Link. She saw him, helmet thrown back, watch in hand, and he looked up at her with his cool, bright smile, with his familiar apologetic manner.
Finally, a low hum that quickly grew into a roar and ended with a sharp sound announced the arrival of the car. If her feet had moved as fast as her heart, she would have rushed out to greet Link. She saw him, helmet pushed back, watch in hand, and he looked up at her with his cool, bright smile, maintaining his familiar apologetic demeanor.
“Fifty-three minutes, Miss Majesty,” he said, “but I hed to ride round a herd of steers an’ bump a couple off the trail.”
“Fifty-three minutes, Miss Majesty,” he said, “but I had to ride around a herd of cattle and bump a couple off the trail.”
He gave her a packet of telegrams. Madeline tore them open with shaking fingers, began to read with swift, dim eyes. Some were from Washington, assuring her of every possible service; some were from New York; others written in Spanish were from El Paso, and these she could not wholly translate in a brief glance. Would she never find Stillwell’s message? It was the last. It was lengthy. It read:
He handed her a bundle of telegrams. Madeline ripped them open with trembling fingers and started reading quickly with blurry eyes. Some were from Washington, promising her all the help she could get; some were from New York; others, written in Spanish, were from El Paso, and she couldn't fully translate them at a quick glance. Would she ever find Stillwell’s message? It was the last one. It was long. It said:
Bought Stewart’s release. Also arranged for his transfer as prisoner of war. Both matters official. He’s safe if we can get notice to his captors. Not sure I’ve reached them by wire. Afraid to trust it. You go with Link to Agua Prieta. Take the messages sent you in Spanish. They will protect you and secure Stewart’s freedom. Take Nels with you. Stop for nothing. Tell Link all—trust him—let him drive that car.
Bought Stewart’s release. Also arranged for his transfer as a prisoner of war. Both matters are official. He’s safe if we can get word to his captors. Not sure I’ve reached them by phone. Afraid to trust it. You go with Link to Agua Prieta. Take the messages sent to you in Spanish. They will protect you and secure Stewart’s freedom. Take Nels with you. Stop for nothing. Tell Link everything—trust him—let him drive that car.
STILLWELL.
STILLWELL.
The first few lines of Stillwell’s message lifted Madeline to the heights of thanksgiving and happiness. Then, reading on, she experienced a check, a numb, icy, sickening pang. At the last line she flung off doubt and dread, and in white, cold passion faced the issue.
The first few lines of Stillwell’s message filled Madeline with gratitude and joy. But as she kept reading, she felt a sudden stop, a cold, sickening jolt. By the last line, she pushed aside her doubt and fear, and with a fierce, chilling intensity, confronted the situation.
“Read,” she said, briefly, handing the telegram to Link. He scanned it and then looked blankly up at her.
“Read,” she said quickly, handing the telegram to Link. He looked it over and then stared blankly back at her.
“Link, do you know the roads, the trails—the desert between here and Agua Prieta?” she asked.
“Link, do you know the roads, the trails—the desert between here and Agua Prieta?” she asked.
“Thet’s sure my old stampin’-ground. An’ I know Sonora, too.”
“That’s definitely my old stomping ground. And I know Sonora, too.”
“We must reach Agua Prieta before sunset—long before, so if Stewart is in some near-by camp we can get to it in—in time.”
“We need to get to Agua Prieta before sunset—way before, so if Stewart is at a nearby camp we can reach him in time.”
“Miss Majesty, it ain’t possible!” he exclaimed. “Stillwell’s crazy to say thet.”
“Miss Majesty, that's impossible!” he exclaimed. “Stillwell’s crazy to say that.”
“Link, can an automobile be driven from here into northern Mexico?”
“Link, can you drive a car from here into northern Mexico?”
“Sure. But it ’d take time.”
"Sure, but it will take time."
“We must do it in little time,” she went on, in swift eagerness. “Otherwise Stewart may be—probably will be—be shot.”
“We need to do this quickly,” she continued, her eagerness palpable. “Otherwise, Stewart might be—most likely will be—shot.”
Link Stevens appeared suddenly to grow lax, shriveled, to lose all his peculiar pert brightness, to weaken and age.
Link Stevens suddenly seemed to grow lazy and withered, losing all his unique spark and vitality, as he weakened and aged.
“I’m only a—a cowboy, Miss Majesty.” He almost faltered. It was a singular change in him. “Thet’s an awful ride—down over the border. If by some luck I didn’t smash the car I’d turn your hair gray. You’d never be no good after thet ride!”
“I’m just a—a cowboy, Miss Majesty.” He nearly hesitated. It was a noticeable shift in him. “That’s a tough ride—down over the border. If I somehow don’t wreck the car, I’d make your hair go gray. You’d never be the same after that ride!”
“I am Stewart’s wife,” she answered him and she looked at him, not conscious of any motive to persuade or allure, but just to let him know the greatness of her dependence upon him.
“I am Stewart’s wife,” she replied, looking at him without any intention to persuade or entice, just to make him aware of how much she relied on him.
He started violently—the old action of Stewart, the memorable action of Monty Price. This man was of the same wild breed.
He jumped unexpectedly—the familiar move of Stewart, the unforgettable move of Monty Price. This guy was cut from the same wild cloth.
Then Madeline’s words flowed in a torrent. “I am Stewart’s wife. I love him; I have been unjust to him; I must save him. Link, I have faith in you. I beseech you to do your best for Stewart’s sake—for my sake. I’ll risk the ride gladly—bravely. I’ll not care where or how you drive. I’d far rather plunge into a canyon—go to my death on the rocks—than not try to save Stewart.”
Then Madeline’s words came pouring out. “I’m Stewart’s wife. I love him; I haven’t treated him right; I need to save him. Link, I believe in you. Please do your best for Stewart’s sake—for my sake. I’ll gladly take the ride—bravely. I won’t care where or how you drive. I’d much rather dive into a canyon—face death on the rocks—than not try to save Stewart.”
How beautiful the response of this rude cowboy—to realize his absolute unconsciousness of self, to see the haggard shade burn out of his face, the old, cool, devil-may-care spirit return to his eyes, and to feel something wonderful about him then! It was more than will or daring or sacrifice. A blood-tie might have existed between him and Madeline. She sensed again that indefinable brother-like quality, so fine, so almost invisible, which seemed to be an inalienable trait in these wild cowboys.
How beautiful was the response of this rough cowboy—to realize his complete lack of self-awareness, to see the tired look fade from his face, the old, cool, carefree spirit return to his eyes, and to feel something amazing about him then! It was more than just will, courage, or sacrifice. There might have been a blood connection between him and Madeline. She felt again that indescribable brotherly quality, so subtle, so nearly invisible, which seemed to be an inherent trait in these wild cowboys.
“Miss Majesty, thet ride figgers impossible, but I’ll do it!” he replied. His cool, bright glance thrilled her. “I’ll need mebbe half an hour to go over the car an’ to pack on what I’ll want.”
“Miss Majesty, that ride seems impossible, but I'll do it!” he replied. His cool, bright gaze excited her. “I’ll need maybe half an hour to check the car and pack what I’ll need.”
She could not thank him, and her reply was merely a request that he tell Nels and other cowboys off duty to come up to the house. When Link had gone Madeline gave a moment’s thought to preparations for the ride. She placed what money she had and the telegrams in a satchel. The gown she had on was thin and white, not suitable for travel, but she would not risk the losing of one moment in changing it. She put on a long coat and wound veils round her head and neck, arranging them in a hood so she could cover her face when necessary. She remembered to take an extra pair of goggles for Nels’s use, and then, drawing on her gloves, she went out ready for the ride.
She couldn’t thank him, so her response was just a request for him to tell Nels and the other off-duty cowboys to come up to the house. After Link left, Madeline took a moment to think about getting ready for the ride. She placed the money she had and the telegrams into a satchel. The dress she was wearing was thin and white, not ideal for traveling, but she wasn’t willing to waste even a moment changing it. She put on a long coat and wrapped veils around her head and neck, arranging them into a hood so she could cover her face when needed. She remembered to grab an extra pair of goggles for Nels, and then, pulling on her gloves, she stepped outside, ready for the ride.
A number of cowboys were waiting. She explained the situation and left them in charge of her home. With that she asked Nels to accompany her down into the desert. He turned white to his lips, and this occasioned Madeline to remember his mortal dread of the car and Link’s driving.
A group of cowboys was waiting. She explained the situation and left them in charge of her home. With that, she asked Nels to come with her down into the desert. He went pale, which reminded Madeline of his intense fear of the car and Link’s driving.
“Nels, I’m sorry to ask you,” she added. “I know you hate the car. But I need you—may need you, oh! so much.”
“Nels, I’m sorry to ask you,” she added. “I know you hate driving. But I really need you—might need you, oh! so much.”
“Why, Miss Majesty, thet’s shore all a mistaken idee of yours about me hatin’ the car,” he said, in his slow, soft drawl. “I was only jealous of Link; an’ the boys, they made thet joke up on me about bein’ scared of ridin’ fast. Shore I’m powerful proud to go. An’ I reckon if you hedn’t asked me my feelin’s might hev been some hurt. Because if you’re goin’ down among the Greasers you want me.”
“Why, Miss Majesty, that’s definitely a misunderstanding of yours about me hating the car,” he said, in his slow, soft drawl. “I was just jealous of Link; and the guys made that joke about me being scared of riding fast. I'm really proud to go. And I guess if you hadn’t asked me, my feelings might have been a bit hurt. Because if you’re going down among the Greasers, you need me.”
His cool, easy speech, his familiar swagger, the smile with which he regarded her did not in the least deceive Madeline. The gray was still in his face. Incomprehensible as it seemed, Nels had a dread, an uncanny fear, and it was of that huge white automobile. But he lied about it. Here again was that strange quality of faithfulness.
His laid-back, confident way of talking, his casual swagger, and the smile he gave her didn't fool Madeline at all. The gray still showed on his face. As strange as it seemed, Nels had a fear, a bizarre fear, and it was of that massive white car. But he was dishonest about it. Once again, there was that odd sense of loyalty.
Madeline heard the buzz of the car. Link appeared driving up the slope. He made a short, sliding turn and stopped before the porch. Link had tied two long, heavy planks upon the car, one on each side, and in every available space he had strapped extra tires. A huge cask occupied one back seat, and another seat was full of tools and ropes. There was just room in this rear part of the car for Nels to squeeze in. Link put Madeline in front beside him, then bent over the wheel. Madeline waved her hand at the silent cowboys on the porch. Not an audible good-by was spoken.
Madeline heard the sound of the car. Link showed up driving up the hill. He made a quick, sliding turn and stopped in front of the porch. Link had strapped two long, heavy planks to the car, one on each side, and he had secured extra tires in every available space. A large barrel took up one back seat, and another seat was filled with tools and ropes. There was just enough room in the back of the car for Nels to squeeze in. Link put Madeline in the front next to him, then leaned over the wheel. Madeline waved at the silent cowboys on the porch. Not a single audible goodbye was said.
The car glided out of the yard, leaped from level to slope, and started swiftly down the road, out into the open valley. Each stronger rush of dry wind in Madeline’s face marked the increase of speed. She took one glance at the winding cattle-road, smooth, unobstructed, disappearing in the gray of distance. She took another at the leather-garbed, leather-helmeted driver beside her, and then she drew the hood of veils over her face and fastened it round her neck so there was no possibility of its blowing loose.
The car smoothly left the yard, jumped from flat ground to an incline, and quickly headed down the road into the open valley. Each stronger gust of dry wind hitting Madeline's face signaled a boost in speed. She looked once at the winding cattle road, clear and unobstructed, fading into the gray distance. She glanced again at the driver beside her, dressed in leather and wearing a helmet, then pulled the hood of her veil over her face and secured it around her neck so it wouldn't blow loose.
Harder and stronger pressed the wind till it was like sheeted lead forcing her back in her seat. There was a ceaseless, intense, inconceivably rapid vibration under her; occasionally she felt a long swing, as if she were to be propelled aloft; but no jars disturbed the easy celerity of the car. The buzz, the roar of wheels, of heavy body in flight, increased to a continuous droning hum. The wind became an insupportable body moving toward her, crushing her breast, making the task of breathing most difficult. To Madeline the time seemed to fly with the speed of miles. A moment came when she detected a faint difference in hum and rush and vibration, in the ceaseless sweeping of the invisible weight against her. This difference became marked. Link was reducing speed. Then came swift change of all sensation, and she realized the car had slowed to normal travel.
The wind pushed harder and stronger until it felt like a heavy sheet of lead forcing her back into her seat. There was an endless, intense, unbelievably rapid vibration underneath her; sometimes she felt a long swing, as if she were about to be launched into the air, but no jolts interrupted the smooth speed of the car. The buzz and roar of the wheels and the heavy body in motion grew into a constant droning hum. The wind became an overwhelming force pressing against her, making it really hard to breathe. To Madeline, time seemed to race by like the miles. Then, she noticed a slight change in the hum, rush, and vibration, in the constant push of the invisible weight against her. This difference became clear. Link was slowing down. Then, everything shifted quickly, and she realized the car had returned to normal speed.
Madeline removed her hood and goggles. It was a relief to breathe freely, to be able to use her eyes. To her right, not far distant, lay the little town of Chiricahua. Sight of it made her remember Stewart in a way strange to her constant thought of him. To the left inclined the gray valley. The red desert was hidden from view, but the Guadalupe Mountains loomed close in the southwest.
Madeline took off her hood and goggles. It felt great to breathe freely and actually see clearly. To her right, not too far away, was the small town of Chiricahua. Seeing it made her think of Stewart in a way that felt different from how she usually thought of him. To the left was the gray valley. The red desert was out of sight, but the Guadalupe Mountains were nearby to the southwest.
Opposite Chiricahua, where the road forked, Link Stevens headed the car straight south and gradually increased speed. Madeline faced another endless gray incline. It was the San Bernardino Valley. The singing of the car, the stinging of the wind warned her to draw the hood securely down over her face again, and then it was as if she was riding at night. The car lurched ahead, settled into that driving speed which wedged Madeline back as in a vise. Again the moments went by fleet as the miles. Seemingly, there was an acceleration of the car till it reached a certain swiftness—a period of time in which it held that pace, and then a diminishing of all motion and sound which contributed to Madeline’s acute sensation. Uncovering her face, she saw Link was passing another village. Could it be Bernardino? She asked Link—repeated the question.
Opposite Chiricahua, where the road split, Link Stevens drove the car straight south and gradually sped up. Madeline faced another endless gray slope. The hum of the car and the biting wind reminded her to pull the hood securely down over her face again, and then it felt like she was riding at night. The car lurched forward, settling into a speed that pressed Madeline back like a vise. Again, time passed quickly, just like the miles. It seemed like the car sped up until it hit a certain pace—there was a moment when it maintained that speed, and then all motion and sound lessened, sharpening Madeline’s senses. Pulling the hood back, she noticed Link was passing another town. Could it be Bernardino? She asked Link and repeated the question.
“Sure,” he replied. “Eighty miles.”
“Sure,” he replied. “80 miles.”
Link did not this time apologize for the work of his machine. Madeline marked the omission with her first thrill of the ride. Leaning over, she glanced at Link’s watch, which he had fastened upon the wheel in front of his eyes. A quarter to ten! Link had indeed made short work of the valley miles.
Link didn't apologize this time for the operation of his machine. Madeline noticed this absence of an apology with her first rush of excitement from the ride. Leaning over, she looked at Link's watch, which he had attached to the wheel in front of him. A quarter to ten! Link had really sped through the valley miles.
Beyond Bernardino Link sheered off the road and put the car to a long, low-rising slope. Here the valley appeared to run south under the dark brows of the Guadalupes. Link was heading southwest. Madeline observed that the grass began to fail as they climbed the ridge; bare, white, dusty spots appeared; there were patches of mesquite and cactus and scattering areas of broken rock.
Beyond Bernardino, Link veered off the road and drove the car up a long, low slope. Here, the valley seemed to stretch south beneath the dark peaks of the Guadalupes. Link was heading southwest. Madeline noticed that the grass started to thin out as they ascended the ridge; bare, white, dusty patches appeared; there were clumps of mesquite and cactus and scattered areas of broken rock.
She might have been prepared for what she saw from the ridge-top. Beneath them the desert blazed. Seen from afar, it was striking enough, but riding down into its red jaws gave Madeline the first affront to her imperious confidence. All about her ranch had been desert, the valleys were desert; but this was different. Here began the red desert, extending far into Mexico, far across Arizona and California to the Pacific. She saw a bare, hummocky ridge, down which the car was gliding, bounding, swinging, and this long slant seemed to merge into a corrugated world of rock and sand, patched by flats and basins, streaked with canyons and ranges of ragged, saw-toothed stone. The distant Sierra Madres were clearer, bluer, less smoky and suggestive of mirage than she had ever seen them. Madeline’s sustaining faith upheld her in the face of this appalling obstacle. Then the desert that had rolled its immensity beneath her gradually began to rise, to lose its distant margins, to condense its varying lights and shades, at last to hide its yawning depths and looming heights behind red ridges, which were only little steps, little outposts, little landmarks at its gates.
She might have been ready for what she saw from the ridge-top. Below them, the desert blazed. From a distance, it was impressive enough, but riding down into its red jaws shook Madeline's confident demeanor for the first time. All around her, the ranch had been desert; the valleys were desert too, but this was different. Here began the red desert, stretching far into Mexico and across Arizona and California to the Pacific. She saw a bare, uneven ridge, down which the car glided, bounded, and swung, and this long slope seemed to blend into a rugged world of rock and sand, dotted with flats and basins, marked by canyons and jagged, saw-toothed stone. The distant Sierra Madres looked clearer, bluer, less smoky, and less like a mirage than she had ever seen them. Madeline's enduring faith kept her steady in the face of this overwhelming barrier. Then the vast desert beneath her began to rise, losing its distant edges, condensing its varying lights and shades, finally hiding its deep valleys and steep heights behind red ridges, which were just small steps, little outposts, little markers at its entrance.
The bouncing of the huge car, throwing Madeline up, directed her attention and fastened it upon the way Link Stevens was driving and upon the immediate foreground. Then she discovered that he was following an old wagon-road. At the foot of that long slope they struck into rougher ground, and here Link took to a cautious zigzag course. The wagon-road disappeared and then presently reappeared. But Link did not always hold to it. He made cuts, detours, crosses, and all the time seemed to be getting deeper into a maze of low, red dunes, of flat canyon-beds lined by banks of gravel, of ridges mounting higher. Yet Link Stevens kept on and never turned back. He never headed into a place that he could not pass. Up to this point of travel he had not been compelled to back the car, and Madeline began to realize that it was the cowboy’s wonderful judgment of ground that made advance possible. He knew the country; he was never at a loss; after making a choice of direction, he never hesitated.
The bouncing of the huge car tossed Madeline up, catching her attention and focusing it on how Link Stevens was driving and the scenery ahead. She then noticed that he was following an old wagon road. At the bottom of the long slope, they hit rougher ground, and here Link took a careful zigzag route. The wagon road vanished and then reemerged, but Link didn’t always stick to it. He made shortcuts, detours, and seemed to get deeper into a maze of low red dunes, flat canyon beds lined with gravel banks, and rising ridges. Yet Link Stevens pressed on without turning back. He never headed into a place he couldn’t navigate. Up to this point in their journey, he hadn’t needed to back the car up, and Madeline started to realize that it was the cowboy’s incredible judgment of the terrain that made progress possible. He knew the area well; he was never confused, and after choosing a direction, he never hesitated.
Then at the bottom of a wide canyon he entered a wash where the wheels just barely turned in dragging sand. The sun beat down white-hot, the dust arose, there was not a breath of wind; and no sound save the slide of a rock now and then down the weathered slopes and the labored chugging of the machine. The snail pace, like the sand at the wheels, began to drag at Madeline’s faith. Link gave over the wheel to Madeline, and, leaping out, he called Nels. When they untied the long planks and laid them straight in front for the wheels to pass over Madeline saw how wise had been Link’s forethought. With the aid of those planks they worked the car through sand and gravel otherwise impossible to pass.
Then, at the bottom of a wide canyon, he entered a wash where the wheels barely turned in the deep sand. The sun beat down fiercely, dust filled the air, and there wasn’t a breath of wind; the only sounds were the occasional slide of a rock down the weathered slopes and the strained chugging of the machine. The slow pace, like the sand sticking to the wheels, started to wear down Madeline’s confidence. Link handed the wheel to Madeline and jumped out, calling for Nels. When they untied the long planks and laid them out straight in front for the wheels to roll over, Madeline realized how smart Link had been to think ahead. With the help of those planks, they managed to push the car through sand and gravel that would have been impossible to cross otherwise.
This canyon widened and opened into space affording an unobstructed view for miles. The desert sloped up in steps, and in the morning light, with the sun bright on the mesas and escarpments, it was gray, drab, stone, slate, yellow, pink, and, dominating all, a dull rust-red. There was level ground ahead, a wind-swept floor as hard as rock. Link rushed the car over this free distance. Madeline’s ears filled with a droning hum like the sound of a monstrous, hungry bee and with a strange, incessant crinkle which she at length guessed to be the spreading of sheets of gravel from under the wheels. The giant car attained such a speed that Madeline could only distinguish the colored landmarks to the fore, and these faded as the wind stung her eyes.
This canyon widened and opened up, giving an unobstructed view for miles. The desert rose in steps, and in the morning light, with the sun shining bright on the mesas and cliffs, it looked gray, dull, stony, slate-colored, yellow, pink, and, dominating everything, a muted rust-red. There was flat ground ahead, a wind-swept surface as hard as rock. Link sped the car over this open space. Madeline’s ears filled with a droning hum like the sound of a massive, hungry bee and with a strange, constant crinkle that she eventually realized was the sound of sheets of gravel spreading out from under the wheels. The huge car reached such a speed that Madeline could only make out the colorful landmarks ahead, which blurred as the wind stung her eyes.
Then Link began the ascent of the first step, a long, sweeping, barren waste with dunes of wonderful violet and heliotrope hues. Here were well-defined marks of an old wagon-road lately traversed by cattle. The car climbed steadily, surmounted the height, faced another long bench that had been cleaned smooth by desert winds. The sky was an intense, light, steely blue, hard on the eyes. Madeline veiled her face, and did not uncover it until Link had reduced the racing speed. From the summit of the next ridge she saw more red ruin of desert.
Then Link started to climb the first step, a long, sweeping, barren stretch with dunes in beautiful shades of violet and heliotrope. There were clear signs of an old wagon road recently used by cattle. The car moved steadily upward, reached the top, and confronted another long, flat area that the desert winds had polished smooth. The sky was a bright, steely blue, tough on the eyes. Madeline covered her face and didn’t uncover it until Link slowed down. From the top of the next ridge, she saw more red ruins of the desert.
A deep wash crossing the road caused Link Stevens to turn due south. There was a narrow space along the wash just wide enough for the car. Link seemed oblivious to the fact that the outside wheels were perilously close to the edge. Madeline heard the rattle of loosened gravel and earth sliding into the gully. The wash widened and opened out into a sandy flat. Link crossed this and turned up on the opposite side. Rocks impeded the progress of the car, and these had to be rolled out of the way. The shelves of silt, apparently ready to slide with the slightest weight, the little tributary washes, the boulder-strewn stretches of slope, the narrow spaces allowing no more than a foot for the outside wheels, the spear-pointed cactus that had to be avoided—all these obstacles were as nothing to the cowboy driver. He kept on, and when he came to the road again he made up for the lost time by speed.
A deep wash crossing the road forced Link Stevens to turn directly south. There was a narrow stretch alongside the wash just wide enough for the car. Link seemed unaware that the outside wheels were dangerously close to the edge. Madeline heard the rattle of loose gravel and dirt sliding into the gully. The wash widened and opened up into a sandy flat. Link crossed this and climbed up on the other side. Rocks blocked the car’s path, and they had to be rolled out of the way. The shelves of silt, seemingly ready to slide with the slightest weight, the small tributary washes, the boulder-strewn slopes, the narrow spaces offering barely a foot for the outside wheels, and the sharp-pointed cactus to avoid—all these obstacles meant nothing to the cowboy driver. He pressed on, and when he reached the road again, he made up for lost time by speeding.
Another height was reached, and here Madeline fancied that Link had driven the car to the summit of a high pass between two mountain ranges. The western slope of that pass appeared to be exceedingly rough and broken. Below it spread out another gray valley, at the extreme end of which glistened a white spot that Link grimly called Douglas. Part of that white spot was Agua Prieta, the sister town across the line. Madeline looked with eyes that would fain have pierced the intervening distance.
Another height was reached, and here Madeline imagined that Link had driven the car to the top of a high pass between two mountain ranges. The western slope of that pass looked incredibly rough and jagged. Below it lay another gray valley, and at the far end of it glimmered a white spot that Link grimly called Douglas. Part of that white spot was Agua Prieta, the sister town across the border. Madeline looked with eyes that wished they could see through the distance.
The descent of the pass began under difficulties. Sharp stones and cactus spikes penetrated the front tires, bursting them with ripping reports. It took time to replace them. The planks were called into requisition to cross soft places. A jagged point of projecting rock had to be broken with a sledge. At length a huge stone appeared to hinder any further advance. Madeline caught her breath. There was no room to turn the car. But Link Stevens had no intention of such a thing. He backed the car to a considerable distance, then walked forward. He appeared to be busy around the boulder for a moment and returned down the road on the run. A heavy explosion, a cloud of dust, and a rattle of falling fragments told Madeline that her indomitable driver had cleared a passage with dynamite. He seemed to be prepared for every emergency. Madeline looked to see what effect the discovery of Link carrying dynamite would have upon the silent Nels.
The descent of the pass started with challenges. Sharp stones and cactus spikes punctured the front tires, causing them to burst with loud pops. It took time to replace them. They had to use planks to cross the softer spots. A jagged rock needed to be broken with a sledgehammer. Eventually, a massive stone blocked any further progress. Madeline held her breath. There was no space to turn the car around. But Link Stevens wasn't planning on that. He backed the car up quite a distance, then walked forward. He seemed busy around the boulder for a moment before running back down the road. A loud explosion, a cloud of dust, and the sound of falling debris informed Madeline that her unstoppable driver had cleared a path with dynamite. He seemed ready for any situation. Madeline glanced to see how the revelation of Link carrying dynamite would affect the quiet Nels.
“Shore, now, Miss Majesty, there ain’t nothin’ goin’ to stop Link,” said Nels, with a reassuring smile. The significance of the incident had not dawned upon Nels, or else he was heedless of it. After all, he was afraid only of the car and Link, and that fear was an idiosyncrasy. Madeline began to see her cowboy driver with clearer eyes and his spirit awoke something in her that made danger of no moment. Nels likewise subtly responded, and, though he was gray-faced, tight-lipped, his eyes took on the cool, bright gleam of Link’s.
“Sure thing, Miss Majesty, nothing's gonna stop Link,” Nels said with a reassuring smile. He either didn’t realize how serious the situation was or chose to ignore it. After all, he was only afraid of the car and Link, and that fear was just his quirk. Madeline started to see her cowboy driver more clearly, and something about him awakened a sense of courage in her that made danger feel irrelevant. Nels also reacted in his own way, and even though he looked pale and silent, his eyes began to shine with the same cool brightness as Link’s.
Cactus barred the way, rocks barred the way, gullies barred the way, and these Nels addressed in the grim humor with which he was wont to view tragic things. A mistake on Link’s part, a slip of a wheel, a bursting of a tire at a critical moment, an instant of the bad luck which might happen a hundred times on a less perilous ride—any one of these might spell disaster for the car, perhaps death to the occupants. Again and again Link used the planks to cross washes in sand. Sometimes the wheels ran all the length of the planks, sometimes slipped off. Presently Link came to a ditch where water had worn deep into the road. Without hesitation he placed them, measuring distance carefully, and then started across. The danger was in ditching the machine. One of the planks split, sagged a little, but Link made the crossing without a slip.
Cacti blocked the road, rocks blocked the road, and ravines blocked the road, and Nels faced this with the grim humor he often used to cope with tragic situations. A mistake from Link, a wheel slipping, a tire bursting at a crucial moment, or just a moment of bad luck that could happen a hundred times on a less dangerous drive—any of these could mean disaster for the car and possibly death for those inside. Time and again, Link used the planks to get across sandy washes. Sometimes the wheels ran the full length of the planks, other times they slipped off. Soon, Link reached a ditch where water had carved a deep channel in the road. Without hesitation, he set the planks down, measuring the distance carefully, and then started to cross. The real risk was tipping the vehicle. One of the planks cracked and sagged a bit, but Link managed to cross without any mistakes.
The road led round under an overhanging cliff and was narrow, rocky, and slightly downhill. Bidding Madeline and Nels walk round this hazardous corner, Link drove the car. Madeline expected to hear it crash down into the canyon, but presently she saw Link waiting to take them aboard again. Then came steeper parts of the road, places that Link could run down if he had space below to control the car, and on the other hand places where the little inclines ended in abrupt ledges upon one side or a declivity upon the other. Here the cowboy, with ropes on the wheels and half-hitches upon the spurs of rock, let the car slide down.
The road curved under a steep cliff and was narrow, rocky, and slightly downhill. While Madeline and Nels walked around this dangerous bend, Link drove the car. Madeline thought she would hear it crash into the canyon, but soon she saw Link waiting to pick them up again. Then the road became steeper, with sections where Link could speed down if he had enough room to control the car, but there were also spots where the small slopes dropped off into sharp cliffs on one side or a steep drop on the other. Here, the cowboy used ropes on the wheels and secured half-hitches on the rock ledges to let the car slide down.
Once at a particularly bad spot Madeline exclaimed involuntarily, “Oh, time is flying!” Link Stevens looked up at her as if he had been reproved for his care. His eyes shone like the glint of steel on ice. Perhaps that utterance of Madeline’s was needed to liberate his recklessness to its utmost. Certainly he put the car to seemingly impossible feats. He rimmed gullies, he hurdled rising ground, he leaped little breaks in the even road. He made his machine cling like a goat to steep inclines; he rounded corners with the inside wheels higher than the outside; he passed over banks of soft earth that caved in the instant he crossed weak places. He kept on and on, threading tortuous passages through rock-strewn patches, keeping to the old road where it was clear, abandoning it for open spaces, and always going down.
Once at a particularly rough spot, Madeline exclaimed without thinking, “Oh, time is flying!” Link Stevens looked up at her as if he had been scolded for his carelessness. His eyes glinted like steel on ice. Maybe Madeline’s words were just what he needed to unleash his wild side completely. He definitely pushed the car to perform what seemed like impossible stunts. He skimmed along gullies, jumped over rising ground, and leaped over small breaks in the flat road. He made his vehicle grip like a goat on steep hills; he took corners with the inside wheels higher than the outside; he drove over patches of soft earth that crumbled the moment he crossed weak spots. He kept going, navigating through winding paths over rocky areas, sticking to the old road where it was clear, abandoning it for open spaces, and always heading downhill.
At length a mile of clean, brown slope, ridged and grooved like a washboard, led gently down to meet the floor of the valley, where the scant grama-grass struggled to give a tinge of gray. The road appeared to become more clearly defined, and could be seen striking straight across the valley.
At last, a mile of clean, brown slope, ridged and grooved like a washboard, gently sloped down to meet the valley floor, where the sparse grama grass struggled to add a hint of gray. The road seemed to become more defined and could be seen running straight across the valley.
To Madeline’s dismay, that road led down to a deep, narrow wash. It plunged on one side, ascended on the other at a still steeper angle. The crossing would have been laborsome for a horse; for an automobile it was unpassable. Link turned the car to the right along the rim and drove as far along the wash as the ground permitted. The gully widened, deepened all the way. Then he took the other direction. When he made this turn Madeline observed that the sun had perceptibly begun its slant westward. It shone in her face, glaring and wrathful. Link drove back to the road, crossed it, and kept on down the line of the wash. It was a deep cut in red earth, worn straight down by swift water in the rainy seasons. It narrowed. In some places it was only five feet wide. Link studied these points and looked up the slope, and seemed to be making deductions. The valley was level now, and there were nothing but little breaks in the rim of the wash. Link drove mile after mile, looking for a place to cross, and there was none. Finally progress to the south was obstructed by impassable gullies where the wash plunged into the head of a canyon. It was necessary to back the car a distance before there was room to turn. Madeline looked at the imperturbable driver. His face revealed no more than the same old hard, immutable character. When he reached the narrowest points, which had so interested him, he got out of the car and walked from place to place. Once with a little jump he cleared the wash. Then Madeline noted that the farther rim was somewhat lower. In a flash she divined Link’s intention. He was hunting a place to jump the car over the crack in the ground.
To Madeline’s dismay, that road led down to a deep, narrow wash. It dropped steeply on one side and rose at an even steeper angle on the other. Crossing it would have been tricky for a horse; it was impossible for a car. Link turned the car to the right along the edge and drove as far along the wash as the ground allowed. The gully widened and deepened all the way. Then he turned in the opposite direction. As he made this turn, Madeline noticed that the sun had noticeably begun its descent in the west. It shone in her face, glaring and fierce. Link drove back to the road, crossed it, and continued down the line of the wash. It was a deep cut in red earth, worn straight down by fast-moving water during the rainy seasons. It narrowed; in some spots, it was only five feet wide. Link observed these areas and looked up the slope, seeming to draw conclusions. The valley was now level, with only small breaks in the edge of the wash. Link drove mile after mile, searching for a place to cross, but there was none. Eventually, progress south was blocked by impassable gullies where the wash dropped into a canyon. He had to back the car up a bit before there was space to turn around. Madeline looked at the unflappable driver. His face showed nothing more than the same old hard, steady character. When he reached the narrowest points that had caught his interest, he got out of the car and walked around. At one point, he jumped over the wash with a small leap. Then Madeline noticed that the farther rim was slightly lower. In a flash, she understood Link’s intention. He was looking for a spot to jump the car over the gap in the ground.
Soon he found one that seemed to suit him, for he tied his red scarf upon a greasewood-bush. Then, returning to the car, he clambered in, and, muttering, broke his long silence: “This ain’t no air-ship, but I’ve outfiggered thet damn wash.” He backed up the gentle slope and halted just short of steeper ground. His red scarf waved in the wind. Hunching low over the wheel, he started, slowly at first, then faster, and then faster. The great car gave a spring like a huge tiger. The impact of suddenly formed wind almost tore Madeline out of her seat. She felt Nels’s powerful hands on her shoulders. She closed her eyes. The jolting headway of the car gave place to a gliding rush. This was broken by a slight jar, and then above the hum and roar rose a cowboy yell. Madeline waited with strained nerves for the expected crash. It did not come. Opening her eyes, she saw the level valley floor without a break. She had not even noticed the instant when the car had shot over the wash.
Soon he found one that seemed to work for him, as he tied his red scarf onto a greasewood bush. Then, going back to the car, he climbed in and finally broke his long silence by muttering, “This isn’t an airship, but I’ve figured out that damn wash.” He backed up the gentle slope and stopped just short of the steeper ground. His red scarf fluttered in the wind. Hunching down over the wheel, he started off slowly at first, then picked up speed. The big car sprang forward like a huge tiger. The rush of suddenly formed wind nearly knocked Madeline out of her seat. She felt Nels's strong hands on her shoulders. She shut her eyes. The jolting movement of the car shifted to a smooth glide. This was interrupted by a slight bump, and then above the hum and roar came a cowboy yell. Madeline waited, her nerves on edge, for the expected crash. It didn’t come. Opening her eyes, she saw the flat valley floor without a single bump. She hadn’t even noticed when the car had flown over the wash.
A strange breathlessness attacked her, and she attributed it to the celerity with which she was being carried along. Pulling the hood down over her face, she sank low in the seat. The whir of the car now seemed to be a world-filling sound. Again the feeling of excitement, the poignancy of emotional heights, the ever-present impending sense of catastrophe became held in abeyance to the sheer intensity of physical sensations. There came a time when all her strength seemed to unite in an effort to lift her breast against the terrific force of the wind—to draw air into her flattened lungs. She became partly dazed. The darkness before her eyes was not all occasioned by the blood that pressed like a stone mask on her face. She had a sense that she was floating, sailing, drifting, reeling, even while being borne swiftly as a thunderbolt. Her hands and arms were immovable under the weight of mountains. There was a long, blank period from which she awakened to feel an arm supporting her. Then she rallied. The velocity of the car had been cut to the speed to which she was accustomed. Throwing back the hood, she breathed freely again, recovered fully.
A strange breathlessness hit her, and she blamed it on how fast she was being carried along. Pulling the hood down over her face, she sank low in the seat. The whir of the car now felt like a sound that filled the entire world. Again, the rush of excitement, the intensity of deep emotions, and the constant feeling of an impending disaster were set aside by the overwhelming physical sensations. There came a point when all her strength seemed to focus on trying to lift her chest against the fierce force of the wind—to draw air into her flattened lungs. She started to feel a bit dazed. The darkness in front of her eyes wasn’t just from the blood pressing like a heavy mask on her face. She had a sense that she was floating, sailing, drifting, reeling, even while being moved as quickly as a lightning strike. Her hands and arms felt heavy, as if weighed down by mountains. There was a long, blank period before she awoke to find an arm supporting her. Then she gathered herself. The speed of the car had slowed to a pace she was used to. Throwing back the hood, she breathed freely again, completely recovered.
The car was bowling along a wide road upon the outskirts of a city. Madeline asked what place it could be.
The car was cruising down a wide road on the edge of a city. Madeline asked which place it could be.
“Douglas,” replied Link. “An’ jest around is Agua Prieta!”
“Douglas,” Link replied. “And right nearby is Agua Prieta!”
That last name seemed to stun Madeline. She heard no more, and saw little until the car stopped. Nels spoke to some one. Then sight of khaki-clad soldiers quickened Madeline’s faculties. She was on the boundary-line between the United States and Mexico, and Agua Prieta, with its white and blue walled houses, its brown-tiled roofs, lay before her. A soldier, evidently despatched by Nels, returned and said an officer would come at once. Madeline’s attention was centered in the foreground, upon the guard over the road, upon the dry, dusty town beyond; but she was aware of noise and people in the rear. A cavalry officer approached the car, stared, and removed his sombrero.
That last name seemed to shock Madeline. She heard nothing more and saw little until the car stopped. Nels spoke to someone. Then, seeing khaki-clad soldiers brought Madeline back to reality. She was at the border between the United States and Mexico, with Agua Prieta, its white and blue walled houses and brown-tiled roofs, stretching out before her. A soldier, clearly sent by Nels, came back and said an officer would arrive right away. Madeline's focus was on the guard along the road and the dry, dusty town ahead; however, she could hear noise and see people behind her. A cavalry officer walked up to the car, stared, and took off his sombrero.
“Can you tell me anything about Stewart, the American cowboy who was captured by rebels a few days ago?” asked Madeline.
“Can you tell me anything about Stewart, the American cowboy who got captured by rebels a few days ago?” asked Madeline.
“Yes,” replied the officer. “There was a skirmish over the line between a company of Federals and a large force of guerrillas and rebels. The Federals were driven west along the line. Stewart is reported to have done reckless fighting and was captured. He got a Mexican sentence. He is known here along the border, and the news of his capture stirred up excitement. We did all we could to get his release. The guerrillas feared to execute him here, and believed he might be aided to escape. So a detachment departed with him for Mezquital.”
“Yes,” replied the officer. “There was a clash along the border between a group of Federals and a large number of guerrillas and rebels. The Federals were pushed back west along the line. Stewart reportedly fought fiercely but was captured. He received a Mexican sentence. He’s well-known here along the border, and the news of his capture caused a stir. We did everything we could to secure his release. The guerrillas were afraid to execute him here, thinking he might be helped to escape. So a group left with him for Mezquital.”
“He was sentenced to be shot Thursday at sunset—to-night?”
“He was sentenced to be shot Thursday at sunset—to night?”
“Yes. It was rumored there was a personal resentment against Stewart. I regret that I can’t give you definite information. If you are friends of Stewart—relatives—I might find—”
“Yeah. There were rumors about some personal resentment towards Stewart. I wish I could provide you with solid information. If you’re friends or family of Stewart, I might be able to find—”
“I am his wife,” interrupted Madeline. “Will you please read these.” She handed him the telegrams. “Advise me—help me, if you can?”
“I’m his wife,” Madeline cut in. “Could you please read these?” She handed him the telegrams. “Please advise me—help me, if you can?”
With a wondering glance at her the officer received the telegrams. He read several, and whistled low in amaze. His manner became quick, alert, serious.
With a curious look at her, the officer took the telegrams. He read a few and whistled softly in surprise. His demeanor shifted to being quick, alert, and serious.
“I can’t read these written in Spanish, but I know the names signed.” Swiftly he ran through the others.
“I can’t read these written in Spanish, but I recognize the names signed.” He quickly went through the others.
“Why, these mean Stewart’s release has been authorized. They explain mysterious rumors we have heard here. Greaser treachery! For some strange reason messages from the rebel junta have failed to reach their destination. We heard reports of an exchange for Stewart, but nothing came of it. No one departed for Mezquital with authority. What an outrage! Come, I’ll go with you to General Salazar, the rebel chief in command. I know him. Perhaps we can find out something.”
“Why, this means Stewart’s release has been approved. They explain the strange rumors we’ve been hearing around here. Greaser betrayal! For some odd reason, messages from the rebel group have not reached their destination. We heard reports of a deal for Stewart, but nothing happened. No one left for Mezquital with the proper authority. What a scandal! Come on, I’ll go with you to General Salazar, the rebel leader in charge. I know him. Maybe we can find out something.”
Nels made room for the officer. Link sent the car whirring across the line into Mexican territory. Madeline’s sensibilities were now exquisitely alive. The white road led into Agua Prieta, a town of colored walls and roofs. Goats and pigs and buzzards scattered before the roar of the machine. Native women wearing black mantles peeped through iron-barred windows. Men wearing huge sombreros, cotton shirts and trousers, bright sashes round their waists, and sandals, stood motionless, watching the car go by. The road ended in an immense plaza, in the center of which was a circular structure that in some measure resembled a corral. It was a bull-ring, where the national sport of bull-fighting was carried on. Just now it appeared to be quarters for a considerable army. Ragged, unkempt rebels were everywhere, and the whole square was littered with tents, packs, wagons, arms. There were horses, mules, burros, and oxen.
Nels made space for the officer. Link sent the car zooming across the border into Mexican territory. Madeline’s senses were now sharply alive. The white road led into Agua Prieta, a town with colorful walls and roofs. Goats, pigs, and buzzards scattered before the roar of the engine. Local women in black shawls peeked through iron-barred windows. Men wearing large sombreros, cotton shirts and pants, bright sashes around their waists, and sandals stood still, watching the car pass by. The road ended at a large plaza, in the center of which was a circular structure that somewhat resembled a corral. It was a bullring, where the national sport of bullfighting took place. Right now, it seemed to serve as quarters for a sizable army. Ragged, unkempt rebels were everywhere, and the entire square was cluttered with tents, packs, wagons, and weapons. There were horses, mules, donkeys, and oxen.
The place was so crowded that Link was compelled to drive slowly up to the entrance to the bull-ring. Madeline caught a glimpse of tents inside, then her view was obstructed by a curious, pressing throng. The cavalry officer leaped from the car and pushed his way into the entrance.
The place was so packed that Link had to drive slowly up to the entrance of the bullring. Madeline caught a quick look at the tents inside, but then her view was blocked by a curious, pressing crowd. The cavalry officer jumped out of the car and made his way into the entrance.
“Link, do you know the road to this Mezquital?” asked Madeline.
“Link, do you know how to get to this Mezquital?” asked Madeline.
“Yes. I’ve been there.”
"Yeah. I've been there."
“How far is it?”
"How far is it?"
“Aw, not so very far,” he mumbled.
“Aw, not that far,” he mumbled.
“Link! How many miles?” she implored.
“Link! How many miles?” she asked desperately.
“I reckon only a few.”
“I think only a few.”
Madeline knew that he lied. She asked him no more; nor looked at him, nor at Nels. How stifling was this crowded, ill-smelling plaza! The sun, red and lowering, had sloped far down in the west, but still burned with furnace heat. A swarm of flies whirled over the car. The shadows of low-sailing buzzards crossed Madeline’s sight. Then she saw a row of the huge, uncanny black birds sitting upon the tiled roof of a house. They had neither an air of sleeping nor resting. They were waiting. She fought off a horrible ghastly idea before its full realization. These rebels and guerrillas—what lean, yellow, bearded wretches! They curiously watched Link as he went working over the car. No two were alike, and all were ragged. They had glittering eyes sunk deep in their heads. They wore huge sombreros of brown and black felt, of straw, of cloth. Every man wore a belt or sash into which was thrust some kind of weapon. Some wore boots, some shoes, some moccasins, some sandals, and many were barefooted. They were an excited, jabbering, gesticulating mob. Madeline shuddered to think how a frenzy to spill blood could run through these poor revolutionists. If it was liberty they fought for, they did not show the intelligence in their faces. They were like wolves upon a scent. They affronted her, shocked her. She wondered if their officers were men of the same class. What struck her at last and stirred pity in her was the fact that every man of the horde her swift glance roamed over, however dirty and bedraggled he was, wore upon him some ornament, some tassel or fringe or lace, some ensign, some band, bracelet, badge, or belt, some twist of scarf, something that betrayed the vanity which was the poor jewel of their souls. It was in the race.
Madeline knew he was lying. She asked him no more, nor did she look at him or Nels. How stifling was this crowded, smelly plaza! The sun, red and low in the sky, had dipped far down in the west but still burned with intense heat. A swarm of flies buzzed around the car. The shadows of low-flying buzzards crossed Madeline’s view. Then she spotted a line of the huge, eerie black birds perched on the tiled roof of a house. They didn’t seem to be sleeping or resting. They were waiting. She pushed away a horrifying thought before it fully sank in. These rebels and guerrillas—what skinny, yellow, bearded wretches! They watched Link with curiosity as he worked on the car. No two were alike, and all were ragged. Their glittering eyes were sunken deep in their heads. They wore big sombreros made of brown and black felt, straw, and cloth. Every man had a belt or sash with some type of weapon tucked into it. Some wore boots, some wore shoes, some wore moccasins, some wore sandals, and many were barefoot. They were an excited, chattering, gesturing crowd. Madeline shuddered at the thought of how a bloodthirsty frenzy could run through these poor revolutionaries. If they were fighting for liberty, they didn’t show much intelligence on their faces. They resembled wolves on a scent. They disturbed and shocked her. She wondered if their officers were from the same class. What struck her in the end, stirring her pity, was that every man in the group, no matter how dirty and disheveled, wore some ornament, tassel, fringe, lace, insignia, band, bracelet, badge, belt, or twist of scarf—something that revealed the vanity that was the poor jewel of their souls. It was in their nature.
Suddenly the crowd parted to let the cavalry officer and a rebel of striking presence get to the car.
Suddenly, the crowd split to let through the cavalry officer and a striking rebel head towards the car.
“Madam, it is as I suspected,” said the officer, quickly. “The messages directing Stewart’s release never reached Salazar. They were intercepted. But even without them we might have secured Stewart’s exchange if it had not been for the fact that one of his captors wanted him shot. This guerrilla intercepted the orders, and then was instrumental in taking Stewart to Mezquital. It is exceedingly sad. Why, he should be a free man this instant. I regret—”
“Ma'am, just as I thought,” the officer said quickly. “The messages to release Stewart never got to Salazar. They were intercepted. But even without them, we might have secured Stewart's exchange if it hadn't been for one of his captors wanting him shot. This guerrilla intercepted the orders and played a key role in taking Stewart to Mezquital. It's really unfortunate. He should be a free man right now. I regret—”
“Who did this—this thing?” cried Madeline, cold and sick. “Who is the guerrilla?”
“Who did this—this thing?” cried Madeline, feeling cold and sick. “Who is the guerrilla?”
“Senor Don Carlos Martinez. He has been a bandit, a man of influence in Sonora. He is more of a secret agent in the affairs of the revolution than an active participator. But he has seen guerrilla service.”
“Mr. Don Carlos Martinez. He has been a bandit, a person of influence in Sonora. He plays more of a covert role in the revolution’s dealings than an active participant. However, he has served in guerrilla operations.”
“Don Carlos! Stewart in his power! O God!” Madeline sank down, almost overcome. Then two great hands, powerful, thrilling, clasped her shoulders, and Nels bent over her.
“Don Carlos! Stewart in his power! Oh God!” Madeline sank down, nearly overwhelmed. Then two strong, electrifying hands gripped her shoulders, and Nels leaned over her.
“Miss Majesty, shore we’re wastin’ time here,” he said. His voice, like his hands, was uplifting. She wheeled to him in trembling importunity. How cold, bright, blue the flash of his eyes! They told Madeline she must not weaken. But she could not speak her thought to Nels—could only look at Link.
“Miss Majesty, we’re definitely wasting time here,” he said. His voice, like his hands, was encouraging. She turned to him with anxious urgency. How cold, bright, and blue the flash of his eyes! They told Madeline she must stay strong. But she couldn’t express her feelings to Nels—she could only gaze at Link.
“It figgers impossible, but I’ll do it!” said Link Stevens, in answer to her voiceless query. The cold, grim, wild something about her cowboys blanched Madeline’s face, steeled her nerve, called to the depths of her for that last supreme courage of a woman. The spirit of the moment was nature with Link and Nels; with her it must be passion.
“It seems impossible, but I’ll do it!” said Link Stevens in response to her silent question. The cold, grim, wild energy of her cowboys drained the color from Madeline’s face, hardened her resolve, and drew from deep within her the last bit of courage a woman could summon. The essence of the moment was instinct with Link and Nels; for her, it had to be passion.
“Can I get a permit to go into the interior—to Mezquital?” asked Madeline of the officer.
“Can I get a permit to go into the interior—to Mezquital?” Madeline asked the officer.
“You are going on? Madam, it’s a forlorn hope. Mezquital is a hundred miles away. But there’s a chance—the barest chance if your man can drive this car. The Mexicans are either murderous or ceremonious in their executions. The arrangements for Stewart’s will be elaborate. But, barring unusual circumstances, it will take place precisely at the hour designated. You need no permit. Your messages are official papers. But to save time, perhaps delay, I suggest you take this Mexican, Senor Montes, with you. He outranks Don Carlos and knows the captain of the Mezquital detachment.”
“You're really going? Ma'am, that's a hopeless endeavor. Mezquital is a hundred miles away. But there’s a slight chance—if your man can drive this car. The Mexicans are either ruthless or very formal about their executions. The plans for Stewart's will be detailed. But unless something unusual happens, it will happen exactly at the scheduled time. You don’t need a permit. Your messages are official documents. But to save time, and maybe avoid delays, I suggest you take this Mexican, Senor Montes, with you. He has a higher rank than Don Carlos and knows the captain of the Mezquital unit.”
“Ah! Then Don Carlos is not in command of the forces holding Stewart?”
“Ah! So, Don Carlos isn't in charge of the troops holding Stewart?”
“No.”
“No.”
“I thank you, sir. I shall not forget your kindness,” concluded Madeline.
“I thank you, sir. I won’t forget your kindness,” concluded Madeline.
She bowed to Senor Montes, and requested him to enter the car. Nels stowed some of the paraphernalia away, making room in the rear seat. Link bent over the wheel. The start was so sudden, with such crack and roar, that the crowd split in wild disorder. Out of the plaza the car ran, gathering headway; down a street lined by white and blue walls; across a square where rebels were building barricades; along a railroad track full of iron flat-cars that carried mounted pieces of artillery; through the outlying guards, who waved to the officer, Montes.
She nodded to Senor Montes and asked him to get into the car. Nels packed some of the gear away, creating space in the back seat. Link leaned over the steering wheel. The takeoff was so sudden, with a loud crack and roar, that the crowd scattered in chaos. The car zipped out of the plaza, picking up speed; down a street lined with white and blue walls; across a square where rebels were constructing barricades; along a railroad track filled with flatcars carrying mounted pieces of artillery; through the outer guards, who waved to the officer, Montes.
Madeline bound her glasses tightly over her eyes, and wound veils round the lower part of her face. She was all in a strange glow, she had begun to burn, to throb, to thrill, to expand, and she meant to see all that was possible. The sullen sun, red as fire, hung over the mountain range in the west. How low it had sunk! Before her stretched a narrow, white road, dusty, hard as stone—a highway that had been used for centuries. If it had been wide enough to permit passing a vehicle it would have been a magnificent course for automobiles. But the weeds and the dusty flowers and the mesquite boughs and arms of cactus brushed the car as it sped by.
Madeline tightly secured her glasses over her eyes and wrapped veils around the lower part of her face. She was glowing in a strange way; she was starting to burn, throb, thrill, and expand, and she was determined to take in everything she could. The gloomy sun, red as fire, hung over the mountain range in the west. How low it had dropped! Before her lay a narrow, white road, dusty and hard as stone—a highway that had been used for centuries. If it had been wide enough for a vehicle to pass, it could have been a fantastic route for cars. But the weeds, dusty flowers, mesquite branches, and cactus arms brushed against the car as it sped by.
Faster, faster, faster! That old resistless weight began to press Madeline back; the old incessant bellow of wind filled her ears. Link Stevens hunched low over the wheel. His eyes were hidden under leather helmet and goggles, but the lower part of his face was unprotected. He resembled a demon, so dark and stone-hard and strangely grinning was he. All at once Madeline realized how matchless, how wonderful a driver was this cowboy. She divined that weakening could not have been possible to Link Stevens. He was a cowboy, and he really was riding that car, making it answer to his will, as it had been born in him to master a horse. He had never driven to suit himself, had never reached an all-satisfying speed until now. Beyond that his motive was to save Stewart—to make Madeline happy. Life was nothing to him. That fact gave him the superhuman nerve to face the peril of this ride. Because of his disregard of self he was able to operate the machine, to choose the power, the speed, the guidance, the going with the best judgment and highest efficiency possible. Madeline knew he would get her to Mezquital in time to save Stewart or he would kill her in the attempt.
Faster, faster, faster! That heavy weight started pressing Madeline back; the constant roar of the wind filled her ears. Link Stevens leaned low over the wheel. His eyes were hidden beneath a leather helmet and goggles, but the lower half of his face was exposed. He looked like a demon, dark and stone-faced with a strange grin. Suddenly, Madeline realized how exceptional and skillful a driver this cowboy was. She sensed that weakness was not an option for Link Stevens. He was a cowboy, and he was truly mastering that car, making it respond to his commands, just like he had been born to ride a horse. He had never driven to please himself, never found a satisfying speed until now. Beyond that, his purpose was to save Stewart—to make Madeline happy. Life meant nothing to him. That gave him the extraordinary courage to face the danger of this ride. Because of his selflessness, he was able to control the machine, choose the power, the speed, the direction, and navigate with the best judgment and highest efficiency possible. Madeline knew he would get her to Mezquital in time to save Stewart, or he would kill her trying.
The white, narrow road flashed out of the foreground, slipped with inconceivable rapidity under the car. When she marked a clump of cactus far ahead it seemed to shoot at her, to speed behind her even the instant she noticed it. Nevertheless, Madeline knew Link was not putting the car to its limit. Swiftly as he was flying, he held something in reserve. But he took the turns of the road as if he knew the way was cleared before him. He trusted to a cowboy’s luck. A wagon in one of those curves, a herd of cattle, even a frightened steer, meant a wreck. Madeline never closed her eyes at these fateful moments. If Link could stake himself, the others, and her upon such chance, what could not she stake with her motive? So while the great car hummed and thrummed, and darted round the curves on two wheels, and sped on like a bullet, Madeline lived that ride, meant to feel it to the uttermost.
The white, narrow road shot out of the foreground and disappeared with unbelievable speed beneath the car. When she spotted a clump of cactus far ahead, it seemed to zoom toward her, racing past her the moment she noticed it. Still, Madeline knew Link wasn’t pushing the car to its limits. As fast as he was driving, he still had more power in reserve. He took the curves of the road as if he was certain it was clear ahead of him. He relied on a cowboy’s luck. A wagon around one of those turns, a herd of cattle, or even a startled steer could lead to disaster. Madeline never closed her eyes during those tense moments. If Link could put himself, the others, and her on such a gamble, what could she not risk with her own intentions? So as the powerful car hummed and vibrated, careening around the curves on two wheels, and shot forward like a bullet, Madeline fully embraced that ride, determined to experience it completely.
But it was not all swift going. A stretch of softer ground delayed Link, made the car labor and pant and pound and grind through gravel. Moreover, the cactus plants assumed an alarming ability to impede progress. Long, slender arms of the ocotillo encroached upon the road; broad, round leaves did likewise; fluted columns, fallen like timbers in a forest, lay along the narrow margins; the bayonet cactus and the bisnagi leaned threateningly; clusters of maguey, shadowed by the huge, looming saguaro, infringed upon the highway to Mezquital. And every leaf and blade and branch of cactus bore wicked thorns, any one of which would be fatal to a tire.
But it wasn’t all smooth sailing. A stretch of softer ground slowed Link down, causing the car to struggle and thump and grind through the gravel. On top of that, the cactus plants seemed to have a remarkable talent for getting in the way. Long, slender arms of the ocotillo reached onto the road; broad, round leaves did the same; fluted columns, fallen like timber in a forest, lay along the narrow edges; the bayonet cactus and the bisnagi leaned threateningly; clusters of maguey, overshadowed by the gigantic, looming saguaro, crowded the highway to Mezquital. And every leaf, blade, and branch of cactus was armed with sharp thorns, any one of which could puncture a tire.
It came at length, the bursting report. The car lurched, went on like a crippled thing, and halted, obedient to the master hand at the wheel. Swift as Link was in replacing the tire, he lost time. The red sun, more sullen, duskier as it neared the black, bold horizon, appeared to mock Madeline, to eye her in derision.
It finally happened, the loud bang. The car lurched, continued like a wounded creature, and stopped, responding to the skilled driver at the wheel. Even though Link was quick in changing the tire, he still lost time. The red sun, darker and gloomier as it approached the bold black horizon, seemed to mock Madeline, looking at her with scorn.
Link leaped in, and the car sprang ahead. The road-bed changed, the trees changed—all the surroundings changed except the cactus. There were miles of rolling ridges, rough in the hollows, and short rocky bits of road, and washes to cross, and a low, sandy swale where mesquites grouped a forest along a trickling inch-deep sheet of water. Green things softened the hard, dry aspect of the desert. There were birds and parrots and deer and wild boars. All these Madeline remarked with clear eyes, with remarkable susceptibility of attention; but what she strained to see, what she yearned for, prayed for, was straight, unobstructed road.
Link jumped in, and the car took off. The road changed, the trees changed—all the surroundings changed except the cactus. There were miles of rolling hills, rough in the dips, and short rocky patches of road, and washes to cross, and a low, sandy dip where mesquites formed a forest along a trickling inch-deep stream of water. Greenery softened the harsh, dry look of the desert. There were birds and parrots, deer and wild boars. Madeline noticed all of this with bright eyes, showing an amazing capacity for attention; but what she strained to see, what she longed for, prayed for, was a straight, clear road.
But the road began to wind up; it turned and twisted in tantalizing lazy curves; it was in no hurry to surmount a hill that began to assume proportions of a mountain; it was leisurely, as were all things in Mexico except strife. That was quick, fierce, bloody—it was Spanish.
But the road started to wind upward; it turned and twisted in enticing lazy curves; it wasn't in a rush to conquer a hill that was beginning to look like a mountain; it was taking its time, just like everything in Mexico, except for conflict. That was fast, intense, brutal—it was Spanish.
The descent from that elevation was difficult, extremely hazardous, yet Link Stevens drove fast. At the base of the hill rocks and sand all but halted him for good. Then in taking an abrupt curve a grasping spear ruined another tire. This time the car rasped across the road into the cactus, bursting the second front-wheel tire. Like demons indeed Link and Nels worked. Shuddering, Madeline felt the declining heat of the sun, saw with gloomy eyes the shading of the red light over the desert. She did not look back to see how near the sun was to the horizon. She wanted to ask Nels. Strange as anything on this terrible ride was the absence of speech. As yet no word had been spoken. Madeline wanted to shriek to Link to hurry. But he was more than humanly swift in all his actions. So with mute lips, with the fire in her beginning to chill, with a lifelessness menacing her spirit, she watched, hoped against hope, prayed for a long, straight, smooth road.
The descent from that height was tough and really dangerous, but Link Stevens drove fast. At the bottom of the hill, rocks and sand almost brought him to a stop. Then, as he took a sharp turn, a jagged piece of metal destroyed another tire. This time, the car skidded off the road and crashed into a cactus, blowing the second front tire. Link and Nels were working like crazy. Madeline felt the cooling heat of the sun and, with a gloomy look, saw the red light fading over the desert. She didn’t look back to see how close the sun was to the horizon. She wanted to ask Nels about it. Oddly enough, despite the chaos of this awful ride, no one had spoken a word yet. Madeline wanted to scream at Link to go faster. But he was moving faster than anyone could naturally. So, with her lips sealed, feeling the chill of fear creep in, and a sense of lifelessness threatening her spirit, she watched, hoped against hope, and prayed for a long, straight, smooth road.
Quite suddenly she saw it, seemingly miles of clear, narrow lane disappearing like a thin, white streak in distant green. Perhaps Link Stevens’s heart leaped like Madeline’s. The huge car with a roar and a jerk seemed to answer Madeline’s call, a cry no less poignant because it was silent.
Quite suddenly she saw it, seemingly miles of clear, narrow road disappearing like a thin, white line in the distant green. Maybe Link Stevens’s heart leaped like Madeline’s. The huge car with a roar and a jolt seemed to respond to Madeline’s call, a plea no less powerful because it was silent.
Faster, faster, faster! The roar became a whining hum. Then for Madeline sound ceased to be anything—she could not hear. The wind was now heavy, imponderable, no longer a swift, plastic thing, but solid, like an on-rushing wall. It bore down upon Madeline with such resistless weight that she could not move. The green of desert plants along the road merged in two shapeless fences, sliding at her from the distance. Objects ahead began to blur the white road, to grow streaky, like rays of light, the sky to take on more of a reddening haze.
Faster, faster, faster! The roar turned into a high-pitched hum. Then, for Madeline, sound vanished—she couldn’t hear anything. The wind was now thick and heavy, no longer a quick, fluid thing, but solid, like a massive wall rushing toward her. It pressed down on Madeline with such overwhelming force that she couldn’t move. The green of desert plants along the road blended into two shapeless barriers, sliding toward her from a distance. Objects ahead started to blur the white road, becoming streaky like rays of light, while the sky took on a reddening haze.
Madeline, realizing her sight was failing her, turned for one more look at Link Stevens. It had come to be his ride almost as much as it was hers. He hunched lower than ever, rigid, strained to the last degree, a terrible, implacable driver. This was his hour, and he was great. If he so much as brushed a flying tire against one of the millions of spikes clutching out, striking out from the cactus, there would be a shock, a splitting wave of air—an end. Madeline thought she saw that Link’s bulging cheek and jaw were gray, that his tight-shut lips were white, that the smile was gone. Then he really was human—not a demon. She felt a strange sense of brotherhood. He understood a woman’s soul as Monty Price had understood it. Link was the lightning-forged automaton, the driving, relentless, unconquerable instrument of a woman’s will. He was a man whose force was directed by a woman’s passion. He reached up to her height, felt her love, understood the nature of her agony. These made him heroic. But it was the hard life, the wild years of danger on the desert, the companionship of ruthless men, the elemental, that made possible his physical achievement. Madeline loved his spirit then and gloried in the man.
Madeline, realizing her eyesight was slipping, turned for one last look at Link Stevens. This ride had become as much his as it was hers. He hunched lower than ever, tense and strained to the limit, a fierce, unyielding driver. This was his moment, and he was incredible. If he even grazed one of the countless spikes sticking out from the cactus with a flying tire, there would be a jolt, a shockwave of air—an end. Madeline thought she noticed that Link’s swollen cheek and jaw had turned gray, his tightly closed lips were white, and the smile had disappeared. In that moment, he truly seemed human—not a monster. She felt an odd sense of connection. He understood a woman’s soul the way Monty Price had. Link was the product of lightning, a relentless, unstoppable force of a woman’s desire. His strength was guided by a woman’s passion. He reached up to her level, sensed her love, and grasped the depth of her pain. These qualities made him heroic. But it was the harsh life, the wild years of peril in the desert, the company of ruthless men, the primal experiences that enabled his physical prowess. Madeline cherished his spirit then and took pride in the man.
She had pictured upon her heart, never to be forgotten, this little hunched, deformed figure of Link’s hanging with dauntless, with deathless grip over the wheel, his gray face like a marble mask.
She had etched into her heart, never to forget, this small, hunched, deformed figure of Link hanging on with unwavering, eternal grasp over the wheel, his gray face resembling a marble mask.
That was Madeline’s last clear sensation upon the ride. Blinded, dazed, she succumbed to the demands upon her strength. She reeled, fell back, only vaguely aware of a helping hand. Confusion seized her senses. All about her was a dark chaos through which she was rushing, rushing, rushing under the wrathful red eye of a setting sun. Then, as there was no more sound or sight for her, she felt there was no color. But the rush never slackened—a rush through opaque, limitless space. For moments, hours, ages she was propelled with the velocity of a shooting-star. The earth seemed a huge automobile. And it sped with her down an endless white track through the universe. Looming, ghostly, ghastly, spectral forms of cacti plants, large as pine-trees, stabbed her with giant spikes. She became an unstable being in a shapeless, colorless, soundless cosmos of unrelated things, but always rushing, even to meet the darkness that haunted her and never reached her.
That was Madeline’s last clear feeling during the ride. Blinded and disoriented, she gave in to the strain on her strength. She stumbled, fell back, only vaguely aware of someone trying to help her. Confusion overwhelmed her senses. All around her was a dark chaos through which she was speeding, speeding, speeding under the angry red eye of a setting sun. Then, as sound and sight faded away, she sensed a lack of color. But the rush never let up—a rush through a blurry, endless space. For moments, hours, ages, she was propelled with the speed of a shooting star. The earth felt like a gigantic car. And it raced with her down an endless white track through the universe. Looming, ghostly, terrifying, spectral shapes of cacti, as big as pine trees, pierced her with giant spikes. She became an unstable being in a formless, colorless, soundless cosmos of disconnected things, but always rushing, even toward the darkness that stalked her and never caught up.
But at an end of infinite time that rush ceased. Madeline lost the queer feeling of being disembodied by a frightfully swift careening through boundless distance. She distinguished voices, low at first, apparently far away. Then she opened her eyes to blurred but conscious sight.
But eventually, after what felt like an eternity, that rush came to a stop. Madeline lost the strange sensation of being disconnected while being hurled through endless space. She began to hear voices, faint at first and seemingly distant. Then she opened her eyes to a blurry but aware view.
The car had come to a stop. Link was lying face down over the wheel. Nels was rubbing her hands, calling to her. She saw a house with clean whitewashed wall and brown-tiled roof. Beyond, over a dark mountain range, peeped the last red curve, the last beautiful ray of the setting sun.
The car had stopped. Link was lying face down on the steering wheel. Nels was rubbing her hands, calling to her. She spotted a house with a clean, whitewashed wall and a brown-tiled roof. Beyond it, over a dark mountain range, peeked the last red curve, the final beautiful ray of the setting sun.
XXV. At the End of the Road
Madeline saw that the car was surrounded by armed Mexicans. They presented a contrast to the others she had seen that day; she wondered a little at their silence, at their respectful front.
Madeline noticed that the car was encircled by armed Mexicans. They were different from the others she had encountered that day; she was slightly curious about their silence and their respectful demeanor.
Suddenly a sharp spoken order opened up the ranks next to the house. Senor Montes appeared in the break, coming swiftly. His dark face wore a smile; his manner was courteous, important, authoritative.
Suddenly, a loud command split the ranks next to the house. Señor Montes emerged from the gap, moving quickly. His dark face was smiling; his demeanor was polite, significant, and authoritative.
“Senora, it is not too late!”
“Ma'am, it’s not too late!”
He spoke her language with an accent strange to her, so that it seemed to hinder understanding.
He spoke her language with a strangely pronounced accent, making it hard for her to understand him.
“Senora, you got here in time,” he went on. “El Capitan Stewart will be free.”
“Ma'am, you made it just in time,” he continued. “Captain Stewart will be available.”
“Free!” she whispered.
"Free!" she whispered.
She rose, reeling.
She stood up, dizzy.
“Come,” replied Montes, taking her arm. “Perdoneme, Senora.”
“Come on,” said Montes, taking her arm. “Forgive me, ma'am.”
Without his assistance she would have fallen wholly upon Nels, who supported her on the other side. They helped her alight from the car. For a moment the white walls, the hazy red sky, the dark figures of the rebels, whirled before Madeline’s eyes. She took a few steps, swaying between her escorts; then the confusion of her sight and mind passed away. It was as if she quickened with a thousand vivifying currents, as if she could see and hear and feel everything in the world, as if nothing could be overlooked, forgotten, neglected.
Without his help, she would have completely relied on Nels, who was supporting her on the other side. They assisted her in getting out of the car. For a moment, the white walls, the hazy red sky, and the dark figures of the rebels swirled in front of Madeline’s eyes. She took a few steps, swaying between her escorts; then the confusion in her sight and mind cleared up. It was as if she was energized by a thousand revitalizing currents, as if she could see, hear, and feel everything in the world, as if nothing could be overlooked, forgotten, or ignored.
She turned back, remembering Link. He was lurching from the car, helmet and goggles thrust back, the gray shade gone from his face, the cool, bright gleam of his eyes disappearing for something warmer.
She turned back, thinking about Link. He was stumbling out of the car, his helmet and goggles pushed back, the gray color fading from his face, the cool, bright shine in his eyes giving way to something softer.
Senor Montes led Madeline and her cowboys through a hall to a patio, and on through a large room with flooring of rough, bare boards that rattled, into a smaller room full of armed quiet rebels facing an open window.
Senor Montes led Madeline and her cowboys through a hallway to a patio, and then into a large room with rough, bare wooden floors that creaked, into a smaller room filled with quiet, armed rebels facing an open window.
Madeline scanned the faces of these men, expecting to see Don Carlos. But he was not present. A soldier addressed her in Spanish too swiftly uttered, too voluble for her to translate. But, like Senor Montes, he was gracious and, despite his ragged garb and uncouth appearance, he bore the unmistakable stamp of authority.
Madeline looked at the faces of these men, hoping to see Don Carlos. But he wasn’t there. A soldier spoke to her in Spanish, too quickly and too much for her to understand. However, like Senor Montes, he was polite and, despite his torn clothes and rough look, he clearly had a sense of authority.
Montes directed Madeline’s attention to a man by the window. A loose scarf of vivid red hung from his hand.
Montes pointed out a man by the window to Madeline. A loose, bright red scarf dangled from his hand.
“Senora, they were waiting for the sun to set when we arrived,” said Montes. “The signal was about to be given for Senor Stewart’s walk to death.”
“Ma'am, they were waiting for the sun to set when we got here,” said Montes. “The signal was just about to be given for Mr. Stewart’s walk to his death.”
“Stewart’s walk!” echoed Madeline.
“Stewart’s walk!” echoed Madeline.
“Ah, Senora, let me tell you his sentence—the sentence I have had the honor and happiness to revoke for you.”
“Ah, Ma'am, let me tell you his sentence—the sentence I’ve had the privilege and joy to cancel for you.”
Stewart had been court-martialed and sentenced according to a Mexican custom observed in cases of brave soldiers to whom honorable and fitting executions were due. His hour had been set for Thursday when the sun had sunk. Upon signal he was to be liberated and was free to walk out into the road, to take any direction he pleased. He knew his sentence; knew that death awaited him, that every possible avenue of escape was blocked by men with rifles ready. But he had not the slightest idea at what moment or from what direction the bullets were to come.
Stewart had been court-martialed and sentenced according to a Mexican custom that honored brave soldiers with rightful executions. His execution was scheduled for Thursday at sunset. When the signal was given, he would be let go and could walk down the road in any direction he chose. He understood his sentence; he knew death was waiting for him and that every possible way out was blocked by men with rifles at the ready. However, he had no idea when or from where the bullets would come.
“Senora, we have sent messengers to every squad of waiting soldiers—an order that El Capitan is not to be shot. He is ignorant of his release. I shall give the signal for his freedom.”
“Ma'am, we've sent messengers to every group of waiting soldiers—an order that the Captain is not to be shot. He doesn't know he's been freed. I’ll give the signal for his release.”
Montes was ceremonious, gallant, emotional. Madeline saw his pride, and divined that the situation was one which brought out the vanity, the ostentation, as well as the cruelty of his race. He would keep her in an agony of suspense, let Stewart start upon that terrible walk in ignorance of his freedom. It was the motive of a Spaniard. Suddenly Madeline had a horrible quaking fear that Montes lied, that he meant her to be a witness of Stewart’s execution. But no, the man was honest; he was only barbarous. He would satisfy certain instincts of his nature—sentiment, romance, cruelty—by starting Stewart upon that walk, by watching Stewart’s actions in the face of seeming death, by seeing Madeline’s agony of doubt, fear, pity, love. Almost Madeline felt that she could not endure the situation. She was weak and tottering.
Montes was formal, brave, and emotional. Madeline noticed his pride and realized that the situation revealed both the vanity and the cruelty of his background. He would keep her in a state of suspense, allowing Stewart to take that dreadful path unaware of his freedom. It was the mindset of a Spaniard. Suddenly, Madeline was gripped by a terrible fear that Montes was lying, that he intended for her to witness Stewart's execution. But no, the man was honest; he was just brutal. He would satisfy certain instincts of his character—sentiment, romance, cruelty—by sending Stewart on that walk, by observing Stuart's actions in the face of apparent death, by witnessing Madeline's anguish of doubt, fear, pity, and love. Madeline nearly felt that she couldn't bear the situation. She was weak and on the verge of collapse.
“Senora! Ah, it will be one beautiful thing!” Montes caught the scarf from the rebel’s hand. He was glowing, passionate; his eyes had a strange, soft, cold flash; his voice was low, intense. He was living something splendid to him. “I’ll wave the scarf, Senora. That will be the signal. It will be seen down at the other end of the road. Senor Stewart’s jailer will see the signal, take off Stewart’s irons, release him, open the door for his walk. Stewart will be free. But he will not know. He will expect death. As he is a brave man, he will face it. He will walk this way. Every step of that walk he will expect to be shot from some unknown quarter. But he will not be afraid. Senora, I have seen El Captain fighting in the field. What is death to him? Ah, will it not be magnificent to see him come forth—to walk down? Senora, you will see what a man he is. All the way he will expect cold, swift death. Here at this end of the road he will meet his beautiful lady!”
“Ma'am! Oh, it’s going to be something amazing!” Montes grabbed the scarf from the rebel’s hand. He was filled with excitement; his eyes had a strange, soft, cold gleam; his voice was quiet and intense. He was experiencing something extraordinary to him. “I’ll wave the scarf, Ma'am. That will be the signal. It will be seen down at the other end of the road. Mr. Stewart’s jailer will see the signal, take off Stewart’s shackles, release him, and open the door for his walk. Stewart will be free. But he won’t know it. He will be expecting death. Being a brave man, he’ll face it. He’ll walk this way. With every step, he’ll expect to be shot from some unknown direction. But he won’t be afraid. Ma'am, I have seen El Captain fighting in battle. What is death to him? Ah, won’t it be magnificent to see him come out—to walk down? Ma'am, you will witness what a man he is. All the way he will expect cold, swift death. Here at this end of the road, he will meet his beautiful lady!”
“Is there no—no possibility of a mistake?” faltered Madeline.
“Is there really no chance of a mistake?” Madeline asked hesitantly.
“None. My order included unloading of rifles.”
“None. My order included taking the rifles off the trucks.”
“Don Carlos?”
"Is this Don Carlos?"
“He is in irons, and must answer to General Salazar,” replied Montes.
“He's in handcuffs and has to answer to General Salazar,” Montes replied.
Madeline looked down the deserted road. How strange to see the last ruddy glow of the sun over the brow of the mountain range! The thought of that sunset had been torture for her. Yet it had passed, and now the afterlights were luminous, beautiful, prophetic.
Madeline looked down the empty road. How strange it was to see the last reddish glow of the sun over the top of the mountains! The thought of that sunset had tormented her. But it had come and gone, and now the afterglow was bright, beautiful, and hopeful.
With a heart stricken by both joy and agony, she saw Montes wave the scarf.
With a heart full of both joy and pain, she watched Montes wave the scarf.
Then she waited. No change manifested itself down the length of that lonely road. There was absolute silence in the room behind her. How terribly, infinitely long seemed the waiting! Never in all her future life would she forget the quaint pink, blue, and white walled houses with their colored roofs. That dusty bare road resembled one of the uncovered streets of Pompeii with its look of centuries of solitude.
Then she waited. There was no change along that empty road. The room behind her was completely silent. The wait felt incredibly long! She would never forget the charming pink, blue, and white houses with their colorful roofs. That dusty, bare road looked like one of the uncovered streets of Pompeii, exuding centuries of loneliness.
Suddenly a door opened and a tall man stepped out.
Suddenly, a door opened, and a tall man walked out.
Madeline recognized Stewart. She had to place both hands on the window-sill for support, while a storm of emotion swayed her. Like a retreating wave it rushed away. Stewart lived. He was free. He had stepped out into the light. She had saved him. Life changed for her in that instant of realization and became sweet, full, strange.
Madeline recognized Stewart. She had to put both hands on the window sill for support as a whirlwind of emotions surged within her. Like a receding wave, it rushed away. Stewart was alive. He was free. He had stepped into the light. She had saved him. In that moment of realization, her life changed and became sweet, fulfilling, and strange.
Stewart shook hands with some one in the doorway. Then he looked up and down the road. The door closed behind him. Leisurely he rolled a cigarette, stood close to the wall while he scratched a match. Even at that distance Madeline’s keen eyes caught the small flame, the first little puff of smoke.
Stewart shook hands with someone in the doorway. Then he looked up and down the road. The door closed behind him. He took his time rolling a cigarette and stood close to the wall while striking a match. Even from that distance, Madeline’s sharp eyes spotted the small flame and the first little puff of smoke.
Stewart then took to the middle of the road and leisurely began his walk.
Stewart then stepped into the middle of the road and casually started his walk.
To Madeline he appeared natural, walked as unconcernedly as if he were strolling for pleasure; but the absence of any other living thing, the silence, the red haze, the surcharged atmosphere—these were all unnatural. From time to time Stewart stopped to turn face forward toward houses and corners. Only silence greeted these significant moves of his. Once he halted to roll and light another cigarette. After that his step quickened.
To Madeline, he seemed relaxed, walking as casually as if he were out for a leisurely stroll; but the lack of any other living beings, the silence, the red haze, the heavy atmosphere—these were all strange. Every now and then, Stewart would pause to face the houses and corners. Only silence responded to these purposeful movements. At one point, he stopped to roll and light another cigarette. After that, his pace picked up.
Madeline watched him, with pride, love, pain, glory combating for a mastery over her. This walk of his seemingly took longer than all her hours of awakening, of strife, of remorse, longer than the ride to find him. She felt that it would be impossible for her to wait till he reached the end of the road. Yet in the hurry and riot of her feelings she had fleeting panics. What could she say to him? How meet him? Well she remembered the tall, powerful form now growing close enough to distinguish its dress. Stewart’s face was yet only a dark gleam. Soon she would see it—long before he could know she was there. She wanted to run to meet him. Nevertheless, she stood rooted to her covert behind the window, living that terrible walk with him to the uttermost thought of home, sister, mother, sweetheart, wife, life itself—every thought that could come to a man stalking to meet his executioners. With all that tumult in her mind and heart Madeline still fell prey to the incomprehensible variations of emotion possible to a woman. Every step Stewart took thrilled her. She had some strange, subtle intuition that he was not unhappy, and that he believed beyond shadow of doubt that he was walking to his death. His steps dragged a little, though they had begun to be swift. The old, hard, physical, wild nerve of the cowboy was perhaps in conflict with spiritual growth of the finer man, realizing too late that life ought not to be sacrificed.
Madeline watched him, feeling a mix of pride, love, pain, and glory battling for control over her. His walk seemed to stretch longer than all her hours of awakening, struggle, and regret, even longer than the journey to find him. She didn’t believe she could hold on until he reached the end of the road. Yet amidst the chaos of her emotions, she experienced fleeting moments of panic. What could she say to him? How could she approach him? She remembered the tall, strong figure drawing nearer, enough now to make out his clothing. Stewart’s face was still just a dark shadow. Soon she would see it—long before he could sense her presence. She wanted to run to him. Still, she stayed hidden behind the window, sharing that agonizing walk with him, filled with thoughts of home, sister, mother, sweetheart, wife, and life itself—every thought that could occur to a man walking to face his executioners. Despite the turmoil in her mind and heart, Madeline still experienced the complex emotions that only a woman could feel. Every step Stewart took sent a thrill through her. She had an odd, subtle sense that he was not unhappy, and that he truly believed he was walking to his death. His steps were slightly dragging, even as they had started to quicken. The old, tough, wild spirit of the cowboy was possibly at odds with the spiritual evolution of the better man, realizing too late that life shouldn’t be sacrificed.
Then the dark gleam that was his face took shape, grew sharper and clearer. He was stalking now, and there was a suggestion of impatience in his stride. It took these hidden Mexicans a long time to kill him! At a point in the middle of the road, even with the corner of a house and opposite to Madeline’s position, Stewart halted stock-still. He presented a fair, bold mark to his executioners, and he stood there motionless a full moment.
Then the dark shine of his face became more defined, sharper and clearer. He was stalking now, and there was a sense of impatience in his step. It was taking these hidden Mexicans too long to take him out! At a spot in the middle of the road, near the corner of a house and across from Madeline’s position, Stewart stopped dead in his tracks. He offered a clear target to his executioners, standing there completely still for a full moment.
Only silence greeted him. Plain it was to Madeline, and she thought to all who had eyes to see, that to Stewart, since for some reason he had been spared all along his walk, this was the moment when he ought to be mercifully shot. But as no shots came a rugged dignity left him for a reckless scorn manifest in the way he strolled, across to the corner of the house, rolled yet another cigarette, and, presenting a broad breast to the window, smoked and waited.
Only silence surrounded him. To Madeline, it was obvious, and she thought to anyone who noticed, that for Stewart, since he had somehow managed to escape all along his walk, this was the moment he should have been mercifully shot. But with no shots fired, a rough dignity faded from him, replaced by a bold scorn evident in the way he walked over to the corner of the house, rolled another cigarette, and, facing the window, smoked and waited.
That wait was almost unendurable for Madeline. Perhaps it was only a moment, several moments at the longest, but the time seemed a year. Stewart’s face was scornful, hard. Did he suspect treachery on the part of his captors, that they meant to play with him as a cat with a mouse, to murder him at leisure? Madeline was sure she caught the old, inscrutable, mocking smile fleeting across his lips. He held that position for what must have been a reasonable time to his mind, then with a laugh and a shrug he threw the cigarette into the road. He shook his head as if at the incomprehensible motives of men who could have no fair reasons now for delay.
That wait was almost unbearable for Madeline. It might have only been a moment, maybe a few moments at the most, but it felt like a year. Stewart's expression was dismissive and cold. Did he suspect that his captors were being treacherous, that they planned to toy with him like a cat with a mouse, to kill him slowly? Madeline was certain she saw the old, unreadable, mocking smile briefly appear on his lips. He held that pose for what must have seemed like a reasonable amount of time to him, then with a laugh and a shrug, he tossed the cigarette into the road. He shook his head as if trying to understand the baffling motives of men who had no justifiable reason for delaying things now.
He made a sudden violent action that was more than a straightening of his powerful frame. It was the old instinctive violence. Then he faced north. Madeline read his thought, knew he was thinking of her, calling her a last silent farewell. He would serve her to his last breath, leave her free, keep his secret. That picture of him, dark-browed, fire-eyed, strangely sad and strong, sank indelibly into Madeline’s heart of hearts.
He suddenly made a forceful movement that was more than just straightening his strong body. It was an instinctive kind of violence. Then he turned to the north. Madeline understood his thoughts, realizing he was thinking of her, giving her a final silent goodbye. He would serve her until his last breath, set her free, and keep his secret. That image of him—dark browed, with fiery eyes, and a mix of sadness and strength—etched itself deeply into Madeline’s heart.
The next instant he was striding forward, to force by bold and scornful presence a speedy fulfilment of his sentence.
The next moment, he was stepping forward, determined to make sure his sentence was carried out quickly with his bold and disdainful presence.
Madeline stepped into the door, crossed the threshold. Stewart staggered as if indeed the bullets he expected had pierced him in mortal wound. His dark face turned white. His eyes had the rapt stare, the wild fear of a man who saw an apparition, yet who doubted his sight. Perhaps he had called to her as the Mexicans called to their Virgin; perhaps he imagined sudden death had come unawares, and this was her image appearing to him in some other life.
Madeline walked through the door and stepped inside. Stewart swayed as if the bullets he feared had actually struck him with a fatal blow. His dark face drained of color, and his eyes were wide with a mix of awe and sheer terror, like someone who has just seen a ghost but isn’t sure if he’s really seeing it. Maybe he had summoned her like the Mexicans call to their Virgin; perhaps he thought death had caught him off guard, and this was her spirit appearing to him from another life.
“Who—are—you?” he whispered, hoarsely.
“Who are you?” he whispered, hoarsely.
She tried to lift her hands, failed, tried again, and held them out, trembling.
She tried to lift her hands, couldn’t, tried again, and held them out, trembling.
“It is I. Majesty. Your wife!”
“It’s me. Your majesty. Your wife!”
Download ePUB
If you like this ebook, consider a donation!